Translated
by Sally-Ann Spencer
Neiu York London
Copyright © 2005 by Piper Verlag GmbH, Munich
English translation copyright © 2009 by Sally-Ann Spencer
Excerpt from The War of the Dwarves copyright © 2010 by
Piper
Verlag GmbH, Munich
All rights reserved. Except as permitted under the U.S.
Copyright Act of 1976, no part of this publication may be reproduced,
distributed, or transmitted in any form or by any means, or stored in a
database or retrieval system, without the prior written permission of the
publisher.
Orbit
Hachette
Book Group
237 Park
Avenue, New York, NY 10017
Visit our
Web site at www.HachetteBookGroup.com
First English-language Edition: July
2009
Originally
published in Germany as Die Zwerge by Heyne
Verlag,
2003
Orbit is an imprint of Hachette Book Group. The Orbit name and logo
are trademarks of Little, Brown Book Group Limited.
The characters and events in this
book are fictitious. Any similarity to real persons, living or dead, is
coincidental and not intended by the author.
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Heitz, Markus.
[Zwerge. English]
The dwarves / Markus Heitz ; translated by Sally-Ann Spencer. — 1st ed.
p. cm.
ISBN 978-0-316-04944-3
I. Spencer, Sally-Ann. II. Title.
PT2708.E48Z8413 2008
833'.92—dc22 2008042267
10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1
RRD-IN
Printed in the United States of America
"Appearances are there to be ignored, for the biggest
hearts may reside in the smallest and unlikeliest creatures. Those who fail to
look beyond the surface will never encounter true virtue—not in others and
certainly not in themselves"
—From
"Collected Wisdom of a Dead Stranger" in
Philosophical Letters and Texts from the archive of the Hundred-Pillared
Temple of Palandiell in Zamina, Kingdom of Rân Ribastur.
"Dwarves
and mountains have one thing in common: It takes an almighty hammer and a
tremendous amount of persistence to overcome them"
—Traditional saying from the Murk region,
northeast Idoslane.
"Fleeing from an angry
dwarf requires fleetness of foot. For consider this: The target of dwarven
wrath must be capable of outstripping the irate warrior's flying ax. Those
lucky enough to escape with their lives should take pains to alter their
appearance. The dwarven memory is dangerously good. Even after twenty cycles
the threat remains and no one can predict when the chamber might ring with
vengeful dwarven laughter as a tankard smashes against the offender's head."
—From "Notes on the Races of Girdlegard:
Singularities and
Oddities" from the archive of Viransiénsis, Kingdom of Tabaîn, compiled by
the Master of Folklore M. A. Het in the 4299th Solar Cycle.
PART ONE
Northern Pass,
Stone Gateway to the Fifthling Kingdom, Late Summer, 5199th
Solar Cycle
Pale
fog filled the canyons and valleys of the Gray Range.
The
Dragon's Tongue, Great Blade, and other peaks towered defiantly above the
mist, tips raised toward the evening sun.
Slowly,
as if afraid of the jagged peaks, the ball of fire sank in the sky, bathing the
Northern Pass in waning red light.
Glandallin
Hammerstrike of the clan of the Striking Hammers recovered his breath. Leaning
back against the roughly hewn wall of the watchtower, he cupped his hand to his
bushy brown eyebrows and shaded his eyes from the unaccustomed light. The
ascent had been grueling and his close-woven chain mail, two axes, and shield
weighed heavy on his aged legs.
There was no one younger to stand
watch in his stead.
Only
a few orbits previously, the nine clans of the fifthling kingdom had been
attacked in their underground halls. Many had lost their lives in the battle,
but the young and inexperienced were the first to fall.
Then
came the sickness. No one knew where it had sprung from, but it preyed on the
dwarves, sapping their strength, clouding their vision, and enfeebling their
hands.
And
so it was that Glandallin, despite his age, was guarding the gateway that night.
Two vast slabs of solid rock erected by Vraccas, god and creator of the dwarves, stemmed the
tide of invading beasts. For some the sight of the imposing gateway was not
enough of a deterrent; bleached bones and twisted scraps of armor were all that
remained of them now.
The
solitary sentry unhooked a leather pouch from his belt and poured cool water
down his parched throat. A few drops spilled out of the corners of his mouth,
flowing through his black beard. Elegant braids, the work of untold hours, hung
from his chin and rested on his chest like delicate cords.
Glandallin
replaced the pouch, took his weapons from his belt, and laid them on the
parapet. The steel ax heads jangled melodiously against the sculpted rock,
carved like the rest of the stronghold from the mountain's flesh.
A ray
of sunlight glowed red on the polished inscriptions, illuminating the runes and
symbols that promised their bearer protection, a sure aim, and long life.
Glandallin
turned to the north, his brown eyes sweeping the mountain pass, thirty paces
across, that led from the watchtower into the Outer Lands. No one knew what lay
there. In times gone by, human kings had dispatched adventurers in all
directions, but the expeditions were rarely successful and the few who returned
to the gateway brought orcs in their wake.
He
scanned the pass carefully. The beasts learned nothing from their defeats.
Their vicious, choleric minds compelled them to throw themselves against the
dwarves' defenses. They were bent on destroying anyone and anything in their
path, for their creator, the dark lord Tion, had made them that way. The raids
were conducted in blind fury. Raging and screaming, the beasts would scale the
walls. From the first tinges of dawn light until the setting of the sun, armor would
be cleaved from flesh, and flesh from bone. A tide of black, dark green, and
yellowy-brown blood would lap against the impregnable gates, while battering
rams and projectiles shattered as they hit the stone.
The
children of Vraccas suffered casualties, deaths, and crippling injuries too,
yet it never occurred to them to quarrel with their fate. They were dwarves,
Girdlegard's staunchest defenders.
And yet we were almost defeated. Glandallin's
thoughts turned again to the strange beings that had invaded the underground
halls, killing many of his kinsfolk. No one had seen them approach. Outwardly
they resembled elves: tall, slim, and graceful, but as warriors they were
savage and ruthless.
Glandallin
was almost certain that the creatures were not elves. There was no love lost
between the dwarves and their pointy-eared neighbors. Vraccas and Sitalia,
goddess and creator of the elves, had ordained the races with common loathing
from the moment of their birth. Their differences had resulted in feuds, the occasional
skirmish, and sometimes death, but never war.
Then
again, he
thought critically, I might be wrong. Perhaps the elves hate us
enough to draw arms against us—or maybe they're after our gold.
A
bitter northerly wind whistled round the mountaintops, gusting through
Glandallin's braided beard. Suddenly, his brow furrowed angrily as his nostrils
detected a stench that offended the core of his being: orcs.
Spilled
blood, excrement, and filth—that was the perfume of orcs—mixed in with the
rancid odor of their greasy apparel. They basted their armor with fat,
believing that the dwarves' axes would slither over the metal and leave them
unharmed.
No amount of fat will save them. Glandallin did not
wait for the ragged banners and rusty spears to appear over the final incline
of the path. Standing on tiptoe, he placed his callused hands on the coarse
wooden handles of the bellows. A low drone vibrated through the shafts and
galleries of the fifthling kingdom.
The
dwarf worked two bellows in rotation to produce a constant stream of air.
Gathering in volume, the drone became a single piercing note, loud enough to
rouse the soundest of sleepers. Now, as so often in their history, the
fifthlings were being summoned to fulfill their noble duty as Girdlegard's
protectors.
Sweating
from the exertion, Glandallin glanced over his shoulder.
Tion's
beasts had formed a wide front and were marching on the gateway, more numerous
than ever before. Elves would have fled to the woods and a man's heart would
have stopped at the sight of the monstrous hordes. The dwarf stood his ground.
The
attack on the gateway came as no surprise to Glandallin, but the timing was
unsettling. The coming battle would stretch the dwarves' resources more than
usual. More bloodshed and more death.
The defending warriors lined up on the
battlements on either side of the gateway, their movements slow, some lurching
rather than walking, weak fingers wrapped loosely around the hafts of their
axes. The band of dwarves stumbling to the defense of the gates numbered no
more than a hundred brave souls. A thousand would have been too few.
Glandallin's
watch was at an end; he was needed elsewhere.
"Don't
forsake us, Vraccas. We're outnumbered," he whispered, unable to wrest his
eyes from the stinking stream of orcs that poured along the path. Grunting,
shouting, and jostling, they headed for the gates. The bare rock cast back
their bestial cries, the echo mingling with their belligerent chants.
The
strident noises jangled in his mind, and it seemed to him that the beasts had
somehow changed. There was a palpable air of confidence about the raging,
shouting mob.
For the first time, he was afraid
of the beasts.
What he saw next did nothing to
ease his mind.
Scanning
the ranks of the invading army, his gaze fell on a cluster of lofty fir trees.
Since childhood he had watched them thrive and grow on the otherwise barren
slopes.
Now they were sickly and dying.
The trees are faring no better than we.
Glandallin's thoughts were with his wounded and ailing friends. "What strange
forces are these? Your children need you, Vraccas," he prayed briefly,
gathering his axes from the parapet.
With
growing dread, he pressed his lips to the runes. "Don't abandon me
now," he enjoined the blades softly, before turning and hurrying down the
steps to join the small troop of defenders.
He
reached them just as the first wave of beasts struck the wall. Quivering arrows
rained down on the dwarves. Ladders were thrust against the walls, and orcs
hastened to scale the wobbly rungs, while others set down their catapults and
launched burning projectiles to reinforce the bombardment. Leather pouches,
filled to the brim with paraffin, spluttered through the air and burst on
impact, covering everything around them in an oily liquid and setting it ablaze.
The
first salvo was aimed too low, but the dark hordes were undeterred by the sight
of their front line burning in a storm of fire. Nothing, not the battery of
stones nor the torrent of molten ore, could check their rapacious zeal. For
every orc that was slain, five new aggressors scaled the walls. This time they
were determined to breach the defenses. This time the gateway was destined to
fall.
"Look
out!" Glandallin ran to the aid of a dwarf whose shoulder had been pierced
by an arrow. One of Tion's minions, a stunted creature with thick tusks and a
broad nose, had seized his chance and squeezed through an embrasure, hauling
himself over the parapet and onto the battlements.
Dwarf
and orc stared at each other in silence. The clamor of voices, the hissing of
arrows, the clatter of axes faded to an indistinct buzz.
Glandallin's
ears were tuned to his opponent's heavy breath. The red-veined eyes, buried
deep within the head, flicked nervously from side to side. The dwarf knew
exactly what was going on inside the creature's mind. The orc was the first of
its kind to have set foot on the battlement and could scarcely believe its good
fortune.
A
foul odor rose from the thick gray layer of tallow that coated its armor
plating. The smell filled Glandallin's nostrils, drawing his attention back to
the battle.
Shrieking,
he threw himself against the beast. His shield jabbed smartly downward,
shattering his opponent's foot, while he lunged with his ax from above. The
blade smashed through the unarmored flesh around the armpit. The orc's arm,
sliced cleanly at the joint, fell to the stony floor. Dark green blood sprayed
upward from the open wound.
The
orc let out a high-pitched scream, for which he was rewarded by a mighty stroke
perpendicular to the neck.
"Tell
your kinsfolk I am anxious to make their acquaintance!" Glandallin gave
the dying brute a final shove and sent him tumbling against the parapet, where
he took the next invader with him as he fell. They vanished over the side and
plummeted to the ground. With any luck, they'll
crush half a dozen others, thought Glandallin.
From
then on the enemy gave him no respite. Running from one end of the parapet to
the other, splitting helms, cleaving skulls, ducking arrows, and evading
firebombs, he felled orc after orc.
Darkness
was descending on the Stone Gateway, but Glandallin was untroubled by the
fading light; even the thickest gloom could be penetrated by sharp dwarven
eyes. But each blow and every movement took its toll on his weary arms,
shoulders, and legs.
"Vraccas,
grant us a moment to gather our forces," he coughed, rubbing his braids
across his face to free his eyes of blood.
The dwarven deity
took pity on his children.
A
fanfare of horns and bugles bade the hordes cease their assault, and the orcs
complied, pulling away from the walls.
Glandallin
dispatched a lingering assailant and sank to the stone floor, fumbling for his
drinking pouch. He tore off his helmet and poured water over his sweat-drenched
hair. The cool fluid trickled over his skin, revitalizing his will.
How many of us remain? He stumbled to his feet and
went in search of survivors. Of the hundred-strong army, seventy were left,
among them the formidable figure of the fifthling monarch.
Nowhere
were the enemy corpses stacked higher than at Giselbert Ironeye's feet. His
shiny armor, made of the toughest steel forged in a dwarven smithy, gleamed
brightly, and his diamond-studded belt caught the flames that licked from pools
of burning oil. He climbed atop a stone ledge to speak to his folk.
"Stand
firm!" Steady and true, his voice sounded across the battlements. "Be
as unyielding as the rock from which we were hewn. Nothing—no orc, no ogre, no
creature of Tion—will break us. We will cut them to pieces as dwarves have done
for millennia. Vraccas is with us!"
The
speech was met with low cheers and grunts of approval. The dwarves had been
dealt a blow, but already their confidence was returning. They had grit and
pride enough to stop the enemy in its tracks.
The
warriors replenished their weary bodies with food and dark ale. "With
every sip and mouthful they felt stronger, more alive. The worst injuries were
treated as time and circumstance permitted, gaping wounds sewn hurriedly
together with fine twine.
Glandallin
found himself a space on the floor beside Glamdolin Strongarm. The two friends
ate in silence, watching the mass of orcs that had retreated a hundred paces
from the gates. To Glandallin's eyes it seemed the enemy had formed a living
battering ram, intent on smashing down the gateway with their flesh.
"Such
persistence," he said softly. "I have never seen them as dogged as
they are tonight. Something has changed." The thought of the dying trees
sent a chill down his spine.
All
of a sudden an ax clattered to the floor beside him. Turning just in time, he
saw his companion slump forward. "Glamdolin!" He caught hold of the
dwarf and was dismayed to see delicate beads of sweat glistening on his forehead,
drenching his face and his beard. His reddened eyes were glazed and unseeing.
Glandallin
knew at once that the mystery illness had claimed another victim, finishing
what the enemy had left half-done.
"Get some rest. The fever will soon be over." Hauling Glamdolin's heaving body to one side, he settled him as comfortably as he could, knowing full well that the illness was probably fatal.
The long wait sapped the strength of
dwarves and orcs alike. Fatigue, the warrior's enemy, set in. Glandallin dozed
on his feet until his helmet hit the parapet with a thud. Awaking with a start,
he looked around anxiously. Yet more of his kinsmen had fallen prey to the
sickness. Fortune had turned her back upon the children of the Smith.
A bugle call rent
the air, setting his heart racing.
In
the cold light of the moon he watched the approaching rows of colossal
silhouettes, four times as tall as the orcs. There were forty of them. Their
hideous bodies were clad in poorly wrought armor and their monstrous hands
clasped fir saplings, roughly fashioned into clubs.
Ogres.
The
dwarves' defenses would crumble if the giants were to scale the walls. The
cauldrons of molten slag were empty, the cache of stones depleted. For a moment
Glandallin's doubts returned, but a glance at Giselbert's gleaming figure
assured him that evil would be defeated in the time-honored way.
The
mass of orcs stirred and a cheer went up as the ogres approached.
Marching
to the head of the army, the enormous beasts, uglier and more oafish than even
the orcs, deposited their grappling irons, the four prongs of which were the
length of a fully grown man. They attached long chains to the stem of each
hook.
The
apparatus is ill suited to climbing, thought Glandallin. The beasts intend
to topple the walls.
Whistling
through the air, three dozen claws buried themselves in the stonework. A
shouted order summoned the watching orcs to join the ogres in their tug-of-war.
A crack of whips sounded and the jangling links pulled taut.
Glandallin
heard the wall groan softly. The stronghold, built many cycles ago by his
kinsmen, was no match for the beasts' raw power.
"Quick,
bring the wounded to safety!" he bellowed.
The
party of dwarves responsible for tending the cauldrons left their stations and
carried off Glamdolin and the other ailing warriors.
Masonry
crumbled as a section of crenellated battlement ripped from the wall. The
grappling hook went into free fall amid the showering stonework, killing two
ogres and ten orcs. The enemy forces held their ground. Soon the hook was
ripping through the air again, poised to sink its claws into the wall.
This
time the dwarves retreated, abandoning the parapet just in time. They took up
position in the barbican above the gates.
Glandallin
listened as a large section of wall crashed and shattered on the ground below.
The earth quaked and the invading army howled in triumph.
Good luck to them, thought Glandallin, endeavoring
to stay calm. I hope they dash their brains out on
the doors. The gateway was built to withstand more than a few paltry
grappling irons.
He
peered cautiously over the steel-plated wall. More reinforcements were on their
way. Horsemen mounted on jet-black steeds galloped to the head of the army of
ogres and orcs. Glandallin instantly recognized the pointed ears of the tall,
slim creatures.
A red
glow shone from the horses' eyes and their hooves struck the ground in a shower
of white sparks. Two riders thundered to the gateway and gave orders to the
troops. The orcs and ogres set about clearing the pathway of fallen masonry so
the assault could start afresh.
Wheeling
round on their horses, the riders found safe quarter from which to watch. One
of the two creatures unshouldered a mighty bow and nocked an arrow against the
woven bowstring. The marksman's gloved fingers held the weapon loosely as he
bided his time.
Hastily,
the fifthlings pushed boulders over the parapet and onto the beasts below. The
enemy flinched, jostling to evade the projectiles, and three of the orcs turned
to flee. The archer raised his bow. Before the deserters could take flight, the
first arrow, too fast for Glandallin to follow, sang through the air and an orc
fell to its knees.
Already a second missile, uncommonly long for an arrow, sped from the archer's bow. The second beast perished, shrieking, followed a moment later by the third. The remaining minions took heed of the warning and resumed their work on the pathway. The orcs did not venture a protest at the murder of their kinsmen.
By the coming
of dawn, the path had been cleared.
The
fifthlings marveled at the scene unfolding before their eyes. The sky had
brightened in the east, heralding the rising of the sun, yet a thick bank of
fog loomed in the north. Its luminous center, a maelstrom of black, red, and
silver, flickered with coursing light.
In
defiance of the wind, it rolled toward the gateway, sweeping over the beasts below.
The raucous orcs fell silent, huddling nervously together and shrinking away
from the fog. Stooping, the ogres allowed it to pass. As if hailing their
leader, the riders bowed their heads and saluted the vaporous mass. The
shimmering mist lowered itself gently to the ground and hovered in front of the
horses.
Then
the unthinkable happened. With a shudder, the first of five bolts on the doors
shot from its cylinder. The gateway quaked. Someone had spoken the incantation,
delivering Girdlegard into the clutches of the invading hordes.
"No!"
bellowed Glandallin, turning his back to the enemy and leaning over the inner
wall to seek the culprit below. "No dwarf would ever..."
Glamdolin Strongarm. Alone, the dwarf was standing
by the doors, lips moving, hands raised in supplication.
"Silence!"
Glandallin bellowed. "Can't you see what you're doing?"
His
shouts fell on deaf ears. The second lock glowed brightly, illuminated by the
runes. The bolt creaked back.
"He's
been bewitched," muttered Glandallin. "The fog has infected his
mind."
The third bolt left its ferrule and
shot free.
At
last the custodians of the gateway stirred. Springing to their feet, they
darted down the staircase, racing to put a stop to the treacherous magic before
it was too late. The fourth bolt drew back. With one bolt remaining, Glamdolin
was still standing unchallenged on the pathway.
Time is against us, Glandallin thought grimly.
"Forgive me, Vraccas, but I have no choice." He gripped his ax and
hurled it with all his might and fury at his comrade-in-arms.
The
blade sliced through the air, spinning, then plunged sharply toward the ground.
Glandallin's aim was unerring and the ax drove home.
Glamdolin
groaned as the weapon struck his shoulder. Blood spraying from the wound, he
stumbled to the ground. Watching from above, Glandallin sent a quick thanks to
Vraccas for guiding his blade.
His
relief was short-lived. Death had come too late to prevent the traitor from
achieving his terrible purpose. The final bolt shot back.
Slowly,
the colossal gateway opened. The vast slabs scraped and dragged across the
ground, as though reluctant to obey the treacherous command.
There
was a grinding noise of stone on stone. The chink became a narrow channel,
which widened to fill the breadth of the path. Time slowed to a crawl as the
gates swung open.
One final creak and for
the first time in creation the path into Girdlegard was clear.
No! Glandallin stirred from his paralysis and
hurtled down the steps to join Giselbert and the remaining warriors defending
the gates.
He
was the last but one to take his place in the doorway. Already the others had
closed ranks and were holding their shields in front of their bodies, their
axes held aloft.
Shoulder
to shoulder they formed a low wall of flesh against the tide of orcs, ogres,
trolls, and riders. Forty against forty thousand.
The
enemy hung back, fearing an ambush. Never before had the gates opened to allow
their passage.
Glandallin's gaze swept the front line of monstrous beasts, shifting back to survey the second, third, fourth, fifth, and countless other grunting rows, all poised for the attack. He glowered from under his bushy eyebrows, forehead furrowing into a frown.
Giselbert lost no time in reversing the
incantation. At the sound of his voice, the gates submitted to his authority,
swinging back across the pathway but moving too slowly to stop the breach.
Giselbert strode behind his troops, laying a hand on each shoulder. The gesture
was a source of solace as well as strength, calming and rallying the last
defenders of the gates.
Trumpets
blaring, the riders ordered the attack. The orcs and ogres brandished their
weapons, shouting to drown out their fear, and the army advanced with
thundering steps.
"The
path is narrow. Meet them line by line and give them a taste of our
steel!" Glandallin called to his kinsfolk. "Vraccas is with us! We
are the children of the Smith!"
"The
children of the Smith!" the fifthlings echoed, feet planted firmly on the
rocky ground beneath.
Four
dwarves were chosen to form the final line of defense. Throwing down his
shield, the king took an ax in each hand and led the surge toward the enemy.
The dwarves, all that remained of Giselbert's folk, charged out to slay the
invaders.
Ten
paces beyond the gateway, the armies met. The fifthlings tunneled like moles
through the vanguard of orcs.
With
only one ax with which to defend himself, Glandallin struck out, slicing
through the thicket of legs. He did not stop to kill his victims, knowing that
the fallen bodies would hinder the advancing troops.
"No
one gets past Glandallin!" he roared. Stinking blood streamed from his
armor and helm, stinging his eyes. When his ax grew heavy, he clasped the
weapon with both hands. "No one, do you hear!" His enemies' bones
splintered, splattering him with hot blood. Twice he was grazed by a sword or
a spear, but he battled on regardless.
The
prize was not survival but the closing of the gates. Girdlegard would be safe
if they could stave off the invasion until the passageway was sealed.
Until
this hour his ax had defended him faithfully, but now the magic of its runes
gave out. Glancing to his right, Glandallin saw a comrade topple to the ground,
skull sliced in half by an orc's two-handed sword. Seething with hatred, and
determined to fell the aggressor, Glandallin lunged once, twice, driving his
ax into the creature's belly and cleaving it in two. A shadow loomed above him,
but by then it was too late. He made a last-ditch attempt to dodge the ogre's
sweeping cudgel, but its rounded head swooped down and struck his legs. Bellowing
in pain he toppled against an orc, severing its thigh as he fell, before
tumbling onward through the army of legs. He lashed out with his ax until there
were no more orcs within his reach.
"Come here and fight, you
cowards!" he snarled.
The
enemy paid him no attention. Fired by an insatiable hunger, they streamed past
him toward the gateway. They had no need of stringy dwarf flesh when there were
tastier morsels in Girdlegard.
Trembling
with pain, Glandallin rose up on his elbows. The rest of his kinsfolk were
dead, their mutilated bodies strewn on the ground, surrounded by scores of
enemy corpses. The diamonds on Giselbert's belt sparkled in the sunlight, marking
the place where the fifthling father had fallen, slain by a trio of ogres. At
the sight of him, Glandallin's soul ached with sorrow and pride.
The
sun rose above the mountains, flooding through the gateway and dazzling
Glandallin with its light. He raised a hand to his sensitive eyes, straining to
see the gateway. Praise be to Vraccas! The gates
were closed!
A
blow from behind sent pain searing through his chest. For the duration of a
heartbeat the tip of a spear protruded through his tunic, then withdrew. He
slumped, gasping, to the ground. "What in the name of... ?"
The
assassin stepped round his body and knelt beside him. The smooth elven face was
framed by fine fair hair that shimmered in the sunlight like a veil of golden
threads. But the vision bore a terrible deformity; two fathomless pits stared
from almond-shaped holes.
The
creature wore armor of black metal that reached to its knees. Its legs were
clad in leather breeches and dark brown boots. Burgundy gloves protected its
fingers from grime, and its right hand clasped a spear whose steel tip, sharp
enough to penetrate the fine mesh of dwarven chain mail, was moist with blood.
The strange elf spoke to the dwarf.
At
first the words meant nothing to Glandallin, but their morbid sound filled him
with dread.
"My
friend said: 'Look at me: Sinthoras is your death,'" a second voice
translated behind him. " 'I will take your life, and the land will take
your soul.' "
Glandallin
coughed, blood rushing from his mouth and coursing down his beard.
"Get
out of my sight, you pointy-eared monster! I want to see the gates," he
said gruffly, brandishing his ax to ward away the beast. The weapon almost flew
from his grip; his strength was ebbing fast. "Out of my way or I'll cut
you in two like a straw, you treacherous elf!" he thundered.
Sinthoras
laughed coldly. Raising his spear, he inserted the tip slowly between the tight
rings of mail.
"You
are mistaken, my friend. We are the älfar, and we have come to slay the
elves," the voice said softly. "The gates may be closed, but the
power of the land will raise you from the dead and from that moment on, you
will be one of us. You know the incantation; you will open the door."
"Never! My soul belongs to
Vraccas!"
"Your
soul belongs to the land, and you will belong to the land until the end of
time," the velvety voice cut him short. "Die, so you can return and
deliver Girdlegard to us."
The
spear's sharp tip pierced the flesh of the helpless, dying dwarf. Pain stopped
his tongue.
Sinthoras
raised the weapon and pushed down gently on the battered body. The final blow
was dealt tenderly, almost reverently. The creature waited for death to claim
its prey, watching over Glandallin's pain-ravaged features and drinking in the
memory.
Finally,
when he was certain that the last custodian of the gateway had departed,
Sinthoras left his vigil and rose to his feet.
I
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar,
Girdlegard,
Spring, 6234th Solar Cycle
A volley of raps rang out as the hammer
danced on the glowing ore. With each blow the metal took shape, curving into a
crescent as the iron submitted to the blacksmith's strength and skill.
Suddenly
the jangling ceased and a pair of tongs swooped down and tossed the metal back
into the furnace. The blacksmith gave a grunt of displeasure.
"What
do you think you're doing, Tungdil?" the waiting man demanded impatiently.
Eiden, a groom in the service of Lot-Ionan the magus, stroked the horse's nose.
"The nag can't wait forever, you know. She's supposed to be pulling the
plow."
Tungdil
dipped his hands into a pail of water and used the brief hiatus to wash away
the grime. The dwarf wore leather breeches and a brown beard clipped close to
his chin. He was naked from the waist up, save for a leather apron. Running his
brawny fingers through his long dark hair, he shook out the sweat and let the
drops of cool water trickle across his scalp.
"The
shoe would never have fit," came his brief response. He pumped the
bellows, producing a tortured hiss like the breath of a wheezing giant. The air
breathed red-hot life into the glowing coals. "Nearly there now."
He
repeated the procedure, this time to his satisfaction, and fitted the shoe to
the nag. A foul-smelling cloud of yellowish smoke enveloped Tungdil as the
iron singed the horny sole. He dunked the shoe into the pail, allowing the
metal to cool, then held it to the hoof again and drove nails through the
holes. Setting the hind leg down gingerly, he retreated hastily. The animal, a
strong, broad-backed gray, was too big for his liking.
Eiden
sniggered and stroked the plow horse. "How do you like your new
shoe?" he asked her. "The smith's a midget, granted, but at least he
knows his stuff. Just watch you don't trip over him." He hurried from the
forge and marched the horse toward the fields.
The
dwarf stretched and gave his powerful arms a shake as he strolled to the
furnace. The groom's jibes did not rile him; teasing, affectionate or
otherwise, was something he was inured to, having grown up in Ionandar, the
only dwarf in a human realm.
He
stood more chance of finding gold by the wayside than encountering another of
his kind.
All the same, I should like to meet one, he
thought. His gaze swept the orderly forge, taking in the rows of tongs and
hammers hanging neatly from the walls. I'd ask about
the five dwarven folks.
The
light in the forge was dim, but Tungdil liked it that way because it brought
out the beauty of the fiery coals. He worked the bellows, chasing sparks into
the chimney as he fanned the flames. For a moment his face lit up as he imagined
the glowing red dots flitting through the sky and taking their place in the firmament
to shine brightly as stars. It was the same satisfaction that he derived from
letting his hammer bounce up and down on the red-hot metal. Do real dwarven smiths do things differently? he
wondered.
"Why
is it always so dark in here?" Without warning, Sunja, the eight-year-old
daughter of Frala the kitchen maid, appeared at his side. A bright child, she
was refreshingly untroubled by Tungdil's appearance.
The
dwarf's kindly face creased from ear to ear. It was astonishing how quickly
human children grew; the girl would soon be taller than he was. "You're as
bad as cats, you children, sneaking up on me like that! I'll tell you all
about it if you help me heat the iron." He tossed a lump of metal into the
furnace.
Eagerly,
the fair-haired girl joined him at the bellows. As ever, he pretended to let
her take over, allowing her to believe that she was compressing the firm
leather pouch with her strength alone. Soon the metal took on a reddish glow.
"Do
you see now?" Reaching forward with the tongs, he gripped the nugget of
iron and laid it on the anvil. "It's not for nothing that I work without
light. A blacksmith needs to know when the metal has reached the right
temperature. Left to slumber in its toasty bed of coals, the iron overheats,
but raised too soon, the brittle metal can't be forged." Tungdil was
rewarded with an earnest nod. The child looked exactly like Frala.
"My mother says you're a
master blacksmith."
"I
wouldn't go that far," he protested, laughing. "I'm just good at my
job." He winked at her and she smiled.
What
Tungdil didn't mention was that he had never received instruction in his trade.
Watching his predecessor at work had been all the training he'd needed.
Whenever the man set down his tools, Tungdil had seized his chance to practice,
mastering the essentials in no time. Now, thirty solar cycles later, no job was
too big or too difficult for him.
Lost
in their thoughts, Tungdil and Sunja watched as the flames changed color: first
orange, then yellow, red, white, and blue... The glowing coals sputtered and
crackled.
Just
as the dwarf was about to inquire what Cook would be serving for luncheon, a
man appeared in the doorway, black against the rectangle of light.
"You're
needed in the kitchens, Tungdil," came the imperious voice of Jolosin, a
famulus in the fourth tier of Lot-Ionan's apprentices.
"Well,
since you asked so nicely..." Tungdil turned to Sunja: "Be sure not
to touch anything." On his way out, he pocketed a small metal object and
then followed the apprentice into the vaults of Lot-Ionan's school.
Two
hundred or so students of all ages had been selected to learn the secrets of
sorcery from the magus. To the dwarf's mind, magic was a slippery, unreliable
occupation. He felt more at home in his forge, where he could hammer as loudly
as he pleased.
Jolosin's
dark blue robes billowed as he walked, his combed hair bobbing about his
shoulders. Tungdil eyed the youth's fine garments and coiffure and grinned. The vanity of the boy! They entered a large room
and an appetizing smell wafted toward them. Sure enough, cooking pots were simmering
and bubbling above two hearths.
Tungdil
saw at once why his services were required. The pots were suspended on chains
from the ceilings, but one of them had slipped its pulley and was sitting in
the flames.
Lifting
the vessel required more strength than a woman could muster and none of the
apprentices were willing to help. They considered themselves a cut above
kitchen work, refusing to dirty their hands or burn their fingers when others,
such as smiths, could do the work.
The
cook, a stately woman of impressive girth, hurried over. "Hurry," she
cried anxiously, reaching up to stay her escaping hairnet. "My goulash
will be spoiled!"
"We
can't have that. I'm starving," said Tungdil. Without wasting time, he
marched over to the hearth, touched the chain lightly to gauge its temperature,
then seized the rusty links. Cycle after cycle at the anvil had strengthened
his muscles until even the heaviest hammer felt weightless in his arms. A pot
of goulash on a pulley was nothing by comparison.
"Here,"
he said to Jolosin, proffering him the grimy chain, "hold this while I fix
it."
The
young man hesitated. "Are you sure it's not too heavy for me?" he
asked nervously.
"You'll
be fine," Tungdil reassured him. He grinned. "And if you're half as
good at magic as you say you are, you can always make it lighter." He
pressed the chain into the apprentice's hands and let go.
With
a muttered curse, the famulus threw his weight against the dangling pot.
"Ow!" he protested. "It's hot!"
"That's
my goulash you're holding!" the cook reminded him darkly. Conceding defeat
to her hairnet, she allowed her brown mop to fall across her pudgy face.
"I don't care if you're a famulus. I'll take my rolling pin to you if you
let go of that chain!" Her plump arms rippled as she balled her fists.
On
discovering the source of the problem, Tungdil decided to punish Jolosin by
delaying the repair.
"This
won't be easy," he said in a voice of feigned dismay. Frala raised her
pretty green eyes from the potatoes she was peeling, saw what he was up to, and
giggled.
At
last he made the necessary adjustments and checked the mechanism again. The
pulley held and the goulash was safe. "You can let go now."
Jolosin
did as instructed, then inspected his dirty hands. Some of the grime had
transferred itself to his precious blue robes. He shot a suspicious look at
Frala, who was laughing out loud. His color rose.
"That's
exactly what you were hoping for, isn't it, you stunted wretch!" He took a
step toward Tungdil and raised his fist, then stopped; the dwarf was
considerably stronger than he was. Angrily, he stormed away.
Tungdil
watched him go and smirked. "If he wants a fight, he shall have one. It's
a pity he lost his nerve." He wiped his hands on his apron.
Frala
fished an apple from the basket beside her and tossed it to him. "Poor
Jolosin," she said with a chuckle. "His fine gown is all
soiled."
"He
should have been more careful." He shrugged and strolled over. Like him,
Frala was responsible for the little things that contributed to the smooth
running of the school. "But I'll excuse his clumsiness, just this
once." His kind eyes looked at her brightly from among his laughter lines.
"You
two deserve each other," Frala sighed. "If you're not careful,
someone will come to a bad end because of your feuding." There was a
splash as she dropped a peeled potato into the waiting tub of water.
"What
did he expect when he dyed my beard? You know what they say: Make a noise in a
mine shaft and you're bound to hear an echo." Tungdil ran a hand over his
stubbly beard. "I had to shave my chin, thanks to his stupid spell. He
must have known we'd be sworn enemies after that!"
"I
thought orcs were your worst enemy?" she said archly.
"Well,
I've made an exception for him. Beards are sacred and if I were a proper dwarf
I'd kill him for his insolence. I'm too easygoing for my own good." He bit
into the apple hungrily. With his left hand he took something from the pouch
at his waist and pressed it into Frala's hand. "For you."
She
looked down at her palm and saw three horseshoe nails painstakingly forged
together to form a homemade talisman. She stroked the dwarf's cheek fondly.
"What
a lovely gift. Thank you, Tungdil." She got up, fetched a length of twine,
threaded it through the pendant, and knotted it deftly round her neck. The
talisman nestled against her bare skin. "Does it suit me?" she asked
coyly.
"Anyone
would think it had been made for you," he said, thrilled that Frala was
wearing the iron trinket as proudly as if Girdlegard's finest jeweler had
designed and forged the piece.
There
was a special bond between the pair of them. The dwarf had known Frala since
she was a baby and had watched her mature into an attractive young woman who
turned the heads of Lot-Ionan's apprentices. These days she had two daughters
of her own: Sunja and one-year-old Ikana.
Cycles
ago, when Frala was still a girl, he had made tin figures for her to play with,
showed her around the forge, and let her work the bellows. "Dragon's
breath," she used to call it as the sparks flew up the chimney,
accompanied by her laughter. Frala never forgot the pains he had taken to entertain
her, nor how he cared for her daughter.
She
shook the remaining potatoes into the tub and topped up the water. As she
turned round, her green eyes looked at him keenly. "It's funny," she
said with a smile. "I was just thinking how you haven't changed a bit in
all the cycles I've known you."
Half
of Tungdil's apple had already disappeared. Still munching, he made himself
comfortable on a stool. "And I was just thinking how splendidly we get on
together," he said simply.
"Frala!"
the cook shouted. "I'm going for some herbs. You'll have to stir the
goulash." The ladle, its stem scarcely shorter than Tungdil, changed
hands. The cook hurried out. "You'd better not let it stick," she
warned.
A
delicious smell of goulash rose from the pot as Frala gave the stew a vigorous
stir.
"All
the others look older," she said, "even the magus. But you've stayed
the same for twenty-three cycles. How do you think you'll look in another
twenty-three?"
The
topic was one that Tungdil was reluctant to consider. From what he had read
about dwarves, it seemed he was destined to live for three hundred cycles or
more. Even now it grieved him to think that he would see the death of Frala and
her daughters, of whom he had grown so fond.
With
these thoughts in mind, he popped the apple core into his mouth. "Who
knows, Frala," he mumbled, hoping to dismiss the gloomy subject.
The
maid had a particular knack for reading his mind that morning. "Can I ask
you something, Tungdil?" He nodded. "Do you promise you'll look after
my daughters when I'm gone?"
He
choked on the sour apple pips, scratching his throat in the process. "I
don't think we need to worry about that now. Why, you'll live to be"—he
looked her up and down—"a hundred cycles at least. I'll ask the magus to
give you eternal life—and Sunja and Ikana too, of course."
Frala
laughed. "Oh, I'm not intending to meet Palandiell quite yet." She
kept stirring dutifully, even though her forehead was dripping with
perspiration. "But all the same, I'd... Well, I'd feel better if I knew
you were there to take care of them." Her shoulders lifted in a helpless
shrug. "Please, Tungdil, say you'll be their guardian."
"Frala,
by the time you're summoned to your goddess, Sunja and Ikana will be old enough
to look after themselves." Realizing that she was in earnest, he duly
gave his word. "I'd be honored to be their guardian." He slid from
the stool. "If the chain slips again, send Jolosin to find me!" He
made his way out with a small bowl of goulash to sustain him until lunch.
On
returning to the forge he found Sunja waiting for him with yet another
commission from Eiden, two wooden barrels whose iron hoops had split. No sooner
had he started work than the plow was brought in, needing urgent repair.
Tungdil
relished the work. The fierce flames and physical effort made it a sweaty
business, and soon perspiration was trickling down his arms and plopping into
the fire with a hiss. Frala's daughter watched in fascination, passing him
tools whenever she was strong enough to lift them and working the bellows with
all her might.
The
glowing metal yielded to his hammer, letting him shape it as he pleased. At
times like this he almost felt like a proper dwarf and not just a foundling
raised by humans.
His
mind began to drift. He had reached the age of sixty-three solar cycles without
seeing another of his kind, which was why he looked forward to being sent away
on errands. The occasions when Lot-Ionan required his services as a messenger
were regrettably few and far between. There was nothing Tungdil wanted more
than to meet one of his own people and learn about his race, but the chances of
encountering a traveling dwarf were infinitesimally small.
The
realm of Ionandar belonged exclusively to humans. There were a few gnomes and
kobolds, but their races were almost extinct. Those that remained lived in
remote caves beneath the surface, emerging only when there was something worth
stealing—or so Frala said. The last of the elven people lived in Âlandur amid the glades of the
Eternal Forest, while the dwarves inhabited the five ranges bounding Girdlegard.
Tungdil had almost given up hope of visiting a dwarven kingdom and finding out
about his folk.
Everything
he knew about dwarves stemmed from Lot-Ionan's library, but it was a dry kind
of knowledge, empty and colorless. In some of the magus's books, the writers
called the dwarves "groundlings" and poked fun at them, while others
blamed his people for opening Girdlegard to the northern hordes. Tungdil
refused to believe it.
But
he could understand why so few of his kind ventured outside their kingdoms; his
kinsfolk were almost certainly offended by such prejudice and preferred to turn
their backs on humankind.
Tungdil was
putting the finishing touches to the first of the iron hoops when Jolosin
appeared at the door, wearing, as Tungdil noted with satisfaction, a clean set
of robes. "Hurry," he spluttered, panting for breath. "Don't
tell me it's the goulash again," said Tungdil, grinning. "Why don't
you run along and hold the chain until I get there?"
"It's
the laboratory..." Barely able to get the words out, Jolosin resorted to
gestures. "The chimney...," he gasped, turning and hurrying away.
This time it sounded serious. The dwarf set down his hammer in consternation and wiped his hands on his apron. Once Sunja had been dispatched to join her mother in the kitchen, he chased after the famulus through the underground galleries hewn into the stone.
Border Territory, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6233rd
Solar Cycle
Tens of hundreds of tiny grains of sand pelted their helms,
shields, mail, and every inch of unprotected flesh.
Battered
by the gusts, the brave band of dwarves struggled onward, mounted on ponies.
Scarves muffled their faces but the cloth was no match for the fine desert
sand, which worked its way through the fabric, clogging their beards and
grinding between their teeth.
"Bedeviled
wind," cursed Gandogar Silverbeard of the clan of the Silver Beards, king
of the fourthlings' twelve clans. He tugged at his scarf, pulling it over his
nose.
At
298 cycles of age, Gandogar was a respected leader and accomplished warrior. He
stood a little over five feet tall and his arms were strong and powerful. His
heavy tunic of finely forged mail was worn with pride, despite the trying
circumstances. Beneath his diamond-studded helmet his hair and beard were
brown and wiry. He led the party unflinchingly through the sand and scree.
"It's
the sand that gets me. I've never seen a sandstorm below the surface,"
complained Bislipur Surestroke, the friend and mentor riding at his side. He
was taller and brawnier than the monarch and his hands and arms were laden with
almost as many golden rings and bangles. He looked every inch the warrior, his
chain mail bearing the scars of countless battles. The freshest marks were just
five orbits old, the result of a skirmish with orcs.
"Vraccas
knew what he was doing when he sculpted us from rock. Dwarves and deserts don't
mix." The verdict was shared by the rest of the troop.
The
ponies that had borne them on their long journey to the secondling kingdom
snorted and whinnied fractiously, trying to clear their nostrils but blocking
them further with all-pervasive sand.
"There's
no other way of getting there," Gandogar said apologetically. "You'll
be pleased to know that the worst is behind us."
The
band of thirty dwarves was in Sangpûr, a desolate human realm under Queen
Umilante's rule. The landscape consisted of nothing but barren dunes and
godforsaken wasteland, a vista so cheerless that the dwarves preferred to stare
at the tangled manes of their ponies or the tips of their boots.
Their
journey south from the Brown Range had taken them through the lush valleys and
steep gorges of the mountainous state of Urgon where Lothaire reigned. From
there they had ridden over the gentle plains of King Tilogorn's Idoslane, where
the slightest hillock qualified as a mountain and shady forests gave way to
fertile fields.
The
passage through Sangpûr was the last and most grueling leg of the journey, a
swathe of desert forty miles wide, lying at the foot of the mountains like a
moat of fine sand. It was almost as though nature wanted to prevent the rest of
Girdlegard, including the fourthlings, from reaching the range.
On
occasions, the wind dropped and the veil of sand fell, allowing the mighty
peaks to loom before them magically among the dunes. The dwarves felt the call
of the snowcapped mountains and longed for cool air, fresh water, and the
company of their kin.
Bislipur
tightened the scarf around his cheeks and stroked his graying beard. "I'm
no friend of magic, but if ever we needed a sorcerer it's now," he
growled.
"Why?"
"He could command the wretched wind to
stop."
A
final gust swirled toward them; then the gales died unexpectedly. Only five
miles separated the dwarves from the comb of rock that ran from east to west.
"You're
not a bad sorcerer yourself," said Gandogar, breathing a sigh of relief.
He had never been especially fond of the world outside his kingdom and this
latest foray had persuaded him that one epic journey in a lifetime was more
than enough. "What did I tell you? We're almost there."
Rising
out of the gloom of the mountain's shadows were the imposing walls of Ogre's
Death. The stronghold grew out of the rock, the main keep hewn into the
foothills, the battlements extending down the hillside in four separate
terraces that were all but impregnable.
Cut
into the walls of the uppermost terrace was the stronghold's entrance, eight
paces wide and ten paces high. Like an enormous
mouth, thought Gandogar. It looks as though
the mountain is yawning.
As
the company neared the stronghold, the doors opened welcomingly. Seventeen
banners fluttered loftily from the turrets, bearing the insignia of the
secondling clans.
"Here
at last," Gandogar said thankfully. "To think we've ridden right
across Girdlegard." The other dwarves joined in his grateful laughter.
They were his retinue, a heavily armed band who had escorted him throughout the
long journey to the secondling kingdom. Between them they were the cream of Goïmdil's
folk, skilled in ax work and craftsmanship, the best warriors and artisans from
each of the twelve fourthling clans. Many a legend told of the fighting prowess
of the dwarves, which explained why the party had not been troubled by a
single brigand or thief. They were carrying enough gold to make an ambush more
than worth the risk.
Bislipur
waved his hand imperiously and his summons was instantly obeyed. A little
fellow measuring just three feet in height slid from his pony awkwardly and
came running through the sand. He wore a wide belt around his baggy breeches
and looked oddly sinewy in appearance, despite the considerable paunch that
rounded his hessian shirt. The yellowed undergarment was paired with a red
jacket and his blue cap was pulled low over his face, a pointed ear protruding
on either side. A silver choker encircled his neck and his buckled shoes kicked
up clouds of sand as he scampered through the dunes.
He
bowed at Bislipur's feet. "Sverd at your service, but not of his own
accord," he said peevishly.
"Silence!"
thundered Bislipur, raising his powerful fist. The gnome ducked away.
"Ride on and announce our arrival. Wait for us at the gates—and don't
touch anything that doesn't belong to you."
"Since
I don't have a choice in the matter, I shall do as you say." The gnome
bowed again and hurried to his pony. Soon he was galloping away from the
dwarves in the direction of the stronghold.
Even
from a distance it was obvious that Sverd was no horseman. He bounced up and
down in the saddle, clinging to his cap with clawlike fingers and relying on
the pony to set their course.
"He'll
unman himself if he goes any faster. When are you finally going to set him
free?" asked Gandogar.
"Not
until he's served his penance," Bislipur answered tersely. "Let's not
delay." He pressed his heels into the pony's broad flanks and the animal
set off at an obedient trot.
The
fourthlings knew Ogre's Death from etchings and stories, but now they were
seeing it for the first time for themselves.
Hundreds
of cycles had passed since the last dwarf of Goïmdil journeyed through
Girdlegard to visit his kinsfolk in the south. In ancient times the dwarven
folks had come together every few cycles to celebrate festivals in honor of Vraccas
and thank the Smith for creating their race, but the fall of the Stone Gateway,
the invasion of the orcs, ogres, and älfar, and the annihilation of the
fifthlings had put a stop to that.
"Thank
Vraccas we're here," sighed Gandogar, standing up in his stirrups to give
his saddle-sore bottom a brief respite.
None
of the company had any instinct for riding. As true dwarves, they would never
consent to making a journey on horses; the beasts were untrustworthy and the
saddles could be reached only by means of a stepladder, which was far too
undignified. It was bad enough riding on ponies.
Their
distrust of the animals ran so deep that two of the party refused to ride
altogether and were traveling in small, easily maneuverable chariots at the
back of the procession.
"We'll
all be glad when the journey is over," said Bislipur, spitting sand from
his mouth.
The
woes of their travels were partly forgotten as Ogre's Death's magnificent
masonry loomed into view. Gandogar's eyes traveled over the exquisitely
ornamented turrets and walls — even the outermost rampart was a work of art,
graced with plinths, statues, pillars, and other embellishments. Our folk boasts the finest gem cutters and diamond
polishers, but Beroïn's masons are second to none.
The
gates to the first of the four terraces swung open and Gandogar's company was
admitted to a courtyard. Sverd had dismounted and was standing by his pony.
Bislipur signaled for him to fall in at the rear of the group.
Dwarves
seldom showed their age, but the figure who came toward them had seen three
hundred cycles or more. "Greetings, King Gandogar Silverbeard of Goïmdil’s
folk. My name is Balendilín Onearm of the clan of the Firm Fingers and on
behalf of our ruler, Gundrabur Whitecrown, high king of all dwarves, I welcome
you and your company to the secondling kingdom of Beroïn’s folk."
Clad
in a tunic of chain mail, the stocky dwarf was carrying a battle-ax at his
waist. His weapons belt was secured by a finely worked stone clasp. Marble
trinkets had been braided into his graying beard and a long plait dangled
behind him.
"Come, brothers, follow
me."
He
started on the path that rose toward the stronghold. As he turned, the
fourthlings noticed that he was missing one arm.
Gandogar
conjectured that the limb had been lost to one of Tion's minions. In all other
respects, the secondling was powerfully built, perhaps because of the strength
required for working with stone. His right hand was heavily callused, almost
bearlike in size, the fingers exuding a power that lived up to the name of his
clan.
The
company followed Balendilín through several gateways until they reached the
fourth and final terrace, where he signaled for them to stop. At last they
could appreciate the full genius of the stronghold's design. Their host
gestured to the doors that led into the mountain. "Dismount and leave your
ponies here. We'll take good care of them, I assure you. The delegates are
expecting you in the great hall."
He
led the procession into a tunnel of such vast proportions that a dragon could
have entered with ease. What truly took the visitors' breath away, though, was
the masonry. Nine-sided stone columns, each measuring ten paces in circumference,
rose like fossilized trees. The ceiling was so high as to be invisible, the
columns soaring into space. Perhaps the crown of the
mountain is supported by pillars, thought Gandogar, gazing at his
surroundings in awe.
Stone
arches, richly decorated with carvings, spanned the columns, inscribed with
verses and citations from the creation story of the dwarves.
Ahead
of them towered an enormous stone statue of Beroïn, father of the secondlings.
The ancient monarch sat on a throne of white marble, his right hand raised in
greeting and his left hand clasped about his ax. His foot alone was as long as
five ponies and loomed to the height of a fully grown dwarf.
But that was just
the start of it.
The
walls, once coarse naked rock, had been polished to a sheen and the glinting
surfaces engraved with runes and patterns. The stonework was so delicate, so
precise, that Gandogar slowed to examine it.
There
were underground galleries and chambers aplenty in his own kingdom, but nothing
compared to the secondlings' skill.
He
reached out and ran his hand reverently over the dark gray marble. It was hard
to believe such splendor was possible.
"By
Vraccas," he exclaimed admiringly, "I have never seen such artistry.
The secondlings boast the best masons of any dwarven folk."
Gundrabur's
counselor gave a little bow. "Thank you. They will value your
praise."
The
company walked between the statue's feet and through another door. There the
passageway narrowed and the air felt suddenly cool. They had reached the
entrance to the hall.
Balendilín
turned to Gandogar and smiled. "Are you ready to stake your claim before
the assembly?"
"Of
course he is," snapped Bislipur before the king could speak.
Balendilín
frowned but said nothing, stepping forward to throw open the doors and announce
the arrival of the long-awaited guests.
The
great hall surpassed everything that had gone before it. Cylindrical columns
towered to vertiginous heights and great battle scenes graced the walls, the
sculpted marble surfaces commemorating past victories and heroic deeds.
Lanterns and braziers of burning coal bathed the chamber in a warm reddish
glow, but the air was cool, much to the delight of the travelers who had
endured the heat of Sangpûr's deserts.
While
Balendilín was introducing the new arrivals, Gandogar fixed his adviser with a
stare. "You would have beaten Sverd for such insolence."
Bislipur
clenched his jaw. "I'll apologize to the counselor later."
They
turned toward the assembly. Five chairs, one for each of the dwarven folks,
were arranged in a semicircle around a table. Elegantly carved pews were lined
up in five blocks behind them so that the chieftains and elders could follow
the proceedings and have their say.
One
of the chairs, together with its corresponding benches, would remain forever
empty, a painful reminder of the fifthlings' fate. There was no sign of the
firstling monarch or chieftains, but the seventeen clans of the secondlings had
taken their seats.
The
table was covered in maps and charts of Girdlegard. Before the fourthlings'
arrival, the delegates had been discussing the happenings in the north, but
now their attention turned to Gandogar.
The
king felt a rush of excitement. For the first time in over four hundred cycles
the most influential and powerful dwarves of all the folks would be assembled
in one room. Never before had he been in the presence of his fellow monarchs
and distant kin and at last the names that he had heard so often attached
themselves to beings of flesh and blood. It was a momentous occasion.
The
other dwarves rose to greet the company with hearty handshakes. Gandogar
noticed how the palms differed; some were callused or scarred, others tough and
muscular, while a few seemed almost delicate. He was touched by the warmth of
the welcome, despite the distrust and suspicion evident in some eyes.
Then
it was time for him to greet Gundrabur Whitecrown, king of the secondlings and
ruler of every dwarf, clan, and folk.
He stepped
forward and struggled to hide his shock.
After
five hundred cycles of life, the once stately high king was so weak that the
mildest breeze was liable to extinguish his inner fires. His eyes, dull and
yellowed, flicked back and forth, unable to settle. It seemed to Gandogar that
the monarch stared straight through him.
Because
of his great age, the high king did without cumbersome mail, his feeble body
wrapped in embroidered robes of brown fabric. His silvery hair and beard swept
the floor and in his lap was the crown that symbolized his office, too heavy
for him to bear.
The
ceremonial hammer lay beside his throne, its head etched with runes and its
handle inlaid with gems and precious metals that sparkled in the light of the
braziers and lanterns. It seemed doubtful that the monarch could summon the strength
to lift the heavy relic.
Gandogar
cleared his throat and swallowed his trepidation. "You summoned me as
your successor, Your Majesty, and now I stand before you," he said,
addressing the high king with the time-honored formula.
Gundrabur
inclined his head as if to speak, but no sound came out.
"The
high king thanks you for following his summons. He knows that the journey was
arduous and long," Balendilín explained on the monarch's behalf. "If
the assembly wills it thus, you shall soon wear the crown. I am Gundrabur's
deputy and I will speak for the secondlings." He gestured for Gandogar to
take his place at the table.
Gandogar
sat down and Bislipur took up position behind him. The fourthling monarch
leaned over to inspect the maps, only to realize that some of the delegates
were staring at him expectantly. They seemed to be waiting for him to stake his
claim more roundly, but Bislipur had warned him against showing his hand too
soon. His priority was the situation in the north of Girdlegard and he was
eager to see how his proposal would be received.
"Where
are the nine clans of Borengar's folk?" he asked, nodding toward the empty
seats belonging to the firstlings. "Not here?"
Balendilín
shook his head. "No, and we don't know if they're coming. We've heard
nothing from the firstlings for two hundred cycles." He reached for his ax
and lowered the blade over the far west of Girdlegard. The dwarves of Borengar's
folk were the keepers of the Silver Pass, the defenders of the Red Range
against invading troops. The human realm of Queen Wey IV separated their
kingdom from the rest of Girdlegard. "We know they're still there, though.
According to the merchants of Weyurn, the Silver Pass has not been
breached." He laid his ax on the table. "It's their business if they
choose to stay away. We must vote without them."
The
other members of the assembly murmured their assent.
"King
Gandogar, you wish to ascend the throne, but first you must hear of the
challenges that await you. The Perished Land is creeping through Girdlegard.
Every pace of land conquered by Tion's minions is infected with a terrible
force that turns nature against itself. Its power is such that even the trees
become intent on attacking and killing anything that lives. People say that
those who perish on this ground return to life without a soul or a will. The
dead become enslaved to the dark power and join the orcs in slaying their
kin."
"The
Perished Land is advancing?" Gandogar took a deep breath. It was clear
from the counselor's words that the magi had failed to stem the tide of evil.
"I never trusted the longuns' magic!" he said heatedly. "All
those fancy fireworks and to what end? Nudin, Lot-Ionan, Andôkai, and the rest
of them are too busy perfecting their magic with their too-clever-by-half
apprentices. They scribble away in their laboratories and castles, studying
the secret of elven immortality so they can scribble and study and scribble
some more. And all the while the Perished Land is creeping forward like rust on
metal that no one has remembered to treat."
His blunt words
met with noisy approval.
"At
least some good has come of it. The elves have been all but annihilated."
Gandogar's heart leaped at the thought that the arrogant elves would soon meet
their doom. It was his firm intention that he and his warriors would inflict
the final blow. The elves had murdered his father and brother, but now the time
of reckoning was near. Soon the feuding and fighting
will be over once and for all. He was itching to tell the others of his
plan.
"All but
annihilated?" echoed Balendilín, frowning.
"Elders
and chieftains, this is joyful news indeed!" Gandogar's cheeks were
flushed and his brown eyes shone with enthusiasm. "Vraccas has given us
the means to wipe out the children of Sitalia. The last of their race are
gathered here." His index finger stabbed at the small dot on the map representing
all that remained of the elven kingdom. "Listen to what I propose: Let us
form a great army, march on Âlandur, and extract our vengeance for deeds that
have gone unpunished for cycles!"
The
delegates stared at him, dumbfounded. Bislipur's surprise tactics had worked.
"Gandogar,
we gathered here today to elect a new high king," Balendilín said evenly,
trying to deflate the excitement. It was clear from the murmured conversations
that the fourthling king's proposal had struck a chord. "It is not for us
to talk of war with the elves. Our duty is to protect the peoples of
Girdlegard." He turned imploringly to the benches. "Friends, remember
the commandment given to us by Vraccas!"
Gandogar scanned the faces of the delegates. He could see that they were torn. "First listen to what I have to say. Documents have come into my possession, ancient documents uncovered by Bislipur and handed to me. Hear what they speak of; then decide for yourselves what should be done." He took a deep breath, unfurled a roll of parchment, and read in a solemn voice:
And the elves were filled with
envy.
Desirous of the
dwarven treasure, they fell upon the fifthling kingdom and ambushed Giselbert's
folk.
Fierce fighting
broke out in the underground halls and at the Stone Gateway.
Some of the enemy
were trapped by Giselbert in a gloomy labyrinth, never to be seen again.
But the treacherous elves used their magic to poison the
children of the Smith. One by one the fifthlings succumbed.
The elves seized their chance and slaughtered the ailing dwarves. Only a handful of Giselbert's folk escaped the massacre.
Silence descended on the great hall. Gandogar's words echoed in the minds of his listeners, his commanding voice breathing new life into the ancient script.
Drawn by the smell of death and bloodshed, orcs and trolls
marched on the Stone Gateway and gathered at the border.
The
cowardly elves fled in terror, abandoning Girdlegard to its fate.
But before they fled, they used their cunning to open the
portal. Giselbert and his remaining warriors defended the pass with the
staunchness of true dwarves, but their depleted army could do nothing against
the hordes.
It was then that
evil entered Girdlegard.
He paused to measure the force of his speech. With a little
more persuasion, he would have them on his side. Only Gundrabur's one-armed
counselor was shaking his head.
"I
do not trust these lines, King Gandogar. Why were they not discovered before
now? It seems strange that a document incriminating the elves should emerge at
this time. It suits your purpose rather well."
"The
document was hidden, who knows for what purpose—perhaps by a doubting dwarf
like yourself who lacked the conviction to go to war," came Gandogar's
scornful reply. He raised his ax and buried the blade in the map, cleaving Âlandur.
"You heard what the document says. They killed our kin and betrayed us!
They must pay for their murderous deeds."
"And
then what?" Balendilín asked harshly. "Tell me, King Gandogar, who
would benefit from the destruction of the elves? Their deaths won't further our
interests, nor those of mankind! No, destroying Âlandur will profit the
Perished Land alone. We may as well join forces with the älfar and help them to
victory. Is that what you want?" The counselor fixed his eyes on Gandogar,
who suddenly felt dangerously exposed. "Our real enemies aren't the elves,
Your Majesty. Vraccas didn't give us the authority to fight the peoples of Girdlegard.
By my beard, none of us can stand the elves; it's in our nature not to like
them. There have been skirmishes, even deaths, I know." He placed a hand
on his left shoulder. "I lost a limb in a fight with four orcs, but I'd
sooner sever my one good arm than raise it in a war against the elves. Our
races have their differences, but Vraccas bade us protect the elves and we have
never neglected our task. Do you propose to break his commandment?"
Gandogar
fixed the one-armed counselor with a furious glare. Balendilín had sabotaged
his plans for vengeance and nothing he could say would mend the damage. Through
the silence he heard Bislipur grinding his teeth.
"The
älfar are no friends of mine," he said at last. "No, this is about
seizing our opportunity. Once the elves are defeated, I will lead our armies to
victory against the Perished Land. Tion's minions have plagued Girdlegard for
too long. The dwarves shall triumph where humans have failed!"
"You
surprise me, King Gandogar," said Balendilín, an expression of open bewilderment
spreading over his age- and experience-lined face. "Surely you don't mean
to defy the commands of our god? It seems to me your reason has been subdued by
hatred." He paused and eyed Bislipur suspiciously. "Unless false
counsel is to blame."
The
delegates shuffled and muttered until a secondling from the clan of the Bear
Hands rose to his feet.
"In
my opinion, the matter is worthy of debate," he said firmly. "What if
the document speaks the truth? Once a traitor always a traitor! The elves might
leave their crumbling kingdom and found a new settlement by seizing human
land."
"What
if they betray another of our folks?" The speaker, a chieftain of the same
clan, leaped up, burning with zeal. "The pointy-ears will stoop to any
level. I can't say whether or not they murdered the fifthlings, but they should
be punished all the same!" He left his place and stood alongside Gandogar
in a public show of support. "You may be a fourthling, but I stand by your
cause."
Shouts
of approval sounded from the benches. The dwarves' low voices rumbled through
the chamber until all that could be heard was a single word: war. Balendilín's calls for order were drowned out
by the noise.
Gandogar
sat back and exchanged satisfied looks with his adviser. Girdlegard will soon be free of elves.
At
that moment an almighty bang rocked the hall. "Silence!" a voice
thundered sternly through the din.
The delegates
turned in astonishment.
Crown
on his snowy head, Gundrabur stood perfectly erect before them, the ceremonial
hammer in one hand. He had swung it against the throne so furiously that the
marble revealed deep cracks.
His
eyes showed no sign of age, only recrimination, as he looked down at the
chieftains and elders. No dwarf was more majestic, more imposing than he. His
former weakness and frailty had vanished, driven out by rage.
His
white beard rippled as he raised his head. "Shortsighted fools! You
should be worrying about Girdlegard, not settling old scores. Any race that
pits itself against the Perished Land is our ally! The longer the elves can
repel the powers of darkness, the better." His gaze fell on Gandogar.
"You are young and impetuous, king of the fourthlings. Two of your kin
were slain by elves and for that I am prepared to excuse your misguided call to
arms. The rest of you should know better. Instead of indulging him in this
lunacy, you should be voices of reason."
Gundrabur
scanned the assembly. "The time has come to bury our grievances. An
alliance is what we need, what I desire! The elves of Âlandur, the seven human
sovereigns, the six magi, and the dwarven folks must stand united to repel the
Perished Land. I..."
Just
then the hammer fell from his grasp and crashed to the floor, chipping the
flagstones. The high king swayed and sank backward into his throne, his breath
coming in short gasps.
Balendilín
instructed the delegates to retire to their chambers and await his summons.
"We shall resume our meeting when the high king has recovered."
The
representatives from the various clans filed out silently, Gundrabur's words
still echoing in their minds.
Bislipur
cast a scornful look at the wheezing figure on the throne. "He won't last
much longer," he muttered to Gandogar as they made their way out.
"When his voice dries up entirely, we'll have the chieftains on our side.
They were ready to join us before the high king interrupted."
Gundrabur's
chosen successor made no reply.
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar, Girdlegard,
Spring, 6234th Solar Cycle
Jolosin sped through the underground
vaults, followed by the panting Tungdil on his considerably shorter legs. They
hurried down a gallery past oak-paneled doors leading to classrooms where young
apprentices were taking lessons from more senior famuli. Only four students
were taught by Lot-Ionan himself, one of whom would be chosen to inherit his
academy, his underground vaults, and his realm.
On
reaching the laboratory Jolosin stopped abruptly and flung open the door. Small
clouds of white smoke wafted toward them, creating an artificial fog. "Get
a move on," he barked at Tungdil, who was racing to catch up.
Breathing
heavily, the dwarf stepped into the chamber and was instantly wreathed in mist.
"Watch your manners, Jolosin, or you'll be fixing the problem
yourself."
"Climb
up the flue," the famulus ordered tersely, propelling Tungdil across the
room. "Something's blocking the chimney." Suddenly the fireplace
appeared out of nowhere and beside it a bucket, which seemed to contain the
source of the smoke.
"I
thought you were one of Lot-Ionan's best apprentices. Wouldn't a bit of magic
do the trick?"
"I'm
asking you to fix it," the famulus said firmly. "What would a dwarf
know of sorcery? You're wasting everyone's time. My pupils can't see a thing in
here." There was some low coughing and a clearing of throats.
"What's the
magic word?"
"Pardon?"
"I
should have thought a wizard would have a bit more charm."
Jolosin scowled. "Please."
Tungdil
grinned, picked up the poker, and hooked it through his belt. "And as if
by magic..." He stepped into the fireplace, where the embers had faded to
a weak red glow. A quick upward glance confirmed that a thick layer of opaque
smoke had sealed the chimney like a screen.
Climbing
confidently, he set about scaling the flue. The soot was slippery, but his
fingers found easy purchase on the uneven brickwork and he hauled himself up,
rising slowly but steadily one, two, three paces until the hearth disappeared
beneath him amid the smoke.
He
reached up and nudged something with his fingers. "I think there's a nest
up here. It must have fallen into the chimney," he called down.
"Then get
rid of it!"
"I
was hardly going to lay an egg in it." He braced himself against the wall
of the chimney, took hold of the offending twigs with one hand, and gave them a
vigorous shake.
The nest came free.
At
that moment he received an unpleasant surprise. A torrent shot toward him,
drenching him in a foul-smelling liquid that stung his eyes and his skin,
followed soon after by a cloud of delicate feathers that tickled his face and
his nose. Overcome with the urge to sneeze, he let go of the brickwork and
fell.
Tungdil
had the good fortune not to graze himself on any of the jutting bricks,
sustaining nothing more serious than a few nasty knocks to the chest and
landing in the remains of the nest, whose twigs had ignited among the embers.
Clouds of ash fell around him and coated him in fine gray soot. He sprang up,
fearful of burning his bottom, but the hot embers had already scorched through
his breeches.
The
raucous laughter left him in no doubt that he was the victim of a malicious
joke.
At
once the clouds cleared miraculously so the class of twenty young famuli could
observe the humiliated and disheveled dwarf. Jolosin was leading the general
merriment and slapping his thighs in glee.
"Help!
The stunted soot-man is here to get us!" he cried in mock horror.
"He
stole the elixir from the skunkbird's nest!" one of his pupils jeered.
"You
never know, it might be his natural smell," said Jolosin, dissolving into
laughter all over again. He turned to Tungdil. "All right, midget, I've
had my fun. You can go."
The
dwarf wiped his face on his sleeve. His head was crowned with ash and feathers,
but now it shrank menacingly into his shoulders and his eyes flashed with
rage.
"You
think this is funny, do you?" he growled grimly. "Let's see if you
laugh at this!" He made a grab for the bucket, which felt cool to the
touch, giving him all the encouragement he needed to hurl its contents. He
raised his arm and took aim at the famulus, who had turned his back and was
joking with his pupils.
A
warning shout alerted Jolosin to the threat. Whirling round, the quick-thinking
famulus saw the contents of the bucket flying toward him and raised his hands
to ward off the water with a spell. In a flash the droplets turned to shards of
ice and flew past him without drenching his freshly changed robes.
The
tactic worked, but at a price, as the assembled famuli realized from the sound
of tinkling glass. The hailstorm had passed over their heads, only to land
among the neat rows of phials whose contents — elixirs, balms, extracts, and
essences—were used in all manner of spells. The containers shattered.
Already
the potions were seeping from the broken phials and mingling in pools on the
shelves. The mixtures crackled and hissed ominously.
"You
fool!" scolded Jolosin, pale with fear.
The
dwarf bridled. "Don't look at me!" he retorted indignantly.
"You're the one who turned the water into ice!"
Just
then a shelf collapsed and a flurry of sparks shot to the ceiling, exploding in
a flash of red light. Something was brewing in the laboratory, this time quite
literally. Some of the pupils decided that enough was enough and ran for the
door. Jolosin darted after them.
"This
is all your fault! Lot-Ionan will be sorry he ever took you in. You won't be
here for much longer, dwarf. Not if I can help it!" he shouted furiously,
slamming the door as he left.
"If
you don't let me out of here this instant, I'll strap you to my anvil and beat
you with a red-hot hammer!" threatened Tungdil as he rattled the handle in
vain. He suspected that Jolosin had placed a spell on the door and locked him
inside to take the blame.
You won't get away with this! The dwarf ducked as
something exploded behind him. Looking up, he scanned the room hurriedly for
somewhere to shelter until he was released.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6233rd
Solar Cycle
Balendilín watched in concern
as the last of the delegates filed out of the hall. The meeting of the assembly
had taken an unexpected and unwelcome turn. It was a serious setback for the
high king's hopes of uniting the peoples of Girdlegard in a grand alliance
against the Perished Land.
Please, Vraccas, make that obdurate fourthling see sense, he prayed fretfully.
Once
the hall had emptied, Gundrabur extended his hand shakily and reached for Balendilín’s
arm.
"Our
planning will come to nothing," he said dully. "The young king of Goïmdil’s
folk lacks experience." With a weak smile he squeezed his counselor's
fingers. "Or maybe he needs a wise adviser, my loyal friend."
He struggled
upright and reached for his gleaming crown. His right hand, which moments
earlier had wielded the heavy hammer, trembled as he lifted the finely wrought
metal from his head.
"A
war...," he muttered despondently, "a war against the elves! What can
Gandogar be thinking?"
"Precisely
nothing," his counselor replied bitterly. "That's the problem.
There's no point reasoning with Gandogar or his adviser. I don't believe in
their mysterious parchment for a moment. It's a forgery, I'm sure, written with
the intention of winning support for a war that—"
"It
served its purpose," the high king reminded him. "The damage has been
done. You know how headstrong the chieftains can be. Some of them are itching
to go to war with the elves, regardless of whether the document was
faked."
"True,
Your Majesty, but some of the fourthlings seemed rather more reticent.
Gandogar's victory is by no means assured. The matter will be decided by a
vote, with each chieftain following his conscience. We must convince the clans
of both folks of the merit of our argument."
The
two dwarves fell silent. A more lasting solution was needed to prevent Gandogar
from reviving his plans for war at a later date. Once he was crowned high king,
he would be able to implement his scheme with little or no resistance.
Neither
Gundrabur nor Balendilín was worried about the military might of the elves. The
dwarves' traditional enemy was considerably weakened, having suffered serious
losses in the ongoing battle against the älfar, who profited from reinforcements
streaming into Girdlegard via the Northern Pass. In the event of a war, the
elven army would be easily defeated, but casualties would be inflicted on both
sides and any loss of life among the children of the Smith would leave the
gates of Girdlegard vulnerable to attack.
Gundrabur's
gaze roved across the deserted chamber. "The great hall has seen happier
times. Times of unity and cohesion." He bowed his head. "Those times
are over. Our hopes of forging a great alliance have come to nothing."
A great alliance. Deep in thought, Balendilín
stared at the five stelae at the foot of the throne. The stone slabs were
engraved with the sacred laws of the dwarves, including the name of a folk
with whom the others would have no truck: Lorimbur's dwarves in the thirdling
kingdom to the east.
"For
the sake of an alliance I would do the unthinkable and invite the thirdlings to
join our assembly." The high king sighed. "In times such as these,
old animosities must be forgotten. We're all dwarves, after all, and kinship
is what counts."
The
counselor was in no doubt that Girdlegard needed every ax that could cleave an
orcish skull, but he also knew his fellow dwarves too well. "After
Gandogar's rabble-rousing, the assembly will be in no mood for
appeasement."
"Perhaps
you're right, Balendilín. I know our vision of a united and unstoppable dwarven
army is fading, but we cannot permit the assembly to sanction a war against
the elves. We must convince the delegates that attacking Âlandur would be
foolhardy." The high king's voice sounded weaker than ever. "We need
more time."
"The
timing depends on you," his counselor said gently. "Gandogar will not
ascend the throne while you are strong enough to rule."
"No
one should rely on the failing fires of a dying king." Gundrabur smoothed
his beard. "We need something more decisive... We shall use the dwarven
laws to silence the warmongers and put a stop to the matter once and for
all."
He
descended the throne, negotiating the steps with utmost concentration. Every
movement was small and considered, but at last he reached the stelae. Balendilín
was at his side in an instant to offer him a steadying arm.
Golden
sunlight poured through the slits carved into the rock, illuminating every
flourish of the runes. Gundrabur's weak eyes scanned the symbols.
"Gandogar
is certain to be elected," he muttered absently, "but if my memory
serves me correctly, there is a way of delaying the succession. It will buy us
some time so we can talk to the chieftains and strive for peace and an alliance
with the elves."
His
eyesight had dimmed with the cycles and was now so poor that he was forced to
stand with his nose almost touching the stone. The law stated that the throne,
currently occupied by a dwarf of Beroïn, should pass to one of Goïmdil’s folk.
On that basis, Gandogar's succession was secure. Tradition dictated that the
heir should stake his claim and be elected by the assembly unless there was
reason to contest the appointment.
"I'm
sure it's here somewhere," he murmured to himself, fingertips gliding
across the stone.
His
efforts were rewarded. With a sigh of relief, he closed his eyes and pressed
his brow against the cold tablet whose surface had been engraved long before he
was born.
"After
such a wretched beginning, the orbit has taken a turn for the better. Listen to
this." He straightened up and ran a crooked index finger over the
all-important words. "Should the folk in question produce more than one
possible heir, the clans of that folk must confer among themselves and decide
on a candidate before presenting their preferred successor to the
assembly," he finished in a satisfied tone.
His
counselor read the passage again, fiddling excitedly with the trinkets in his
graying beard. There was nothing to say that the chosen candidate would be the
existing monarch: Any dwarf could stake a claim.
"Accordingly, a dwarf of any rank may be elected high king, provided be
has the support of his kinsfolk."
Balendilín
saw what his sovereign had in mind. "But who would challenge
Gandogar?" he asked. "The fourthling clans are in agreement. To be
sure, there are those who doubt their king, but..." He stopped, baffled by
the look of satisfaction on the high king's craggy face. "Or is there such
a dwarf?"
"No,"
Gundrabur answered with a wily smile, thinking of the letter that had been sent
to him several orbits ago. "Not yet, but there will be."
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar, Girdlegard,
Spring, 6234th
Solar Cycle
There
was almost nothing left in the candleholders on Lot-Ionan's desk. The
flickering light and short stumps of wax were sure signs that the magus had
been in his study for hours, although it seemed to him that only minutes had
elapsed.
He
leaned awkwardly over the parchment, poring over the closely written runes.
Inscribing the magic formula had consumed countless orbits, even cycles of his
time. There was one last symbol to be added; then the charm would be complete.
He
smiled. Most mortals had no experience of the mystic arts and were suspicious
of magic in any form. For simple souls, the constellation of the elements was a
mysterious business, but for Lot-Ionan, the sorcery that drove fear into the
heart of peasants was nothing more than the logical outcome of elaborate
sequences of gestures and words.
It
was one such sequence that occupied him now. Everything had to be exactly
right. One wrong syllable, a single character out of place, an imprecise
gesture, a hurried movement of his staff, or even a sloppily drawn circle
could ruin a spell or unleash a catastrophe.
The
magus could name any number of occasions when his pupils had conjured fearsome
beasts or caused themselves terrible harm because of their carelessness. It
always ended the same way: with an embarrassed apology and a plea for help.
He
never lost patience with his famuli. Once he had been an apprentice too. Now he
was a magus, a master magician or wizard, as some folks called him.
Two hundred and eight-seven cycles. He stopped what
he was doing, hand poised above the parchment. His gaze, alert as ever, took in
his creased and blotchy skin, then roved over the jumble of cupboards,
cabinets, and bookshelves in search of a mirror. At length his blue eyes came
to rest on the shiny surface of a vase.
He
appraised the reflection: wrinkled face, gray hair with white streaks, and a
graying beard dotted with smudges of ink. There's no
denying I'm older, but am I wiser? That's the question...
His
beige robes had been darned and patched a thousand times, but he refused to be
parted from them. Unlike some of his fellow magi, he took no interest in his
appearance, caring only that his garments were comfortable to wear.
In
one important respect the old scholar agreed with the common people: Magic was
a dangerous thing. To minimize the fallout from failed experiments, he pursued
his studies in the safety of the vaults.
Of
course, the magus's motives for retreating below the surface were not entirely
selfless. In the calm of the vaults he could forget about his fellow humans and
their trivial concerns. He delegated the running of the realm and the settling
of minor disputes to his magisters, functionaries picked expressly for the job.
The
enchanted realm of Ionandar stretched across the southeastern corner of
Girdlegard, covering parts of Gauragar and Idoslane, its borders defined by a
magic force field, one of six in total. Certain regions of Girdlegard were
invested with an energy that could be channeled into living beings, as the very
first wizards had learned. Once transferred to a human, the energy became
finite, but a person could renew his store of magic by returning to the field.
No sooner had the magi made this discovery than they seized the land, divided
it into six enchanted realms, and defended the territory against existing
monarchs who had no weapons to match their magic powers. Generations of rulers
had been forced to accept that swathes of their kingdoms were under foreign
rule.
The
force fields were the key to the magi's power. The six wizards' skills and
knowledge had increased over time and now their formulae, runes, and spells
were capable of working great beauty, terror, and good.
Keep your mind on the formula, he chided himself.
Carefully wiping the tip of his goose quill against the inkwell, he lowered it
to the parchment and traced a symbol slowly on the sheet: the element of fire.
Every flourish of the quill was vitally important; a second of inattention
would ruin all his work.
His diligence paid off.
Satisfied, he rose to his feet.
"Well,
old boy, you've done it," he murmured in relief. The formula was complete.
If the sequence of runes worked as he intended, he would be able to detect the
presence of magic in people, creatures, or objects. But before he put the
theory into practice, it was time for a little reward.
Lot-Ionan
shuffled to one of his cabinets, the oldest of a timeworn lot, and removed a
bottle from the third shelf. He glanced at the skull on the label and took a
long swig.
The
liquid was not poisonous, in spite of the warning symbol. Experience had
taught him that it was the most effective way of preventing his finest brandy
from disappearing into thirsty students' throats. The precaution was by no
means unwarranted: Some of his apprentices, especially the older ones, were
only too partial to a drop of good liquor. Lot-Ionan was prepared to share his
learning but not his precious drink. He had run out of barrels of this
particular vintage, so the bottle was worth protecting.
Just
then a powerful explosion rocked the walls of his underground chamber.
Fragments of stone rained down from the ceiling and landed on his desk, while
phials and jars jangled in the cabinets, bouncing so violently that their
stoppers struck the shelves above. Everything in the higgledy-piggledy study
rattled and shook.
The magus froze in horror. The
open inkwell was dancing up and down on his desk, tilting farther and farther
until…Lot-Ionan's hastily uttered incantation came too late. Ink poured over
the precious manuscript and his lovingly drawn runes were drowned in a viscous
black tide.
For a
second Lot-Ionan was rooted. "What in the name of Palandiell was
that?" His kindly face hardened as he divined the origin of the bang.
Gulping down the remains of his brandy, he turned sharply and strode from the
room.
He
raced through the shadowy galleries, practically flying past doorways and passageways,
his fury at his wasted efforts increasing with every step.
By
the time he reached the laboratory, he was seething with rage. Half a dozen
famuli were talking in hushed voices outside the door, through which strange
noises could be heard. They were evidently too afraid to go in.
"There
you are, Estimable Magus," Jolosin began respectfully. "What a
calamity! We got here too late. The dwarf slipped into the laboratory and
before we could—"
"Out
of my way!" Lot-Ionan barked angrily and unbolted the door.
The
devastation could scarcely have been more complete if a mob of lunatic
alchemists had rioted inside his precious laboratory. Equipment was floating
through the air while small fires flared and spluttered at intervals throughout
the room. The shelves dripped with valuable elixirs that had burst from the
phials and formed foul-smelling pools on the floor.
Huddled
in the corner behind an upturned cauldron was the culprit. His fingers were in
his ears and his eyes were closed tightly. Despite his singed hair and scorched
beard, there could be no mistaking who he was: Tungdil Bolofar.
There
was another loud bang. Blue sparks shot through the air, missing the magus by a
hairbreadth.
"Explain
yourself, Tungdil!" Lot-Ionan thundered furiously. The dwarf, who
evidently couldn't hear him, said nothing. "I'm talking to you, Tungdil
Bolofar!" the magus bellowed as loudly as he could.
Looking
up in surprise, the dwarf saw the lean wizard looming menacingly above him. He
struggled out from behind the cauldron.
"This
wasn't my doing, Estimable Magus," he said firmly. He shot an accusing
glance at Jolosin, who was standing in the doorway with his pupils, doing his
best to look surprised.
Lot-Ionan wheeled on him.
"Don't
look at me!" protested Jolosin with exaggerated indignation. "I had
nothing to do with it! You saw for yourself that the door was locked!"
"Silence,
the pair of you!" For the first time in ten cycles, Lot-Ionan was in
danger of losing his temper altogether. He surveyed the costly mess. "This
feuding has to stop!" His ink-stained beard seemed to ripple with rage.
The
dwarf had no intention of taking any of the blame. He planted his feet firmly
on the ground. "It wasn't my fault," he said stubbornly.
The
magus was visibly struggling to regain his equilibrium. He sat down on an
iron-bound chest of wood and crossed his arms.
"Listen
carefully, the pair of you. I'm not interested in hearing who was responsible
for this disaster. Nothing, but nothing is
more infuriating than being distracted from my work. Your explosion has cost me
orbits, if not an entire cycle, of study, so forgive me for losing my patience.
Enough is enough! I intend to restore peace to my school."
"Estimable
Magus, you're not going to banish the dwarf, are you?" exclaimed Jolosin,
trying to sound horrified.
"Enough!
We'll discuss your part in this fiasco later, but first I need this nonsense to
stop. The sooner we have peace in the vaults, the better!" He turned to
Tungdil. "An old friend gave me the use of a few items and now he needs them
back."
The
dwarf braced himself. "You, my little helper, will run the errand for me.
In one hour I shall expect you in my study, bag packed and ready to go. I'll
give you the items then. Prepare yourself for a good long walk."
The
dwarf bowed politely and hurried from the room. This was far better than he had
expected. A journey on foot was scarcely a chore; the paths and lanes of
Girdlegard were no challenge for his sturdy legs. I
might meet a dwarf, he thought hopefully. If
this is supposed to be a punishment, he can punish me some more.
The
magus waited until the stocky figure was out of sight before turning to
Jolosin. "You wanted to land him in trouble," he said bluntly.
"I know what you were up to, famulus! There's never a moment's peace with
the two of you around. Well, I've decided to put a stop to it. For the duration
of Tungdil's journey I want you peeling potatoes in the kitchen. You'll have
plenty of time to regret your bad behavior and pray to Palandiell for his
speedy return."
Jolosin opened
his mouth in protest.
"If
I hear so much as a grumble from you or the slightest criticism from Frala or
the cook, you can pack your bags and leave." The young man's jaws clamped
shut. "Oh, and before you start your stint in the kitchen, you can clean
up here." The magus waved at the mess that had once been his laboratory.
He
shooed the remaining famuli from the room. On his way out, he picked up a broom
from the corner and pressed it into Jolosin's hands.
"Don't
get anyone to do your dirty work for you," he said, marching to the door.
"Make sure it's tidy, and by tidy I mean absolutely
spick-and-span/"
He slammed the
door and the bolt rattled home.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6233rd Solar Cycle
It
was time for the high king to initiate his counselor into the plan. He handed
him a letter. "It's from the magus of Ionandar. Lot-Ionan the Forbearing,
they call him in his realm."
Balendilín
knew the magus by reputation. His school lay in the east of Girdlegard and he
was said to prize his solitude. Apparently, he spent most of his time studying
in his underground vaults, inventing new charms and formulae, far from the
worries of everyday life.
"He
sends news of something most unusual: a dwarf," the high king explained.
"The only dwarf in Ionandar, no less! He says he found him many cycles ago
under peculiar circumstances and raised him in his realm. He wants to know
whether any of our clans are missing a kinsman. He is eager to reunite him with
his kind."
Balendilín
skimmed the letter. "What do we know of the dwarf?"
"The
matter is mysterious but intriguing. To my knowledge, no child has been lost
in the past two hundred cycles."
"And
it's your intention to present the sorcerer's ward as a long-lost heir to the
throne?" The counselor laid the letter on the table. "But how?"
he asked doubtfully. "A dwarf raised by long-uns won't know what it means
to be a child of the Smith. The fourthlings will never back him, especially not
without proof of his lineage."
The
high king shuffled to the conference table and lowered himself onto the
secondling monarch's chair before his legs gave way beneath him.
"I
expect you're right," he said in a strained voice. "Be that as it
may, they can't do a thing until the candidate is here and the matter has been
resolved. Even if I die, their hands will be tied." He looked squarely at
his counselor. "If Vraccas should smite me with his hammer before the
dwarf arrives, you must bear the burden of preventing war and preserving our
kinsfolk."
Balendilín
pursed his lips. "Your Majesty won't be leaving us yet. Not when your
inner furnace still burns strong."
"You're
a miserable liar, like all dwarves." Gundrabur laughed and laid a hand on
his shoulder. "But from now on we must speak with false tongues in order
to protect our kinsfolk from a war that could destroy them. You and I will fib
like kobolds, Balendilín. For once we must make it our business to drive a
wedge between the clans. Let us walk awhile and you can lend me your counsel.
We shall weave a web of falsehoods around Gandogar and Bislipur and keep them
from the throne until the last belligerent syllable has been squeezed from
their lungs."
Balendilín helped the king to his feet. He had no faith in the plan succeeding, but he kept his misgivings to himself.
Gandogar was in good spirits when he
woke the next morning and was summoned with the other delegates to the great
hall. Proceedings were about to recommence and he felt confident that the high
king would name him as his successor, after which the members of the assembly
would endorse his choice with their votes. It was as good as decided already.
Gundrabur's
plea for peace had rankled with him, but he no longer held a grudge. The aged
dwarf's long reign had produced nothing worthy of posterity and he was
destined to be forgotten before too long. It wasn't dignified to quarrel with a
dying king.
Gandogar
entered the hall and sat down, while Bislipur took up position behind him. The
pews filled quickly as the chieftains and elders filed in.
A few
of the delegates looked at him encouragingly and rapped their ax heads. Far
from being threatening, the gesture was a sign of support.
Gandogar
noticed an unusual trinket hanging from the neck of a secondling chieftain. He
strained his eyes to take a closer look. The shriveled trophy was an elven ear
worn with obvious pride by the chieftain, who nevertheless tucked it hurriedly
under his mail as soon as the high king's arrival was announced. It was still
too early for open displays of aggression toward a protected race.
Gundrabur
appeared at the door, his sprightly appearance belying rumors of his impending
death. Gandogar felt a wave of disappointment at seeing the high king in such
excellent form, then immediately felt guilty for harboring such dreadful thoughts.
He didn't actually want the old chap to die; it was just that Gundrabur's
disapproving speech of the previous orbit had struck a raw nerve.
Tunics
of mail creaked and rasped as the delegates went down on one knee to greet the
high king. Axes on high, they signaled their unwavering devotion and their
willingness to live—and die—as he decreed.
Gundrabur
answered by lifting the ceremonial hammer and bringing it down smartly. The
delegates were free to rise, which they did, amid much clunking of armor.
Balendilín
stepped forward and turned his earnest brown gaze on Gandogar: "Gandogar
Silverbeard of the clan of the Silver Beards, ruler of the fourthlings and head
of Goïmdil’s line, are you ready to assert your claim to the high king's
throne?" he said ceremoniously.
Gandogar
rose from his seat, pulled his ax from his belt, and laid it on the table.
"Unyielding as the rock from which we were created and keen as this blade
is my will to defend our race against its foes," came his solemn reply.
Such was his inner turmoil that he failed to notice that Balendilín, not the
high king, had taken charge of the proceedings. It occurred to him when the
counselor cut in before he could continue.
"King
Gandogar, the assembly has heard and noted your claim. A decision will be taken
when we have heard the second candidate speak. You and he must decide which of
the two of you will withdraw. Until then we must wait."
"Wait?"
bellowed Gandogar, blood rushing to his head. He turned to search the faces of
his chieftains, all of whom seemed genuinely surprised. "Who was it?"
he thundered. "Which of you had the audacity to go behind my back? Step
forward and make yourself known!" He reached for his ax, but was stayed by
Balendilín.
"You
do your kinsfolk an injustice," said the counselor. "Your rival is
not here." He produced a letter and held it up for all to see. "The
dwarf in question was separated many cycles ago from his folk. He is mindful of
his heritage and has announced his return. He lives in Ionandar and is
preparing to join us as we speak."
"Ionandar?"
Gandogar exclaimed incredulously. "Vraccas forgive me, but what kind of
dwarf lives with sorcerers?" He drew himself up. "Is this some kind
of joke? A stranger writes a letter that you accept without question and now
the ceremony must be delayed. What name does he go by?"
"His
name is of no account. He was raised as a foundling and named by humans. But
the items discovered with him show him to be a member of your folk."
"Hogwash!"
Gandogar retorted angrily. "The letter is a fake!"
"And
what of the document purporting to tell the truth about the elves?" Balendilín
said sternly, one hand resting lightly on his belt.
"Silence,
both of you!" The high king levered himself from his throne. "King
Gandogar, do you presume to call my counselor a liar?" The old dwarf was
powerful and majestic in his fury, his words thundering through the lofty hall.
The fourthling monarch sounded shrill and petty as a fishwife by comparison.
"You will abide by my decision. When the candidate arrives, the
fourthling chieftains will decide which of you will make the better king."
Gandogar
pointed to his retinue. "Why the delay? Ask the chieftains now and you
shall hear whom they elect. Their minds are made up. How could a
stranger—"
The
high king raised a wizened hand. "No." He waved toward the engraved
stelae. "We will follow the law as it was given to us by our forefathers.
What they ordained will be fulfilled."
The
silence that descended on the vast hall was by no means uniform in quality. For
the most part it was born of astonishment, but in a number of cases it was
prompted by helplessness and rage. There was no choice but to wait for the
audacious stranger to appear.
Gandogar
sat down heavily and pulled his ax across the table toward him. The blade left
a deep white gouge in the polished stone, scarring the surface over which the
masons had toiled so long.
"So
be it," he said coolly. He dared not risk a longer speech for fear that he
would say something he might regret. Turning, he cast an abject glance at
Bislipur, who seemed a model of composure, but whose unruffled expression
Gandogar could read. His adviser was already turning over the situation in his
mind, searching for a solution. Bislipur could be relied on to be resourceful.
"The
journey from Ionandar will take weeks. How are we supposed to occupy ourselves
until the dwarf arrives?" asked Gandogar, eyes fixed on the sparkling
diamonds on his armor. "What makes you think that our aspiring high king
will find us?"
"Or that he'll make it here alive,"
added Bislipur.
"We'll
have plenty to discuss in the meantime," said Balendilín. "The
assembly will turn to matters of imminent importance for our clans." He
smiled. "But your concern is touching. Rest assured that the dwarf will
get here safely. We've sent an escort."
"In
that case we should send one too," Bislipur insisted with forced
benevolence. "The fourthlings are always happy to look after their own.
Where should we send our warriors?"
"Your
offer is most generous, but unnecessary. The dwarf will be a guest of the high
king, so the high king has sent warriors of his own," Balendilín said
diplomatically. "Given the stormy start to the proceedings, I suggest we
take a break and cool our tempers with a keg of dark ale." He raised his
ax and rapped the poll twice against the table. The clear ring of metal on
stone sang through the air and echoed through the corridors.
At
once barrels of dark roasted barley malt were rolled into the hall, and in no
time the delegates were raising their drinking horns to the reigning high king
and his successor, who most assumed would be Gandogar.
Bislipur
laid his hand on his monarch's shoulder. "Patience, Your Majesty. Let us
honor our forefathers by satisfying every requirement they name. It's important
we don't give anyone the opportunity to question the legitimacy of your
reign." They clinked tankards and he took a lengthy draft. The beer was
thick and malty, almost sweet. "Ale like this can be brewed only by
dwarves." He smiled, wiping the foam from his beard.
At
length the atmosphere in the great hall became jollier and more boisterous and
Bislipur could slip away unnoticed. Safely ensconced in a lonely passageway, he
summoned Sverd and entrusted the gnome with a mission of great importance.
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar,
Girdlegard,
Spring, 6234th
Solar Cycle
Whistling, Tungdil knelt by his
cupboard and packed his large leather knapsack for the trip. He took a
tinderbox, a flint, and a blanket, in case he had to spend a night in the open,
as well as his fishing hook, a plate, and some cutlery. His cloak he rolled
into a bundle and fastened to the outside of the knapsack with a leather strap.
Lastly, he pulled on his chain mail and tweaked it with practiced movements
until it lay flat against his skin.
He
felt instantly better. There was something safe and incredibly homely about his
shirt of steel rings. His attachment to his chain mail was a matter of
instinct, not something he could explain.
He
had the same feeling when he was working at the anvil. Routine jobs—forging
horseshoes, nails, and iron brackets for doors, honing blades, or sharpening
tools—came naturally to him. It was his dwarven blood, he supposed.
Hoisting
his bulging knapsack to his shoulders, he picked up the ax that had been given
to him by Lot-Ionan, hooked it through his belt, and set off for the magus's
study. He knew the vaults like the back of his hand. The dim light posed no
problem for his sharp dwarven eyes and his sense of direction never abandoned
him underground. No two tunnels looked the same to him, owing to his ability to
remember the slightest irregularity in the rock. It was a different story on
the surface, where he was unable to find his way anywhere without a map.
He
knocked briskly and opened the door. Lot-Ionan was sitting at his desk, dressed
in the old beige robes to which he was so attached. He held up a sheet of
parchment accusingly as the dwarf came into the room.
"Do
you see this, Tungdil?" he said, throwing the paper disgustedly back onto
the pile. "This is your doing! Orbits of study destroyed in the blink of
an eye."
"I
had no idea," the dwarf said with genuine contrition but determined not to
concede any guilt. Stubbornness was another of his inherited characteristics.
"I
know, Tungdil. I know." The magus's expression softened. "Go on,
then. What really happened?"
"It
was another of Jolosin's pranks. He played a trick on me, so I threw a bucket
of water at him..." He bowed his head and his voice fell to an indistinct
mumble. "He turned the droplets into ice and the shards hit some of the
phials. He tried to lay the blame on me by locking me in the laboratory."
He looked up and focused his brown eyes on his patron.
The
magus sighed. "Six of one and half a dozen of the other, just as I
thought. Still, I shouldn't have shouted at you like that." He motioned to
the parchment. "Of course, it doesn't change the fact that I'll be spending
the next few orbits reinscribing these runes. You had no business to be in the
laboratory, Tungdil. No good comes of a dwarf meddling in magic or mixing
potions. I thought you knew that by now."
"But it
wasn't my—"
"What
possessed you to take matters into your own hands? You had only to come to me
and Jolosin would have been punished. I'm sending you on a journey, a long
journey—which isn't to say I won't be pleased to have you back. On the
contrary." He paused. "Rest assured that Jolosin has fared much
worse; he'll be peeling potatoes until you're home. And should you decide to
take a more circuitous route..." With a mischievous grin he left the rest
up to Tungdil. "Well, are you ready?"
"Yes,
Estimable Magus," Tungdil answered, relieved that his patron no longer
held him solely to blame. "What would you have me do?"
After
the frayed tempers of the laboratory, the atmosphere in the study, where they
were surrounded by the clutter of Lot-Ionan's cabinets, gadgetry, and books,
seemed all the more relaxed. Flames crackled softly in the fireplace and the
magus's owl was napping in a corner.
"We'll
discuss your errand later. All in good time." Lot-Ionan rose and retired
with his steaming mug to the wing chair by the hearth. He stretched his
slippered feet toward the flames. "There's no rush. Jolosin will be busy
in the laboratory for a good while longer... Besides, there's something I'd
like you to consider while you're away." His hand patted the chair beside
him.
Tungdil
set down his knapsack and took a seat. It sounded as though the magus had
something important to say.
"I've
been thinking." Lot-Ionan cleared his throat. "The two of us have
known each other for sixty-two of your sixty-three cycles."
The
dwarf knew what was coming. At times like this, when the mood was sentimental
and the magus was feeling relaxed, he would pour himself a draft of beer, warm
his feet by the fire, and journey into the distant past, recalling events that
had happened over a human lifetime ago. Tungdil loved these conversations.
"It
was winter and the winds were howling when there was a knock on the door and a
band of kobolds deposited a bundle." He looked his ward in the eye and
laughed softly. "It was you! Back then, without your beard, you could
almost have been mistaken for a human bairn. They threatened to drown you in
the nearest river if I didn't pay your bond. What could I do? I gave them their
money and raised you myself."
"For
which I shall be eternally grateful," Tungdil said softly.
"Yes,
well, eternally..." The magus fell silent for a moment. "It seems to
me that it might be time to let you go your own way." He laid a hand on
the dwarf's thick shock of hair. "I've outlived my natural span and you've
served me so loyally that your debt of gratitude, if ever there was one, has
been repaid. Besides, if I don't come up with a more convincing charm against
old age, my soul will be summoned to Palandiell."
Tungdil
didn't like to be reminded that human existence was inescapably brief, even for
the likes of the powerful magus. "I'm sure you'll find a way...," he
said hoarsely. "Er, didn't you want to tell me something?"
The
dwarf's clumsy attempt to change the subject brought a wry smile to Lot-Ionan's
face. "You were left here at your parents' behest because they wanted you
to be the greatest wizard of the dwarven race, or at least that's what I told
you. You saw through the story soon enough. Once I taught you to read, you
learned enough about your kinsfolk to know it wasn't true."
"Dwarves
aren't fond of magic and magic isn't fond of them." Tungdil couldn't help
smiling. His hands were best suited to wielding a hammer and he could happily
clutch a book from Lot-Ionan's vast library, but a sorcerer's staff was another
matter. "Vraccas made us artisans through and through. There's no room in
our hearts for magic."
"Indeed,"
the magus agreed in amusement, remembering the long line of minor disasters
resulting from Tungdil's accidental encounters with the occult. "But
you're too modest. You've crammed your head with knowledge like a scholar. You
know more about the peoples of Girdlegard than some of my pupils."
"The
credit is all yours, Lot-Ionan. You even schooled me in rhetoric."
"And
that was no small feat. Adhering to the proper rules of disputation is a
challenge for the obstinate tongue of a dwarf!" His face became serious.
"I still curse myself for not asking the kobolds where they found you. At
least then I'd be able to tell you which clan you belong to." He reached
down to the floor and rummaged through a stack of papers to produce a map of
Girdlegard, which he carefully unfurled. "I've sent word to Beroïn’s
folk," he said, pointing his index finger at the secondling kingdom.
"Perhaps they'll know something of the circumstances surrounding your
birth. Given the ripe old age you dwarves can get to, there's a reasonable
chance your parents are still alive. Well, Tungdil, what do you say?"
The
dwarf was visibly moved. His dream of meeting his clansfolk was on the cusp of
being fulfilled. "That's...Oh, thank you, Lot-Ionan!" he said,
overcome with excitement. "Have the secondlings replied?"
Lot-Ionan
was delighted to see his enthusiasm. "Not yet. But I'm sure they'll be intrigued
by the news of a lost dwarf. They'll be in touch; you can count on it. It's
only a start, though. You shouldn't get your hopes up yet."
"I
can't thank you enough," Tungdil said solemnly, still struggling to put
his emotions into words.
"Now
that we've got the map out, I may as well show you where you're going."
Lot-Ionan traced a route from the underground vaults through Idoslane, across
the border, and into the kingdom of Gauragar. His finger stopped just short of
the enchanted realm of Lios Nudin, home of the powerful magus Nudin the
Knowledge-Lusty, and came to rest over a peak named the Blacksaddle.
"There you have it, three hundred miles on a northwesterly bearing. The
paths are well marked and I'll give you the map to take with you, of course.
Failing that, you can always stop for directions in one of the villages on the
way." He rolled up the parchment. "As for your errand, I need you to
convey a few items to my good friend Gorén. If you look in the ebony cabinet,
you'll find a small leather bag with green drawstrings. I borrowed the contents
for an experiment many years ago and their purpose has been served. The coins
on the table are for you to take."
While
Tungdil was scrabbling in the cupboard, Lot-Ionan leafed through a book,
pretending to read. The dwarf pulled out a bag.
"Found it," he said
finally.
"You
should go, then, Tungdil, but remember to reflect on our earlier conversation.
If we find your family, you'll be free to join them or remain with me, as you
please," he said without looking up from his tome. Tungdil turned to the
door.
"And
one last thing: Be careful! Keep an eye on the bag and don't lose it: Its
contents are valuable," he warned. At last he glanced up and smiled:
"I strongly advise you not to open it. We don't want any mishaps while
you're away. Palandiell be with you—and Vraccas too!"
"You can
depend on me, Lot-Ionan."
"I
know I can, Tungdil. Now, enjoy your trip and come back safely."
On
leaving Lot-Ionan's study, Tungdil steered a course for the kitchens to stock
up on victuals and tell Frala of the news.
He
found her working at the large dough-trough. The stodgy mix of flour, water,
and yeast took considerable effort to knead and her face glistened with sweat
from the exertion.
"I need
provisions," he announced with a grin.
"The
magus is sending you on an errand, is he?" Frala smiled and gave the dough
a final vigorous squeeze. "I'm sure we'll find something in the larder for
Lot-Ionan's special envoy." She dusted her hands and led the way into a
small room that Tungdil imagined was the closest thing to seventh heaven for a
mouse.
Frala
filled his knapsack with cured meat, cheese, sausage, and a loaf of rye bread.
"There," she said, "that should keep you going."
"Not for
three hundred miles, it won't."
"Three
hundred?" she exclaimed in surprise. "Tungdil, that's not an errand;
it's a serious journey! You'll need more food than that." She added two
large sausages and some ham. "But don't let Cook see," she said,
buckling the flap hastily.
They
returned to the kitchen. "Aren't you going to tell me where you're
going?" she asked impatiently.
"The
Blacksaddle. The magus wants me to deliver a few items to one of his old
apprentices."
"The
Blacksaddle," Frala echoed thoughtfully. "I've never heard of it. But
three hundred miles is an awfully long way. Which kingdoms will you pass
through?"
Tungdil
chuckled. "I'd take you with me and show you, but I don't think Lot-Ionan
would approve—not to mention your husband and daughters." He showed her
the map and traced his finger along the route.
"Through
Idoslane and Gauragar! And Lios Nudin is barely a stone's throw away. Aren't
you curious to visit?" she exclaimed in excitement.
"Not
much happens in Lios Nudin," Tungdil said dismissively. "Nudin the
Knowledge-Lusty does nothing but study. But Turguria would be worth a
look."
"Why's
that?"
"Turgur
the Fair-Faced is on a quest for universal beauty. He wants to make everyone
into paragons of elven grace—even bow-legged farmers and squinty-eyed maids.
From what Lot-Ionan told me, he hasn't quite perfected his spells. Apparently,
his experiments have led to such deformities that some of his subjects are too
ashamed to leave their homes. It's probably a good thing I won't be going
there. What if Turgur took it into his head to magic me to human size?"
"What
a dreadful thought," said Frala with feeling. She stooped to embrace the
dwarf. "May Palandiell and Vraccas bless you and keep you from harm."
Before he knew it, she had unknotted her scarf and tied it round his waist.
"Here, now you'll have a talisman too." Her eyes twinkled mischievously.
"It'll remind you of me—and you'll have no excuse for forgetting my
present!"
Tungdil
looked into her lively green eyes and sighed. He was so fond of Frala that it
was hard to imagine life without her in a dwarven kingdom, especially now that
he was guardian to Sunja and Ikana. His attachment to her was not in the least
bit romantic; he felt bound to her like a brother, having known her since she
was a child.
"Lot-Ionan
wrote to the dwarves of Beroïn," he said, proceeding to recount his
conversation with the magus. "He wants to find out where I came from. If
the secondlings know my kin, I'd like to visit them in the mountains, maybe
move there. The magus said I was free to choose."
The
maid embraced him once more. "It looks as though your dream is coming
true," she congratulated him. She smiled mischievously. "Jolosin will
jump for joy if you decide to go."
"Maybe I should stay,
then," threatened Tungdil.
A
shadow came over her face. "You won't forget to come back and visit us,
will you? I'd like to hear about the dwarves of the south," she said, her
voice tinged with melancholy in spite of her genuine pleasure at the news.
"Frala,
who knows if I even belong there? They might not know anything about me; I could
have been hewn from the mountain without any kin. In any case, my first
priority is Gorén. I'll see what happens after that."
A
wail went up from the cot in the corner. Frala hurried to comfort Ikana, who
had been sleeping snugly by the hearth.
"Say
hello to your guardian, little one," she told her daughter. "He'll
always be here for you, just as he's always been here for me."
The
baby grabbed the dwarf's outstretched finger and pulled. Tungdil was almost
certain that he heard a soft chuckle.
"She's laughing
at me!"
"Nonsense!
She's laughing with you! She likes you,
see?"
"Don't
worry," Tungdil promised the baby, "I'll buy presents for you and
your sister too." He disengaged his calloused finger from her delicate
pink hands. Now that Ikana no longer seemed so fragile, he would have liked to
stay and play. She reached up and tugged a strand of his hair. He carefully
loosened her grip. "So you want me to stay, do you?"
The
trio made their way through the shadowy galleries to the northern exit.
Sunlight seeped through the cracks in the doorway. Frala kissed him on the
forehead. "Look after yourself, Tungdil," she said. "And come
back safe and sound!"
A
famulus pulled on a rope to open the door and the iron-bound oak panels parted
with a groan.
Outside,
the rolling grassy hills, bright flowers, and leafy trees were dappled with
sunshine. The aroma of warm soil wafted in on the breeze and the tunnel filled
with the spring warbling of birds.
"Do
you hear that, Tungdil? Girdlegard is wishing you well," said Frala,
filling her lungs with fresh air. "What glorious weather for a
journey!"
The
dwarf lingered for a moment in the safety of the shaded doorway. He was
accustomed to having ceilings above him and walls that afforded protection on
all sides. In the open, there was too much freedom for his liking and he had to
acclimate himself all over again.
Not
wanting Frala to think he was no braver than a gnome, he took a deep breath,
stepped out into the sunshine above Ionandar, and marched purposefully away.
"Come
back soon, Tungdil," she called. He turned and waved until the doors to
the vaults were closed, then continued on his way. After a few paces he came
to a halt. Screwing up his eyes, he winced in the dazzling light. His
subterranean existence had made him so sensitive to the sun's powerful rays
that he was obliged to shelter in the shade of a towering oak. He dropped onto
the grass and laid the magus's bag and his pack of provisions beside him.
Hmm, not the most promising start, he thought to
himself. He squinted at his surroundings, straining to see something of the
landscape. The canopy of leaves afforded little protection from the glare.
It
was the same at the beginning of every journey, but at least the terrain, a
wide track winding gently over rolling countryside, would be easily mastered on
foot.
He
held the map above his head to block out the light and studied his route.
Assuming the cartographer knew his business, the landscape would begin to
change in the region of the Blacksaddle. A dense forest of pines surrounded the
mountain, through which there was no obvious path.
So much the better. Tungdil ran his thumb over the blade of his ax. Those trees will regret it if they get in my way.
The sun followed
its slow trajectory across the sky.
Little
by little Tungdil's eyes adjusted to the sunshine as it weakened and mellowed
to a soft orange glow. By dusk, his vision would be restored entirely, but time
was running out if he wanted to cover a few miles and find a bed before
nightfall.
Straightening up determinedly, he slung his packs on his back, returned his ax to his belt, and plodded on, all the while cursing the sunshine. Grumbling wouldn't get him there any faster, but it vastly improved his mood.
The sun was disappearing over the crest
of a hill when Tungdil emerged from the forest on the fifth orbit of his
uneventful journey and found himself confronted by palisades bounding a village
of some considerable size.
Two
soldiers patrolled the wooden watchtower above the gateway. At first neither noticed
the diminutive figure outside, but at last one of the men motioned to his
companion. Judging by their reaction, the dwarf was not regarded as a threat.
Tungdil
was relieved. After four chilly nights in the open, camped among squirrels,
foxes, and more greenery than he could tolerate, he was looking forward to
finding a tavern with good beer, warm food, and a soft mattress. His stomach
was grumbling already.
He
reached the gateway, but the doors remained closed. The sentries leaned over
the parapet and watched from above.
"Good
evening to you both!" he bellowed up at them. "Be so kind as to open
the gates! I should like a bed for the night and a roof overhead!" Even
from a distance, he could tell that their armor was well made and well cared
for. This led him to two conclusions: First, the suits had been crafted by a
smith of considerable skill, and second, the metal was worn for protection and
not effect. The sentries were no ordinary villagers.
These
thoughts were followed by another revealing discovery. In the flickering
torchlight he had taken the rounded objects on the palisades to be gargoyles,
but on closer inspection they turned out to be skulls. The heads of three
dozen dead orcs were impaled on the defenses.
Tungdil
doubted the wisdom of baiting the enemy in this fashion. As a deterrent, an
array of orcish skulls had about as much chance of warding off the orcs as a
dead bird would protect a field from crows. In fact, the sight of the severed
heads was more likely to incite the brutes to wholesale slaughter.
From
this Tungdil deduced that he had crossed the border into Idoslane and that the
men hired to defend the settlement were trained fighters but foolhardy with it.
Only mercenaries paid by the skull would be reckless enough to provoke the
beasts so gruesomely. The bloodied heads had been set out as bait to draw in
nearby bands of orcs.
"What
are you waiting for?" he called indignantly. "Let me in!"
"Greetings,
groundling! This is Goodwater in the fair land of Idoslane. Have you sighted
orcs on your travels?"
"No,"
he shouted, struggling to keep his temper. To be referred to as a
"groundling" was more than he could bear. "And if you don't
mind, I'm no more a groundling than you men are grasslings: I'm a dwarf."
The
sentries laughed. At their signal, the right half of the double door creaked
open and Tungdil was allowed to pass. Inside, another pair of heavily armed
soldiers was waiting for him. They eyed him distrustfully.
"Well,
blow me down," one of them muttered. "If it isn't a real-life dwarf!
They're not as tiny as everyone says they are."
Tungdil
was once again reminded that humans knew almost nothing about dwarves. He
bristled under the sentries' stares. "If you've quite finished gawking,
maybe one of you could inform me where I might find a bed."
The
sentries directed him to the nearest tavern, which lay a short distance along
the dusty street. Above the door, a shabby platter and a similarly dilapidated
tankard indicated that the place sold food and beer, although, by the look of
it, it wouldn't be anything fancy.
In
spite of his best efforts to slip in unseen, the rusty hinges squealed
excitedly as soon as he lifted the wooden crossbar and pushed open the door. It
was hard to imagine a simpler yet more effective means of guarding against
intruders: The shriek of neglected metal was impossible to ignore. The dwarf
hesitated for a moment, then entered.
Seated
at the tavern's roughly fashioned tables were ten villagers holding tankards
of ale or mead. Tungdil's nose was assailed immediately by the smell of food
combined with tobacco and sweat. The villagers wore simple garments: hessian or
coarse woolen shirts to protect against the evening chill. Their feet were
encased in thick stockings and laced shoes.
Two
of the men nodded hesitantly in acknowledgment; the others were too busy
staring. It was always the same.
The
dwarf returned the greeting and took his place at an empty table. Naturally the
furniture was far too big for him, but he made himself comfortable and ordered
his supper and a large ale. In no time a steaming plate of cornmeal and
mincemeat was laid in front of him, followed by a tankard of beer.
He
tucked in ravenously. The meal tasted wholesome, a little burned, and somewhat
bland, but at least it was warm. The pale watery beer disappointed his dwarven
palate, but he drank it all the same. He had no desire to cause offense,
especially when there was the matter of his lodgings still to settle.
One
of the villagers was looking at him so intently that he could almost feel his
piercing stare. Tungdil returned his gaze unflinchingly.
"What
beats me," said the man, raising his voice so everyone in the tavern
could hear, "is what a groundling would be doing in our village." A
ring of smoke left his pipe and shot toward the sooty ceiling.
"Breaking
his journey." Tungdil chewed his mouthful deliberately, dropped his spoon
into the gloop, and wiped his beard. A belligerent villager was the last thing
he needed. It was obvious from his manner that the man was sparring for a
fight. Well, he's picked the wrong dwarf! "I've no desire to argue with you, estimable sir,"
he said firmly. "I've spent the past few nights in the open, and Vraccas
willing, I'd like to sleep on something other than twigs and leaves."
There
was an eruption of mocking laughter. Some of the villagers prostrated
themselves in front of the pipe smoker, calling him "sir" and
"your honor"; one even went so far as to set an empty tankard like a
crown on his head. They evidently found it amusing that Tungdil should address
a humble villager in terms of respect.
"You
think you're quite something, don't you, groundling?" The man hurled the
tankard to the floor and faced his friends angrily. "Go ahead and laugh,
you harebrained idiots! What if he was sent by orcs to spy on us? You won't
find it so funny when he sneaks out of bed and opens the gates!"
The mirth stopped
abruptly.
At
once Tungdil realized he would have to tread carefully. On a practical level,
that meant sticking to plain speech. It was bad enough that he was a dwarf, let
alone a dwarf with fancy manners.
"Dwarves
and orcs are sworn enemies," he said earnestly. "A dwarf would never
throw in his lot with an orc." He extended his hand toward the man.
"Here, have my word that I mean you no harm. I swear it by Vraccas, creator
of all dwarves."
The
villager stared at the sturdy fingers and weighed the matter in his mind. At
last he gave the hand a brief shake and turned away.
The
publican brought the relieved Tungdil another beer. "Don't mind him,"
he said quickly. "We're all on edge at the moment. So many villages have
been plundered these past few orbits. Orcs are rampaging through the northwest
of Idoslane."
"Hence the
mercenaries at the gates."
"They're
here to protect us until King Tilogorn's soldiers rid us of the beasts."
He turned to go.
"Wait!"
Tungdil laid a hand on his grease-spotted sleeve. The man's words had given him
faint grounds for hope. "Will there be dwarves among them? I heard King
Tilogorn has dwarves in his pay."
The
publican shrugged. "I couldn't tell you, little fellow, but it wouldn't
surprise me."
"When
do they get here?" he asked eagerly. The opportunity of setting eyes on a
fellow dwarf was reason enough to delay his mission to the Blacksaddle. All the more potatoes for Jolosin to peel.
"By
rights they should have been here three orbits ago," said the publican,
signaling apologetically to the queue of thirsty customers at the bar. Tungdil
let him go and returned to his supper, mulling over what he knew of Tilogorn
and his kingdom.
The
name Idoslane was derived from the land's bloody past. At the heart of the
historical conflict was the throne. The Idos, the kingdom's great ruling
dynasty, had plotted, conspired, and waged war on one another, bringing misery
on themselves and their people, who bore the brunt of their feuds. Bit by bit
the state was torn apart by their squabbling until every district was governed
by a different member of the Ido clan. At last their subjects reached the limit
of their endurance and felled every last sibling, cousin, and scion of the
dynasty: Ido-slane.
A
villager, rather the worse for wear, staggered to his feet and raised his
tankard: "Long live Prince Mallen! May he drive King Tilogorn from the
throne!" When no one joined in with his toast, he lowered himself to his
stool, muttering darkly.
If
Tungdil's memory served him correctly, Prince Mallen was the sole surviving
member of the Ido clan. He lived in exile in Urgon, the kingdom to the north of
Idoslane, and was forever conspiring to return to his country as its rightful
king.
Tacked
to the wall of the tavern was an ancient map of Idoslane, its yellowed
parchment stained by smoke. The succession of rolling hills, forests, and
plains made for a pleasantly varied landscape. It would have been idyllic, if
it weren't for the orcs.
"Not
a bad place, is it?" observed a fellow drinker, following Tungdil's gaze.
"Save
for Toboribor." Tungdil pointed to the black enclave at the heart of the
kingdom: The orcish stronghold was located on Idoslane's most fertile land. He
picked up his tankard and joined the villager at his table. "Why are the
brutes on the move?"
"They're
bored, that's all. Orcs don't need a reason to plunder and pillage. They
attacked a place a few miles from here and set fire to the fields and orchards.
Their sort are just monsters. Robbing, fighting, killing...They don't know any
better."
"And
they're strong," said another, eyes widening theatrically. "There
was a time when—"
"Not
that old fable," groaned the publican, stopping at the table to refill
their tankards.
"You
don't have to listen. I was talking to the dwarf." In spite of his injured
tone, the storyteller had no intention of abandoning his tale. "I came up
against a whole bedeviled mob of them. Great hulking beasts, they were. It was
during my employ in Tilogorn's army. We—"
"Happier
times, they were. The old prattler never had time to scare folks with his
stories."
"What
would a publican know about it? If you'd seen the accursed things, you'd have
some respect." He turned back to Tungdil. "I'm telling you, dwarf,
they were a terrible sight. A whole head taller than most men and ugly as sin:
big flat noses, hideous eyes, and sticking-out teeth. It was worse for the
young lads; they nearly died of fright."
"That's
funny," murmured Tungdil. "I read a description just like that
in—" He clamped his mouth shut, but no one had heard. To cover his
embarrassment, he scratched his sunburned head. Any later in the season and his
scalp would have burned to a crisp by now. The sun took a bit of getting used
to.
"Half
an orbit it took to kill those wretched brutes. My, they were tough! When I was
young no one would hire mercenaries to keep the orcs from their gates. Orcs or
no orcs, Idoslane was safe in our hands. Times have changed," he said
regretfully, mourning the decline of Tilogorn's army and the passing of his
youth. He glanced down and caught sight of Tungdil's ax. The blade had been put
to good use in the woods and was looking somewhat neglected, with blobs of
dried sap and splinters sticking to the bit. "Don't tell me you've been
using a fine ax like that for hacking wood!" he exclaimed, aghast.
"I
had to get through the undergrowth somehow." Tungdil reddened, hoping to
goodness that no one would ask him to demonstrate his race's legendary
axmanship. The truth was, he knew nothing of fighting.
Tungdil
had learned everything he knew from Lot-Ionan, who took little interest in
weaponry, sword fights, and close combat, leaving his ward without a military
education. No one had ever shown him how to wield an ax in anger. The servants
chopped wood or killed rats with their axes and that was as far as his handling
of the feared dwarven weapon went. His race was supposed to be skilled in
axmanship, but if faced with an aggressor, which well he might be, he was resigned
to striking out haphazardly and praying that the beast would run away.
"The
dwarves are great warriors, or so I've heard," said the veteran trooper.
"Runs in the blood, does it? Is it true what they say about a single dwarf
putting pay to a pack of ten orcs?"
Tungdil
had long suspected that he wasn't a proper dwarf, but now his fears were
confirmed. Listening to the men made him realize that his kinsfolk would laugh
if they could see him, which put an end to his enthusiasm for meeting others of
his race. Even the thought of the fairer sex seemed more alarming than
appealing.
"Ten
orcs," he said, hoping the trooper was right, "absolutely ..."
He yawned loudly, stretched, and rose. It was time to escape his own doubts,
shake off his nosy questioners, and find a bed. "You'll have to excuse me:
I need to get some sleep."
His
fellow drinkers, their initial suspicions forgotten, were reluctant to let him
go, but at length he was permitted to make his way to the second floor of the
timber-frame house where the publican had quartered him for the night. The room
was a dormitory, but a large one, and Tungdil had it to himself.
He
used the washbowl to bathe his sweaty feet, which had been confined to his
boots since the start of the journey.
Savoring the luxury of
his third beer, he stood by the window and gazed out over the tiled roofs of
Goodwater.
The
settlement was a good size, numbering a thousand or so dwellings. The villagers
seemed to make their living from the surrounding fields and orchards and what
wealth they had was now threatened by orcs. Tilogorn's anxiously awaited army
would have to hurry if there was going to be anything left to save.
Tungdil
dried his weary feet, folded his clothes over a chair, and buried himself in
the thick feather duvet.
Silvery
light shone on the leather bag destined for Gorén, sorely testing his resolve.
Don't
meddle with things that don't concern you, he told himself sternly.
Even as he fell asleep he thought of Lot-Ionan and Frala, whose talisman was looped through his belt. He missed the sound of her laughter. Tomorrow he would ask the publican for directions to the Blacksaddle and press on without delay.
Muffled sounds
roused him from his sleep.
Two
men were taking great pains to ready themselves for bed without making any
noise. Outside a storm was howling and raging around the settlement.
A
whispered exchange followed, during which Tungdil felt certain that he heard
Lot-Ionan's name. He peered warily at the newcomers: a thin, well-dressed
gentleman and a taller, broader fellow clad in leather mail with metal plating.
A merchant and his bodyguard? Their garments were
clearly worth a gold piece or two. He caught sight of a simple yet striking
trinket attached to the larger fellow's leather lapel. It was embossed with the
seal of the magi.
They're
envoys to the magi's council! "Are you headed for Ionandar?" he asked,
abandoning all pretense of sleep. Curiosity had triumphed over caution.
The broad man
frowned. "What makes you think that?"
"The
brooch." He pointed to the man's gown. "You must be envoys."
The
pair exchanged looks of surprise. "Who are you?" the bearer of the
trinket demanded. Tungdil introduced himself. "What news of
Lot-Ionan?" the man said sharply. "Is he well?"
"Perhaps
you could tell me a little about yourselves first," the dwarf requested
with impeccable politeness. They supplied him with their names and
occupations: Friedegard, a first-tier famulus apprenticed to Turgur the
Fair-Faced, and Vrabor, a warrior in the service of the magi. "Lot-Ionan
is in excellent health," Tungdil informed them. "You'll see for
yourselves when you get there." He struggled to contain himself, then
gave in. "Pray, what is the..." He reconsidered and began more
plainly: "What do you want with the magus?"
"Our
business is with Lot-Ionan, not his message boy," Vrabor said
dismissively, loosening the buckles on his armor. "Why do you think the
council sent an envoy and not a town crier?"
He
had barely finished speaking when the storm outside whipped into a frenzy,
gusting through chinks in the walls and emitting a strange, unnatural whine,
which was followed almost immediately by a high-pitched whistle.
Tensing, the two
men reached for their swords.
Not a night to be abroad, thought the dwarf as he
watched the moonlit scraps of cloud chase across the gloomy sky.
Just
then a slender face appeared at the window. Tungdil looked into the gray-green
eyes and felt his mind go numb. The apparition was more bewitching than
frightening: Long dark hair swept the beautiful visage, the occasional strand
plastered against the rain-drenched skin. So pale, so perfect was the being
that it resembled a marble sculpture of an elf, its bedraggled locks like fine
fractures in the stone.
The
dwarf stared helplessly, transfixed by the creature's gaze. The countenance was
attractive—of that there was no question—but it inspired in him an almost
physical revulsion. It was too beautiful, almost cruelly so.
"Over
there..." His breathless warning was enough to alert the envoys, who
looked up and dove for cover.
At
that moment there was an explosion of glass as a long black-fletched arrow
shattered the window and whined through the air, planting itself in the wall.
"You
get rid of them; I'll deal with the window," shouted Vrabor to his
companion. Seizing the heavy table, he upturned it and slammed it into the
wall, then hurriedly jammed some furniture against the makeshift barricade.
There were no other openings for arrows to enter.
Meanwhile
Friedegard, eyes closed and head bowed, was chanting silently and tracing
strange symbols in the air. In his right hand was a coin-sized crystal set in
gold.
"Can
someone tell me what's going on?" Tungdil scrambled out of bed and
grabbed his ax because it made him feel safer.
The
envoys listened in silence. Although the wind had abated, the rain was falling
more heavily than before. They strained their ears, but there was no sound of
the mysterious bowman. He seemed to have vanished with the tempest.
"Has the elf
gone?"
"I
can't be sure," said Vrabor. "Perhaps." He sheathed his sword
and sat down on the bed, hands resting on the cross guard of his weapon.
"They could be biding their time."
"They?"
"Älfar,
two of them. They've
been tailing us since Porista."
So it wasn't an elf after all...The älfar, a race
crueler than any other, were sworn enemies of the elves. They hated their
cousins for their purity, a purity that the älfar themselves had been denied.
It was hatred and jealousy, according to the history books, that impelled them
across the Northern Pass and into Girdlegard. "Is Lot-Ionan in
danger?"
"Lot-Ionan
will come to no harm," Vrabor assured him wearily. "The älfar are
powerless against the magi and they know it. The arrow was meant for Friedegard
and me; they want to know what we're carrying. We knew they were following us
as soon as we left the capital of Lios Nudin, but they waited until they could
be sure of our destination before they attacked. I'm sorry, groundling,"
he said, responding to the unspoken question in Tungdil's eyes. "I'm sure
you're a loyal messenger and I know we're indebted to your vigilance, but our
business is between the council and Lot-Ionan. You'll have to save your
questions for your return."
"I'm
a dwarf, not a groundling." Tungdil toyed with the idea of accompanying
the envoys to Ionandar the next morning and telling the magus of what he had
seen, but he decided against it. His mission to the Blacksaddle was more important.
He sat down and laid his ax across his knees.
The rest of the night was spent in watchful silence, their fear of the älfar keeping tiredness at bay. None of them slept a wink, but Friedegard's spell seemed to have worked and there was no sign of their assailants. At last, with the coming of dawn, the tension finally fell away and Tungdil lay back and dozed.
III
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar,
Girdlegard,
Late Spring, 6234th Solar Cycle
Reclining in his wing chair with his feet
on a stool, Lot-Ionan had made himself comfortable in a corner of his study and
was leafing contentedly through a grimoire, one of the many that lined his
walls. In addition to his slightly shabby beige robes he wore even shabbier
slippers and his pipe lay beside him, tobacco at the ready. Steam rose from a
glass of herbal tea on the table. The magus was savoring the peace and quiet.
"Do
you hear that, Nula?" he asked the barn owl who was perched on the back of
his chair and seemed to be studying his spells. "Not a sound. No noise, no
explosions. I was loath to say goodbye to Tungdil, but I know it was the right
decision."
Blinking
approvingly, Nula replied with a gentle twit-twoo.
Lot-Ionan knew full well that she couldn't understand him, but he enjoyed their
conversations. It was an excellent way of collecting his thoughts.
"I
suppose it was a bit mean of me, really," he confessed. "Gorén left
the Blacksaddle goodness knows how many cycles ago. He abandoned the mountain
after falling for the charms of a beautiful and intelligent elf." The owl
blinked again. "You want to know how I heard about it? My former
apprentice told me himself. It was all in a letter that he wrote from
Greenglade. He seemed most contented with his new abode and gave a full account
of the superior allure of elven women."
The
thought of Gorén's mistress reminded Lot-Ionan of his age. He had long since
lost interest in pleasures of the flesh; other matters took precedence in his
mind.
"Tungdil
will find out his new address, I shouldn't wonder. And when he does, he won't
rest until he's tracked Gorén down and accomplished his errand." He took a
sip from his steaming glass. The cold air of the vaults was conducive to study,
but he found himself drinking countless cups of tea.
Nula blinked,
this time almost reproachfully.
"What?"
he said defensively. "Don't you remember how he and Jolosin ruined my
work? You know how fond I am of Tungdil, but another incident of that kind
while I'm rewriting the formula would be disastrous! I took the necessary measures
to ensure a lengthy absence, that's all."
The owl seemed
unconvinced.
"Come
on, the journey will do him good! After everything he's read about Girdlegard,
it's time he saw the country for himself. Besides, he'll be back before you
know it, pleased as punch for finding Gorén on his own. And as for Jolosin,
he'll never want to look at another potato, let alone eat one, and he'll be
cured of playing tricks. We'll all be better off in the long run." His
eyes fell on his solar calendar. "What's that I see? Nula, we're expecting
an important guest!"
The
circular slide rule indicated that Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty would be visiting
that orbit. Needless to say, his fellow wizard would not be putting in a
personal appearance. With five hundred or more miles separating their realms,
they communicated via magic, availing themselves of an elaborate ritual that
could be implemented only during certain phases of the moon.
Not
that Lot-Ionan minded the distance. Nudin was fast developing into the most disagreeable
character that Lot-Ionan had ever known. At the same time, he was becoming a
formidable magus, his growing skill as a wizard correlating almost exactly with
his objectionableness as a man.
Of
course everyone developed his own personal approach to studying the mystic
arts, but only Nudin seemed to think that being rude, bad-tempered, arrogant,
and overweight would somehow serve his cause.
"I'll
be honest with you, Nula: That man has spells and charms at his fingertips that
others could barely decipher, let alone perform." He reached under the
table and fished out a jug of water and a glass. After giving the latter a
quick polish on his robes, he held it critically in the candlelight.
There
were those who said that Nudin's rising power as a magus had not been gained
through study and hard work. Rumor had it that he had cast a spell on his body
and invested it with the ability to retain magic indefinitely. Lot-Ionan gave
the gossip no credence, but even he was forced to concede that Nudin had
changed in character and appearance.
At
that moment the air cooled suddenly and a fierce gust of wind swept through the
room, nearly extinguishing the candles. A faint bluish haze shimmered at the
center of the study, gradually assuming the contours of a man. In the span of a
few heartbeats, Lot-Ionan found himself staring at Nudin's imposing bulk.
The
wizard of Ionandar appraised his dark-robed guest. Nudin seemed to have grown
again—outward as well as upward. His paunch looked larger than before, which
was possibly the reason for his especially voluminous malachite-green robes.
Chin-length
mousy hair hung limply about his face and there were dark circles around his
usually lively green eyes. The apparition was a perfect replica of the real
magician, who at that moment was standing in the circle he had cast in his
study in Porista, working the magic for his doppelganger to appear.
The
illusion was incredible. Lot-Ionan had never seen a more perfect demonstration
of the phenomenon in all his 287 cycles. Apparitions usually shimmered slightly
or were marred by minor imperfections, but this one was complete.
Nudin,
holding a finely carved maple staff crowned with an impressive onyx in his left
hand, languidly dusted his elegant robes with his right, dispatching the
lingering blue sparks. Suddenly Lot-Ionan felt terribly underdressed.
"Do
sit down," he said, gesturing to an armchair, and Nudin's doppelganger
lowered himself smoothly into the seat. Convention dictated that the same
courtesies were extended to apparitions as to real guests; it was only polite.
"Can I offer you a drop of tea or would you like something else?"
The
question was not as absurd as it sounded. Even from a distance of five hundred
miles, Nudin would be able to taste the flavor of anything consumed by his
doppelganger.
The
visitor shook his head. "Thank you, my friend, but the news I bring will
suffer no delay. You must come to Lios Nudin at once. The Perished Land is
advancing."
Lot-Ionan
stopped smiling; he had not prepared himself for tidings as dire as these.
"How long has it been moving?"
"Some
sixty orbits. I took a trip to the border and it came to my attention."
Nudin looked anxious. "Our protective girdle is no longer as strong and
reliable as it was. The damage is too great for me to repair; I need the
council's help. The rest of us are in Lios Nudin already; we're waiting for
you..." He trailed off.
"Go
on," Lot-Ionan encouraged him, although he had a sinking feeling that
there was worse to come.
"It's
the älfar," explained Nudin. "They've been sighted in the south of
Gauragar, many miles from Dsôn Balsur. Meanwhile, King Tilogorn is being
plagued by marauding orcs. They're rampaging through Idoslane, burning down
villages and laying waste to the land. He's sent his army to deal with
them..." He looked grimly at his host. "It bodes ill,
Lot-Ionan."
"The
incursion of the Perished Land, the älfar, the orcs—they're all
connected?"
"We
certainly shouldn't rule it out," he said, refusing to commit himself.
"You were summoned by the magi's council. Why didn't you respond?"
"Summoned?"
Lot-Ionan made no attempt to disguise his surprise. "When?"
"I
have it on good authority that two of the council's best envoys were dispatched
with a message: Friedegard and Vrabor are their names. I believe you know
them."
"Of
course I know them! But where have they got to?" Lot-Ionan was instantly
concerned for the pair's well-being, especially now the älfar were known to be
abroad. "Thank goodness you decided to follow it up yourself. I'll set off
as soon as I can. It shouldn't take more than a few orbits to get to Lios
Nudin." Lot-Ionan expected Nudin to take his leave, but the apparition did
not stir.
"Just
one more thing," his guest cut in. "It's trivial compared to the
other news, but all the same... Do you think you could bring my instruments
with you? If you've finished with them, I'd very much like to have them
back."
"Your
instruments... Of course!" Many cycles ago Lot-Ionan had borrowed a number
of items from Nudin on Gorén's behalf. The loan comprised a small handheld
mirror, two arm-length remnants of sigurdaisy wood, and a pair of silver-plated
glass carafes with unusual etchings. After finding some reference to the items
in a compendium, Gorén had been eager to examine them more closely. Lot-Ionan
could no longer recall what conclusion he had reached, but he suspected it was
nothing of particular interest. The more immediate problem was locating the
things. He had a sudden vision of the wrecked laboratory and hoped to goodness
that Gorén had not left the items there.
"I'll be
sure to bring them," he promised.
Nudin
seemed doubtful. "You do still have them, don't you?" Lot-Ionan
nodded in what he hoped was a convincing fashion. "All right, well, make
haste, old friend. Only the full council can save Girdlegard from the terrors
to come."
Nudin's
double rose to his feet, positioned himself in the middle of the room, and
rapped his staff firmly against the floor. The illusion shattered in a shower
of sparks. Glittering dust drizzled to the ground, disintegrating further and
further until nothing was left. The interview ended as spectacularly as it
had begun.
Lot-Ionan leaned back
in his chair. If Toboribor's orcs have joined forces with Dsôn
Balsur's älfar, the peoples of Girdlegard are in serious danger.
He
decided to combine his trip to Lios Nudin with a visit to King Tilogorn in
order to pledge his support. At least half of Ionandar lay within the borders
of Idoslane, so it seemed only proper to loan the monarch his magical powers in
the battle against Tion's brutes. The magus rose.
Time is of the essence-, Nudin was right.
He
summoned his famuli and issued instructions regarding the luggage he required
for the journey and the chain of command among the students while he was away.
Then he removed his beloved robes and exchanged them reluctantly for his
little-worn traveling garb, comprising another set of robes, also in beige, but
made of more durable cloth, and a mantle of dark blue leather.
His
servants were busy grooming his bay stallion, Furo. The five-hundred-mile
journey to Porista would take ten orbits at most, so everything he needed could
be stowed in the saddlebags.
At
length Lot-Ionan clambered somewhat stiffly onto his horse. Furo snorted
excitedly as the magus leaned forward, stroked its mane, and whispered some
enchantment in its ear.
With
a loud whinny the stallion thundered out of the underground vaults and through
the gates. Once out in the open, with the path ahead and fresh air all around,
it picked up speed, accelerating from a canter to a gallop. The cobbles flashed
beneath its hooves, covering multiple paces with each stride. Thanks to
Lot-Ionan's art, the horse could outstrip any mount in Girdlegard and it
relished its speed.
And
thus Furo carried his master, who was clinging on for dear life, across Ionandar
and beyond.
Kingdom of Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Late Spring,
6234th Solar Cycle
The Blacksaddle? Never heard of
it!" The morning could scarcely have got off to a less auspicious start.
Tungdil pushed the map to one side as the publican placed his breakfast on the
table.
Particles
of dust danced in the wide rays of sunshine pouring through the plate-glass
windows. It came as a relief to Tungdil that he could see without peering; his
eyes had adjusted to the brightness already.
None
of the good people of Idoslane could tell him anything about the Blacksaddle;
it was not even marked on the tavern's ancient map.
"Is
there anyone in Goodwater who could help me?" he persisted. "A clerk
or a magistrate or someone?"
The
publican shook his head regretfully, sorry to disappoint the outsider. Tungdil
spooned his breakfast halfheartedly. The porridge was decent enough, but
frustration had taken the edge off his hunger.
Privately
he was still hoping that the villagers were too simpleminded to be relied on.
The publican struck him as the sort who had never strayed more than ten or
twenty miles from home.
Annoyingly,
Goodwater was not marked either, but with a bit of luck one of the mercenaries
would know the area sufficiently well to pinpoint its location and send him in
the right direction.
No
doubt Friedegard and Vrabor would have been of some assistance, but they had
long since departed. Stopping only to give the publican a few gold coins to pay
for the window, they had struck out for Ionandar and taken the arrow with them.
Tungdil
was similarly anxious to leave. "Vraccas be with you," he called to
the publican as he slung his pack and the leather bag over his shoulder and
stepped out into the street.
The
sentries from the previous night had been replaced with a new set of stubbly
faces, but Tungdil lost no time in inquiring about the Blacksaddle. Thankfully,
the mercenaries had heard of the wretched mountain and could point to Goodwater
on the map. It was getting on for midday when he left the settlement and set
off down a narrow road, heading north as the sentries had advised.
"If
you see any orcs, tell them where they can find their dead friends!" one
of the men shouted after him, thrusting his spear at a festering skull and
raising a cloud of flies.
He
could still hear the soldier's laughter as he skirted the fields that he had
seen in the distance from his window the night before.
Goodwater
was an apt name for the place. Tungdil could picture what it would be like at
harvest time: fields of corn blowing gently in the breeze, ripe apples hanging
from the branches, and enough nuts for countless busy hands. Idoslane struck
him as a beautiful place, with the obvious limitation that it wasn't
underground. He never felt quite comfortable in the open.
At least there's a decent road. He dreaded the
moment when he would have to strike out across the countryside. It's beyond me how the pointy-ears manage to find their
bearings when there's nothing but woods and fields. From what he'd
gathered from his reading, the elves had retreated to the glades of Âlandur as
part of their quest to live in harmony with nature, art, and beauty. But the
smug creatures' desire for perfection had failed to save them from their
treacherous cousins, the älfar.
It's
funny, thought
Tungdil, remembering the face at the window, the älf looked just
the way I always imagined an elf.
The
northern elven kingdom of Lesinteïl had fallen long ago and now the kingdom of Âlandur
was two-thirds under the dominion of the Perished Land. As for the elves of the
Golden Plains, they were history: The älfar had seized their land, renamed it Dsôn
Balsur, and made it their base, from which they sent out scouts to reconnoiter
the surrounding land of Gauragar.
Gauragar's
sovereign, King Bruron, was powerless to repel them. As warriors, men were no
match for the älfar, and if it came to a battle, Bruron's soldiers would be
lucky to draw their weapons before they were killed.
Tungdil
thought of the envoys and tried to estimate the distance between the
southeasterly tip of Dsôn Balsur in the north and Lot-Ionan's vaults in the
south. Four hundred miles or more, he reckoned—a formidable distance, even for
an älf.
Unless, of course, the Perished Land has edged southward
and the älfar have extended their range. If that was the case, it would
explain the envoys' business with Lot-Ionan: Any expansion southward of the
Perished Land would pose a threat to the enchanted realm of Lios Nudin.
Tungdil
kept a watchful eye on his surroundings as he walked: If there were orcs
abroad, he had no desire to deliver himself into their clutches. He took
particular care at blind corners, stopping to listen for clunking armor and weaponry
or bestial snarls and shouts. To his considerable relief, he encountered no one
and was spared the unenviable task of choosing to stand his ground or flee the
orcs' superior might. By the time he reached the gaily painted pickets marking
the border between Idoslane and Gauragar, it had been dark for about four
hours.
His
feet were weary, so he decided to journey no farther that night. Spotting a
nearby oak, he walked over and scrambled into the branches, hauling his bags
after him with a rope that he had purchased in Goodwater.
He
valued his life sufficiently that sleeping like a bird in the treetops seemed a
fair price to pay for the extra protection it afforded. The orcs were hardly
likely to spot him and in the event of trouble, he would draw on his ingenuity
to find a way out. Wrapping the rope twice around his body, he tied himself to
the tree to stop himself from falling or being shaken from his perch, then
closed his eyes—and dreamed.
He
took a deep breath, filling his lungs with the fresh cold air that swept the
majestic summits of the Great Blade and Dragon's Tongue. The Northern Pass
appeared before him and his imagination took off, soaring high above the Gray
Range like an eagle.
A
sudden welter of monstrous shouts shattered the serenity of the mountains and
echoed hideously against the age-old rock.
On
looking down, Tungdil saw the mighty portals of the Stone Gateway and all around
them Giselbert and the fifthlings fighting to the death. Axes thudded into
enemy armor, biting through sinew and bone, only to be torn out and planted in
the next foe.
Still the hordes
kept coming.
Tungdil
stared in dismay when he saw the endless tide of assailants battering the
stronghold. A foul stench of dead orc rose from the battlements where the stone
was awash with green blood. He could practically taste the rancid fat on the
creatures' greasy armor. The reek was so unbearable that he woke up, retching.
Tungdil
opened his eyes and was surprised to discover that it was light. What... ?
At
the foot of the tree, a dozen fires were burning in a ring. Guttural laughter,
low grunts, snarls, and angry curses sounded from below.
His
blood ran cold. He was trapped: The bands of orcs so eagerly awaited by
Goodwater's mercenaries had set up camp around his tree. No wonder he had
dreamed of the fifthlings' battle against the hordes. His ears had heard the
brutes, his nostrils had smelled them, and his sleeping mind had conjured the
images to fit.
The
dwarf pressed himself against the trunk, stiff as a statue, willing himself to
become part of the tree. What if they notice me?
One
thing was certain: A mob of this size would make short work of the handful of
mercenaries in Goodwater.
Red
flames blazed up from the fires, towering as high as several lances and
alerting nighttime wanderers to the danger. For the dwarf amid the boughs, the
warning came too late.
Tungdil
totted up the heads in sight and came to the conclusion that over a hundred
beasts were camped below—sturdy, powerful orcs for whom a wooden palisade would
be no deterrent if there was prey on the other side.
He
took another look and was seized with the urge to vomit. The meat being roasted
over the fires and consumed with gusto was unmistakably human in form. Two
human torsos were turning on specially constructed racks like chickens on a
spit.
Tungdil
had to fight back his nausea. It didn't take a genius to work out that the
beasts' suspicions would be aroused by a porridge-spewing tree.
Judging
by the color of the bandages, he deduced that the ragged strips of cloth
covering the wounds of the handful of injured orcs had been torn from the
uniforms of King Tilogorn's men. So much for Goodwater's eagerly awaited
reinforcements. It seemed Idoslane's soldiers had underestimated the strength
of the enemy and paid a high price, having been killed and eaten into the
bargain.
Out
of the frying pan and into the fire, thought Tungdil, remembering the previous night's
brush with the älfar. What have I done to deserve this?
The
poor villagers of Goodwater had no idea that the green-hided peril was heading
their way. He was the only one who could warn them, but that was impossible
with the beasts camped round his tree. His only hope was to bide his time, then
climb down and creep past them while they slept.
Suddenly
it occurred to him that he could use the situation to his advantage by
sneaking a little closer to the fires. If he could eavesdrop on the orcs'
conversation, he might learn something of their plans. He was familiar with
their language in its written form, at least. It paid to have been raised by a
magus with a very large library: Studying was his favorite occupation after
working in the forge.
Unlikely
as it might sound, there was a logic to the grunts, snarls, and shouts that
passed for orcish communication. Scholars had studied the speech of orcs in
captivity and discovered a language with an unusual emphasis on curses and
threats.
His
heart raced at the prospect of stealing closer to the stinking beasts. He would
be finished if they caught him, but a dwarf was obliged to do everything in his
power to protect the races of Girdlegard from Tion's ugly hordes. The Smith's
commandments applied to every single one of his children, and that meant
Tungdil too.
His
mind was made up. He eyed the trunk, looking for the best way of reaching the
ground without making any noise. Even as he was lashing his bags to the tree, a
commotion sounded below. One by one the orcs rose to their feet amid a tumult
of shouted exclamations. Guests were approaching.
The
ring of orcs closed around the tree. The dwarf edged away from the trunk,
crawling as far along the tapering branch as he dared. At last he was close
enough to hear what they were saying, provided he strained his ears. Thankfully
the chieftains were forced to raise their voices above the din, which made
things a little easier.
He
reached out gingerly and pushed the leaves aside. The beasts were gathered in a
large circle around three chieftains whose fearsome tusks had been sharpened
and tattooed. At once the noise died down, the cheering fading into silence.
Tungdil
heard the clatter of horseshoes. Two riders made their way through the ranks of
waiting orcs, the hooves of their black steeds striking the ground in a shower
of blue and white sparks. The crimson-eyed horses moved with feline fluidity
and had nothing of the typical equestrian gait.
The
tall, slender riders directed their steeds to the center of the circle and
dismounted. Tungdil's instincts told him they were älfar.
The
creatures were clad in finely tailored leather armor and from their shoulders
hung long cloaks. Their black leather breeches were tucked into dark brown
boots that reached above their knees and their hands were sheathed in burgundy
gloves.
The
first of the pair, an älf with long fair hair, held a spear tipped with a head
as fine as an icicle. A sword dangled from his belt.
His
companion's hair was pulled away from his face, his dark plait disappearing
into the mantle of his cape. He carried a longbow in his hand and a quiver of
arrows on his back. A pair of daggers was lashed to his thighs with leather
straps.
Tungdil
recognized the älf at once: It was the face he had seen at the window of the
tavern. Please, Vraccas, he begged silently, may Friedegard and Vrabor be alive.
The
fair-haired älf took charge of the proceedings, speaking in the common tongue.
It was clearly below his race's dignity to communicate in the primitive grunts
of the orcs.
"I
am Sinthoras of Dsôn Balsur, here at the command of my master, Nôd'onn the
Doublefold, commander of the Perished Land, to present the three princes of
Toboribor with an offer of an alliance." His voice was cold, barely
courteous. He was there to present a deal and his tone told them they could
take it or leave it. "Prince Bashkugg, Prince Kragnarr, Prince Ushnotz,
you have been chosen by Nôd’onn to conduct a campaign of subjugation and
destruction the like of which has never been seen. You, the strong arm of the
south, shall lead the orcs to victory and sunder the skull of mankind."
"And
who shall be the commander?" demanded Kragnarr, who stood as tall as the älf
but with twice his girth. The other princes were of smaller stature.
Bashkugg
gave him an angry shove. "You think you're better than us, do you?"
he shouted belligerently.
Kragnarr
responded to the insult by lumbering round to face his challenger. He leaned
across until their broad foreheads were touching. Neither moved as they stared
at each other, clawed fingers clutching the pommels of their massive swords.
Ushnotz proved altogether wilier and took a step backward, waiting to see how
the squabble would unfold.
"My
master intends to make you equal in rank," announced Sinthoras, straining
to make himself heard above the snarling.
"No,"
growled Kragnarr quickly, promptly followed by Bashkugg.
The älf
cast them a disgusted glance. Even from a distance Tungdil could tell that he
would rather kill the princes than negotiate with them, but Nôd’onn had given
his orders. It was the first time that Tungdil had heard mention of any name at
the source of the evil.
"In
that case, my master will grant the office of commander to whosoever conquers
the most land." The älf held his spear loosely, but his taut stance
betrayed his distrust of the beasts. His dark-haired companion seemed equally
wary.
"Land?"
grunted Ushnotz scornfully. "It should be corpses, not land! Whoever gets
the most bodies will be commander!" He stroked his belly and the other two
princes hastened to agree.
"No,"
the älf said firmly. "This is about territory, not corpses."
"Why?"
thundered Bashkugg. "Why not corpses? My soldiers have to eat!"
"Content
yourselves with killing the armies that are raised against you," the älf
advised him coldly. "You know my master's will."
"Exactly,"
Ushnotz said slyly. " Your master. We've
no obligation to obey him. He doesn't rule the south; we do!"
Sinthoras
directed a pitying smile at him. "Not for much longer. My master is
advancing from the north with an army of orcs who will seize the south faster
than you can fashion cudgels from the trees." He looked each of the
princes in the eye. "Give him your allegiance now and he will reward you
with land of your own. Toboribor is nothing compared with what will follow.
Each one of you will have your own kingdom with humans for slaves. But defy
him, and you will cross swords with others of your race."
The
threat of a green-hided army from the north with designs on their territory
achieved its intended effect. A hush descended as the three princes digested
the information, all memory of their quarrel forgotten.
From
his post among the branches Tungdil listened and watched in disbelief. Nôd’onn,
if that was the name of the Perished Land's lord, was forging all kinds of
unholy alliances in order to subjugate the southern lands. The coming cycles
would bring untold suffering for men and elves.
"Fine,"
Ushnotz said finally, although clearly unhappy with the solution. "I shall
do as your master proposes — and he shall make me commander in chief."
Kragnarr
glowered at him murderously. "Count me in as well," he snarled.
"The tribe of the Kragnarr-Shorrs will conquer more land than the two of
you put together." He jabbed a clawed finger derisively at the others.
"I'll be commander, you'll see!"
"I
wouldn't bet on it," Bashkugg retorted angrily. "My troopers will
overrun the fleshlings' cities before you've even started!"
"You'll
all have a chance to prove yourselves," said Sinthoras, reaching into his
belt pouch and producing three plain amulets of blue crystal. He tossed them to
the princes. "Leave here and go your separate ways. These are gifts from
my master; they offer protection against the magic of our foes. You are to
carry them always."
The
meeting had almost reached its conclusion when a foolhardy orc sidled up to the
älfar's steeds and sniffed the air hungrily.
Without
warning, one of the horses whipped round, jaws opening as it pounced. Sharp
teeth closed around the ore's shoulders and ripped out a sizable clump of
flesh.
Green
blood spurted from the wound as the orc retreated, shrieking. A second orcish
trooper drew his sword and made to fell the rabid horse.
Before
he could strike, the steed's hind leg lifted and sped into the orc's broad
chest. There was a flash of blinding light and the orc was thrown backward,
traveling several paces before crashing to the ground.
The
trooper had no time to right himself before the second horse was upon him. Its
forelegs stove in his chest, hollowing his breastplate. His stomach burst with
a sickening bang. In an instant the creature's black jaws were at the orc's
unprotected throat. There was a sound of crunching bone and the orc's
anguished screaming broke off abruptly.
Tungdil
watched in stunned horror as the steed swallowed the mouthful of flesh. The
second creature let out a whinny of savage enjoyment.
The
fair-haired älf issued an order in an unintelligible language and the steeds,
horses in nothing save appearance, settled down at once, trotting obediently
to their masters. The älfar swung themselves gracefully onto their backs.
"You
know what my master expects of you. Make haste and keep to the terms of our
agreement," Sinthoras said grimly, turning his steed to leave.
A
wide corridor opened before him as the crowd parted hastily, drawing back from
the animals' lethal jaws. At length the silence was broken.
The
orc with the wounded shoulder shoved his way to the front. "Look what they
did to me!" he shouted furiously, waving his gore-encrusted claws in
Bashkugg's face. "The pointy-ears killed Rugnarr; the pointy-ears deserve
to die!"
The
powerfully built chieftain wiped the trooper's blood from his eyes. "Hold
your tongue, you cretin!" he thundered, adding a string of foul-mouthed
epithets. "They're with us."
"In
us, I reckon! We'll eat 'em like we'll eat the fleshlings!" The threat
brought grunts of approval from three of his tribe. Emboldened by their
support, he nocked an arrow to his bow and took aim at the vanishing riders.
"Mmm, what's tastier—älfar or horse?"
Tungdil
knew better than to mistake the mounts for horses. He had read about shadow
mares in Lot-Ionan's books. They were creatures of the night, unicorns who had
been possessed by evil and stripped of their purity, their white coats, and
their horns. They ate flesh and were ferocious hunters, driven by an
all-consuming hatred of goodness in any form.
Bashkugg
was tired of the trooper's posturing. Drawing his clumsily forged sword, he
struck at the wounded orc's throat. The blade sliced halfway through the neck,
withdrawing with a vicious jerk. The prince grabbed the second orc and hewed
his head from its shoulders, holding it aloft for the others to see. With a
terrible warning cry, he bared his fangs and dropped the dripping skull,
grinding it into the ground until dark gray brains oozed through splintered
bone. The other two orcs who had joined in the rebellion were put to the sword
as well. The matter had been resolved in the traditional orcish way.
Cowed
by the display of might, the troopers skulked back to their campfires, grunting
and snarling, to resume their victory celebrations. The five bloodied corpses of
their comrades, one trampled by the shadow mare and four slaughtered by the
prince, were abandoned where they lay.
"What
now?" Ushnotz wanted to know.
"I'll
go south," decided Kragnarr. "You," he said, pointing to
Bashkugg, "head west, while Ushnotz takes care of the east." The
others nodded their assent. "What do we do about the fleshling
settlement?"
"I
say we attack together," Ushnotz said greedily. "It's not far and we
can get a quick feed before we go our separate ways."
Bashkugg
scratched his chin doubtfully. "Didn't the älf tell us not to—"
"The
southern lands are our business, not theirs. Besides, this wasn't part of the
deal. The älf told us to conquer new territory; this is ours already." He
smiled slyly.
"The
fleshlings skewered my troopers' skulls on their palisades; I want
revenge!" roared Kragnarr, his breastplate jangling as he thumped his
brawny chest. "No älf can stop me from punishing them."
"At
dawn, then?" proposed Bashkugg to a chorus of approving grunts.
Tungdil
let the twigs spring back and retreated slowly along the branch. He had heard
enough to know that Girdlegard was in serious danger, but before he could warn
Lot-Ionan about Nôd’onn’s designs he had to sound the alarm in Goodwater and
deliver the bag to Gorén. The magus would know what to do about the threat; he
would probably call a meeting of the council or, better still, summon the
rulers of the human kingdoms as well.
It
seemed to Tungdil that it was time for the magi and the human sovereigns to
join forces against the Perished Land. They could even ask the dwarves to help
them: A combined army, bolstered by his kinsfolk, would surely be victorious.
Tungdil
waited until all but a handful of orcs were asleep, but even then there was no
guarantee that his escape would be successful: Three dozen orcs had been posted
around the camp's perimeter to keep watch for intruders.
The
dwarf took a deep breath and decided on his route, picking a particularly bored
and sleepy-looking sentry who had propped himself on his rusty spear and was
fighting to stay awake.
After
a good deal of deliberation he resolved to take his packs with him. In view of
his recent bad luck, it seemed too risky to leave them in the tree. The orcs
would only discover them, and the last thing he needed was to lose the precious
artifacts and admit his failure to Lot-Ionan and Gorén.
An
eternity seemed to pass as Tungdil abandoned his hiding place as quietly as
possible. Even the rustling of a branch would seal his fate.
He
kept hold of the firm bark with both hands, sliding down gradually and taking
care to avoid the light of the fire. Every now and then a twig would snag on
his chain mail, but he succeeded in prizing himself free without a telltale
snapping of wood.
At
last he was back on solid ground, pressing his face into the grass and filling
his nostrils with its fresh dewy scent. It was a welcome antidote to the
pungent stench of orc.
Stealth
had never been his strong point, so it seemed best to proceed on his belly like
a caterpillar, pushing the bags in front of him while endeavoring to keep his
posterior out of sight.
It
turned out to be much harder than he'd hoped. The haft of his ax was forever
jamming between his legs, his chain mail jangled with the slightest movement,
and his boots struggled to find purchase on the slippery grass. His nerves were
in tatters.
I knew I was a terrible climber, but trying to be quiet is
worse, he thought, stopping to mop the sweat from his brow. Vraccas had
intended the dwarves to fight in open combat. They took deliberate strides to
get wherever they were going and built staircases when the gradient dictated.
There was none of this sneaking around.
Barely
ten paces separated the dozing sentry from Tungdil as he slithered past. Every
feature of the trooper's hideous countenance was visible in the moonlight. Its
face was crisscrossed with war paint and ceremonial scars and milky saliva
dribbled out of its mouth and down its protruding tusks, dripping onto its
fat-slavered armor. The nostrils in its flat nose flared from time to time.
The
dwarf was tempted to bury his ax in the beast's oafish head, but he doubted
his proficiency and in any case, one dead orc would scarcely save Goodwater
from attack.
Relieved
to be out of the camp, he crawled through the grass until he reached an
irrigation channel at the edge of the field and slipped inside, disappearing
from view.
The
ditch allowed him to reach the fringes of a wood without being seen and at
last it was safe to stand up. Now, that was an
adventure by anyone's standards. His clothes were coated in mud, but he
had other, more pressing concerns. As far as he could recall, the wood was
fairly small and the best course was to cut straight through it. He hoped to
goodness that he wouldn't lose his way.
Having
put a decent distance between himself and the orcs, Tungdil stopped worrying
about trying to move quietly. Provided he could get to the village fast enough,
there was still a chance that lives could be saved.
He
settled into a steady trot and reached the edge of the wood in short order.
With a sigh of relief he stepped out into the open.
Vraccas almighty! He froze at the sight.
Four
hundred paces from the wood was another orc encampment, three times larger than
the first. The field was carpeted with sleeping beasts. No fires were alight to
alert him to the danger.
Tungdil
retreated quickly before he was spotted. In spite of his best efforts, he
failed to find an alternative route: If he wanted to reach the settlement, he
would have to sneak past the sleeping bodies. Soon his misgivings were replaced
by dwarven obstinacy. Determined to warn the villagers of the coming danger, he
crept along the edge of the wood, trying to stay hidden while he picked out
the best path through the camp.
Suddenly his boot met with resistance and he heard a faint click. Leaves swirled into the air and a metal jaw snapped shut, trapping his left calf just below the knee. The ground opened and Tungdil plummeted downward, landing headfirst. Everything went dark.
It was the pain
that woke him.
When
Tungdil came to, there was an excruciating throbbing in his left leg.
Groaning, he struggled into a sitting position and gazed up at the dark
earthen walls. Gleaming green fronds framed the opening of the pit; it was dawn
already.
Clamped
to his leg and strangling his blood supply was a contraption whose purpose he
knew only too well. Villagers set traps like these to catch wolves. The metal
teeth had pierced his leather breeches, leaving a crust of dark red blood
around the wound. His calf throbbed dully.
Tungdil
did not bother to prize the trap apart but took up his ax, gritted his teeth,
and set about hammering the thin pins at the heart of the spring.
Every
blow to the trap was a blow to his leg and he moaned softly in pain. Trying not
to flinch, he worked on the metal determinedly until the jaws fell open and the
pressure was released.
With
cautious movements he removed the trap, then flung it away furiously. Using the
loamy wall to support himself, he stood up and placed his injured leg gently on
the ground.
Pain seared through his
calf. Running was out of the question; hauling himself out of the pit was
going to be difficult enough.
His
concern for the people of Goodwater gave him the necessary strength. After
tossing his knapsack out of the pit, he slung the leather pouch over his
shoulder and wound his fingers around the roots protruding from the soil.
Gasping, he hauled himself up and, with a final burst of energy, swung himself
onto the grass, where he lay panting for air.
I'll be more careful where I put my feet in the future,
he thought grimly. After a while he crawled to the edge of the wood. The fresh
scent on the spring breeze was all the evidence he needed that the orcs had
moved on. The field was deserted.
There
could be little doubt where they had gone: Smoke was rising in the distance,
gathering like a storm cloud in the sky. Tungdil scrambled up, shouldered his
knapsack, and hurried off, shaking the dead leaves and mud from his hair.
Anger
and loathing dulled the pain, driving him faster and faster until he realized
that he was running after all. He wanted to be there with the people of
Goodwater since his clumsiness had prevented him from warning them in time.
Such
was his resolve that he paid no heed to the voice of reason that bade him take
more care. Nothing could stop him from racing toward the settlement, spurred on
by the ever-growing column of dark smoke.
That
afternoon, sweat-drenched, he reached the top of the hill and looked down on
the settlement.
Goodwater
was ablaze. Breaches several paces across had opened in the palisades and there
were two large gaps where the wooden defenses had been razed to the ground.
Mutilated limbs and bodies littered the perimeter.
He
soon spotted the remains of the mercenaries, heads impaled on their spears.
Their unseeing eyes stared down from the watchtower as the fire raged unchecked
through the settlement, reducing the houses to charred shells.
There
were no cries for help, no shouted orders to fetch water or quench the blaze.
All Tungdil could hear was the crackling of flames, the roar of burning wood,
and the crash of collapsing roofs and walls. There was no sign of life.
Clutching
his ax, Tungdil marched toward the burned-out settlement. Maybe I'll find a few survivors trapped among the ruins.
He gripped his weapon a little tighter as he passed through the gates and
turned onto the high street, limping as he walked.
The
warm wind smelled of scorched flesh, and flames were shooting out of the houses
where panes of glass had shattered in the heat. The whole settlement was on
fire.
Human
corpses were strewn across the streets and pavements, bodies piled up like
dead vermin. Some of the women were naked, the flesh of their breasts and
buttocks gouged with bite marks and scratches. There was no mistaking their
particular fate.
Shuddering,
Tungdil stepped over the slaughtered villagers and listened intently for the
slightest sign that anyone was still alive. It was deathly quiet.
All
the while the heat was intensifying. The surviving walls acted like a furnace,
trapping the fire and raising the temperature dangerously. The dwarf had no
choice but to leave the dying settlement.
Back
on the hilltop, Tungdil sat down and made himself watch Goodwater's final
moments. It's my fault. He buried his
bearded chin in his hands and wept in despair. Long moments passed before the
tears of anger and helplessness began to slow.
Now
he could see why his kinsfolk stood guard at Girdlegard's passes: Humans were
powerless to defend themselves against the brutal beasts. Tungdil looked down
through his tears at the burned-out settlement. Nowhere should ever be made to
look like that.
He
dried his salt-streaked cheeks and wiped his hands on his cloak. His calf was
throbbing so painfully that he decided to delay his departure until the
following orbit. Curling up on the hillside, he pulled his cloak over him and
watched the flames flicker as evening drew in.
The
fire raged long into the night until there was nothing left to burn. Red
glimmers illuminated the ashes and Tungdil was reminded of the shadow mares'
menacing eyes. So much evil in such a short space of
time, he thought sadly.
Tomorrow
he would press on with his errand and deliver the pouch. Then it would be time
for him to persuade Lot-Ionan to take action before the orcs and älfar grew any
more powerful.
When Tungdil woke the next morning, he
was forced to concede that the sacking of Goodwater was not, as he had hoped,
just a dream.
Gray
clouds obscured the sun and the smell of rain hung in the air. There was
nothing left of the settlement besides smoking embers, rubble, and burned-out
houses whose scorched girders rose starkly into the sky like blackened
skeletons.
The
fields and orchards were covered with a white mist that advanced over the
remains of Goodwater, hiding it from view. The land was mourning the villagers,
laying a shroud over the settlement that only an orbit earlier had bustled with
life.
The
sight was too much for Tungdil to bear, so he gathered his packs and set off.
As he hobbled on his way, he tried to eat a little something from his
provisions, but the bread he had bought in Goodwater stuck in his throat. There
was a cloying taste of death and guilt. He stowed the loaf away.
The
gashes in his calf were angry and painful. If he left the wound untreated, he
ran the risk of infection or even gangrene, which could cost him his leg or,
worse still, his life.
That
aside, the journey passed without incident and he crossed back into Gauragar
and camped that evening beneath the now-familiar oak. Its leafy canopy
sheltered him from the downpour that started that night, only easing late the
next morning.
By
the fifth orbit the skin surrounding the crusty wound felt hot to the touch and
thick yellow pus oozed from the scab. Gritting his teeth, Tungdil walked on.
There
was no use waiting for help by the wayside. Instead he kept going, trailing his
injured leg through the fine drizzle that was rapidly transforming the trail
into a mud bath. At last he reached a small hamlet numbering six farmhouses.
His forehead was burning.
A
fair-haired woman in simple peasant dress, a milk pail in either hand, spotted
the staggering figure. She stopped in her tracks.
Tungdil
could barely make out her features; she was just a faint shadow. "Vraccas
be with you," he murmured, then toppled over, landing face-first in the
mud, his arms too weak to break his fall.
"Opatja!"
the woman called urgently, setting down her pails. "Come quickly!"
There
was the sound of hurrying footsteps; then Tungdil was rolled onto his back.
"He's
feverish," said a blurry, misshapen figure, his voice echoing oddly in the
dwarf's ears. Someone was examining his leg. "He doesn't look good. It's
gangrenous. We'll have to move him to the barn." Tungdil felt himself
hovering in midair. "He'll need an herbal infusion."
"He looks funny," said a
childish voice. "What is he?"
"He's a
groundling," the woman answered.
"You
told me they live in the ground! What's he doing up here?"
"Not
now, Jemta. Take your brothers and sisters inside," the man said
impatiently.
The air
was warm and smelled of hay. Tungdil could hear mooing. The rain seemed to stop
and the light dimmed. "Goodwater," he said weakly. "Goodwater
has fallen to the orcs."
"What did he say?" The
woman sounded worried.
"Pay
no attention," the man said dismissively. "He's feverish, that's
all. Look, he must have been caught in a wolf trap. Either that, or the orc had
metal jaws." They both chuckled.
The
dwarf clutched at the man's arm. "You're right; I'm feverish," he
said, making a last attempt to warn them, "but the orcs are coming.
They're heading in three directions: west, south, and east. Three tribes. At
least three hundred troopers."
Footsteps
approached rapidly. "Here's the infusion," said the girl. "So
that's what a groundling looks like!"
"Ava, you go inside too," the man ordered. There was a brief pause; then Tungdil felt as though his leg were being dunked in boiling oil. Even as he screamed the world went dark around him.
...
but he doesn't even have a proper beard!" Tungdil detected a note of disappointment
in the girl's voice. "Grandpa said they always have long beards, but this
one's shorter than Father's. It's like... scratchy wool.
"Do
you think he's got gold and diamonds?" The speaker took a step closer.
"Remember what Grandma told us? Groundlings are richer than anyone."
"Come
back here!" hissed the girl. "You can't just search his pockets. It's
rude!"
Tungdil's
eyes flicked open. Squealing, the children jumped back in a flurry of straw. He
sat up and looked around.
Nine
children were gathered around him, staring with a mixture of curiosity and
fear. Their ages ranged from four to fourteen cycles and they were clad in
plain garments. Nothing they wore could have cost more than a single bronze
coin.
His
leg had been dressed and was throbbing a bit, but the pain was gone and his
temperature was back to normal. They had taken good care of him.
"Vraccas
be with you," he greeted them. "Could you tell me where I am and who
was kind enough to tend to me?"
"He
speaks just like us," said a redheaded boy with sticking-out ears.
The
eldest girl, her brown hair in two plaits, grinned. "Of course he talks
like us. Why wouldn't he?" She nodded at him. "I'm Ava. Mother found
you five orbits ago. You fell over in the mud, but Father and the others picked
you up and looked after you." She sent a fair-haired girl, Jemta, to fetch
the grown-ups. "Are you better now? Do you want something to eat?"
"Five
orbits ago?" To Tungdil it seemed more like a short doze. His stomach
rumbled loudly. "Hmm, I suppose some food would be in order—and something
to drink as well." He smiled; the children reminded him of Frala, Sunja,
and baby Ikana. "Haven't you ever seen a dwarf before?" The harmless
inquiry unleashed a deluge of questions.
"Which folk
do you belong to?"
"Are you rich?"
"Where are
your diamonds?"
"How many
orcs have you slain?"
"Are all
groundlings small like you?"
"Is it true
you can smash rocks with your bare hands?"
"Why isn't
your beard very long?"
"How many
names have you got?"
"Stop,
stop!" Tungdil pleaded, laughing. "I can't answer everyone at once.
You can take it in turns, but first I have to tell your parents
something." He wanted to save the news of the orcs for the grown-ups;
there was no need to scare the children.
A
fair-haired woman whom he vaguely remembered from his last lucid moment five
orbits ago came in with a basket of victuals on her arm. The smell was enough
to make his mouth water. "I'm Rémsa," she said.
"And
I'm Tungdil. You saved my life and for that I'm eternally grateful." He
lowered his voice. "But I'm going to have to ask you to send the children
away."
"Why?"
Jemta protested cheekily.
He
grinned at her. "Because certain things aren't meant for young ears!"
They left.
"You're
not still on about Goodwater, are you?" said the woman. "You had all
kinds of nightmares while you were ill."
"They
weren't nightmares, Rémsa. It's the truth! The orcs, they...Never mind about
that: You have to get out of here! They're coming. They're heading south, east,
and west—three whole tribes of orcs, numbering a hundred troopers each. You'll
be killed. They'll slaughter your animals and set light to your farms. You have
to go!"
Rémsa
placed a hand on his brow. "The temperature's gone," she said
thoughtfully. "You don't seem feverish..." She unpacked some bread, milk,
cheese, and cured meat and laid them on the blanket to protect them from the
straw. "So it's true, is it? I'll tell Opatja and we'll send a messenger
to Steepleton. The privy council will know what to do."
"There's
no time for that! They're on their way already!" he said with as much
urgency as the mouthful of sausage allowed. Hunger had got the better of him
and he was tucking in ravenously.
"You've
been sick for five orbits, don't forget. They'd be here by now if they wanted
to attack. We'll send out a scout, just in case."
"Is
there any way of getting a message through from Steepleton?" A rider or
even a carrier pigeon would reach the major cities of Girdlegard faster than
anyone else. Those services were by no means cheap, but at least they could be
relied on to spread the news quickly.
"A
message? I'll send someone who can note it down for you."
"It's
no trouble," Tungdil interrupted politely. "I can write." He
could hardly blame her for assuming he was illiterate; most country people
were unschooled. "I just need some parchment and ink—and someone to take
the letter as far as Steepleton. It's for Lot-Ionan in Ionandar."
She
nodded and checked the dressing on his calf. "You were lucky not to lose
your leg, you know. It's a good thing we found you when we did; another orbit
and you'd be wearing a wooden peg. That trap must have been a rusty old thing.
Make sure you eat and get some rest."
She
gave strict instructions to the children to leave him in peace, but they soon
returned, giggling and bearing parchment and a quill.
From
then on it was impossible to get rid of them. Knowing nothing of dwarves save
for stories and legends, they were determined to satisfy their curiosity while
they had the chance. They stared at him raptly, following every loop and
flourish of the quill as he composed his message to the magus.
The
letter contained a full account of all that had happened in Goodwater, the
pact between the orcs and älfar, the designs of Nôd’onn, who was said to be the
ruler of the Perished Land, and other salient facts.
I hope it gets there in time, he worried silently. He made a second copy
in case the first went missing en route, then lay back in exhaustion on his
soft bed of straw.
As
soon as the children saw that the letter was complete, they pestered him with
yet more questions. This time Tungdil answered with one of his own: "Who
can tell me about the Blacksaddle?"
"I
can!" Jemta volunteered proudly. "It's almost three hundred miles
from here. Father says it's near the highway. He knows all about Girdlegard
from when he used to be a trader." She paused for a second. "I
know—I'll go and get him for you. He'll describe it better than me."
Jumping to her feet, she dashed out like a whirlwind and returned a few moments
later with Opatja, a stocky gray-haired man. To Tungdil's delight, he came
bearing a tankard of beer.
"The
Blacksaddle, you say?" he asked. "An unnatural sort of place. There's
a road, all right, but it doesn't lead straight to the mountain; you'll have to
hack your way through the forest for the final mile or two." He picked up
Tungdil's map and traced a rough route. "You can't miss it: a flat black
mountain poking above the trees."
"Flat?"
said the dwarf in surprise, taking a grateful sip of his beer. The children
drew closer, listening intently.
Opatja
nodded. "Think of it as a giant tablet of soap that slipped from
Palandiell's hands. It's four hundred paces high, three hundred paces wide, and
it runs for a full mile plus another two hundred or so paces." To show the
dwarf exactly what he meant, he sliced a hunk of cheese and cut long vertical
gouges into its sides. "That's from the wind and rain," he explained
to the children.
"Ah,
a table mountain! They call them that because the summit is flat like a
tabletop. I read about them in my magus's library." He tried to imagine
how the Blacksaddle would look in real life. Opatja's description had vaguely
reminded him of a legend, but he couldn't for the life of him remember how it
went. Oh well, the three-hundred-mile march would give him ample opportunity to
search his memory.
"What do you
want with the Blacksaddle?"
"I'm
looking for a wizard, a former apprentice of my magus. He moved there some time
ago and now Lot-Ionan is concerned for his well-being. He won't rest until I've
seen him for myself."
Opatja
contemplated Tungdil's injured leg. "Leave it a few more orbits before you
set off. We'll give you some healing herbs so you can keep treating it while
you're on the move." He picked up the letters to Lot-Ionan and rose to his
feet.
"Thank
you," Tungdil said warmly. "I'm most grateful to you."
"Don't
mention it," replied the former merchant with a laugh. "I've never
seen the little rascals so quiet!"
He
left his guest with the children, who resumed their persistent questioning as
soon as he was gone. They could hardly believe their ears when Tungdil told
them he was sixty-three cycles old.
"Shouldn't
your beard be much longer?" Jemta asked suspiciously. "I asked
Grandpa and he said groundlings grow their beards to the floor."
"I'm
a dwarf, not a groundling! And besides, I grew my beard for thirty cycles
before I had to shave it off. It kept getting scorched by the sparks in the
forge and then some scoundrel dyed it blue."
The
boy with the protruding ears reached out to touch it. "It's much wirier
and curlier than Father's!" he pronounced.
"You
should try combing it! Imagine how long it takes to braid." The dwarf
grinned and showed them one of his plaits. "It's willful and unruly, just
like us. We dwarves hold competitions to see who can grow the longest,
bushiest beards, and we decorate our braids with beads and metal trinkets. Most
of my kinsfolk look like me. Very few of us have mustaches, sideboards, or
chinstraps, and fewer still have no beard at all." He could tell them all
about it, thanks to Lot-Ionan's books.
Giggling,
the children fashioned their own beards by plaiting stalks of hay and sticking
them to their chins with globules of sap scraped from the wooden beams.
"Do
all groundlings... I mean, do all dwarves have beards?"
"Absolutely.
If you see a clean-shaven dwarf, you can be sure that it's a punishment for
something. An exiled dwarf won't be allowed home until his beard has reached
the length of his ax haft. And since our beards grow so slowly, the banishment
lasts for cycles." Book-learning, he
thought sadly. Book-learning passed on to me by
humans. He sighed.
Jemta
seized her chance and snatched the straw from the chin of the jug-eared boy.
"There, you're banished! Be off with you!"
In no
time the battle of the beard was raging with all the youngsters intent on
banishing one another from the barn. In the end Rémsa reappeared and put an end
to the fun. Amid loud protests, the children were made to say their good nights
and go to bed.
The
woman smiled at him warmly. "They've taken to you," she said.
"They're not this friendly with everyone, you know. Good night to you,
Tungdil. We'll ask Palandiell to mend your leg."
They actually like me. It came as a welcome surprise. Frala and her daughters would surely feel at home here. So much has happened already; they won't believe the half of it! He stroked the scarf that Frala had given him, then lay back and put his arms behind his head. If only he could have answered the children's questions about dwarven hoards and dwarven customs with proper authority instead of gleaning his knowledge from books. It's about time I got to know my own people, he thought.
IV
Kingdom of Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Late Spring, 6234th Solar Cycle
Tungdil soon had the chance to repay his
hosts for their kindness in nursing him back to health. Two orbits later, when
his leg was almost mended, he set to work in the hamlet's little forge,
tackling all the jobs that the regular smith, the only one in the vicinity, was
unable to do on account of a broken arm. From the man's point of view, the
dwarf's assistance—unpaid, of course—was a godsend.
While
the children worked the bellows and squabbled over taking turns, Tungdil placed
the iron in the furnace and waited until it glowed red with heat.
The
youngsters watched as he hammered the metal amid showers of sparks. With every
thud of the hammer, there were squeals of delight.
The
smith nodded at Tungdil admiringly. "It's not often you see such swift
work," he complimented him. "And good quality too. Maybe it's true
that metalwork was invented by groundlings."
"We're
dwarves, not groundlings."
"Sorry,"
the man said with an apologetic smile. "I meant dwarves."
Tungdil
grinned. "Well, no matter how fast I work, there's enough to keep me busy
for a good long while. How about I stay another orbit? I can always leave for
the Blacksaddle after that."
They
were interrupted by Jemta. "Show me how to make nails!" she demanded.
"You
want to be a smith, do you?" Tungdil patted the blond child on the head,
then set about teaching her how to make a nail. While she ran off proudly to
show her handiwork to her parents, he turned his attention to forging a new
windlass for the well.
It
was midafternoon when he left his perch to lie down in a tub of cool water. His
clothes reeked of perspiration, so he climbed in fully dressed.
I'm surprised my skin doesn't hiss like hot iron,
he thought. The cold water took his breath away, but then he sank luxuriously
below the surface and came up, snorting and gasping for air. He was just wiping
the water from his eyes when a shadow fell over the tub. There was a clunking
of metal and the smell of oil.
Plate armor, thought Tungdil, blinking nervously.
A
solid man of around thirty cycles was leaning against the outside wall of the
forge, arms folded in front of his armored chest. Despite the various weapons
about his person, he had no uniform or insignia to identify him as a soldier.
"Were
you looking for me, sir?" asked Tungdil, stepping out of the tub. Water
streamed from his clothes, drenching the sandy floor.
"Are you the
smith?"
"I'm
standing in for him at the moment. Is there something you'd like
repaired?" The dwarf did his best to be polite even though he had taken an
instant dislike to the man. The stranger's gray eyes bored into him as if to
read his innermost thoughts.
"Two of our
horses need shoeing. Are you up to it?"
That
was enough to turn Tungdil against him forever. "I should hope so. What
else would I be doing in a forge? I may as well ask you if you know how to
ride!" The dwarf left the bath, trying to look as dignified as possible
while leaving a trail of water behind him and making squelching noises as if he
were tramping through a bog. His hair hung limply down his back.
Waiting
outside on the narrow rutted road were six horses and four men in what looked
like full battle dress. One of the horses was laden with kitchen utensils,
leather packs, and two rolled-up nets.
The
men were conversing in low tones but fell silent when Tungdil approached. They
looked at him oddly but made no remark.
The
dwarf instructed one of the men to work the bellows. Air hissed into the
furnace, fanning the glowing coals until flames licked around them, quivering
and flickering above the burning fuel. Tungdil was enveloped in heat, his hair
and clothes drying in no time. He was in his element.
"Are
you mercenaries?" he asked the fellow on the bellows. Unhurriedly, he
chose a hammer and some nails while another man led in the lame horse. Tungdil
held the shoe against the hoof; the fit was right.
"You
could say that," came the curt reply. "We hunt orcs and criminals
with a price on their head."
Tungdil
placed the shoe among the burning embers and waited. "I suppose business
is good at the moment," he probed. "What of the orcs who razed
Goodwater?"
"Gauragar
is a big place and Bruron's soldiers can't be everywhere at once. We've enough
to keep us busy," the leader of the company said brusquely.
The conversation
was over.
Working
in silence, Tungdil hammered the horseshoe into shape and fitted it to the
hoof. A cloud of yellowish smoke filled the forge. When the job was done, he
demanded twice his usual price. The mercenaries paid without objecting and rode
away. Tungdil watched them go and dismissed them from his mind.
The
next orbit flew by and already it was time for him to leave. The children in
particular were disappointed; they had grown fond of the stocky little fellow
who showered them with metal trinkets.
Tungdil
thanked his hosts profusely. "Without your healing powers a festering
wound like that could have killed me." He dug out the extra money that he
had taken from the mercenaries and handed it to Opatja.
"We can't
accept this," the villager objected.
"That's
your business, but I won't be taking it back. It's not often that a dwarf
agrees to part with money." He was so insistent that the coins eventually
found their way into Opatja's purse.
Rémsa
gave him a pouch of herbs. "Lay them on your wounds before you go to
sleep. Soon your leg will be as good as new." They all shook hands and he
went on his way. The children followed him until the sky grew darker and rain
clouds gathered overhead.
"Will
you come and see us on your way home?" Jemta asked mournfully.
"Of
course, little one. It's an honor to have made your acquaintance. Keep
practicing, and you'll make a fine smith." He offered her his hand, but
she darted forward and hugged him instead.
"Now
we're friends," she said, waving and running back toward the hamlet. As
she rounded the corner she shouted: "Don't forget to come back!"
Tungdil
was so surprised that he stood there for a moment, hand outstretched, in the
middle of the road. "Well, well, who would have thought I could win over a
girl-child so easily?" He marched off in good spirits, thinking fondly of
the people left behind.
The
spring weather had taken a turn for the worse: Dark clouds covered every inch
of sky and rain had settled for the duration. After a while, even his boots
were soaked, his feet cold and swollen inside the sopping leather.
In
spite of the unpleasant conditions, Tungdil was making good progress, but the
thought of the orcs and the incursion of the Perished Land, as foretold by the älfar,
preyed on his mind.
He
remembered what Lot-Ionan had told him about the invasion of the northern
pestilence. The Perished Land extended six hundred and fifty miles across
Girdlegard, swallowing the whole of the former fifthling kingdom and much of
the northern border besides and reaching another four hundred miles southward,
where it tapered to approximately half that breadth.
Tungdil
reached the shelter of a rocky overhang and examined his map. In his mind's
eye he pictured the insidious evil as a wedge forcing itself into Girdlegard,
its tip grinding against the magi's magic barrier and leveling off, unable to
advance any farther.
Now
it seemed that the Perished Land's ruler, the mysterious Nôd’onn, was intent
on extending his dominion. And he was undoubtedly making progress, in spite of
the magi's girdle. In the east, the älfar kingdom of Dsôn Balsur was eating its
way into Gauragar like a festering sore, covering an area two hundred miles
long by seventy miles wide. And while the Stone Gateway remained open, there
was nothing to stop further armies of foul beasts from entering Girdlegard from
the north.
The
magi will have their work cut out now that Toboribor has allied itself with the
northern blight.
The wizards were powerful, but they could only be in one place at a time.
At least they'll be forewarned. According to his
calculations, the message would have reached Lot-Ionan by now.
All
around him, the varied landscape of Gauragar was doing its best to recompense
him for the dreadful events at the start of his trip. Even the rain could not
dull the vibrant springtime colors, although Tungdil was too focused on his
journey to pay much attention to the lush splendor of the knolls, woods, and
meadows. At length he came to an abandoned temple, a small edifice dedicated
to Palandiell. Light streamed through manifold windows, illuminating carvings
that symbolized fertility and long life.
Palandiell
commanded the loyalty of most humans, but she was too soft and indecisive for
Tungdil's taste. He was a follower of Vraccas, to whom temples had been
constructed in some of the larger cities—or so he had read in Lot-Ionan's
books.
Some
humans preferred Elria, the water deity, while others prayed to the wind god
Samusin, who regarded men, elves, dwarves, and beasts as creatures of equal
standing and strove for an equilibrium between evil and good. Tion, dark lord
and creator of foul beasts, was more feared than admired in Girdlegard. I don't know anyone who would worship him, Tungdil
thought in relief. Lot-Ionan's household, Frala included, prayed to Palandiell.
Tungdil
had erected his own special altar and dedicated it to the god of the dwarves who
had hewn the five founding fathers from unyielding granite and brought them to
life. From time to time he smelted gold in his furnace as an offering: For all
he knew, he was the only dwarf in Girdlegard to follow such a custom, but he
wanted to give Vraccas a share of the best.
His
brown eyes surveyed the ivy-covered walls of the derelict temple. Perhaps men will have greater cause to pray to Palandiell
in the future, he mused.
Later
he stood aside as a unit of well-armored cavalrymen rode by. Their mail,
embellished with the crest of King Bruron, clunked noisily and mud sprayed from
the horses' hooves, spattering his cloak. He counted two hundred riders in all. Will that be enough to defeat a war band of orcs?
From
then on Tungdil regularly encountered patrol groups. By the look of things,
news of the marauding hordes in Idoslane had traveled fast. Rather than
relying on Tilogorn to put a stop to the destruction, King Bruron of Gauragar
was taking steps of his own to hunt down the orcs.
It
pleased Tungdil to see that the humans had heeded his warning. History would
hardly remember the actions of Tungdil Bolofar, a dwarf without clan or folk
who had alerted Gauragar to the danger by calling on a peasant family to send
word to the authorities that Goodwater had been destroyed. What mattered was
that he knew about it and it filled him with
pride.
Most
nights Tungdil slept beneath the stars, although occasionally he made his bed
in a barn and once he allowed himself the luxury of a room at an inn. It seemed
prudent to save the dwindling contents of his purse.
After
nine orbits his leg was fully mended. The rigors of the journey had made a
lasting impression on his girth and his belt sat two holes tighter than usual.
Walking was good for his stamina and he no longer panted when he journeyed
uphill. Even his feet had become accustomed to the daily toil. At night he
sometimes dreamed of Goodwater, the horrors he had seen there still present in
his mind.
It
took another few orbits of marching before the Blacksaddle finally loomed into
view. The mountain looked almost exactly like the model that Opatja had
irreverently fashioned from cheese, except its sides were pitch-black.
Sunlight
glistened on the deep gulleys running vertically down the mountain's sheer flanks.
The forbidding rock jutted out of the landscape like an abandoned boulder and
was surrounded by a murky forest of conifers. The trees looked small and
fragile by comparison, although the smallest among them was fifty paces high.
In
times gone by, it must have been a proper mountain with a summit towering miles
above the ground. Perhaps the gods snapped it off as a punishment and left the
base like a tree stump in the soil.
There
was something vaguely sinister about the mountain. Tungdil couldn't define it
exactly, but he knew he would never have gone there by choice. He could only
assume that Gorén prized his solitude more than most.
Brushing
aside these misgivings, Tungdil hefted his bags and continued along the gravel
road that wound past the forest half a mile to the east. He kept looking for a
path or a gap in the trees, but at sundown he was back where he had started and
none the wiser for it all.
What a strange forest. Tomorrow I'll have to cut my way
through the undergrowth if the trees won't let me pass. He could feel
the tiredness in his limbs, so he set up camp by the roadside and lit a fire,
keeping a watchful eye on the forest for predators.
Soon
afterward he was joined by two peddlers who seemed thoroughly relieved not to
be spending the night on their own. They stopped their covered wagons by his
fire and unhitched their mules. Their consignment of pots and pans rattled and
jangled louder than a battalion of armed men.
"Is
there room at the fire?" asked the first, introducing himself and his companion.
Hîl and Kerolus were everything Tungdil expected of the human male: tall and
unshaven with long hair, plain apparel, and needlessly loud voices. They
laughed, joked, and passed the bottle of brandy back and forth, but their
jollity seemed forced.
"I
don't mean to be nosy," said Tungdil, "but you seem a little on
edge."
Hîl
stopped laughing abruptly. "You're observant, groundling."
"Dwarf. I'm
a dwarf."
"A dwarf. I see. I didn't know there was a difference."
"There isn't; but the proper term is dwarf. Just as you prefer to be called humans and not grasslings or beanpoles."
Hîl grinned.
"My mistake."
"We're
afraid of the mountain and of the creatures in the woods," said Kerolus.
"That's the truth of the matter. We wouldn't normally stop here, but our
poor old nags are beat." He broke four eggs into a frying pan and invited Hîl
and the dwarf to share in his meal.
"So
what's wrong with the mountain?" asked Tungdil, dipping a crust into the
egg yolk.
Kerolus
looked at him incredulously. "I thought every groundling, er, dwarf, knew
about the Blacksaddle. Very well, I shall tell you the story of the mount that
lost its peak..."
Hîl settled down by the fire and his companion began his tale.
Many
cycles ago there was a mountain called Cloudpiercer, whose summit towered high
into the sky. Taller and prouder than any other peak in Girdlegard, it was
tipped with snow throughout the seasons and its loftiest pitches were made of
pure gold.
Everyone could see the mountain's riches, but no one could
reach them. The golden crown rested on impossibly sheer and unyielding slopes
and the glare from the snow and the precious metal blinded any who looked at
the summit for too long.
But the people's desire for the gold was overwhelming and
they summoned the dwarves to their aid.
A delegation came to Gauragar to examine the golden mountain
and set about it with pickaxes, chisels, and spades.
Owing to the superior quality of their tools, they succeeded
in burrowing their way into the mountain and digging a tunnel to the top. They
hollowed out the mountain and carried away its treasures without being dazzled
by the gold.
Of course, the people of Gauragar were furious and demanded
to be given a portion of the trove. While the men and dwarves were quarreling,
the mountain came to life, quaking with fury and bent on shaking the plunderers
from its core. By then, of course, its flesh was riddled with shafts and
tunnels, and the tip of the mountain fell in on itself, crushing the looters
beneath its weight.
And
now you know the story of how Cloudpiercer lost its summit and its glory.
Since then the denuded mountain has simmered with murderous hatred, its treacherous slopes darkening with malice as it plots its revenge against the races of men and dwarves.
The fire crackled loudly. Kerolus threw on another log to
keep the flames going and drive out the darkness.
I knew there was something sinister about it,
thought Tungdil. He wondered what it said about Gorén's character that he had
chosen to make his home there: It seemed a strange place to live.
"Folk
say that wayfarers who venture into the woods are set upon by monsters,"
the peddler added. "The mountain lures the creatures to it with the
promise of easy prey. Sometimes hunger drives them out of the forest and into
the towns. They eat anything, man or beast." He shuddered.
"Well,
it's good to have company," Tungdil said sincerely, steeling himself for
the next morning's march among the trees. At least he had his ax for
protection. "Wait till you hear my story."
He
started to tell of his recent experiences, of his night in Goodwater and the
meeting between the älfar and the orcs, but his account tailed off when he came
to describing the destruction of the settlement. The memories were still too
fresh.
Retreating
into silence, he tried to get some sleep, but the trees had set themselves
against him, creaking and groaning as soon as he closed his eyes. The forest
seemed to take pleasure in keeping him awake.
Hîl
and Kerolus were oblivious to the noise. Belatedly, it dawned on Tungdil why
the men had partaken so freely of the brandy: Their senses had been dulled so
completely that nothing could rouse them from their sleep. The task of watching
over the camp and their lives was left to the unfortunate Tungdil.
With
the coming of dawn, the rustling in the forest finally subsided and the
peddlers packed their wagons, wished the dwarf a safe journey, and rode away,
refreshed and alert. Tungdil hadn't slept a wink.
He
gazed glumly at the forest, peering into the murk. Fretting wasn't going to
get him anywhere and he had to press on. Gorén lived in the Blacksaddle,
probably in the ruins of the dwarven tunnels, if Kerolus's story was to be
believed.
Monsters or no monsters, I'm coming through. He
gripped his ax with both hands and stepped among the trees. At once his whole
being was assailed by malice and spite: There was no mistaking the mountain's
displeasure at his approach.
Tungdil
walked on regardless, intent on delivering the artifacts to Gorén so he could
return to the comfort of Lot-Ionan's vaults. The sooner he accomplished his
errand, the sooner he would be home. Who knows, maybe the
secondlings have replied to the letter already, he thought brightly.
At
length his obstinacy and determination paid off and he reached the foot of the
mountain with the forest behind him and not a monster in sight. Maybe the
beasts attacked only after nightfall; in any event, he had made it unscathed.
The
sheer sides of the Blacksaddle towered above him, steep, dark, and unmistakably
hostile. For a moment he was tempted to run away.
Even
as he stood there, a volley of rocks sped toward him and he dove for cover just
in time, the final boulder missing him by the span of a hand. Each one of the
rocks had been big enough to kill him, but he refused to be daunted. He had to
find Gorén.
Tungdil
circled the base of the mountain without discovering any indication of a
dwelling or path. He took to calling the wizard's name in the hope that he
would hear him but was met with no response.
Muttering
under his breath, he set out a second time around the mountain. This time as he
scanned the dark fissured walls, he spotted a narrow flight of stairs hewn
skillfully into the rock. The breadth of the steps suited him exactly, but a
big-booted man would have struggled to keep his footing on the narrow stone
slabs,
A
hundred paces, two hundred paces, three hundred paces: Tungdil ascended the
mountain, crawling on all fours and clinging to the sculpted steps; there was
nothing else to hold on to.
From
time to time the mountain cast stones at him or loosed an avalanche of scree.
Pebbles grazed his hands and face, and a rock glanced off his forehead, tearing
a gash in his skin. Feeling suddenly dizzy, Tungdil pressed himself against the
flank of the mountain, letting go only when the world stopped spinning. He
wiped the blood from his eyes, gritted his teeth, and climbed on.
"You
can't shake me off that easily! Vraccas created the dwarves from rock so we
would rule the mountains. I'll conquer you yet!" he bellowed.
He
could tell from the angle of his shadow that the sun had passed its zenith and
was sinking in the sky. A cold wind whistled around him, tugging at his bags.
With every step his situation was becoming more perilous and he hardly dared
consider the descent, but at last he mustered the courage to glance down at the
fair land of Gauragar, four hundred paces below.
He
had never seen such an incredible display of color and light. The sun and
clouds were playing on the landscape, casting fleeting shadows over the meadows,
fields, and forests. If he strained his eyes, he could make out settlements in
the distance, the individual buildings resembling tiny blocks of stone. Rivers
wound their way through the countryside like shimmering veins and the air
smelled of spring.
The
view was so spectacular that it almost stopped his breath. It gave him a sense
of power and majesty, as if he himself were a mountain. He could see now why
the dwarves had chosen to make their homes in Girdlegard's ranges.
He
continued his ascent, climbing with new vigor and courage, until at last he
reached a recess in the flank of the mountain some five hundred paces above
the ground. It seemed as good a place as any to spend the night.
The
alcove was large enough to shelter him from the fierce winds and protect him
from further attempts on the part of the Blacksaddle to pelt him with rocks. He
crawled inside cautiously. Tomorrow will take care
of itself.
The
sinking sun bathed the gloomy walls of his simple shelter in reddish light,
playing on the textured rock. Tungdil stared at the fissured surface; there was
something about the markings that reminded him of runes.
He
blinked. Surely not? He ran his hand over the
rock. There's definitely something there.
Time and nature had worn away at the rock, but his searching fingertips found
the shallow furrows of chiseled runes.
Tungdil
had a sudden thought. Opening his tinderbox, he kindled a flame and scorched
the haft of his ax. Taking the map from his pack, he laid it facedown against
the wall and ran the charred wood across the parchment.
At
first the improvised charcoal wouldn't stick to the paper, but at length he
succeeded in shading over the runes. The symbols appeared on the parchment,
pale remnants of an ancient script.
Long moments passed while Tungdil studied the markings, struggling to make sense of the strange, cumbersome formulations. At last, when he had translated the runes into modern dwarfish, he was able to divine the meaning of the lines.
Built with blood,
It was drenched in blood.
Erected against the fourthlings,
It fell against the fourthlings.
Cursed by the fourthlings,
Then abandoned by all five.
Roused by the thirdlings
Against the will of the thirdlings.
Drenched again
In blood,
The blood
Of all their
Line.
The
mason had carved the verse in the shape of a tree, symbolizing renewal and the
eternal cycle of life.
There
was no way of gauging the age of the inscription, especially since the treatise
on dwarven language in Lot-Ionan's library made no mention of such things, but
Tungdil couldn't escape the impression that the runes were terribly old, a
message from a long-forgotten era at least a thousand cycles past.
He
breathed life into the words, reciting them aloud and listening raptly to the
strange yet familiar syllables, so different from human speech. The language
moved him, stirred him, churning his emotions.
He
wasn't the only one roused by the sound. The ancient runes rolled through the
folds and wrinkles of the mountain and woke the Blacksaddle too. Something
shifted in its memory and its hatred of the dwarves returned with a vengeance,
this time directed at Tungdil. The Blacksaddle quaked.
"I'm
not going anywhere!" He pressed his back against the rock, determined not
to be shaken out of the alcove by the shuddering mountain.
Just
then the wall behind him stirred as well. Grinding and groaning it slid back to
reveal a tunnel. The shaking stopped abruptly.
Tungdil
decided it meant one of two things: Either the Blacksaddle was trying to lure
him inside and hold him prisoner in its flesh, or Gorén was welcoming him to
his den.
With
that, the matter was settled. He collected his things, shouldered the bag of
artifacts, and strode determinedly into the tunnel.
After
barely three paces he felt an almighty shudder and the doorway closed on
Girdlegard's night sky. The stars of Girdlegard twinkled their farewell and the
dwarf was trapped inside.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin, Girdlegard,
Late Spring,
6234th Solar Cycle
The lofty buildings of the majestic
palace shone luminous white against the clear blue sky. Sable turrets rose
among the domed roofs, sparkling in the sunshine. Like beacons, their
shimmering brightness and imposing height lit the way to Lios Nudin from a
distance of fifty miles. A traveler would have to be blind to miss Porista.
Lot-Ionan
feasted his eyes on the view. The circumstances surrounding the council's
meeting were worrying, but he was looking forward to seeing the others all the
same. With a tug on the reins, he curbed his mount and rode through the city at
a more sedate pace. Snorting, Furo made it known that he would rather gallop
and feel the wind in his mane.
Tradition
dictated that the meetings of the council took place in Porista's opulent palace,
a custom upheld by Girdlegard's magi for two millennia. The reason for the
venue was twofold: Firstly, the practical consideration of a central location,
and secondly, and more crucially, Lios Nudin's heart-shaped form. Like a well
of enchantment, Lios Nudin supplied the other five realms with magic, the
energy flowing outward to Ionandar, Turguria, Saborien, Oremaira, and Brandôkai.
Lot-Ionan
patted his indignant stallion on the neck and laughed. "There'll be plenty
of time for galloping on the way home," he assured him, keeping an
attentive eye on the crowds.
The
walls of Porista offered shelter and protection to forty thousand men. Grassy
plains extended for hundreds of miles in every direction and the population
made a decent living from livestock and crops. Farming was profitable in these
parts: Porista's produce was considered to be almost as good as that of Tabaîn,
the northwestern kingdom nicknamed the Breadbasket because of its fertile
fields.
Lot-Ionan
steered his horse through the bustling streets, dodging carts and carriages and
taking care not to trample pedestrians underfoot. He was already missing the
tranquillity of his vaults.
At
length he reached the gates of the palace, closed to ordinary mortals except
by permission of the council. An invisible trap ensnared foolhardy individuals
who tried to slip over the walls. Glued to the masonry like insects on
flypaper, they were left to die of hunger and thirst, their magic bonds loosening
only when nothing remained but bare bones. In matters of security the council
was unbending: The palace belonged exclusively to the magi and their staff.
Lot-Ionan
recited the incantation. The doors swung open as if propelled by an invisible
hand and the magus rode on.
On
reaching a sweeping staircase of buff-colored marble, he reined in Furo and
slid from the saddle. His path took him up wide steps and through sunlit
arcades on paving of elaborate mosaic. White pillars channeled the light from a
vaulted glass roof to shine on the colored tiles and show off the intricate
designs. The walkway led all the way to the conference chamber where his
presence was awaited. He gave the password and the doors flew back.
The
others were there already, seated at the circular table of malachite: Nudin the
Knowledge-Lusty, Turgur the Fair- Faced, Sabora the Softly-Spoken, Maira the
Life-Preserver, and Andôkai the Tempestuous.
With
Lot-Ionan, they formed the council of six and disposed of almost limitless
power. Each used their magic to pursue a goal of their choosing. Had the magi
seen fit, they could easily have toppled the seven human kingdoms of Girdlegard
and annexed their land, but they were intent on perfecting their wizardry, not
acquiring worldly might.
Lot-Ionan
spoke first to Sabora, then greeted the others in turn, before taking his place
between her and Turgur. His arrival was acknowledged with brief, stately nods.
Sabora
clasped his hand and gave it a gentle squeeze. "I'm glad you're
here," she said, smiling warmly. Her high-buttoned dress of yellow velvet,
a straight and somewhat stern affair, reached to the floor. Her short hair
looked more silvery than at their last meeting, but her gray-brown eyes were as
lively as ever. She sought his gaze. "Andôkai was beside herself with
impatience." She lowered her voice to a whisper so only he could hear.
"So was I, but for entirely selfish reasons."
Lot-Ionan
returned her smile. Sabora made him feel like an amorous young man. Their
affection was mutual.
"We
know why you didn't respond to our summons," Andôkai told him. Her harsh
tone made it sound like a reproach. She was attractive in an austere sort of
way and her physique was uncommonly muscular for a maga, lending credence to
the rumor that she could fight as well as any warrior. She wore her hair in a
severe blond plait and her blue eyes seemed to search for a quarrel.
"Friedegard
and Vrabor are dead," Maira explained. She was taller and slimmer than Andôkai,
with red hair that fell about her pale white shoulders. Her simple dress of
light green cloth was the perfect complement to her eyes and showed off the
gold trinkets hanging from her neck and ears. "The news arrived just
before you did." She looked over at Nudin. "It seems to us that the
evidence points to the älfar. We think the Perished Land sent them to thwart
our meeting."
Lot-Ionan
frowned. "The älfar are the Perished Land's deadliest servants, but
they've never been known to venture so far south. Nudin tells me that our
girdle is failing." He paused. "Enemy reinforcements are streaming
into Girdlegard in greater numbers than before. Unless we seal the Northern
Pass, we'll be meeting in Porista on a regular basis to renew our magic
shield." He drummed his finger vigorously on the table. "Enough is
enough! The Perished Land must be destroyed!"
"Oh,
absolutely," Turgur said scornfully. The famously fair-faced magus had
perfectly symmetrical features, a meticulously shaven chin, a thin mustache,
and flowing black locks. Women of all ages swooned at the sight of him, for
which he was hated and admired by others of his sex. He was far and away the
most handsome man in Girdlegard. "Why didn't we think of it before? What a
fabulous plan, Lot-Ionan."
"This
is no time for sarcasm," Nudin rebuked him in a hoarse, rasping voice.
There
was a brief silence as the magi reflected on their past attempts to defeat
their invisible enemy.
"Our
magic has done nothing to prevent the Perished Land from casting its shadow
over Gauragar, Tabaîn, Âlandur, and the fallen kingdoms of Lesinteïl and the
Golden Plains," Lot-Ionan said at last.
"And
it's not for want of trying. We've used enough energy to topple mountains and
drain oceans," added Andôkai, who knew all about destruction. Samusin, the
god of winds, was her deity and she focused her magic on controlling even the
slightest movement of air. Her mood was as changeable as the weather and her
quick temper caused many a storm.
"It
wasn't enough, though," said Turgur. "The Perished Land has dug its
claws into our soil like a great dark beast and won't be shifted."
"No,"
Andôkai contradicted him. "It's lurking and ready to pounce. If we do
nothing, it will attack."
Lot-Ionan
cleared his throat. "I've been thinking. We know from experience that our
combined power is enough to keep the threat in check. If we summon our
apprentices to Porista and add their magic to the ritual, we may be able to
defeat it." He looked expectantly at the others. This was no idle suggestion:
They each had thirty or more famuli, all of whom could practice magic to some
degree. "If we were to harness the magic of a hundred and eighty wizards,
our strength would surely prevail."
"Failing
that, we'll know for certain that neither might nor magic can defeat our
foe," Nudin commented dryly.
The
possibility was too dire for Lot-Ionan to contemplate. If nothing was capable
of stopping the Perished Land's incursion, it was only a matter of time before
Girdlegard fell. Every living thing, man, beast, or plant, would be forced to
live out its existence as a revenant, dead and yet forever in the service of
the northern pestilence. A shiver of fear ran through him. No, we can't let that happen.
Andôkai
was the first to find her voice. She seemed anxious as she scanned the faces
of the others. "I know some of you don't approve of my allegiance to
Samusin, but I stand by my faith. We must act."
"I
thought your faith would forbid you from driving out the Perished Land,"
Lot-Ionan said in surprise.
"Samusin
strives for equilibrium, but in the blackest of nights, nothing survives, not
even a shadow. If we stand by and do nothing, Girdlegard will be in thrall to
the darkness," she explained. "Once the Perished Land is defeated,
the balance will be restored. I'm in favor of the proposal."
The
motion was put to the vote and received the council's unanimous support.
"Very
well," Nudin said hoarsely, "but we should renew the existing girdle first.
If our defenses crumble before the apprentices get here, we won't be in a
position to undertake anything at all. I suggest we break for an hour and have
some refreshments before proceeding."
The
magi concurred with the suggestion and the council dispersed. Nudin beckoned
Lot-Ionan to the north-facing window.
Seen
from close range, the ruler of Lios Nudin looked bloated and swollen. The
whites of his eyes were shot with red veins and his pupils glinted feverishly.
It was clear to Lot-Ionan that he was seriously ill.
Just
then Nudin was seized by a coughing fit and held a handkerchief to his mouth.
With his free hand he steadied himself on his maple staff. He stuffed the
handkerchief hastily away.
Lot-Ionan
thought he glimpsed blood on the cloth. "You should ask Sabora to lay
hands on you," he said anxiously. "You look...To be honest, you don't
look well."
Nudin
arranged his swollen features into a smile. "It's nothing, just a nasty
cold. It's good for the body to have something to pit itself against." He
gave Lot-Ionan an approving nod. "That was an excellent idea of yours, you
know. Even Andôkai was convinced of the scheme, so the others are bound to fall
into line." His face went a violent shade of purple as he struggled to
suppress another cough. "We magi have pursued our own private interests
for too long," he continued in a strangled voice. "I'm not talking
about Sabora, of course; she's always been different. But it's good to see that
there are some things on which the council is prepared to take a stand. It's a
pity it had to come to this first."
"Indeed,"
Lot-Ionan said uncertainly. For once Nudin seemed perfectly amenable and even
his condescending tone was gone. If this was the effect of the illness, Andôkai
and Turgur could do with catching it as well. "Are you sure we shouldn't
be calling you Nudin the Solicitous?"
Nudin
chuckled good-humoredly and ended up coughing instead. Lot-Ionan caught a clear
glimpse of blood on his lips before he hurriedly dabbed it away.
"That
does it. I'm sending you to Sabora," the white-bearded magus said firmly.
This time it was an order. "The ritual will be draining and you look weak
enough as it is."
Nudin
raised his hands in surrender. "I give in," he rasped. "I'll go
to Sabora. But one last question: Where are my artifacts, old friend?"
Lot-Ionan
had rather hoped that the matter had been forgotten. "I left them in
Ionandar," he admitted. "I'll get my famuli to bring them when they
come."
Nudin
smiled. "Well, at least you know where they are now. Don't worry. There's
no rush. The Perished Land is our primary concern."
"It
slipped my mind entirely. I meant to go through the cabinet in my study and
pack the things together, but after what you told me about the orcs and the
girdle..."
Nudin
gave him a pat on the back. "Don't worry about it." He swayed
slightly. "Now, if you'll excuse me, I think I'll lie down." He
turned and made for the door, his voluminous robes rustling softly and his
staff tapping out a steady rhythm against the floor.
"Don't
forget to see Sabora!" Lot-Ionan called after him.
Pensively,
he gazed out of the window beyond the artful palace gardens and over the roofs
of Porista to the horizon where the green plains fused with the bright blue
sky. There was no sign of the Perished Land from this distance, but he knew it
was there, only a few miles from the city.
After
a while he felt a gentle hand on his shoulder and a delicate fragrance wafted
through the air. It had been a long time since he had smelled that perfume and
his old heart quickened. He placed his right hand over hers. "My favorite
maga," he said, turning to face Sabora.
"My favorite
magus," she replied with a smile.
He
was always delighted to see Sabora. They shared the same attitude where aging
was concerned: Neither attempted to disguise the passage of time. He found it
reassuring that he wasn't the only one with wrinkles, especially when the
others looked so young.
No
one could accuse Lot-Ionan of being vain, but the meetings in Porista made him
feel ancient. Andôkai, with her hundred and fifty cycles, looked no older than
thirty, while Maira could be taken for fifty, despite being six times that age.
Turgur, of course, was always refining his looks and maintained the appearance
of a vigorous man of forty cycles.
Sabora
guessed his thoughts. "Oh, Lot-Ionan," she commiserated,
"they're getting older as well, you know." They embraced.
"So
tell me about your work," she said when they finally drew apart.
"It
was coming along nicely until one of my assistants ruined a vital part of the
formula before I had a chance to try it out," he reported. "Still, it
won't be long before I can render the presence of magic in people and objects
visible to the eye. It should mean a breakthrough in our understanding of what
magic energy really is. But let's hear about you. Can you cure all our
illnesses and ailments?"
Sabora
slipped her arm through his and they set off leisurely through the arcades.
"I've mastered injuries and wounds and now I'm focusing my efforts on
eliminating the plague. I've been quite successful, actually," she
confided. "The trouble is, there's no shortage of people with new and
mysterious diseases. The gods send us new ailments every day."
"You'll
get there eventually," he said encouragingly. "Has Nudin been to see
you? He looks dreadful."
Sabora
shook her head. "I saw him hurry past earlier, but he didn't stop to
talk." A mischievous smile spread across her face. "If it's his
waistline that's bothering him, he'd better ask Turgur. He's the one who knows
how to remodel his body and his face."
"He
must be nearing his goal, don't you think? He seems to have lost more of his
wrinkles since the last time I saw him. Everlasting beauty can't be much
farther off."
They
stopped in one of the palace's many gardens and sat down.
Sabora laid her head on Lot-Ionan's
shoulder. "It's incredible, isn't it?" she said softly. "We all
pursue such different goals, but for once we're in agreement."
"Maira's
support was as good as guaranteed. I suppose you've heard that she's opened her
forests to the purest animals of Girdlegard? She's determined to save them
from the orcs. As the eldest among us, she knows better than anyone what the
northern pestilence would do to Girdlegard."
"Yes,
her realm is a sanctuary. The last of the unicorns have taken refuge in Oremaira."
She paused. "If everything goes to plan, Girdlegard will be safer than it
has been for eleven hundred cycles—and it won't be a moment too soon."
Lot-Ionan
laid an arm around her shoulders, savoring her presence. Duty and geography
made such moments all too rare. "I was pleasantly surprised by
Turgur," he confessed. "He usually seems so self-obsessed. His life
revolves around physical perfection, beauty, aesthetics, and yet..."
Sabora
laughed. "I expect he's worried about his flawless blossoms and flower
beds. He's lavished so much time on perfecting his gardens that it would be a
pity to see them ruined by the Perished Land." She straightened up
suddenly. "I heard Gorén was here. Wasn't he one of your
apprentices?"
"Gorén?
What would Gorén be doing in Porista? He lives in Greenglade."
"Turgur
said something about a meeting he held with Gorén and one of Nudin's
apprentices. It was here in Porista, the last time we met."
"Now,
that sounds suspicious," the magus said jokingly. "Turgur the
Fair-Faced meets two of his rivals' apprentices and steals their secrets. He'd
know all about my work!"
"Much
good it would do him: charmed beauty combined with the power of discerning
magical presences, and..." She hesitated. "What does Nudin do?"
"He
hasn't said." The magus shrugged. "Judging by the look of him, he
doesn't have time for exercise, so it must be demanding." Now that he
thought about it, he was intrigued; at the next opportunity he would ask Turgur
what Gorén had wanted in Porista. "Let's forget about the others," he
said tenderly, wrapping his arms around Sabora and hugging her gently. "We
don't spend nearly enough time together."
"You're
right," she said. "I'll ask Andôkai to swap kingdoms and then we'll
be a little closer."
"I'm
sure her subjects would welcome the change. The calm after the storm—isn't that
what they say?"
"Still
waters run deep," she informed him with a playful sparkle in her
gray-brown eyes.
Kingdom of Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Late Spring,
6234th Solar Cycle
Tungdil's
sharp dwarven vision soon adapted to the darkness. The walls around him had
been hewn cleanly from the dark flesh of the mountain and polished to a sheen.
Smooth surfaces were the hallmark of dwarven masonry; he couldn't imagine a
human laborer going to such lengths.
The
chilling legend of Cloudpiercer had sounded convincing at the time, but he no
longer gave it much credence. From the evidence around him, it seemed likely
that the mountain had served as a dwelling, not a mine.
Tungdil
clambered up a short flight of steps and came to an open portcullis. Beyond the
raised grating, a heavy oak door reinforced with metal hasps and steel plating
stood ajar. He knew there would be no way out if the door slammed behind him.
"Hello?
Is that you, Master Gorén? Is there anyone there?"
For a
while he listened to the dull echo of his shouts; then the deathly hush
returned. He went in.
"Master
Gorén, can you hear me?" he called. "My name is Tungdil. I'm here on
an errand for Lot-Ionan." The last thing he needed was to be mistaken for
an intruder. Hidden behind the door was a set of levers with which the
portcullis could be raised or lowered. It made a dreadful racket, as he
discovered by trying it out.
"Sorry,"
he shouted, hurrying on. It was time he found Gorén.
The
tunnel delved deeper and deeper inside the mountain. After a while Tungdil
could almost convince himself that he had stumbled on a dwarven stronghold.
Staircases and passageways wound into the core of the enduring rock and for
the first time he had a clear idea of what it would be like to live with his
kinsfolk in one of Girdlegard's ranges. At length he came to the kitchen, a
large chamber neatly hollowed from the rock, equipped with stoves and
kitchenware that had not been used for some time.
"Master
Gorén?" Tungdil sat down, lowered his packs, and waited awhile. A terrible
thought occurred to him. Who's to say that Gorén
isn't dead? Galvanized into action, he put aside his reticence and began
to search the place for anything that might lead him to the wizard.
He
flung open one of the doors and strode along a corridor. It took him to
another chamber of vast dimensions, at least two hundred paces long by forty
paces wide and full of plants. The allotment had been laid out in accordance
with horticultural lore, but the plot had been sorely neglected and was
overgrown with weeds. Despite the musty air, a system of mirrors provided the
plants with adequate light, while slits in the ceiling took care of the
watering, allowing rain to seep through and plop to the earth in a steady stream
of drops.
Tungdil
battled his way through the rampant vegetation, rejoined the corridor, and came
to a study. The chaos inside was all too familiar: Every surface, including the
floor, was littered with loose sheets of parchment, closely written manuscripts,
and abandoned books.
"Surely
he can't have written all this?" he marveled aloud. There was enough
material to fill a good-sized library. Gingerly he riffled through the papers,
looking for clues.
Most
of the dusty tomes were written in a scholarly script known only to the magi
and their senior famuli. He flicked through them, but their contents remained a
mystery. What was Gorén working on? Longevity?
Perpetual health? Prosperity? Reminding himself
that it was none of his business, he focused on the task in hand: reuniting the
artifacts with their rightful owner.
He
continued the search, reaching behind a cabinet to pull out a bundle of
letters. Two scholars had been in correspondence with Gorén about the nature,
form, and guises of demonic possession, including known instances of men being
inhabited by other beings and whether it was possible to be controlled by a
spirit.
It
seemed likely that one of the correspondents was a scholar of some distinction
since his part in the discussion was written in scholarly script. The letters
of the other, whom Tungdil judged to be a high-ranking famulus, were devoted to
describing how an unnamed person had changed in character and appearance.
Nothing in the correspondence gave him any indication as to Gorén's whereabouts.
The
dwarf resumed his quest, searching the adjoining rooms and venturing farther
and farther from the mountain's core as he rummaged through small laboratories,
libraries whose contents had been partially cleared, and storerooms of potions
and ingredients.
He
turned the situation over in his mind. Although Gorén no longer seemed to be in
residence, there was still the matter of the artifacts. Tungdil had promised
Lot-Ionan that he would deliver them, so deliver them he would. A dwarf's word
was binding. And until I find him, Jolosin can keep
peeling potatoes...
Tungdil's
eye was caught by a series of inscriptions that were unmistakably dwarven in
nature. A cold shiver ran down his spine as he read. Carved into the rock were
tirades of terrible loathing and murderous hatred. Whoever had wielded the
chisel was bent on heaping dire accusations and dreadful curses on four of the
dwarven folks and their clans.
Tungdil
knew immediately what it meant: The mountain had once been home to Lorimbur's
dwarves. Here in the human kingdom of Gauragar he had stumbled upon a chapter
of dwarven history that was missing from most books.
He
remembered the runes at the entrance to the tunnel. Erected
against the fourthlings, it fell against the fourthlings. So Lorimbur's
dwarves had built a stronghold in the heart of Girdlegard. But for what
purpose? Had they intended to wage war on the other folks? Assuming he had
interpreted the inscription correctly, the thirdlings had been defeated. In any
event, a curse had been placed on the Blacksaddle to ensure that the stronghold
was never used again: Cursed by the fourthlings,
then abandoned by all five.
He
could imagine the sequel. Gorén must have learned of the maze of tunnels in the
mountain and decided to make his home there. As a wizard, he commanded the
necessary expertise to lift the dwarven curse and turn the stronghold into a
refuge where he could study in peace. Built with
blood, it was drenched in blood. A famulus would never allow himself to
be intimidated by such threats.
A
sudden whisper caused the hairs on the back of his neck to stand on end. The
walls were talking to him, muttering and whispering, animated by a ghostly
presence that seemed to be closing in.
You're imagining things, he told himself.
There
was a ringing and clattering of axes, chain mail jangled, and warriors shouted
and wailed. The din grew louder and louder until a battle was raging around
him, the shrieks of the maimed and wounded echoing intolerably through the
rock.
"No!"
bellowed Tungdil. He pressed his hands to his ears. "Get away from
me!" But the clamor only intensified, becoming fiercer and more menacing.
At last he could stand it no longer and took to his heels. Nothing could keep
him in the mountain: His only desire was to escape from the Blacksaddle and
its ghosts.
The
whispers, screams, and crashing blades faded as he raced away.
Tungdil
was not the sort to scare easily, but his courage had never been put to such a
test. He would sooner endure scorching sun or pouring rain than spend a night
in this place. Now that he knew the mountain's frightful secret he could
already imagine the ghosts of his ancestors crowding round his bed.
He
went back to scouring the tunnels and searched for hours without finding proof
of Gorén's fate. The only clues to his whereabouts were love poems he had
written to a certain elven beauty and the name of a forest that was circled on
various crumbling maps. Tungdil surmised therefore that Gorén had moved to
Greenglade.
For
the dwarf to get there, his legs would have to carry him an extra three hundred
and fifty miles on a northwesterly bearing. Greenglade lay at the edge of the
Eternal Forest in the elven kingdom of Âlandur. According to legend, it was a
uniquely tranquil place where the trees blossomed continually, irrespective of
the seasons.
Tungdil
mulled the matter over and smiled. To think a wizard
would leave his home for the sake of a pointy-eared mistress! For his
part, he had never been especially fond of elves, and this new development,
which served to prolong his adventure, did nothing to improve his opinion of
their race.
He
was so wrapped up in his thoughts that he took a wrong turn and failed to find
his way back to the kitchen, where he had hoped to rejoin the passageway that
led to the door. The diversion took him through yet more of the thirdlings'
halls. It was obvious that the masons had intended the stronghold to make a
stately impression, but the result was disappointing. Some of the galleries
were lopsided, the steps were all shapes and sizes, and the intervals between
them didn't match. The curse of Vraccas had robbed Lorimbur's folk of the most
elementary of dwarven skills.
At
length he came to a solid stone wall, carved with an arch of voussoirs. Tungdil
read out the runes on the keystone, conjuring a chink in the otherwise
featureless rock. A door took shape, grinding against the floor as it opened to
let him pass. No sooner had he stepped out of the tunnel than the door rolled
back behind him. Try as he might he failed to discover any cracks, fissures,
or other signs of a hidden opening. In this at least the thirdlings had shown
some skill.
The
short walk through the dense pine forest helped his eyes to adjust to the light
and by the time he was marching along the road to Greenglade the sun scarcely
bothered him at all.
For once Tungdil appreciated the buzzing insects, sweet-smelling grasses, and sunshine: Anything was better than the Blacksaddle.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin,
Girdlegard,
Late Spring, 6234th Solar Cycle
That evening the six magi assembled in
the conference chamber to prepare for the ritual.
First
they took away the chairs, leaving the malachite table at the center of the
room. Then they traced a large white ring on the marble floor around it and
filled the circle with colored chalk marks. The symbols and runes would serve
to bind the magic energy conjured by their invocation and stop it from
dispersing before it could be used. From there they would channel it into the
malachite table.
It
took hours to complete the preparations. Not a word was spoken, for the work
demanded absolute concentration and an incorrectly drawn symbol would oblige
them to begin the process all over again.
Lot-Ionan
was the first to finish. Stepping back, he gazed at the malachite table, recalling
its curious past. He had happened upon it fortuitously in a shop selling odds
and ends. The dark green stone had intrigued him and on further investigation
he discovered that the mine from which it was quarried was located on the
fringes of a force field. His experiments had confirmed the stone's special
properties: Magic could be stored in the malachite and set free upon command.
In the following cycles, Lot-Ionan's discovery had saved Girdlegard several
times over, for without the table to help them harness and channel energy, the
magi would never have been able to hold back the Perished Land. Generations of
wizards had turned the power of malachite to their advantage; now the council
would draw on it again.
Turgur
straightened up and looked at the circle in satisfaction. He shot a glance at
Nudin. "He's up to something," he said in a low voice to Lot-Ionan.
"Keep an eye on him."
"On
Nudin?" Lot-Ionan asked, astonished. "Whatever for?"
Just
then Nudin rose to his feet and glanced in their direction. A look of
suspicion crossed his swollen features when he saw the whispering men.
"I
can't explain now. I'll tell you later," Turgur promised. "You'll
second me, won't you?"
"Second
you?" The white-bearded magus had spent his life studying spells and conjurations
and was baffled by Turgur's hush-hush tone.
Before
he could probe any further, Maira summoned them to their places. The moon and
the stars were shining brightly as the six magi stepped into the circle. It was
time for the ceremony to begin. The copper dome parted, sliding back to unite
the wizards with the firmament above.
Closing
their eyes, they held their arms horizontally and began the incantation that
would conjure the energy.
Each
spoke according to his or her nature: Maira singing, Andôkai hissing and
spitting, and Sabora whispering, while Turgur enunciated his words with a pride
befitting his character. Their voices combined in a complex chant beseeching
and commanding the magic to come forth.
Only
Nudin and Lot-Ionan spoke as one person, reciting their formulae ceremoniously,
as if respectfully addressing a king.
Lot-Ionan
had not forgotten Turgur's strange whisperings. He stole a glance at Nudin
through half-closed eyes and was relieved to see that there was nothing the
least bit unusual about his behavior.
One
by one the symbols surrounding Maira the Life-Preserver lit up, sheathing her
in an iridescent column of light that reached high into the dark night sky. The
maga of Oremaira was ready.
The
glow surged around the circle, bathing each of the wizards in light. By now the
citizens of Porista would be staring at the palace, transfixed by the
extraordinary sight.
So
intense was the flow of magic that the chamber crackled with energy, purple
bolts of lightning scudding between the columns.
Maira
laid her hands on the malachite table and the others followed suit. Lot-Ionan
noticed that Turgur, eyes fixed on Nudin, seemed incredibly tense.
The
energy coursed through the magi and flowed into the malachite, the dark green
crystal pulsing with light. The six waited until the glow had intensified, then
lifted their hands from the cool surface and stepped away.
"Go
forth!" commanded Maira. "Go forth and strengthen the unseen girdle
protecting our lands!" She recited the formula, and the magic in the
malachite did her bidding, shooting from the center of the table in a dazzling
blaze of white light.
As it
streamed upward, Nudin seized his staff and thrust its tip into the flow. The
onyx absorbed the light. A black bolt sped from the jewel, striking Nudin. As
the energy discharged into his body, the wizard writhed and screamed in pain.
"The
blackguard has betrayed us!" Turgur raised his arm, intending to dash the
onyx from Nudin's staff, but an invisible shield protected the jewel.
As
the last of the magic flowed into the onyx, the malachite grew dull and the
light of the circle was extinguished. The ceremony was over: The energy had
been harnessed and released. Nudin staggered back in exhaustion and leaned
against a marble column for support.
Lot-Ionan
turned to Turgur for guidance. The fair-faced magus had obviously suspected
that something was awry. "He betrayed us!" Turgur raged furiously.
"Nudin betrayed us to the Perished Land. If only I'd seen it sooner."
"Explain
yourself, Nudin!" stormed Andôkai, striding purposefully toward him. She
gripped him firmly by the shoulders and for a moment it seemed as though she
might strike.
He beat her to
it.
His
fist raced toward her chin with such speed that she had no opportunity to
defend herself. Andôkai the Tempestuous flew several paces through the air and
slammed down on the malachite table. She lay motionless.
"You'd
better tell us what you've done," Lot-Ionan commanded sharply.
Nudin
drew himself up and smoothed his dark robes. "Be quiet, you old fool,"
he retorted, directing his onyx-tipped staff at Lot-Ionan's chest.
The
four magi reacted immediately, steeling themselves to deflect a magic strike.
Whatever was ailing Nudin had clearly affected his brain. Madness was not
uncommon among wizards.
"Tell
us what you've done," Sabora urged him. "This isn't about power, is
it, Nudin? Was this meeting a ploy to increase your own strength? If Turgur's
right, you're more foolish than I thought." She looked to the others for
support. "Lay down your staff before it's too late."
"It's
too late already," he informed her. "You made your choice. For
hundreds of cycles you've been fighting it, when all you had to do was listen.
Much of what it says is true."
"'It'?"
Maira queried, horrified. "You don't mean the Perished Land? Are you
saying you talked to it?"
"I
learned from it," he corrected her. "I can't protect Girdlegard
without changing it first. It's up to you whether you decide to help me."
Lot-Ionan
reached for his staff. As far as he was concerned, there was nothing to
consider. "Your actions today have turned five friends against you,"
he said sadly. "Your thirst for knowledge and power has led you astray.
You should never have listened to the voice of destruction."
"You
are wrong to call it that." Even as Nudin began to speak, his left eye and
his nostrils dribbled blood, leaving thin crimson streaks on his doughy face.
He faltered.
"Can't
you see what it's doing to you?" Maira said gently. "You still have
the power to renounce it, Nudin."
"N-no,"
he stammered, agitated. "No, never! It knows more than all my books put
together, more than all the magi and scholars combined." His voice took on
a hysterical edge. "It's what I dreamed of. Don't you see? There's no
choice."
"Only
because you agreed to be a part of it. And what did the Perished Land demand in
return for this wonderful knowledge? All Girdlegard and its inhabitants!"
Turgur laughed scornfully. "You strike a poor bargain, my friend."
"None
of us can help you," Sabora whispered. She shook her silvery head.
"Nudin, how could you?"
"You've
got it all wrong," he protested, disappointed. "It wants to help us;
it wants to protect us from harm."
"Protect
us?" Maira signaled to the others. "No, Nudin, there is nothing more
harmful than the Perished Land. We must fight it." She took a deep breath.
"And we must fight you too."
"You
fools! Do you think you can hurt my friend?" Nudin dropped his voice to an
unintelligible whisper and smote his staff against the floor. The marble
cracked, a deep fracture ripping through the stone and channeling in the
direction of the chalk circle. A heartbeat later it reached the table.
The
malachite disintegrated like rock candy in hot tea, crumbling into a thousand
pieces. Andôkai, whose motionless body was lying on the tabletop, landed
heavily on the flagstones. Green shards rained around her, tinkling on the
floor, but still she made no sound.
Lot-Ionan,
the words of a counterspell frozen on his lips, gaped with the others in horror
at the wreckage. The table, their precious focus object, had been destroyed.
He
was still staring at the sparkling green fragments when a blue fireball
whooshed overhead, on course for the treacherous magus. Before it could reach
its target, Turgur's fiery projectile was torn apart by a counterspell.
"For
Girdlegard," Maira shouted. "Stop the traitor!"
The
sound of her voice startled Lot-Ionan into action. Pushing aside his fears for
his realm and his disappointment at Nudin's betrayal, he focused on the
challenge ahead. He knew the others were depending on his support, but in all
his 287 cycles he had never once used his powers to kill or harm.
They
assailed the traitor with fireballs and lightning bolts, then joined forces for
a combined attack.
Flames
and projectiles bombarded Nudin's shield and he disappeared amid the inferno.
Sabora toppled the pillars on either side of him, bringing a section of ceiling
crashing to the ground. Dust swirled around them, obscuring their view.
None
of them dared to check on Andôkai; all energies were focused on Nudin.
"Let's
take a look." Maira summoned a gust, propelling the dust through the open
roof. As the clouds dispersed, they found themselves looking into thin
air—Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty was gone, but there was nothing to suggest that
he had been destroyed.
"He
can't have survived," wheezed Turgur. "It's impossible. He must
have—" His eyes widened in horror as he looked at his hand. The skin was
wrinkling, its surface filling with age spots that blackened and turned into
sores. A hastily invoked countercharm did nothing to stop the rot. The festering
infection spread along his arm, eating into his chest, then his legs.
Sabora
rushed to his aid. Without flinching she laid a hand on the putrefying skin.
This time her healing powers failed her.
With
nothing to hold his flesh together, Turgur slid to the floor. He tried to
speak, but his rotten tongue twitched helplessly in his mouth. The fair-faced
magus had been robbed of his beauty; a moment later, he forfeited his life. A
deathly canker had eaten him alive.
Lot-Ionan
struggled to contain his growing dread. Nudin commanded powers the like of
which had never been seen. The Perished Land had taught him terrifying secrets.
Stepping
out from behind a pillar, the false magus appeared at Maira's side. She shrank
away.
"You
had your chance," he rasped, drawing a few paces closer and stopping by
the fallen Andôkai. "I asked you to help me and you refused. Much good
will it do you. I'll show you what—"
At
that moment, Andôkai, who had been lying seemingly dead on the floor, shot up
and drew her sword. The blade sang through the air and pierced Nudin's chest.
"Take
that, you traitor!" she thundered, raking the sword upward. The metal tore
through the left side of his rib cage and continued through his collarbone,
hewing his shoulder. Nudin staggered and fell.
As he
went down, he raised his staff and hurled it with all his might. The tip buried
itself in Andôkai's chest. She gave a low moan and toppled backward, fingers
clutching at the malachite splinters that littered the floor. Then she was
still.
"Andôkai!"
In an instant, Sabora was at her side, laying hands on the wound.
The
sight of the traitor lying in a pool of blood allowed Lot-Ionan and Maira to
draw breath. They knelt alongside the injured Andôkai, but their magic could do
nothing to help her.
"We're
not strong enough," said Sabora, scrambling to her feet. "Our powers
have been depleted by the ritual and the battle. Try to stop the bleeding while
I go for help. A rested famulus with a knowledge of healing might save her
yet."
She
took two paces toward the door and froze midstep. Her face took on a bluish
tinge that spread rapidly through her body.
"Sabora?"
Lot-Ionan reached out to touch her. A stab of cold rushed through his arm,
freezing his fingertips to her skin. Sabora had turned to ice.
"Andôkai
the Tempestuous lies still, Turgur the Fair-Faced has lost his looks, and
Sabora the Softly-Spoken will forever keep her peace. What will become of
Lot-Ionan the Forbearing, I wonder?" a voice rasped behind him.
Nudin? Lot-Ionan howled furiously, tugging his hand
way from the maga's frozen arm and skinning his fingertips. His sorrow at the
fate of his beloved Sabora turned to violent rage. "You'll pay for this,
Nudin. You won't cheat death again!" A terrible curse on his lips, he
whirled round to face the traitor. Nudin's staff was pointing straight at him.
His robes were bloodied, but there was no sign of the grisly wound inflicted by
Andôkai's sword; a rip in his cloak was the only evidence of the blade's gory
passage.
Before
Lot-Ionan could react, he was seized by an insidious paralysis. The heat
seemed to vanish from his body, chilling him to the core, while his skin
tightened so excruciatingly that tears rolled down his rigid cheeks. Only his
eyes were free to move.
"Can't
you see it's using you, Nudin?" Maira tried to rise from Andôkai's side,
but slipped on the fragments of malachite and swayed. Nudin saw his chance. On
his command, the splinters rose up like an uneven carpet of thorns. He hurled a
curse at her.
Maira
deflected the black bolt, but staggered and fell among the shards. The jagged
crystals cut through her robes, slashing her skin and inflicting grievous
wounds.
"Nudin, I'm
begging you—" she whispered urgently.
"No one has the right to ask anything of me!" He
stood over her and brought the staff down heavily with both hands. Maira let
out a tortured scream as the onyx smashed into her face. There was a flash of
black lightning. "From now on, I listen to no one."
Possessed
of a crazed fury, he battered her head until the skull gave way with a
sickening crack. Nothing was left of Maira's once-dignified countenance.
Panting
for breath, Nudin drew himself up, triumph flashing wildly in his eyes. He
looked at the bodies strewn around him.
"You've
got only yourselves to blame," he shouted angrily, as if to justify his
actions. "You wanted it to end this way, not me." He ran a hand over
his face and found sticky smears of blood. Disgusted, he wiped them away with
his gown. "It was your choice," he said more quietly, "not
mine."
Unable
to do anything but weep, Lot-Ionan cried tears of despair. The magi had been
betrayed and destroyed by one of their own, a man whom they had counted as
their friend.
The
traitor dropped his guard. Lowering himself onto a chair, he tilted his head
back and gazed up at the stars.
"My
name is Nôd’onn the Doublefold," he told the glittering pinpricks of
light. "Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty is no more. He departed with the
council, never to return." He gripped his staff. "I am two and yet one,"
he murmured pensively, lumbering to his feet. Lot-Ionan followed him with his
gaze as he strode toward the door.
"You
too will die, my old, misguided friend," the treacherous magus
prophesied. "Your whole being will soon be fossilized; you'll be nothing
but stone." He fixed him with bloodshot eyes, a look of untold weariness
and disappointment on his face. "You should have sided with me and not
that backstabbing Turgur. Still, for old times' sake I won't deny you a proper
view." His swollen fingers took hold of Lot-Ionan and he embraced him
briefly, hauling him round to face Sabora. "Now you can watch her while
you're dying. It won't be long before she follows. Farewell, Lot-Ionan. It's
time I got on with saving Girdlegard—single-handedly, since the rest of you
won't help."
He
stepped out of Lot-Ionan's line of sight, and the doors slammed shut. Alone in
the chamber and beside himself with grief, the magus of Ionandar surveyed his
dead friends. The sight of Sabora, frozen and motionless, was enough to break
his heart.
Will the gods stand by and watch the ruin of Girdlegard?
Do something, I implore you! Rage, helplessness, hatred, and sorrow
welled within him until despair took hold of his being and nothing could check
his tears.
At
length the curse relieved him of his torment. The salty rivulets petrified on
his marble cheeks, forming a lasting memorial to his anguish, while his
breathing faltered and his heart turned to stone. If death had not claimed the
kindly magus before daybreak, the sight of Sabora melting in the merciless
sunshine would surely have killed him.
When
everything was still in the chamber, a colossal warrior forced himself through
one of the windows, stepped over the bodies, and knelt beside Andôkai. The
palace echoed with his bestial howls.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin,
Girdlegard,
Early Summer,
6234th Solar Cycle
Tungdil was making swift progress. His
boots devoured the miles, carrying him on a northwesterly course ever closer to
Greenglade. The shortest route to his new destination took him through the
enchanted realm of Lios Nudin, home to Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty.
It
was unsettling to think that the distance separating him from the Perished Land
was dwindling with every step. The southern frontier extended almost as far as
Lios Nudin, although Greenglade was a good hundred miles clear of the danger.
Nonetheless, if the girdle was to fall, Gorén would be obliged to move
elsewhere.
On
the far side of the Blacksaddle he came across a messenger post. Knowing that
Lot-Ionan would be worried about his whereabouts, he composed another short
letter in which he informed the magus of where he was going and what had come
to pass. He paid for the courier with the last of his precious gold coins.
The
weather was treating him kindly. The sun shone benevolently from the sky, a
light wind kept him pleasantly cool, and on the few occasions when the warmth
threatened to overwhelm him, he retreated to the shade of a tree and waited for
the midday heat to pass. His legs were much stronger now than at the start of
his journey and he was barely aware of the weight of his mail. The walk was
doing him good.
The
landscape of Lios Nudin made little impression on the dwarf. It was mainly flat
with a few rolling hills, referred to locally as "highlands." For the
most part, fields and meadows stretched as far as the eye could see, dotted
with grazing cows and vast numbers of sheep, herded by attentive dogs. Woodland
was rare and tended to be sparse, although the trees were of a venerable age.
Having succeeded in taking root, they had every intention of standing their
ground.
With
the exception of Porista, which lay a considerable distance to the north of his
route, there were few settlements of note in Lios Nudin, Lamtasar and Seinach
being the largest with thirty thousand inhabitants apiece.
However,
the proliferation of smaller villages and hamlets made it easy for Tungdil to
find work as a smith and he offered his services in return for extra rations of
cured meat, bread, and cheese. It was no good asking ordinary country folk to
pay him in gold.
For
four orbits he had been following the same road on a westerly bearing toward
the border, where he would cross back into Gauragar and take a diagonal path
northward to Greenglade.
With any luck Gorén won't have quarreled with his elven
mistress and moved away. In his gloomiest moments Tungdil envisaged
himself traipsing after Lot-Ionan's famulus forever, doomed to carry the
blasted artifacts until he died. At least the journey was furnishing him with
plenty of new experiences and even life on the surface no longer seemed quite
such a trial.
Weeks
had passed since the attack on Goodwater and the memory of the violence was
fading, allowing him to take pleasure in his surroundings. He savored the
different smells of the countryside and chatted to the peasants, reveling in
their stories and their curious accents and dialects. Girdlegard dazzled him
with her infinite variety.
At
times he felt lonely and longed for the comfort of Lot-Ionan's vaults, where
everything was reassuringly familiar. Nothing made him feel safer than narrow
passageways and low ceilings and he missed his books and his chats with junior
apprentices. Most of all, though, he missed Sunja and Frala, whose scarf was
still tied to his belt.
Yet
deep down he also nourished the hope that his kinsfolk, intrigued by the news
of an abandoned dwarf, had sent word to Lot-Ionan and requested to see him.
Every orbit he prayed to Vraccas that the magus's letter wouldn't be ignored.
It
was afternoon when he noticed that the landscape was becoming more wooded. The
gaps between the trunks diminished until at last he was in an airy sunlit
wood. This was the beginning of the Eternal Forest and he had almost reached
his goal.
On
consulting his map, he found he was fifty miles west of Lios Nudin and a
hundred miles southwest of the Perished Land—safe enough, in other words. It
would take a real stroke of bad luck to meet orcs in these parts.
A branch snapped
loudly.
Tungdil's
recent exposure to country noises persuaded him that the sound was more than
just a cracking twig. A creature of sizable proportions was lurking in the
wood. Reaching for the haft of his ax, he peered in the direction of the noise.
Another branch
snapped.
"Who goes
there?"
The
shouted question startled the stag that had been nosing among the trees for the
lushest grass. Its white rump bobbed up and down, then vanished from view.
Tungdil
shook his head at himself. What did you expect it to
be? he chuckled. As he wandered through the forest, a sense of calm and
serenity settled over him. There was something incredibly peaceful about the
trees and it rubbed off on his mood. Even the birdsong was fresher and more
joyful, the forest-dwellers greeting him like an old friend whose visit was
long overdue.
The
dusty road gave way to a grass track that meandered through the woods like a
green ribbon unfurled by nature. Every step felt luxuriously soft and springy
and even the hot sun, which had reached an oppressive intensity in recent
orbits, seemed pleasant beneath the dappled leaves. A light breeze chased away
the muggy summer air and Tungdil felt he could walk forever.
Soon
he became accustomed to the sounds of the glade and the rustling and crackling
became more frequent. Deer and wild boar tore through the undergrowth at his
approach. There were animals everywhere, and like him, they seemed to sense the
peacefulness of the forest and feel at home there.
I
won't get too friendly with the elf maiden until I've learned more about her, he decided. His race and hers were sworn enemies, but Tungdil
saw no sense in hating someone who had done him no harm. I'll see how she treats me first.
A
branch snapped again. Judging by the racket, the culprit was a fair-sized
animal, most probably a stag. Tungdil peered ahead, hoping to glimpse its
magnificent antlers.
Another
branch broke, twigs snapped, and a voice cursed— in orcish.
The
harmony of the forest shattered like a bauble beneath a blacksmith's hammer.
Orcs spilled out of the bushes and Tungdil, who moments earlier had been
basking in a sense of security, was confronted with the prospect of being eaten
alive. A penetrating odor of sweat and rancid fat filled the air.
The
first beast, a particularly hideous specimen, stepped onto the path. He was
armed to the teeth and nearly twice the height of Tungdil.
"Bloody
greenery. We'd move faster if we burned the blasted forest down." The ore
snatched furiously at a twig that had wedged itself in his armor. He still
hadn't seen the dwarf.
The
troopers who followed him out of the bushes were more observant. "Hey,
Frushgnarr, take a look at that!"
The
square-jawed head whipped round. Two small deep-set eyes glared at Tungdil as
the orc opened his wide mouth in a blood-curdling shout: "A
groundling!" He drew his toothed sword. "I love groundlings!"
"If
only the sentiment was mutual." The dwarf strained to see past him and
paled. The orcs were still coming, pouring out of the woods. At thirty he
stopped counting. There was no hope of evading them this time. Like a true
child of the Smith, he would go down fighting and take an orc with him. He
would have liked to prove his credentials before he met his Maker, but at least
Vraccas would know that his intentions were sound. "Now you're here, I'll
have to kill you."
"You and
whose army?" the orc jeered.
Tungdil
lowered his bags. It was maddening to know that he had come so close to
completing his mission, but he drew unexpected courage from his frustration.
"Army?
I don't need an army when I've got my ax!" His inborn hatred of the beasts,
common to all dwarves, was awakened by the foul creatures' odor. An image of
Goodwater, houses burning and villagers slaughtered, flashed before his eyes.
The bookish part of his brain shut down and he threw himself, shrieking, upon
the nearest ore.
The beast
parried his blow with a shield. "Are you sure you don't need an
army?" he grunted scornfully. Snarling, he took a step forward and lunged.
The
dwarf retreated hastily and backed into a tree. At the last second he ducked,
the sword whistling past him, almost grazing his head. It buried itself in the
bark.
On
seeing the orc's sturdy thigh in front of him, Tungdil swung his ax toward the
unprotected flesh. "Take that!" Dark green blood gushed from the
wound, streaming down the beast's shin.
Abandoning
his sword in the tree, the orc reached for his dagger to stab the dwarf
instead. Tungdil's mail stopped the blade from penetrating, but the impact sent
him reeling. Fighting to stay upright, he tripped over his bags and fell.
"So
much for your ax, groundling! Prepare to die!" The orc hurled the dagger
at him but missed.
Tungdil,
who had succeeded in tangling himself in the straps of his bags, was still
trying to free himself when his opponent decided to retrieve his sword,
wrenching it out of the tree.
The
beast limped toward him, snorting with rage and brandishing his blade. It
hurtled through the air.
As
the dwarf dove to one side, the bag of artifacts jerked after him, landing on
his back just as the blade made contact.
The
famulus's precious possessions absorbed the blow, but the splintering and
jangling left Tungdil in no doubt that the artifacts had paid dearly for saving
his life. Who knows if they'll ever get to
Greenglade? His fury redoubled.
"I'm
not done yet!" Rolling onto his front, he used his momentum to plant his
ax in the ore's right thigh, almost severing his leg.
The
beast yelped and fell to the ground beside the dwarf. Tungdil rolled away from
him, sprang to his feet, and drove his ax into the creature's throat. He heard
the bone crack. "Who says I need an army?" he panted. For the first
time in his life he had slain a beast of Tion. He hoped to goodness that
Vraccas would be satisfied since it was likely to be his last.
The
band of thirty or so orcs stormed toward him. He knew there was no chance of
him surviving the attack.
If I'm going down, one of you is coming with me.
Tungdil squared his shoulders and tightened his grip on the ax. He could
imagine how the fifthlings had felt when the northern hordes had assailed the
Stone Gateway. There was nothing for it but to follow their example and die an
honorable death.
The
lead orc was only ten paces away when a bright, defiant bugle sounded close
by. He heard clattering armor and a peal of colliding blades; then shouts went
up as dying orcs tumbled to the ground. To Tungdil's astonishment, reinforcements
had arrived. He was too grateful to worry about who they were.
"The
groundling has friends," roared the chief of the band. "Bring me
their flesh!" The green-hided beasts turned away from Tungdil to confront
the enemy that had attacked them from behind.
The elf maiden must have sent her warriors. I can't stand
by while they risk their lives on my behalf. He ran after the orcs,
darting forward to drive his ax into the back of a dark green knee. The beast
toppled like a tree.
That makes two, Tungdil thought grimly.
One of the
orcs engaged his blade while the rest piled in on the new arrivals, hiding them
from Tungdil's view.
Tungdil
soon realized that his unexpected victories had given him more confidence than
was merited by his skill. His third opponent saw through his feints and swiped
at him relentlessly.
The
dwarf checked five savage blows before his luck ran out. A fierce strike dashed
the ax from his hand and it landed in the grass. For want of another weapon, he
drew his bread knife. "Come here, you brute!"
"Gladly,
groundling!" The orc gave a grunt of delight as he eyed Tungdil's knife.
"What's that, a toothpick? Just what I need to clean your flesh from my
jaws!" He raised his sword.
Kingdom of Urgon, Girdlegard,
Early Summer,
6234th Solar Cycle
A
joint army?" Lothaire laughed out loud. Urgon's sovereign was a youth of
twenty-one cycles. He flicked his long blond hair and gestured for more water.
"You want us to fight together against the Perished Land?"
King
Tilogorn nodded. At forty cycles, he had a thin, earnest face and
shoulder-length brown hair. He had journeyed to Urgon with the sole purpose of
forging an alliance, but after four hours of discussion in the gloomy chamber
there was no indication that the message had got through. In the meantime, the
sun had passed over the mountains of Urgon and was sinking behind their peaks.
"It
is rumored that the girdle is weak. If the magic fails, the orcs will attack
our lands with a strength and ferocity more devastating than anything that has
gone before." Tilogorn pointed to the map. "The seven human kingdoms
of Girdlegard must unite. Your help is vital if I am to persuade Umilante,
Wey, Isika, Bruron, and Nate of our cause."
Lothaire
sipped his water and stared at Tilogorn over the rim of the glass. "You're
serious about this, aren't you?"
"Absolutely.
Our survival depends on it."
"Shouldn't
we leave it to the magi to repair the girdle before we—"
"The
magi will take care of the magic, but we must be prepared to fight. I've
dispatched a messenger to Lios Nudin to request a meeting with the council. I'm
expecting word any orbit."
"Why
would the magi deign to meet with mere mortals? Andôkai has never honored me
with a visit, despite claiming swathes of my kingdom as her own."
"Consider
yourself fortunate; it's not for nothing that she's called the
Tempestuous." He laughed, then became serious. "The magi rarely show
themselves, and they tend to keep out of our affairs, but this is different, I
assure you. They know their duty."
Lothaire
studied the map, pondering the Perished Land, whose frontier posed no immediate
threat to Urgon. "I don't know, Tilogorn. My kingdom is as tranquil as
ever."
"But
will it stay that way?" Tilogorn replied patiently, doing his best to talk
Lothaire round. "I know your lands are easier to defend than the plains of
Gauragar or Idoslane, but the Perished Land commands orcs, älfar, and other
foul creatures. Nowhere is safe."
"The
beasts shall be thrown from my mountains and drowned in my lakes. Their heavy
armor will be the death of them," announced Lothaire with customary
haughtiness. "My men are hardened warriors. Every day they seek out trolls
in our ranges and put them to the sword. I ride with a single bodyguard,
knowing that he will defend me single-handedly against a hundred foes."
"Do
not confuse the älfar with simple-minded trolls. All it takes is a well-aimed
arrow and your bodyguard will be dead. The hordes in the north are more
numerous than you can imagine; their power is infinite, yours is not."
With a sweep of his hand, Tilogorn gestured to the former elven kingdoms.
"They insisted on fighting alone and were conquered. Isn't it our duty to
learn from their mistake? We must fight like with like: Only a vast army can protect
us from the beasts."
"But
what of the Perished Land's curse? Those who die on its territory are said to
join its ranks."
"I've
heard the stories too. We must burn the corpses so none can return as soulless
warriors. We shall create a battalion to follow our army and set fire to the
dead." Tilogorn sensed that Lothaire was almost persuaded. "Then
you'll fight with me, King of Urgon?"
"Our armies
shall follow my lead."
"The
command will be shared. Our strengths will complement each other."
Tilogorn paused. "Besides, my men will never take orders from a ruler
younger than themselves." He held out his hand. "Are you with
me?"
Lothaire
smiled. "Very well. Our army will be the mightiest in the history of
Girdlegard, powerful enough to lay waste to Dsôn Balsur and hound the älfar
across the Northern Pass. Although maybe we should kill them and be done with
it... Yes," he said excitedly, "we'll destroy them altogether and
then we can deal with the orcs. Peace will return to our kingdoms. It's a
worthy plan." He shook Tilogorn's outstretched hand; then an anxious look
crossed his face. "Er, there's one more thing. You remember Prince Mallen
of Ido?"
Tilogorn
snorted. "How could I forget the last of the great Idos? He lives in your
kingdom, does he not?"
"He
heads my army," Lothaire corrected him. "Rest assured, when the time
comes to rid your lands of orcs, he will forfeit his command. No one shall
accuse Lothaire of Urgon of scheming to plant the last of the Idos on
Idoslane's throne."
Tilogorn
took little comfort from the speech. "What if he incites rebellion in our
troops? He is sure to have supporters among your men."
Lothaire
sipped his water. "He's a reasonable man at heart. Perhaps your powers of
persuasion will work on him as effectively as they worked on me." Before
Tilogorn had a chance to reply, the young king rose and walked to the door.
"I'll summon him to you. If you can convince him of our cause, the kings
and queens of the other five kingdoms will be no trouble at all." He disappeared
into the corridor.
His guest leaned
over the table to study the map.
"Greetings,
King of Idoslane," a voice said sardonically. "Who would have thought
that we would ride to battle side by side? Fate plays games with the best of
us, irrespective of rank."
Turning,
Tilogorn saw Lothaire reentering the room with the speaker, a man of some
thirty cycles, his features nondescript. His finely crafted armor bore the
insignia of the Ido and testified to his wealth, although fashions had changed
in the meantime.
"Prince
Mallen of Ido?" It was less a greeting than an expression of surprise.
"I remembered you differently."
"Yet
you recognize the coat of arms to which Idoslane rightfully belongs... Are you
comfortable on my throne?"
"You
need not worry about my comfort, Prince Mallen. You and your coconspirators
have not unseated me yet. The people are clearly fonder of my family than they
were of yours. You serve Urgon's army, 1 hear?" Tilogorn asked brusquely.
"I am an
exile. I have to do something to earn my keep."
"The
Idos have a reputation for fighting—especially among themselves. Your
bloodthirsty feuds brought suffering on the people and cost you your
throne." He bit his lip. Barbed comments were hardly going to help his
cause. "Forgive me, I didn't mean to—"
"Oh
please, King Tilogorn, spare me the history lesson," Mallen said
dismissively. "Tell me something interesting, such as what I can do to aid
my country and return a free man."
"If
you wish to help your country, bury our quarrel until Girdlegard is safe,"
Tilogorn entreated. "I'm sorry I spoke so harshly."
"You're
sorry." Mallen was as distrustful as ever. "Well, we agree on one
thing: An invasion of orcs or älfar would only harm Idoslane." He glanced
at the map. "It may surprise you to learn that I'm in favor of a truce
between us. I agree to your proposal, on the condition that I can enter Idoslane
at will."
Tilogorn
hesitated.
"I
miss my country and the few friends loyal to my line," Mallen said evenly.
"There'll be no more conspiracies, I swear. May Palandiell be my
witness."
This
time the king held out his hand. "I can see in your eyes that your concern
for Idoslane is genuine. I shall take you at your word."
"Make
no mistake," Mallen warned him. "There is no friendship between us.
Only the gods know what will become of us once the hordes have been defeated,
but let us focus on saving our kingdom for now."
Lothaire,
who had been hanging back, stepped in. "Excellent. Good sense has
prevailed, it seems. I propose that we inform the other monarchs and make haste
to raise our troops." He escorted them through the corridors of his
palace.
Tilogorn
stole sideways glances at the other two, trying to read their expressions.
Lothaire
was visibly excited at the prospect of battle, but Mallen's face was
inscrutable, revealing only that he shared Tilogorn's profound anxiety about
the future.
Just
then, they fell into step, their boots ringing out in unison against the
marble floor.
"Hark,"
said Tilogorn, drawing their attention to the harmony of their stride.
"Past cycles have driven a wedge between our dynasties, but now we move as
one. If only it didn't take a common enemy to bridge the gulf between
neighbors."
"It's
no use dwelling on the past," replied the sovereign of Urgon. "Blaze
a trail for others to follow, and follow they will. It's the only reasonable
thing to do."
"Well spoken, King Lothaire," Tilogorn said approvingly. "I think the two of us"—he nodded at Mallen—"have shown that we are reasonable men."
Kingdom of Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Early Summer, 6234tb Solar Cycle
Over
here, you runt," a voice cried lustily in dwarfish.
"Come
here so I can slaughter you!" A squat figure pushed its way between the orc's
legs, whipped out two short-hafted axes, and planted them in the orc’s
vulnerable nether regions.
Oinking
derisively, the diminutive warrior jerked the weapons out of his opponent's
crotch and launched himself into the air like an acrobat, seemingly unhampered
by his heavy mail. On his way down he struck again, hewing the neck of the orc
who was doubled up in pain. The axes sliced from both sides, almost meeting in
the middle. The beast crumpled to the ground.
"By
Beroïn’s beard," the warrior scolded Tungdil, "what were you doing
dropping your ax?"
"You're
a...dwarf!" Tungdil gasped in surprise, scrambling to his feet.
"Of
course I'm a dwarf! What did you think I was? An elf?" He bent down,
picked up the ax, and tossed it to Tungdil. "Don't let go of it this time.
We'll save the talking for later." With a grim laugh he threw himself back
into the frenzied scrum.
Tungdil
spotted a second dwarf, identical to the first in every detail except his
beard. He was slashing vigorously at his opponents with a crow's beak, a kind
of spiked war hammer equipped with a curved spur as long as his lower arm.
"I
thought you said you wanted our flesh? Too bad you didn't bring more of your
friends!" shouted Tungdil's rescuer, taunting the orcs. "Your
pig-ugly mothers must have slept with a hideous elf to make monsters like
you," he boomed. "With a one-legged, mangy, no-eared elf. She
probably enjoyed it!" When one of the orcs lunged forward, snarling with
rage, the dwarf dispatched him with a flash of his axes. "Come on, don't
be shy," he harried them. "You can all take a turn."
His
fellow warrior preferred to work silently, wreaking his own brand of deadly
havoc, slicing through limbs and hewing torsos with well-aimed swipes.
By
now the orcs numbered just four, their slain comrades littering the ground
around them and drenching the soil with their blood. Closing ranks, the last of
the beasts prepared for a joint attack. The dwarves immediately drew together,
standing back-to-back.
"Huzzah!
That's more like it!" shouted Tungdil's savior, his eyes gleaming
maniacally.
Rather
than wait for the orcs to engage them, they whirled their way forward into the
mob, spinning on their axis like a dancer in a music box, each warning the
other in dwarfish of any threats from behind.
This
unconventional strategy secured the dwarves a speedy victory against their more
numerous foes. The last ore went to his death to the sound of their laughter
and cries of "oink, oink!"
Tungdil
was profoundly impressed. The dwarven warriors had dispatched an entire band of
orcs without incurring so much as a scratch. He gazed at them in dumb
admiration, then realized he had done nothing to help.
"May
the fire of Vraccas's furnace burn in you forever," the second dwarf
greeted him. "My name is Boëndal Hookhand of the clan of the Swinging Axes
and this is my twin brother,
Boïndil Doubleblade or
Ireheart, if you prefer. Secondlings, the pair of us." His friendly brown
eyes studied Tungdil shrewdly.
"You
can see straightaway that he wouldn't stand a chance against a band of
orcs," his brother said, guffawing. "He had enough trouble with just
one of those runts. What kind of idiot drops his only ax?" He checked
himself and looked at Tungdil. "I'm assuming you weren't planning to
strangle them with your bare hands?"
"Oh
no, sir," said Tungdil. "I'd be dead by now if you hadn't come
along." He blinked. There was something peculiar about Boïndil's eyes, a
strange flicker that gave him a rather frenzied look. He was probably still
fired up from the battle.
"There
are no sirs here," said Boëndal with a smile. "We dwarves were all
hewn from the same rock."
"Absolutely,
I'm sorry. All the same, you saved my l-life," stuttered Tungdil, his
relief at being rescued already eclipsed by the excitement of meeting others of
his race: For the first time since Ionandar—for the first time ever—he was face- to-face with real dwarves. A thousand
questions jostled for attention in his head.
Boëndal's
plait rippled down his back like a long black snake as he shook his head
good-naturedly. "You don't have to be grateful. We'd do the same for any
dwarf."
"Even
a thirdling," chortled Boïndil, "although we'd give him a good hiding
as well." He bent down to wipe his gore-encrusted axes in the long grass.
"It
took us a while to find you." Boëndal paused. "You are Tungdil Bolofar, aren't you?"
"What
a name!" his brother grumbled. "Bolofar! It's not some magical piffle
paffle, is it?"
Tungdil's
astonishment was stamped on his face. "Yes, that's me," he said
slowly. "But how did you—"
"What's
the name of your magus and the purpose of your journey?" the twins
demanded.
"Lot-Ionan
the Forbearing is my magus, and as for my journey..." He paused, then
continued firmly. "You have my undying gratitude and deepest respect, but
the purpose of my journey is my own private business and I'm not ready to share
it with you yet."
Boïndil
roared with laughter. "Pompous as a scholar, but I like his spirit."
He clapped Tungdil on the back. "Don't worry. Lot-Ionan told us that he'd
sent you to look for Gorén. We wanted to be sure that we had the right
dwarf."
"The
right dwarf?" For a moment Tungdil was mystified; then he remembered
Lot-Ionan's letter to the secondlings. "My clansfolk want to meet
me!" He could barely keep the excitement from his voice. "But why the
escort? Is it because of the orcs?"
"That
too, but it's more a matter of getting you safely to the high king. Gundrabur
is expecting you as a matter of urgency," explained Boëndal, tearing a
scrap of cloth from an orcish jerkin and carefully wiping his crow's beak.
His
brother produced an oily rag and polished his gleaming axes. "Someone
should get the orcs an escort," he chuckled. "Vraccas knows they
need all the help they can get."
"The
high king," Tungdil whispered, awestruck. "What an honor! But why
would he want to see me?"
"We're
supposed to get you back to Ogre's Death so you and the other contender can stake
your claims to the throne." He made it sound like the most natural thing
in the world.
"My
claim?" Tungdil echoed incredulously. He looked at the twins' craggy
faces. "What claim? Which throne? What's this got to do with me?"
"He
should change his name to Baffledbrain!" wheezed Boïndil. "Well, fry
me an elf if the poor fellow isn't quite ignorant! Let's get away from these
snout-features before the stench makes me vomit. I say we walk another mile or
so, set up camp, and tell him everything, agreed?" He looked to his twin
for confirmation.
Tungdil
wasn't consulted on the matter, but luckily for the others, he was dying of
curiosity and followed without a fuss. They marched for a while, then left the
path and camped in the woods.
"There's
nothing better than a decent meal after a hard-fought victory." Boïndil
kindled the fire, skewered some cheese, and held it above the flames.
"And after a
defeat?"
"If
you're dead, your belly won't bother you. In any event, Vraccas will give you
some victuals from his smithy."
The
smell of molten cheese was overpowering. Tungdil choked. "I think I know
that aroma. I smelled it when I pulled off my boots after twenty-one orbits of
walking."
"Oh,
our food isn't good enough for you, is it?" said Boïndil, trying to copy
Tungdil's look of disdain. "This is the best cheese in the kingdom, I'll
have you know. Come on, give him a piece, Boëndal. It's time he got used to the
taste. Living with humans has spoiled his palate."
His
brother cut a slice of bread and handed it to Tungdil with some cured ham and
cheese. "Right, I suppose you want an explanation. I'll make it brief: The
high king is dying and a fourthling must claim his throne. Gundrabur found out
about your secret because of the magus's letter."
"My
secret?" groaned Tungdil. "I didn't know I had one." He still
hadn't convinced himself to eat the cheese. It was all a bit too much.
"It's
time you learned the truth, then. You weren't stolen by kobolds. The long-uns
made that up so you—"
"Long-uns?"
"It's
dwarfish for men—just a little joke. In any
event, the magus didn't want to burden you with the story until it was
time." Boëndal handed him the water canteen. "So there you have it:
You're a fourthling."
Tungdil
thought about Girdlegard's geography. "I can't be. The fourthling kingdom
is miles away."
"There
was a good reason for the distance," Boëndal said soberly. "You're
the son of the fourthling king—illegitimate, mind. The birth was kept a secret
and you were entrusted to the care of friends. When the queen found out, she was
furious. No bastard child of her husband's was going to lay claim to the throne
while she was around to stop it. She wanted you dead."
"Are
you going to eat that cheese?" Boïndil interrupted. "It'll fall into
the fire if you don't get on with it soon." Tungdil handed him the skewer
wordlessly and the warrior wolfed it down. "Much appreciated."
Boëndal
resumed his account. "Your adopted family took pity on you and carried you
off. They took you to Lot-Ionan for one simple reason: No one would ever think
of looking in a magus's household for a dwarf."
"You
do realize that dwarves have no truck with the long-uns' wizardry, don't
you?" Boïndil said suspiciously.
"Quiet!"
his brother shushed him. "Just let me finish." He turned back to
Tungdil. "So now you know why you grew up in Ionandar, miles from your
kinsfolk. When the assembly of dwarves heard of your existence, it was obliged
to summon you in accordance with our laws and consider your claim to the
throne."
Tungdil
held the canteen to his lips and took a long draft. "I don't mean to be
rude," he murmured weakly, "but it can't be true. Lot-Ionan would
have told me."
"He
intended to tell you on your return." Boëndal produced a letter from his
pack. It was written in the magus's hand. "He gave me this, in case you
didn't believe us."
Tungdil
unfurled the parchment, fingers trembling, and scanned the lines. The story was
true, down to the last detail.
All I wanted was to meet a few of my kinsfolk, not be
crowned king of all dwarves. "I'm sorry," he said, "but I
can't do it. I'll gladly accompany you to Ogre's Death, but the other contender
should be crowned." He laughed wryly. "How could I rule over anyone?
No one will ever accept me as a dwarf. They'll think I'm a—"
Suddenly
a morsel of stinking cheese was thrust under his nose. "Stop
grousing," snapped Boïndil. "It's a long way to Ogre's Death. We'll
make a dwarf of you yet." The molten cheese wobbled threateningly.
"You may as well start now." He still had a faintly crazed look in
his eyes. "Go on, taste it!"
Tungdil
pulled the warm cheese from the stick and popped it in his mouth. It tasted
revolting. His fingers would reek for orbits, not to mention his breath.
"I can't do it," he said firmly. "I promised to deliver the
pouch to Gorén."
"You
don't have to come right away," Boïndil said magnanimously. "It's
not far from here to Greenglade village. We'll go with you."
His
brother nodded. "And you don't have to worry about the magus; he's given
us his blessing already."
"What if you
were to return without me?"
The brothers
exchanged a look.
"Well,"
Boëndal said thoughtfully, "I expect they'd crown Gandogar, but no one
would ever accept him as the rightful king." He fixed his brother with a
meaningful stare.
"Exactly,"
Boïndil put in quickly. "There'd be all kinds of arguments and whatnot.
Some of the chieftains might even...well, they wouldn't take orders from him,
so before
you know it, there'd be
terrible feuds and..." He gazed into the flames for inspiration, then
rushed on. "It could all end in war! The clans and the folks would fight
each other, and you'd be to blame!" He sat back with a satisfied
expression on his face.
Tungdil
didn't know what to make of it all. Too much had happened since that morning.
Having never raised his ax in anger, he had slain two orcs in succession and
now his kinsfolk were trying to bundle him onto the throne. He needed time to
reflect. "I'll think it over," he promised them, curling up beside
the fire and closing his eyes wearily.
Boïndil
cleared his throat and began to sing. It was a dwarven ballad with deep
mysterious syllables that charmed the ear, telling of the time before time
began...
Desirous of
life, the deities fashioned themselves.
Vraccas the Smith was
forged from fire, rock, and steel.
Palandiell the
Bountiful rose from the earth.
The winds gave birth
to Samusin the Rash.
Elria the Helpful,
creator and destroyer, emerged from the water.
And darkness fused
with light in Tion the Two-Faced.
Such are the five
deities, the...
For Tungdil, the song ended there. It was the first time in his life that he had heard a dwarven ballad sung by his kin and the sound was so soothing that it lulled him to sleep.
Tungdil awoke with the smell of cheese
in his nostrils and his mind made up: He would go with the twins to the
secondling kingdom. His doubts had been conquered by a desire to meet more of
his kin.
"Just so you know, I haven't changed
my mind about being high king," he told them. "I'm doing this only
because I want to see my kinsfolk."
"It's
all the same to us," Boëndal said equably. "The main thing is you've
decided to come." He and his brother packed their bags and they set off
briskly. "The sooner we get to Greenglade, the sooner we'll be home. Eight
hundred miles are a good long way."
"We'll
accompany you to the edge of the village and no farther," snapped Boïndil.
"We want nothing to do with that elf maiden. It's bad enough having to
walk through an elfish forest, let alone visit an elf house or whatever they
build for themselves." He made a show of spitting into the bushes.
"What
did the elf maiden ever do to you?" Tungdil ran his hand over Gorén's bag;
there was no avoiding the fact that some of the artifacts were no longer in
their original state. The encounter with the orc’s sword had done them no
favors, which made him doubly certain that the beast had deserved its fate.
"Six hundred miles!" he muttered crossly. "Six hundred miles
through Gauragar, through Lios Nudin, past beasts and other dangers without the
artifacts coming to any harm, only for a confounded orc to ruin everything.
Another three or four hours and I could have handed them over, safe and
sound!" He hoped the wizard would be understanding.
Boïndil’s
mind was still on the elves. "Oh, she
didn't have to do anything! Her race has caused enough trouble as it is,"
he blurted out angrily. "Those self-satisfied, arrogant pointy-ears are
enough to—"
Overcome
with fury, he whipped out his axes and fell upon a sapling, swinging at it with
unbridled rage.
Boëndal,
an impassive expression on his face, lowered his packs, pushed his long plait
over his shoulder, and waited for the outburst to end.
"He
does this sometimes," he explained to the dumbfounded Tungdil. "His
inner furnace burns stronger than most. Sometimes it flares up and he can't
contain his anger. It's why we call him Ireheart."
"His inner
furnace?"
"Vraccas
alone can explain it. Anyway, take my advice and keep out of his way. It's
fatal to challenge him when he gets like this." Boëndal sighed.
"He'll be all right again once his furnace has cooled."
Boïndil
finished hacking the sapling to pieces. "Bloody pointy-ears! I feel better
now." Without a word of apology, he wiped the sap and splinters from his
blades and carried on. "We need to find a proper name for you," he
grumbled. "Bolofar is no better than Belly fluff, Sillystuff, or Starchy
ruff; it's plain daft! We'll come up with something on the way." He
glanced at Tungdil. "What are your talents?"
"Er,
reading..."
"Book-learning!"
Boëndal burst out laughing. "I should have guessed you were a scholar! But
we can't call you Pagemuncher or Bookeater. Dwarves should be proud of their
names!"
"Reading's
important. It—"
"Oh,
books are very useful when it comes to fighting orcs. You could have killed the
whole band of them with the right bit of poetry!"
Boïndil
looked at Tungdil and frowned. "No one could call you a warrior, but
you've certainly got the build for it. Your hands are nice and strong—with a
bit of practice, it might come right."
Tungdil sighed.
"I like metalwork."
"That's
not exactly unusual for a dwarf. How about—" Boëndal trailed off and
sniffed the air attentively. His brother did the same. "Something's
burning," he told them, alarmed. "Wood and... scorched flesh! It must
be a raid." Boïndil pulled out both axes and broke into a jog. The other
two followed.
The
trees grew farther apart as the path rounded a corner and emerged into a
clearing. Until recently, the spot had been home to a settlement, but the elf
maiden's haven at the heart of the forest had been ravaged by flames. Charred
ruins hinted at the former elegance of the many-platformed dwellings that were
set about the boles of the tallest trees. The carved arches, smooth wooden
beams, and panels embellished with elven runes and gold leaf were so perfectly
at one with the forest that they seemed to have grown with the wood.
But
most of the gold was missing and the beauty of the glade had been savagely
destroyed. For the second time on Tungdil's journey, the orcs had got there
first. He tried in vain to recapture something of the leafy harmony, but the
desecration was complete. "By Vraccas," he gulped. "We'd better
see whether—"
"Absolutely,"
Boïndil said cheerily. "With any luck, we'll find a few runts. You've got
to hand it to them: We couldn't have done a better job ourselves!"
"It's
what you'd call rigorous," his brother said admiringly, gripping the haft
of his hammer. As true children of the Smith, the twins were unruffled by the
wreckage around them; it wasn't in their nature to feel pity for elves.
Tungdil
felt differently. Wandering through the smoldering ruins, he lifted up planks
and peered under girders in the hope of finding Gorén alive. Instead he found
corpse after corpse, some of them horribly mutilated. At the sight of the
carnage, memories of Goodwater came flooding back and he stepped away from the
bodies, closing his eyes to the horror. The images stayed with him, more
gruesome than ever in his mind.
Pull yourself together, he told himself firmly. How are you going to recognize Gorén if you find him?
Where would a wizard hide if he survived? Tungdil's gaze settled on the
largest dwelling, which had come off slightly better than the rest.
"Keep
an eye out for any trouble," he called to the others. "I need to find
out what's happened to Gorén."
"I've
changed my mind," Boïndil shouted jauntily to his brother. "Forget
what I said earlier about not going in. We might find some orcs."
While
the twins began patrolling the ruins, Tungdil climbed the sagging staircase
toward the front door. The charred steps groaned beneath his feet, but at last
he reached the first platform and walked across the blackened planks.
The
house was pentagonal in form, with the bole of the tree at its center. Linking
the rooms was a corridor that encircled the trunk, its inner wall comprised of
bark. Rope bridges led out to the sturdier branches where colored lanterns
swung mournfully in the breeze.
Leaves
were already floating to the ground, as if the tree were mourning the elves who
had lived among its branches for so many cycles.
Tungdil
gazed at the fluttering foliage, then tore himself away and searched the rooms.
There was no sign of Gorén or any survivors, but the library had been spared
the worst of the damage and he came upon a sealed envelope addressed to
Lot-Ionan and some objects wrapped in a shawl.
He
picked up the envelope and hesitated. Surely these
are exceptional circumstances by any standard? He broke the seal,
scanned the contents, and sighed. Yet another errand
for me to run! In the letter, Gorén thanked Lot-Ionan for the loan of
some books. The wizard had evidently intended to return them by courier, which
meant Tungdil had landed himself another job.
There
was a second letter, written in scholarly script and therefore indecipherable
to anyone but a high-ranking wizard. He packed it away with the other items
and continued his search.
A
shudder ran through the platform. It started as a slight tremor, but in no time
the planks were shaking violently. The wooden dwelling groaned and creaked
furiously; then the commotion stopped as suddenly as it had begun. The dwarf
took it as a sign that it was time for him to leave.
He
hurried into the corridor and stopped in surprise. The tree was moving, its
leafless branches squeezing and crushing the groaning timber of the house. The
trunk gave a ligneous grunt and swayed to the left. A gnarled bough swung
toward him.
"Hey!
You've got the wrong dwarf! I'm not the one who killed the sapling!"
The
tree took no heed of his protests and swiped at him again. Tungdil ducked, the
cudgel-like branch smashing into the paneled wall behind him. He darted to the
steps, but found himself engulfed in a sea of white. In his confusion he
thought for a moment that it was snowing; then he saw that the haze was made up
of petals that were swirling around the tree. The flowers and trees of the forest
were hurling their blossoms at him, the glade's shattered harmony turning to
violent hatred.
The
house shook again, this time cracking some of the joists and sending debris
crashing to the ground. Tungdil clattered down the steps to safety.
The
twins were no less surprised than he was. Weapons at the ready, they were
eyeing the glade suspiciously.
"It's
nasty elfish magic!" shouted Boïndil above the din of rustling leaves.
"They've turned the trees against us."
"We'd
better get out of here," Tungdil called to them. "The trees mean to
punish anyone who—" He broke off as a Palandiell beech loosed a shower of
withered leaves, exposing the gruesome secret hidden among its naked boughs.
They
had found the elf maiden. Her delicate white visage, previously obscured by a
thick screen of leaves, stood out against the murky bark. From the neck down
she was a skeleton, stripped entirely of flesh but glistening wetly with
crimson blood. Long metal nails pinned her slender limbs to the trunk.
The
sight was too much, even for the otherwise imperturbable twins. "Vraccas
almighty," exclaimed Boëndal, "what kind of mischief is this?"
"That
settles it," his brother decided. "We're leaving before the same
thing happens to us."
"Not
yet," Tungdil told them. "I need to keep looking for Gorén." The
horror exercised a strange attraction on him and he walked on, obliging his
companions to follow. "The wizard's body might be somewhere round here
too."
On
closer inspection, it looked as though the elf maiden's bones had been gnawed.
Her murderers had finished the job by driving a nail through her mouth, pinning
the back of her skull to the bole of the tree. In place of her beautiful elven
eyes were two empty sockets.
"They
pinned her to the tree and ate her alive," said Boïndil. "It's a bit
too fancy for runts. They eat their victims on the spot and suck out their
marrow."
Tungdil
swallowed and took another look. Even in death, the elf's face had retained its
beauty. For all his inborn antipathy toward her and her race, he was sorry she
had ended so gruesomely.
Boëndal
rounded the tree and discovered further corpses as well as a trail of curved
black prints. "They're hoof marks, but they've been burned into the soil.
What do you make of that, scholar?"
Tungdil
remembered the two riders who had parleyed with the orcish war bands on the
night before Goodwater was destroyed. "Shadow mares," he murmured.
"They strike sparks as they walk. The älfar ride them." It explained
why the elf maiden had suffered so cruelly before she died: The älfar took
pleasure in torturing their cousins.
"Älfar?"
Boïndil's eyes flashed with enthusiasm. "It's about time we came up
against something more challenging than those dim-witted orcs! How about it,
brother? I say we blunt our axes on Tion's dark elves!"
Tungdil,
his gaze still riveted on the skeleton, was beset by awful visions of the
mistress of Greenglade writhing and screaming on the tree while shadow mares
ripped the flesh from her bones. The urge to vomit became uncontrollable and he
covered his mouth with his hand, unwilling to forfeit the last shreds of
credibility in front of the twins.
One
corpse, a male body crumpled not far from the tree, excited their particular
attention. A circle of scorched earth bounded the patch of grass where the dead
man was lying, pierced by arrows. By the dwarves' reckoning, seven orcs had
perished in the towering ring of flames.
Tungdil
was as good as certain that magic had been involved. "I think we've found Gorén.
He probably conjured the ring of fire to defend himself."
Hands
trembling, he searched the dead man's pockets and brought out a small metal tin
engraved with Gorén's name.
"He
would have done better with a shield," Boïndil said dryly. "I always
said that magic can't be trusted."
His
brother's gaze was fixed on the rustling trees that were shedding their leaves
furiously in spite of the season. "There's something wrong with this
place," he decided. "If we hang around much longer, those trees will
tear up their roots and attack us. We're leaving."
"What
about Gorén and the others?" objected Tungdil. "Don't you think we
should—"
"What about
them? They're dead," Boïndil said breezily.
"Elves,
elf lovers, and orcs." Boëndal set off at a march. "They needn't
concern us."
As
far as the twins were concerned, the matter was settled, so Tungdil fell in
behind them, hurrying through the ruined village in the direction from which
they had come.
Before
they reached the path, he glanced round to bid the wizard and his mistress a
silent farewell and apologize for leaving them without a proper burial. It was
then that he saw something strange.
An easel, he thought to himself in surprise. In
spite of the surrounding wreckage, it was standing upright, as though the
painter would be back at any moment. Tungdil felt sadder than ever at the
thought of the elf maiden or one of her companions abandoning their work in
terror. The unfinished painting was a silent testimony to the moment in which
the invaders had arrived.
I wonder what she was painting. "Back in a minute!"
he told the others as he clambered over the charred timber, curious to see the
elven artwork.
Boëndal
sighed resignedly, setting his beard aquiver. "We've got our work cut out
with this one."
"You
can say that again," Boïndil said testily, wiping his sweaty brow with the
end of his plait. Muttering under their breath, the secondlings hurried after
their charge.
They
caught up with him in front of the easel. There was something very obviously
wrong with the picture: It showed the settlement in the aftermath of the
attack.
There
was no denying that the artist was incredibly gifted. The scene had been
painted entirely in shades of red, every detail of the destruction reproduced
with chilling precision on the smooth white canvas: corpses, the burned-out
shells of buildings, scorched trees.
Tungdil
peered at the work more closely. There's something
funny about that canvas. He walked to the back of the easel and paled.
The reverse of the painting was a damp, shiny red. He reached out gingerly to
touch it, then whipped his hand away. Skin!
The scene had been painted on skin so flawless that it could only belong to the
mistress of the glade. Tungdil had a nasty feeling that the paint was far from
conventional too. He showed his grisly discovery to the twins.
Two
smaller pictures had been propped up nearby. The first showed the tortured face
of the elf, her eyes dull with pain and fear. The second depicted her crucified
body in all its gory detail. Tungdil knocked them over in disgust.
"It's
still wet," said Boëndal, peering at the easel. "The freak who
painted these pictures could be back at any time."
"So
much the better," growled Boïndil. "We'll see how he likes to be
flayed alive."
"I've
never seen anything so monstrous," said Tungdil. Any admiration he still
felt for the artist's talent was overshadowed by his revulsion at the foulness
of the work. He shouldered the easel and hurled it into the burning embers of
the fire. The two smaller pictures met the same fate.
Silently
they turned to leave the village, but were halted by an aggressive snort. It
was followed by angry neighing and a furious whinny.
A
black steed left the forest and stepped into the clearing twenty paces to their
right. Its eyes gleamed red, and white sparks danced around its fetlocks as its
hooves clipped the ground.
Mounted
on the shadow mare was a female älf, tall and slim with long brown hair. She
was clad in mail of stiff black leather with polished tionium trimmings.
"What
do we have here?" The hilt of her sword was visible above her head and in
her right hand she held a curved bow. A clutch of unusually long arrows of the
kind favored by älfar protruded from a saddlebag. Tungdil needed no reminder of
their murderous force.
"The
stinking groundlings have ruined my pictures, have they? In that case, I'll
need some fresh paint." She sat up in the saddle to get a better look at
the dwarves. With her delicate features and fine countenance she could have
passed for a creature of Palandiell, save for the gaping eye sockets that
proved she was no elf.
"I
hope your blood doesn't clot too fast," she said, reaching with her free
hand for an arrow. "I won't be able to paint the finer details unless it's
nice and fluid."
"I
was beginning to think we'd been cheated of our battle." Boïndil grinned. "Quick,"
he instructed in dwarfish, "make for the ruins or she'll shoot us down
like rabbits."
The
first arrow came singing toward them just as they were ducking behind a timber
wall. It passed through the wood as if it were parchment and struck Boëndal's mail
with a ping. The black tionium cut a gouge in
the metal, causing the dwarf to curse.
Keeping
low, they scurried deeper into the smoldering village, hoping to throw off the
älf, then attack her from behind.
Tungdil
peered around the next corner and spotted the slender nose of the mare. There
was something feline about the way it slunk through the ruins, branding the
ground with its hooves. The earth gave a low hiss as the false unicorn passed
over it, nostrils flaring as it tracked its prey.
Suddenly
the dwarf had a terrifying thought. The mare's saddle was empty. Where's the rider? The älf was at large in the
village. He closed his eyes, trying to forget everything he knew about her
race.
When
he opened them again, Boëndal and Boïndil were gone. He wasn't afraid anymore;
he was panicked.
"Psst,"
he hissed, "where are you?" He tightened his grip on his ax, cursing
the twins for abandoning him in the ruins. First
they tell me I'm no warrior; then they leave me at the mercy of a shadow mare
and an älf!
Someone
touched his arm. Tungdil started and lashed out with his ax. The blade buried
itself just below the man's rib cage. The dwarf stared at him in horror. "Gorén?
I thought you were dead."
The
wizard looked at the wound distractedly and ran his fingers across the gaping
flesh. He fixed his gaze on Tungdil. "Nothing," he moaned softly.
"I feel nothing." He plucked an orcish arrow from his body.
"Nothing," he said again, this time more desperately. He reached for
a wooden beam, locking the dwarf in his empty stare. "All I can feel is
hate..."
"Hang
on, Gorén, I..." Tungdil leaped aside as the wizard brought the beam
crashing toward him. It smashed into a wall.
The
din was enough to alert everyone to their presence. There was a clatter of
hooves and the shadow mare whinnied.
Tungdil
made his escape by crawling under a sunken ceiling. Anything would be better
than being discovered by the mare.
"Nothing..."
Gorén straightened up and swayed drunkenly out of the ruined building, dragging
the beam behind him.
The shadow
mare leaped toward him, trampling him to the ground. Tungdil watched as its
forelegs crushed the wizard's abdomen in an explosion of sparks. To the dwarf's
horror, Gorén rolled over and picked himself up.
The
truth hit him in a flash: Greenglade had fallen to the Perished Land. Any who die here will rise again as revenants! The
forest wasn't grieving for the elf maiden; the canker had spread into the soil,
poisoning the tree roots and filling the trunks and branches with malice.
But
that's impossible! Unless...Tungdil realized with horrible certainty that the
girdle had failed. I can't go to Ogre's Death without warning
Lot-Ionan that the shield has been breached. If the Perished Land has
encroached this far, it might be advancing on other fronts as well.
But
first he faced the immediate problem of leaving the glade alive, and the odds
were stacked against him.
The
shadow mare had picked up his scent and was heading his way. Its hooves struck
Tungdil's hiding place and the timber erupted, crackling with light. The steed
was intent on driving the dwarf into the open.
Tungdil
had no choice. He rolled out, hoping to throw himself under the nearest piece
of debris, but the shadow mare was faster.
In a
single powerful leap, it soared over the wreckage and landed beside him, its
head shooting forward to seize Tungdil's right shoulder in its jaws. The
dwarf's chain mail saved him from its sharp teeth, but the pressure was
excruciating.
"Get
your filthy teeth off me!" Tungdil's fighting spirit came to the fore, and
he forgot his terror, swinging his ax at the steed.
But
the shadow mare had no intention of relinquishing its quarry. Jerking its head,
it shook Tungdil back and forth like a doll. Without warning, its jaws flew
open and he sailed through the air, landing on the ashen grass with a thud. The
shadow mare whinnied, carving deep furrows as it pawed the ground. Tungdil was
still coming to his senses when it thundered toward him.
The
twins sprang into action. As the mare drew level with them, they burst out of
their hiding places on either side of its path.
"Here,
horsey, horsey," shouted Boïndil, driving an ax with both hands into the
steed's right knee. Boëndal's crow's beak carved into its left foreleg.
The
black beast staggered and fell, tumbling along the ground in a pother of ash.
In spite of its obvious agony, it tried to drag itself up again, but the
dwarves rushed in.
"You're
not a horse anymore, you're a pony," Boïndil yelled at it. "How do
you fancy fighting eye to eye?" The shadow mare lunged at him and was
rewarded with an ax blow to the jaw. "Try sinking your teeth into
that!" The mare jerked away, thereby sealing its fate.
Boëndal
embedded his beaked war hammer into its long bony nose and hauled the beast in.
Not for nothing was Hookhand his second name. Triceps bulging and heels digging
into the ground, he dragged the mare closer so that his brother could sink an
ax into its neck.
"So
you want to bite me, you worthless bunch of bones," cried Boïndil, hefting
his ax to strike again. The blade severed the shadow mare's spinal cord and it
slumped to the ground.
Boëndal
put one foot on the steed's nose and levered the crow's beak out of the corpse.
His
brother grinned at him. "Now for the pointy-eared rider!" He signaled
to Tungdil to stay hidden. "Make yourself scarce, scholar, and watch how
it's done!"
They
crouched next to the mare's fallen body and waited. Tungdil started to tell
them about his encounter with the revenant, but they waved him away. All that
mattered for the moment was dispatching the älf.
Before
long an unnatural scream, more drawn out and high-pitched than the voice of any
human female, rent the air.
Waggling
his eyebrows in gleeful anticipation, Boïndil straightened his plait and
steeled himself for combat. "Music to my ears."
Boëndal
listened intently, then leaped to his feet. His brother followed.
I should be out there helping, not watching like a coward.
Tungdil felt compelled to do something, even if only to act as a decoy.
Sighing, he was about to emerge from his hiding place when two skeletal hands
grabbed him from behind and thrust him to the ground.
"Who
are you?" a musical voice demanded. Damp, foul-smelling bones fingered his
face. "A small man or maybe a groundling..."
The
dwarf was rolled onto his back and found himself looking into the tortured face
of the once-beautiful elf. She too had become a revenant. Robbed of her eyes by
the älfar, she had torn herself from the trunk of the beech and was groping
blindly through the ruins.
"Let
go of me!" shrieked Tungdil, reaching for his ax. His arms were clamped so
tightly that he went for his dagger instead. The blade clunked harmlessly
against her rib cage.
"Who
gave a dwarf permission to enter my glade?" she demanded imperiously. A
bony hand tightened around his throat. "Are you in league with the älfar?
Do you hate us enough to ally yourselves with these monsters?"
Tungdil
fought back his fear and realized that there was something different about her
tone of voice. Unlike the wizard, she seemed to be in possession of her will.
"Listen to me, my lady," he pleaded. "Lot-Ionan sent me here to
return some items belonging to Gorén."
She
turned her fathomless gaze on him. "I'm changing," she whispered
fearfully. "Something's happening to me. They killed me, but my soul... my
soul..." She trailed off. "You say Lot-Ionan sent you? My beloved Gorén
thought highly of his magus." She released her murderous grip.
"You'll find a book in the house; it's in the library. Gorén was going to
send it to your master, but then the älfar attacked and—"
"I've got it
already," he broke in excitedly.
"Don't
let them have it!" she instructed. "Take it to Ionandar and give it
to the magus; he'll know what to do as soon as he reads the letter." Her
skeletal fingers clutched at him again. "Swear you'll do it!"
Tungdil
stammered out a solemn oath, swearing first by Vraccas and then by the magus.
The elf seemed satisfied and backed away.
"Now
behead me," she said softly. "I can't allow the Perished Land to
steal the little I have left." She stretched out her bony arms. "Do
you see what they've done to me? Without your help, I'll be yoked to their evil
forever, a blind servant of destruction."
There
was something almost mesmerizing about the two dark pits in her face. Tungdil
hesitated. "But I—"
"Everything
I loved has been taken from me: Gorén, my beauty, my home, my glade." She
raised her left hand and poked a finger gingerly into her empty eye sockets.
"Look, even tears are denied me. Have pity on me."
Her
face and voice spoke so eloquently of her sorrow that Tungdil had no option but
to comply. He rose to his feet, took a few shaky steps toward her, and swung
his ax. As the elf's head rolled through the debris, her skeletal body slumped
to the ground. The lady of the glade was dead.
The
trees around them gave a piteous groan, the crackling and rustling mingling
with the sounds of a raging battle. Tungdil remembered with a start that the
twins were locked in combat with the älf.
They
still don't realize! he thought in alarm, quickly pulling himself together.
If we don't decapitate the corpses, they'll rise up and attack us.
Meanwhile,
Boëndal and Boïndil had discovered that their opponent had no intention of
playing by their rules. The älf was nimble as a cat, ducking, skipping, and
leaping to evade their blows. But for all her agility she had yet to penetrate
the dwarves' heavy mail.
"Over
here!" Tungdil lunged forward and hurled his ax. The älf spotted the
missile just in time and stepped aside briskly.
Suddenly
Gorén loomed up behind her, swinging a plank. She heard the wood whistling
toward her, but it was too late to move.
The
plank connected with her back, catapulting her forward. With a cackle of
frenzied laughter, Boïndil rushed up and took aim at her thinly armored thighs.
"Fight on my level, no-eyes!"
The
axes sliced deep into her flesh and the älf shrieked in agony, only to be
winded by Boëndal, who rammed the butt of his crow's beak into her belly.
Before she could make another sound, Boïndil raised his blades and hewed her
neck.
"What
did you do that for?" he asked the wizard indignantly. "Couldn't you
see we almost had her?" Puzzled, he stared as Gorén staggered toward him.
"Hang on, shouldn't he be dead?"
"He
won't die unless you behead him!" Tungdil called out to him. "This is
the Perished Land. You've got to chop his head off!"
"Well,
if you insist..." Boïndil dodged the wizard's clumsy attempts to fell him
and sliced off his head with a single strike of his ax. Gorén was no more.
"Seeing
as we're here, we should probably take care of the rest," said Boëndal,
nodding in the direction of the ruins.
Brought
back to life by the dark power, the charred corpses of the orcs and the elves
were beginning to stir. The Perished Land made no distinction between its own
soldiers and those who had died at their hands, so the twins were obliged to
execute their task with utmost rigor, fighting and beheading every single
revenant in order to deliver them from their fate. Tungdil chose to watch.
"They
could have tried a bit harder," complained Boïndil when the gory business
was over at last. "At least it's out of my system, though." Sure
enough, the glint in his eyes was slowly fading. "Shall we go?"
They
set off on a southerly bearing, quickly leaving the ravaged village behind
them.
Perhaps
the trees wanted to do a last favor to those who had slain one of the
despoilers of the peaceful glade, but in any event they made no attempt to
block their path. Creaking and groaning, the leafless boles and boughs swayed
menacingly, stooping low and swinging above their heads, but allowing them to
pass.
The
only other sound was the crackling of dry leaves beneath their boots. They saw
no sign of the forest's many animals; even the birds were too afraid to sing.
"There's
been a change of plan," Tungdil informed the twins, recounting his promise
to the elf. "Ionandar is far enough west to be safe from the Perished Land
and Toboribor's orcs. We need to tell Lot-Ionan about Greenglade and give him
the books. The elf maiden seemed to think at least one was important."
"But
we won't get back to Ogre's Death for ages!" objected Boëndal. "We're
late enough as it is, without walking an extra six hundred miles."
"I'm
afraid there's no choice," Tungdil said firmly. "It's either that or
ask to see the council in Lios Nudin."
"That's
the spirit," chuckled Boïndil. "Cussed as a dwarf!"
Boëndal
relented. "All right, we'll go to Lios Nudin. The high king has seen so
many cycles that he won't begrudge us the odd orbit here or there. Vraccas will
keep his fires burning." He took a sip from his water pouch.
His
brother turned the conversation to Tungdil's fighting prowess. "You didn't
do too badly, considering you haven't been taught," he commended him.
"But there's one thing you need to remember: Never throw your ax unless
you've got another one in reserve. Of course your technique needs a bit of
working on, but I'll soon have you fighting like a proper dwarf. Mark my words,
Tungdil: The runts will be as scared of you as they are of me."
Tungdil
could see the sense in being tutored by Boïndil. "The sooner we get
started, the better." He nodded.
They
walked until the light faded and they were obliged to stop and rest. After a
while Boëndal launched into a dwarven ballad about the age-old feud between
their kinsfolk and the elves. When he saw the look of dismay on Tungdil's face,
he trailed off into silence: The last thing they needed was a song about
destruction and death.
"What do you
know about my folk?" Tungdil asked.
"The
fourth lings?" Boëndal scratched his beard and unpacked a wedge of cheese
to melt above the fire. "Goïmdil’s folk are made up of twelve clans and
they tend to be shorter, scrawnier, and weaker than the rest of us—typical gem
cutters and diamond polishers, I suppose." He looked Tungdil up and down
and nodded. "I've never heard of any fourthling scholars, but in terms of
your build...Actually, you're a bit too big. Your shoulders are too
broad." He thought for a moment. "I'm not trying to offend you, you
know," he said simply. "Vraccas made us just the way we are."
"What
else do you know?" persisted Tungdil, who found the answer too vague to be
revealing.
The brothers
looked at each other and shrugged.
"You'd
best see for yourself once we get there. It's been hundreds of cycles since the
folks had anything to do with each other," Boëndal explained. "I'll
tell you what, though: We may not know much about Goïmdil’s dwarves, but you
can ask us anything about the secondlings. Our seventeen clans boast the finest
masons in all the dwarven kingdoms, and the mightiest human stronghold isn't a
patch on Ogre's Death. It'll take your breath away, you'll see."
Boëndal
talked and talked, waxing lyrical about the fortifications and ornaments that
were the envy of the other folks, while Tungdil listened contentedly, eagerly
anticipating the moment when he would see his kinsfolk's architecture for
himself.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin, Girdlegard,
Summer, 6234th
Solar Cycle
The orbits wore on as the three dwarves
journeyed to Porista to request an audience with the council.
At Boïndil's
insistence, they had taken the precaution of walking through the undergrowth
parallel to the road, but by the fourth orbit they were tired of scratching
themselves on branches, finding thorns in their chain mail, and avoiding twigs
that seemed determined to poke Tungdil in the nose or eye. They rejoined the
dusty road, keeping an eye out for other travelers.
Tungdil
still bore the scars of his recent ordeals. His sleep was haunted by nightmares
and on stopping to fill his pouch from a stream, he noticed that the reflection
looking back at him was older, more weathered, and more serious than before.
The horrors he had witnessed were inscribed on his face.
Determined
not to fall victim to the orcs, Tungdil applied himself to his daily training
sessions with Boïndil. He was a fast learner—uncannily fast, his tutor said.
While the two of them practiced fighting, parrying, and feinting, Boëndal sat
and watched them, smoking his pipe and keeping his thoughts to himself.
From
time to time they came upon wayfarers or a settlement and Tungdil was always
sure to mention Greenglade and warn anyone from venturing too close to the
Perished Land.
The
long line of carts rolling into Lios Nudin reinforced his advice. With war
bands of orcs terrorizing Gauragar, people preferred to trust Nudin the
Knowledge-Lusty rather than rely on King Bruron to protect them.
It
was midafternoon when Tungdil fell back a few paces. Guessing that he wanted to
answer a call of nature, the twins walked ahead.
When
Tungdil set off again, feeling much relieved, he came to a junction, only to
find that Boëndal and Boïndil were nowhere to be seen. A signpost pointed east
to Porista, so he set off at a jog.
A
short distance along the road was a wooden caravan, its sides painted gaily
with pictures of scissors, knives, axes, and other implements. The horses had
been unhitched and the driver had abandoned his vehicle in a hurry.
"Hello?"
The rear door was ajar, allowing Tungdil to peer into the darkness within.
There was something odd about the situation. "Is everything all right in
there?"
He
drew his ax, just in case. If runts had ambushed the caravan, they might be
hiding nearby. Where are Boëndal and Boïndil when I
need them?
"Hello?"
he called again, climbing the two narrow wooden rungs that led up to the door.
He pushed it open with the poll of his ax and glanced around the little
workshop. Drawers had been turned out, cupboards pulled open, and in the far
corner a pair of shoes poked out from under a cabinet.
He
stepped inside. "Hello in there! Is something the matter?" The smell
of metal was mixed with a sweeter, almost sickly, odor. Blood. Tungdil had seen enough to suspect that the
wearer of the shoes was no longer among the living. I knew it! There could be only one explanation for
the string of calamities unfurling around him: His journey was cursed.
Hooking
his ax on his belt, he bent down and gave the feet a shake. "Are you
injured?" On receiving no response, he lifted the cabinet to free whoever
was trapped underneath. It was a dwarf, or rather, the body of a dwarf. His
throat had been cut and his head was missing. A ring of crimson gore encircled
his neck, indicating that he hadn't been dead for long.
"What
in the name of Vraccas is going on?" Tungdil was so perturbed by the sight
of the dead dwarf that he let go of the cabinet, dropping it onto the corpse.
As he stepped away, he tried to think logically. The poor victim was obviously
an itinerant dwarf whose smithy had been ransacked by highwaymen. His death
was an unfortunate consequence of the dreadful human greed for precious metals
and coin.
No one deserves to be left like that. Tungdil
grabbed the feet again and was dragging the corpse from beneath the cabinet
when something clattered to the floor.
On
closer inspection, the object turned out to be a blood-encrusted dagger, and
although there wasn't much light inside the caravan, he was sure he had seen it
before: It belonged to the brigand whose horse he had shod several weeks
earlier.
Just
then he heard the clip-clop of hooves.
Peering warily out of the narrow window, he uttered a strong dwarven oath. Five
armed bandits had come to a halt beside the caravan. He flattened himself
against the wall and hid behind the door: Concealment was his only hope of
survival against a band of seasoned warriors. Unlike Boëndal and Boïndil, he
wasn't ready to fight five against one.
Heavy
footsteps approached, the ladder groaned, the caravan wobbled, and a shadow
blotted out the sunlight falling through the door.
Tungdil gripped
his ax with both hands.
A man
entered, mumbling indistinctly, and knelt beside the corpse. "Someone's
been in," he called to the others. "He wasn't lying like this
before." He scrabbled around for his knife. "Don't let anyone near
the caravan, and hide the darned honey pot," he ordered. "The last
thing we need is for people to ask what we're doing with the head of an ugly
groundling."
"Stands
to reason what we're doing. Earning our money like everyone else," said
one of the company, laughing coarsely.
"No
need to shout about it," snapped the murderer. "The little fellows
are hard enough to get hold of, without every last Tom, Dick, or Harry
competing for the loot. Ah, here it is!" He picked up the dagger, wiped
the blade on the corpse's jerkin, and returned it to its sheath.
Straightening
up, he stood for a moment in the light of the window, his mail reflecting the
sun. A beam hit Tungdil's blade and rebounded. "What in the..." The
murderer whirled round.
Tungdil
had to act while the element of surprise was with him. Rushing forward, he drove
his ax into the man's boots, cutting through the leather and cleaving the bone.
In his panic he struck with such force that the blade embedded itself in the
wooden floor. It took all his strength to pull it out.
The
brigand bellowed in pain. If his companions hadn't noticed the commotion, they
were certainly aware of it now.
"It's
no worse than you deserve!" Tungdil grabbed his ax and fled. Whooping and
yelling to spook the horses, he leaped out onto the road.
The
panicked animals shied away, unseating their riders, who had dropped their
stirrups and were preparing to dismount.
Tungdil
didn't wait for them to recover, heading instead for the dense forest to the
right of the highway. He knew there was no room between the trunks for the men
to pursue him on horseback and the undergrowth would slow their progress if
they chased him on foot. For once his diminutive stature was an advantage.
Besides, daylight faded quickly beneath the thick canopy of leaves and his eyes
were accustomed to seeing in the dark.
"Catch
the dwarfish bastard," the company's leader commanded. "We'll get a
fortune for his head."
Tungdil
tore through the forest, stopping occasionally to listen. Loud curses and
snapping branches informed him of the brigands' dogged pursuit, but the gap between
them was growing. After a time, their heavy footsteps faded entirely, and he
knew that he had given them the slip.
Leaning
back against a tree trunk, he stopped to recover his breath. No amount of
marching could have prepared him for sprinting through a forest, laden with
bags. He made a quick check of his things; the pouch with Gorén's artifacts was
still slung from his shoulder, rattling and jangling as soon as he moved. The
bag had been making strange noises ever since his misadventure with the orc.
Still
listening attentively for his pursuers, he took a sip of water. The brigands are hunting dwarves for a reward. He
could scarcely believe it. Of all the terrible things that had happened, this
new revelation shocked him to the core. Putting gold on dwarven lives ran
counter to the laws of Girdlegard and it was hard to see the sense of it: What
would anyone want with a disembodied head?
As
soon as he had recovered sufficiently he made a beeline through the forest
toward the nearest path. To his astonishment, Boëndal and Boïndil were coming
the other way.
"About
time too!" Boïndil called out to him. "You went the wrong way!"
"I
went the right way," Tungdil corrected
him. "You missed the turn to Porista!"
Boëndal
took a closer look at him. "What happened, scholar? Did you run into
trouble?"
"Just
my luck to miss all the excitement," his brother grumbled moodily. Then he
laughed. "I know, I bet a squirrel was after his n—"
"Headhunters,"
Tungdil cut him off. "They're decapitating dwarves in return for a
reward."
"What?"
screeched Boïndil, eyes rolling wildly. His voluminous beard billowed.
"Where are they?"
"I
don't know," Tungdil told him, "and to be perfectly honest, I'm just
glad they've stopped chasing me."
They stopped in a
clearing to decide what to do.
"Did they
say who was paying them?" Boëndal asked.
"No,
but I've seen them once before. They didn't lay a finger on me at the time—too
many other people nearby, I suppose." Given half
a chance, they would have killed me, he realized with a shudder.
"Sounds
like the thirdlings are up to their tricks again. They're probably paying the
bounty hunters to wipe out the rest of the dwarven race, or it could be a ploy
to turn us against the long-uns so we end up feuding with them as well as the
elves." Boëndal looked at his companions. "There'll be plenty to talk
about when we get back to Ogre's Death."
They
unpacked their blankets and spent the night under a dense roof of leaves. It
seemed prudent to do without a fire: It was dark enough for the flames to be
seen for miles around and the mere snapping of a twig seemed alarmingly noisy
in the stillness. Tungdil snuggled down and put his hands behind his head, only
to sit up abruptly and pluck a beetle from his thick shock of hair. "It's
strange," he mused out loud, "but the two of you must have left
Ogre's Death at roughly the same time as the headhunting began."
Boïndil,
who had coiled his long plait into a pillow, frowned. "You mean it's
nothing to do with the thirdlings? You think they were after us?"
His
brother shook his head. "That hardly seems likely, Boïndil. No, our
scholar thinks they were after him. Am I right?"
Tungdil
sighed. "I'm probably making too much of it, but didn't you say I had a
rival for the throne?"
Boëndal
saw what he was getting at. "Gandogar Silverbeard would never do a thing
like that," he said firmly. "He's an upstanding dwarf!"
"I
don't know what you're getting so offended about," his brother said
reproachfully. "He isn't even a secondling."
"No,
but he's a dwarf, an honorable dwarf with some funny ideas." He thought
for a moment. "Besides, Gundrabur didn't tell anyone about Tungdil until
after we'd left. No," he insisted, "the headhunting is another nasty
thirdling ploy. It's bad enough that one of our folks has turned against us,
but we can't start suspecting Gandogar. Our race will be doomed if we can't
trust one another; it mustn't be true, it can't be."
They
lay in silence, pondering the matter uneasily until they fell asleep.
Tungdil's
dreams were filled with all kinds of unsettling nonsense. Hordes of orcs and älfar
were pursuing him with shaving soap and razors, determined to cut off his
burgeoning beard. In the end they caught him, held him down, and shaved his
face; it was humiliating and infuriating to be lying on the ground with cheeks
as naked as a baby.
The
thought of it jolted him from his restless sleep and he got up, ate some of his
provisions, and offered a fervent prayer to Vraccas, asking for protection from
bounty hunters and safe completion of his mission.
You're not making it easy for me, Vraccas.
Tungdil longed to be back in Ionandar's vaults with Frala, Sunja, and Ikana;
even the prospect of seeing Jolosin no longer seemed so bad.
The long journey made friends of the trio and Boïndil
devoted every spare moment to instructing Tungdil in the art of combat.
"So
tell me, scholar," Boëndal said softly one evening when his brother was
snoozing by the fire, "what do you make of the first dwarves you've ever
been acquainted with?"
Tungdil grinned.
"Do you want my honest opinion?"
"Of
course."
"Boïndil
has the fierier temper. His fists move faster than his thoughts and he
generally acts on impulse, although once he decides himself on something, no
one will convince him otherwise."
"I didn't
need a scholar to tell me that. Go on!"
"He
hates orcs and elves with a vengeance and his life is devoted to warfare. He
fights with uncommon zeal."
"You
know my brother well." His twin laughed. "Just don't let him hear you
say so! And what of me?" he inquired eagerly, passing him a pipe.
"You
have a gentler temperament. Your mind is sharper and you're willing to listen
to other people's ideas." Tungdil drew on the pipe. "Your brown eyes
are friendly, whereas your brother's... I can't describe the look in his
eyes."
Boëndal clapped his
hands softly. "True, all true."
"Why did the
two of you become warriors?"
"Neither
of us has any talent for masonry, so we decided to join the guard. The
secondlings are custodians of the High Pass, the steep-sided gorge through the
Blue Range. At ground level, the pass is fifty paces wide, but its walls are
over a thousand paces high, and the sides slope inward after eight hundred
paces, leaving the path in shadow except for a short span of time when the sun
is directly above."
"Sounds
pretty gloomy to me."
"Throughout
our history a handful of custodians have defended our kingdom against invaders,
no matter how powerful their ranks."
"Don't
you have a portal like the fifthlings' Stone Gateway?"
"No,
our forefathers cut a trench in the path, forty paces long and a hundred paces
deep. On our side of the trench they built a rampart with a mechanical bridge.
The engineers worked on the design for almost as long as it took for the masons
to hew the trench." Boëndal paused, recalling the genius of the engineering.
"They made a collapsible walkway from thin slabs of stone. It's incredibly
light but can bear any load. At full extension, it rests on columns that rise
up at the pull of a lever from the base of the trench, but the bridge can be
retracted instantly by means of chains, cogs, and ropes."
Tungdil
was lost for words. "That's...I've never heard anything like it! But what
happens when orcs or ogres force their way onto the bridge?"
"We
send them crashing into the trench. Tion's creatures are forever littering the
fosse with their bones." He laughed softly. "One lot were so
determined that they catapulted each other to the opposite side. Most died on
impact; the others felt the fury of our axes."
Tungdil
joined in his mirth. "If I were trying to cross over," he said
thoughtfully, "I'd fill in the fosse or climb down and up the other
side."
"They
thought of that too, but they didn't stand a chance.
There was only one
occasion when our folk came close to going the same way as poor Giselbert's
dwarves." Like every secondling, Boëndal knew this episode of his
kingdom's history by heart. "An army of ogres had the same idea as you. On
reaching the trench, they didn't even try to find a way of bridging it; they
just climbed down carefully, waded through the bones of their ancestors, and
appeared before us in their hundreds."
"But the
secondlings managed to stop them?"
"Why
do you think it's called Ogre's Death?" Boïndil chimed in chippily.
"Can't you keep the noise down when I'm trying to get some sleep?" He
rolled closer and gazed into the fire. "I'm wide-awake now, thanks to
you!"
He
fetched some cheese from his pack and melted it over the flames. This time
Tungdil accepted a morsel. It didn't taste nearly as bad as he'd thought.
Boëndal
resumed his story. "The ogres had got as far as storming the ramparts when
their chieftain was killed. That was our salvation. Without their leader, the
ogres didn't know what to do and our warriors succeeded in pushing them back to
the edge of the trench. They fell to their deaths. But that was a long time
ago, when Boïndil and I were still in nappies. There hasn't been a single
attack on the High Pass for at least thirty cycles."
"No
wonder." His twin guffawed. "The beasts are too scared of us.
Actually, the High Pass has been so quiet lately that Gundrabur decided to send
us in search of you." He looked across the fire at Tungdil and his brown
eyes glinted. "You were right, of course. I was born to fight. Combat is
my calling; it's who I am."
"And
I go where he goes. Twins belong together; find one and you'll find both. It's
just the way it is."
"Does
every dwarf have a calling, then?" asked Tungdil, wondering what his might
be. "Do you think I'll be a stone hauler or a trench digger, or will I be
an artisan with a proper talent?"
"Most
fourthlings are gem cutters and diamond polishers. Maybe trinkets are your
thing?"
Tungdil
had never taken much of an interest in precious stones. Lot-Ionan possessed a
few items of jewelry and Tungdil had enjoyed looking at the sapphires, rubies,
diamonds, and amethysts because of the way in which they caught the light. He
had never felt the slightest urge to craft a sparkling jewel from uncut stone,
though.
"I
don't think so." There was a hint of disappointment in Tungdil's voice.
"For as long as I can remember, I've been drawn to the forge. The smell of
molten iron, tongues of fire that writhe like living things, the ring of the
hammer, the hiss of hot metal as it enters the water—ever since I saw my first
anvil, that's what being a dwarf has meant for me."
"You'll
be a smith, then," Boïndil said approvingly. "A scholarly smith. Very
dwarflike."
Tungdil
shuffled closer to the fire and tried to divine the secrets of his inner self.
He pictured mountains of diamonds and then a column of dancing orange sparks
rising from a furnace. He felt more affinity with the furnace. Gold appealed
to him too, though; he loved its soft warm shimmer.
"I
like gold as well, you know," he confessed in a whisper. "I pick up
any lost gold I can find—gold pieces, gold jewelry, gold dust dropped by
prospectors. I collect it all."
The
brothers roared with laughter. "He's got himself his own private hoard! If
that isn't properly dwarven, I don't know what is. You'll be a warrior
soon," Boïndil promised him, reaching for the pipe.
"I
don't know," Tungdil said doubtfully. "The way you and Boëndal can
fight and win against the odds. I'll never—"
"There's
no such thing as having the odds against you," Boïndil broke in.
"Some challenges are bigger than others; that's all there is to it."
"All
the same, I feel safer at the anvil; a forge is where I belong." Tungdil
decided not to dwell on the matter, so he opened his knapsack and pulled out Gorén's
books. The brothers watched as he slid the volumes out of their wax covering
and examined them carefully.
"Well,
what do they say, scholar?" Boïndil demanded impatiently. "Maybe
that's your calling, to be a learned scribe or an engineer. The dwarves are
renowned for being prodigious inventors."
"I
can't make head or tail of them." To his immense disappointment, even the
wording on the spine was written in scholarly script. "They were written
for magi." In some ways it was surprising that Gorén, an ordinary wizard,
had been able to read them at all.
Tungdil
tapped his forehead and scolded himself for being so slow. He had forgotten
that the elf maiden would have been familiar with the workings of high magic. She must have helped Gorén unlock the secrets of the
books.
He stroked the
leather binding of the books. Why are their contents so important
to the älfar? Since when have the elves' dark relatives been afraid of
parchment and ink?
"We'll
find out soon enough from Lot-Ionan," he said, trying to rally their
spirits. He was just returning the books to their wrapping when his gaze fell
on the bag of artifacts. It had suffered visibly from the journey. In spite of
the hard-wearing leather, the pouch was bleached from the sun and scuffed in
several places, and there were sweat marks and grease stains where it had come
into contact with his food. A faint line stretched across its surface like a
scar, an eternal reminder of its run-in with the orcish sword.
The
longer Tungdil looked at the pouch, the more he desired to look inside. He had
been fighting the urge to undo the colored drawstrings for some time.
What
harm is there in looking? Surely I've got the right to know what I've been
lugging about all this time. Besides, Gorén is dead. Tungdil's
self-control failed him.
Trying
to look nonchalant, he reached for the pouch. He didn't want the others to know
that the magus had forbidden him to look inside. He untied the knot and the
drawstrings came open.
At
that moment an ear-splitting, bone-shattering bang rent the air. A volley of
sparks shot upward and exploded in a blast of color.
"By
the hammer of Vraccas and his fiery furnace!" Leaping to their feet, the
twins stood back-to-back, weapons at the ready.
Tungdil
swore and tugged at the drawstrings, but the fireworks continued until he tied
the knot exactly as it had been before. Lot-Ionan had booby-trapped the bag. He
must have reckoned with his inquisitive nature and decided to teach him a
lesson.
"What
in all the peaks of Girdlegard was that?" Boëndal asked peevishly.
"Not some magical nonsense, I hope."
"I
just wanted to see...Well, I wanted to see if the booby trap worked,"
fibbed Tungdil, trying to breathe evenly. He was every bit as startled as the
twins. "The magus put it there to, er, he put it there to stop the bag
from being stolen!"
"All
that noise from a little leather pouch?" Boïndil stared incredulously at
the bag. "I still don't see what the fireworks are in aid of, unless the
magus wanted whoever stole it to earn a fortune as a street magician."
"It's
so I'll know where it is and be able to get it back," Tungdil told him,
inventing an explanation that was rather more flattering than the truth. He
didn't want them to know that his nosiness was to blame.
"If
he didn't want it stolen, why didn't he put a proper spell on it?" growled
Boïndil. He spat contemptuously in the bushes. "I always said that the
long-uns' magic was no good."
His
brother joined in. "He could have conjured a hammer to whack the villain
on the head!" he suggested.
"Or
a drawstring that crushes his wrists! That would teach the blackguard to keep
his hands off other people's belongings."
Boëndal
sat back down. "The magi work in mysterious ways. All that power and no
common sense."
Tungdil
swallowed, thankful that his punishment had been mild by comparison. "I'll
pass on your ideas," he promised.
"We'll tell
him ourselves!"
"No,"
he said quickly. "It would be best if you didn't. He doesn't take kindly
to anyone interfering in his business, especially if they're strangers."
He could feel his cheeks burning as he spoke, but luckily for him, the twins
were busy poking about in the fire, trying to retrieve a portion of cheese that
had been dropped in the confusion.
"A
stunt like that could have been the death of us in Greenglade," muttered Boïndil.
He looked at Tungdil sternly. "Leave the bag alone in the future!"
Sighing, he impaled the morsel on a stick, dunked it briefly in some water to
wash away the ash, and popped it into his mouth. "No harm done," he
said.
But Tungdil had taken the lesson to heart. From now on I won't touch the bag except to sling it over my shoulder and take it off at night. For all he cared, it could be stuffed full of gold; nothing could persuade him to open the drawstrings.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin,
Girdlegard,
Summer, 6234th Solar Cycle
Rantja scanned the crowd. Assembled in
the atrium were 180 trainee wizards, the best famuli in Girdlegard, all waiting
to be welcomed by Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty. At the behest of their respective
magi, they had journeyed to Porista to lend their magical power to the crusade
against the Perished Land. The high-ceilinged room echoed with their expectant
chatter.
"The
girdle must be in trouble if lowly apprentices like us are being summoned to
keep out Tion's hordes," said a voice in her ear. "You look prettier
than ever, Rantja."
"Jolosin!"
she exclaimed in delight, shaking his outstretched hand. It was then that she
noticed his navy blue robe. "Oh my, you're a fourth-tier famulus already.
How long did you have to pester Lot-Ionan before he caved in?"
"Only
thirty-two cycles old and already in Nudin's fifth tier! I'm impressed,"
teased the dark-haired famulus admiringly. "How are you?"
"Fine."
She smiled, then said soberly, "At least I was
fine until I heard about the threat to Girdlegard." She pointed to the
cuts on his fingers. "What happened there?"
"Don't
ask," he muttered gloomily. "But between you and me, I'm working on a
spell to make potatoes peel themselves. It's a relief to be out of the kitchen
and doing something useful." He glanced around. "Have you seen the
council?"
"No.
Even my magus has disappeared," Rantja said anxiously. "What do you
make of it?"
"All
I know is that the rituals require their full attention, so they might not be
able to brief us until later," he said uneasily. He took a leather pouch
from his shoulder and tightened the green drawstrings. "Has it ever been
this bad before?"
Rantja shook her
head.
The
doors swung open, and Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty stepped into the room. He was
swaying slightly and his face looked drawn and tired.
"Welcome
to Porista," he greeted them, his voice cracking as he spoke. To some of
the famuli it sounded as if two people, a man and a woman, were talking at
once. "These are dark times for our realms. Come this way and see for
yourselves what the Perished Land has done." The magus turned toward the conference
chamber, motioning the apprentices to follow.
"Are
you sure he's not wearing heels?" Jolosin whispered, surprised. "He's
bigger than when I last saw him—and fifty pounds heavier at least."
"I know.
Everyone keeps saying he looks taller."
"Much taller, not to mention fatter. But men
of his age aren't supposed to grow. A botched experiment, perhaps?"
They
were less than a pace behind him now, and a sweet, almost putrid odor filled
their noses. Jolosin put it down to moldering aftershave, but the magus seemed
oblivious to the smell.
Just
then Rantja skidded across the flagstones and would have fallen, if Jolosin
hadn't reached out and caught her in time. "Thanks," she said,
straightening up and hurrying on, propelled by the famuli behind them. The incident
was over too quickly for anyone to notice the long crimson streak on the floor.
The magus was leaking blood.
Nudin
walked briskly, striking his staff against the marble at regular intervals and
leading them through a maze of arcades and corridors until they reached a
double door. His onyx-tipped staff glistened darkly as he raised his left hand.
"Steel
yourselves," he warned them, and recited the incantation to open the
doors.
Even
before the doors were fully open, a fetid smell wafted out of the room, causing
the famuli at the front of the queue to cover their faces. Rantja swayed and
clutched at Jolosin, who steadied her bravely while he tried not to retch.
The
magus was apparently unaffected by the stench. "See for yourselves why
Girdlegard needs your help!" Hesitantly, the famuli entered the chamber.
There
were cries of distress as the shocked apprentices surveyed the remains of
their tutors: a statue, a heap of clothing, a rotting corpse, and in the case
of Andôkai, a body so mutilated that its features were no longer recognizable.
"Palandiell
have mercy on us," gasped Jolosin, staring in horror at Lot-Ionan's marble
face. He would never have wished such a dreadful fate on his magus, no matter
how many potatoes the wizard had forced him to peel. "Girdlegard is
finished," he muttered despairingly, depositing the leather bag at the
foot of the statue. Lot-Ionan had specifically asked him to bring it, and now
he was dead. "If the council could do nothing, what hope is there
for—"
He
was silenced by the sound of a staff striking the floor. A hush descended on
the chamber as everyone turned to face Nudin.
"We
underestimated the power of the Perished Land," he said shakily. "It
waited for us to channel the magic into the malachite, and then it attacked.
The table was destroyed and I myself was almost killed. My good friends
here"—he waved his staff in the direction of the fallen magi, whose
rotting remains and frozen corpses reflected nothing of their former power—
"were unlucky. As their most senior famuli, you are the highest-ranking
wizards in Girdlegard." He stopped to cough up a mouthful of blood and
staggered backward, leaning against the fossilized Lot-Ionan for support.
"The attack has taken its toll on me, as you can see. It is our duty to
repair the table as quickly as we can, for only then will we be able to repel
the Perished Land. The survival of humankind depends on our success; ordinary
armies will be helpless against the pestilence."
The
famuli looked at one another bleakly, shaken to the core by Nudin's sobering
words and the sight of their dead mentors.
"They
were so powerful, but the Perished Land subdued them," whispered Jolosin
despondently. "How are we supposed to—"
"We
should give them a proper burial," Rantja said distractedly. "We
can't just leave them here." She was trembling.
"Girdlegard
is relying on you to be strong," Nudin exhorted them. "If you don't
act now, we'll lose our only hope of repelling the Perished Land. You can
mourn the dead when it's over." He traced a circle on the floor with his
staff. "Gather round, join hands, and repeat the incantation after
me."
The
famuli did as instructed, Rantja and Jolosin standing side by side and drawing
strength and comfort from each other.
Nudin
took his place in the circle and laid his staff on the floor. His fat, clammy
fingers reached for Jolosin's free hand and the unfortunate famulus clasped
them with revulsion. "If you please, Estimable Magus, I've brought the
artifacts you loaned to Lot-Ionan." He turned in the direction of the bag,
and Nudin nodded curtly.
Then they began
the incantation, calling on the magic to come forth and enter the splinters of
the table. The hours wore away.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin,
Girdlegard,
Summer, 6234th
Solar Cycle
It was raining at daybreak, or pouring, to be precise.
Summer
in all its glory reigned over Girdlegard, but for the duration of a few hours
the sun had retreated, allowing the sky to cloud over and quench the parched
soil.
No
doubt the vegetation was grateful for the downpour, but the dwarves were
unimpressed. Huddled under a tree, they waited grumpily for the rain to stop.
"Now
you see why we live in the mountains," scowled Boïndil, who was taking the
opportunity to shave his cheeks. Over the past few orbits he had become increasingly
restless. His warrior's heart longed for action so that he could swing his ax
and shriek and spit at some orcs, but the chances of that in Lios Nudin were
depressingly slim.
"What
if he goes into a frenzy?" Tungdil asked Boëndal in a whisper. "Should
1 hide in a tree?"
The
dwarf wrung the rainwater out of his plait and grinned from ear to ear.
"You'll be safe so long as I'm around to direct his fury onto something
else. I try to steer him clear of anything that breathes, and it works quite
well, for the most part."
They
kept their eyes fixed on the nearby thoroughfare, watching the carts and
carriages roll past. One young couple seemed more interested in each other than
in driving their oxen. The dutiful animals kept up a steady trot.
The
sight of the lovers reminded Tungdil of a subject that had been bothering him
for a while. He wondered whether to ask the twins' advice, although he was
beginning to feel embarrassed about his ignorance of dwarven life. For someone
who had spent his formative years surrounded by books, he asked incredibly
foolish questions. So much for being a scholar!
Curiosity got the
better of him eventually. "What do girl dwarves look like?" he asked,
avoiding their gaze.
There was silence.
The
patter of rain on the leaves seemed deafeningly loud. The brothers let him stew
for a while; then Boïndil said: "Pretty."
"Very
pretty," added Boëndal, amplifying his brother's terse reply.
"Right."
There was silence
again.
Overhead,
the shower was easing, the drumming raindrops fading to a steady drip-drip of
water trickling from the twigs and branches.
He tried again.
"Do they have beards?"
Silence.
Tungdil
became acutely aware of the rich variety of noises made by falling rain.
"Not beards,
exactly," said Boïndil.
"More
like wispy down," explained Boëndal. "It looks lovely."
No one spoke.
The
sun burned a path through the dark gray cloud, and summer triumphed over
Girdlegard. Tungdil decided to broach an even more delicate topic. "When
men dwarves and girl dwarves—"
He
broke off under the secondlings' withering stares. Boëndal took pity on him.
"It's high time our scholar got to know his kin," he said dryly. He
glanced up at the tree. "The downpour's over; let's go." He stood up,
followed by his brother.
"You didn't
answer my question!"
"You
didn't ask a question, and anyway, you're the
one with all the learning, not me."
"Do girl
dwarves fight too?"
"Some
do, but in our clan they mostly stay at home," said Boëndal as they moved
off along the road. "Our womenfolk devote themselves to domestic duties:
herding animals in the valleys, stocking our pantries, brewing beer, and making
clothes."
"No
good ever came of the sexes fighting side by side," Boïndil added darkly.
He seemed to be speaking from experience, but there was something in his voice
that warned Tungdil not to probe.
"Don't
make the mistake of belittling their talents, though. They're just as proud as
we are. Some of the best masons and smiths in the kingdom are women. When it
comes to artisan contests, they use their chisels and hammers so proficiently
that other competitors stop and marvel at their work."
"Anomalies
and exceptions," growled Boïndil, who was obviously of the opinion that
certain tasks were the preserve of male dwarves. "For the most part they
belong by the hearth. The kitchen is their calling."
Tungdil
had been listening attentively. "It's like that in human kingdoms
too," he told them. The idea of female dwarves seemed more appealing than
ever and he was eager to become acquainted with their kind.
At
last they reached Porista. Tungdil gazed in wonderment at the turrets and domes
of the palace, but his companions exchanged bored smiles, needing no further
evidence that human architecture was inferior to their own.
Tungdil
had been hoping to find Lot-Ionan and unburden himself of Gorén's books and
artifacts, but he was sorely disappointed. At the palace they were told that
the council had dispersed some orbits earlier and that Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty
was not receiving guests. There was nothing for it but to follow Lot-Ionan to
Ionandar.
They
were on their way out of the city when Tungdil spotted a stable in one of the
side streets. The horse inside it looked strangely familiar.
"Wait
here," he instructed, striding toward the chestnut steed. He felt sure he
had shod her not so long ago. He lifted her right foreleg and examined the
shoe. The nails were unmistakably his own. "It's them," he hissed.
"Friends
of yours?" asked Boëndal, whose crow's beak was resting casually on his
shoulder. His brother was absent-mindedly stroking his freshly shaven cheeks in
search of stray whiskers.
"Not
exactly." Noting the bulging saddlebags, Tungdil fetched a bucket, turned
it over, climbed on top of it, and fumbled with the buckles. The bag came open
and the dwarf rummaged inside until his fingers came into contact with a jar.
He pulled it out quickly.
"Remember
the dead dwarf in the caravan?" His instincts had been right; the jar
unscrewed to reveal a head. The bounty hunters had shaved the poor fellow's
hair and beard so that the grisly trophy would fit inside the container, which
was filled with honey to stop the air from getting in, thus preventing decay.
Streaks of blood trailed through the golden fluid, staining it red. "We've
found the villains who killed him."
There
was a clatter of chain mail and the brothers were beside him like a shot.
Neither spoke as they stared in horror at what had been done to their kinsman
for the sake of a reward.
"By
the blade of Vraccas, I'll cut them to pieces," roared Ireheart. Fury
ignited within him, flushing him red and prompting his axes to fly into his
hands. "Just wait until I—"
The
door swung open and one of the headhunters walked into the stable from the
house. Tungdil knew him immediately, and the recognition was mutual as the man
stopped abruptly and swore. After considering the three dwarves for a moment,
he decided that the odds were against him and fled.
"Cowardly
as a runt," scoffed Ireheart. "Come back here and fight!" He
chased him into the house, and there were sounds of a brief but energetic
skirmish that climaxed in the man's dying screams.
"Don't—"
Tungdil's shouted warning came too late. "He would have been more use to
us alive," he finished mildly. He could hardly blame Boïndil: The fiery
warrior was at the mercy of his temper and came to his senses only when his
opponent lay bleeding on the floor.
"We'll
wait for the others to return," Boëndal said phlegmatically. "Didn't
you say there were five of them in total?" Tungdil nodded, and they took
up position in the stable.
It
was early evening when the men returned. Judging by their sullen faces, their
honey pots were empty and their efforts had been in vain.
Waiting
for them behind the door was the vengeful Ireheart, an ax in each hand and
seconded by his brother, who had concealed himself among the straw. The twins
were so accustomed to fighting together that any intervention on Tungdil's part
was likely to be a hindrance, so he lurked in the background and kept out of
the way.
Once
the men had entered the stable and dismounted, Boëndal and Boïndil nodded to
each other and launched their assault.
"Leave
one of the villains alive!" shouted Tungdil, joining the tail end of the
charge.
Alerted
by the commotion, one of the headhunters turned and reached for his sword.
The
blade was only halfway out of its scabbard when Boïndil's ax thudded into his
left hip. The force of the blow sent him tumbling against the wall. Before he
could recover, the dwarf's second ax hit his right calf, hewing skin and sinew
and shattering his knee. The man collapsed in screams of pain.
Satisfied
with the crippling effect of his blows, Ireheart moved on. Cackling terribly,
he hurled himself on the next of his foes.
His
brother was left to deal with the remaining men. Shoulders squared, he charged
toward the first of the two, leveling his crow's beak as he ran.
His
opponent had enough time to snatch his shield from the horse and thrust it in
front of his body, but he underestimated the weapon's force. The spike at the
tip of the crow's beak pierced the metal, ripping through the shield and stabbing
the man in the arm. Wood and metal had done nothing to repel the weapon; now
flesh and bones yielded too. The soldier screamed.
Boëndal
jerked the spike out of the shield and rammed the poll against the man's unprotected
knee. The force was enough to smash the joint and buckle the leg. The second
headhunter was down.
"I'll
show you what happens to spineless dwarf killers!" Boiling with rage,
Ireheart slashed at his opponent with fast, powerful strokes.
Tungdil
could see that the men were doing their best to parry the frenzied blows of
their attackers, but their expressions revealed the hopelessness of their
plight; where there was fear, defeat often followed, and so it was this time.
Boïndil
whirled his axes above his head. Unable to guess the direction of the attack,
the panicked headhunter turned to his horse.
His
legs outpaced the dwarven warrior, but his speed was no match for Boëndal's
weapon. The crow's beak soared through the air, hitting the man's back just as
he was swinging himself into the saddle. The impact cracked his ribs, stopping
him momentarily. It gave Ireheart enough time to catch up.
"You're
too tall for my liking, long-un," he snorted, slashing at the man's legs
and severing his tendons. His victim toppled, and Ireheart dealt him a double
blow to the collarbone that finished him off.
The
dwarf went in search of the fourth headhunter, who was cowering behind the
mound of straw. "Now it's your turn!" Ireheart's chain mail was
spattered with his opponents' blood and his eyes glinted crazily. "Who do
you pray to? Palandiell? Samusin?"
The
man cast down his sword and raised his hands. "I surrender," he said
hastily.
Ireheart
bared his teeth. "Too bad," he growled, thrusting his axes into his
enemy's unprotected midriff. The man collapsed amid agonized groans. He died
quickly but painfully, as Tungdil could tell from his muted whimpers.
Tungdil
surveyed the stable. The chief headhunter, whom Ireheart had put out of action
at the beginning of the fight, was lying in a pool of blood. He seemed to be
fading rapidly. The dwarves hurried over.
"Who
pays for your handiwork?" demanded Tungdil. "Tell us, and you'll be
spared."
"We'll
leave you to drown in your blood if you don't," Ireheart said
threateningly.
"Bind
my wounds," the man implored them, pressing his hand to the flowing gash
in his hip. "In the name of Palandiell, have mercy on me." The blood
was flowing so fast that Tungdil doubted anything could save him; the magic of
a magus, perhaps, but certainly not a bandage.
Ireheart
turned on him furiously. "Tell us, or I'll let my axes do the
talking!" Before he could make good on the threat, the headhunter expired.
The
dwarves left his side and hurried to the remaining survivor, whose shield and
arm had been pierced by Boëndal's crow's beak.
The
man was gritting his teeth. Pride prevented him from screaming aloud, but the
pain from his shattered knee was almost too much to bear.
"Be
m-merciful," he stammered. "I don't know much, but I'll tell you. We
heard about the reward in Gauragar—they were offering gold in return for
groundlings' heads." He pointed to Tungdil. "It was just after we met
him."
"Who's they?" bellowed Ireheart. He laid the
bloodied blade of one of his axes against the man's throat.
"The
guild! The master of the guild!" he choked fearfully. "He sent us
here. We harvest the heads and every thirtieth orbit he sends a man to fetch
the jars. We get our share of the reward—thirty coins apiece for each
head."
"The guild?
What guild?" demanded Tungdil.
"The
guild of the bounty hunters." The man groaned as the pain threatened to
overwhelm him. "Let me go now. I've told you everything I know."
Tungdil
believed him, but he knew the twins would never let him live. His murderous
deeds would have to be punished.
"You're
not going anywhere." Ireheart's axes settled the matter before Tungdil
could object. The headhunter had breathed his last.
"Come
on," Boëndal said evenly. "We need to get out of here before the
watchmen arrive."
Hefting
their bags, they hurried out of the city in the direction of Ionandar. At
first they were worried that someone would find the bodies and chase after
them, but no one did.
Tungdil
felt a pang of conscience. "It wasn't right to kill them," he said,
as they were sloshing their way through puddles and mud. "We should have
handed them over to the watchmen along with the jar."
Boïndil's
eyes narrowed. "Are you telling me I should have let the villains
live?" He shook the raindrops from his beard. "They would have been
tried and hung anyway. What difference does it make?"
"They
deserved to die, I know. But if we'd..." Tungdil couldn't think of how to
describe his nagging guilt in a way that Ireheart would understand.
Boëndal
leaped to his brother's defense. "No, scholar, there are no two ways about
it. They murdered for money and died because of it. What does it matter that we
killed them? Boïndil's right: The long-uns would have hung them, but we saved
them the trouble—and we avenged the dead
dwarf." He tossed his plait over his shoulder to signal that his mind was
made up. "It was the right thing to do."
Tungdil
could find no argument that might persuade him otherwise. He was still too much
the scholar to understand his companions' dwarven way of thought.
"We
need to press on," Boïndil reminded them in a more conciliatory tone.
"The high king is waiting." The battle in the stable had cooled his
raging temper and he was calmer again.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin,
Girdlegard,
Summer, 6234th
Solar Cycle
I can't keep this up for much longer,"
Rantja muttered despairingly.
"You
mustn't stop now," whispered Jolosin. "If any of us leaves the
circle, the ritual will be broken. I owe it to my magus; we all owe it to
Girdlegard to keep going."
Just
then he heard a change in Nudin's voice. The croaky rasp became a high-pitched
purring that didn't seem to belong to him at all. After a while it lowered to a
bass tone so deep that it vibrated through the apprentices' bodies. None of
them, not even the highest-ranking famuli, had heard anything like it.
And yet it
worked.
Pulsing
with light, the dark green fragments of malachite rose into the air and came
to rest three paces above the floor. Even the splinters in the decaying flesh
of Maira the Life-Preserver left her body, exiting with a gentle pop as they
bored through her skin.
"What
did I tell you?" said Jolosin, giving Rantja's hand an encouraging
squeeze. "We're nearly there now."
Nudin
the Knowledge-Lusty began a new incantation and the famuli resumed their
chanting, only to break off shortly afterward, unable to follow the words.
Babbling and gibbering incoherently, the magus had lost his thread. With the
rest of the circle reduced to silence, the ritual was doomed.
Meanwhile,
the fragments of malachite clustered together in a flat disc, ten paces in
diameter. The glowing circle began to spin.
"Is
this part of the ritual? I've never done this before," hissed Jolosin.
Rantja made no reply.
The
disc spun faster and faster, the splinters drawing closer as the speed
increased. Soon the individual fragments joined together in a circular sheet of
flawless crystal.
"My
magus knows what he's doing," Rantja whispered proudly, breathing a sigh
of relief.
A
hush descended on the room as the ring of apprentices watched in awed silence
while the glowing malachite morphed under Nudin's command. At last the
impressive spectacle drew gasps of admiration and relief from some of the
famuli.
"We
did it!" Jolosin was about to throw his arms around Rantja but was stopped
by the magus, who tightened his grip on his hand.
Nudin spoke,
uttering a single, unintelligible word.
A
splinter flew out of the disk and pierced Jolosin in the chest. No one noticed.
"What..."
Groaning, the young man tried to free his hand and touch the spot where the
jagged splinter had entered his flesh and buried itself deep inside his chest.
He could feel the blood seeping from the wound and trickling down his abdomen,
but Nudin was gripping him firmly in his cold, clammy clasp.
"Estimable
Magus," Jolosin said, his voice strained with pain, "I'm... I'm hurt.
I've been hit by a shard."
Nudin
turned his pale bloated face toward him. His pupils were dilated, almost
obscuring his irises. Then the black dots turned the color of tarnished silver.
His misty eyes glinted.
"I
know, my boy. I needed your magic. There was no other way." He squeezed
his hand reassuringly. "It won't hurt for long." The magus closed his
eyes.
Another
tiny splinter of malachite flew across the room and hit Rantja. From then on,
the splinters followed in quick succession, striking the apprentices so rapidly
that half of their number had been wounded before the others noticed. They
called to the magus for help.
"Stay
where you are or everything will be ruined," he commanded, eyes still
closed.
The
remaining famuli were unpersuaded by his words. Rather than stay and be killed
by the lethal crystal, they decided to run for cover, but by then it was too
late. As they tried to pull away, they realized with horror that their hands
were stuck together, tying them to one another until they too were struck by
shards.
The
malachite disc sent dark bolts in the direction of each famulus, green light
caressing their bodies eagerly in search of the splinters and slipping inside
the wounds.
Nudin
looked up, an insane glimmer in his eyes. Throwing open his cloak, he uttered
another incomprehensible command.
At
once a finger-length shard of malachite flew toward him on a bolt of green
lightning and planted itself in his chest. The beam intensified, pulsing and
rippling with light, while the tendrils of energy binding the famuli to the
crystal faded and dimmed. Soon they were gone altogether.
"Victory!"
The magus's shriek of triumph was too shrill and powerful to be human. He
laughed exultantly. "The time for dissembling is over; Nôd’onn the Doublefold
is once more!"
The
famuli slid to the floor. Jolosin, Rantja, and the others were incapable of
speech; the malachite had wrested the magic from their bodies and plundered
their strength.
The
more fragile among them were the first to succumb. Their hearts stopped, their
breathing failed.
A
small band of famuli, Jolosin and Rantja included, summoned the energy to drag
themselves across the floor in a desperate effort to reach the doors.
The
magus plunged his fingers into his chest and was feeling around for the
splinter. He withdrew the bloodied fragment, gazed at it dreamily, then
replaced it in the wound. He took a step toward the malachite disc.
"You
served your purpose, now be gone!" No sooner had his onyx-tipped staff
made contact with the hovering crystal than it fell to the ground, littering
the floor with myriad splinters.
Don't just stand there, he told himself sternly. Let the next phase begin! Gathering the leather
bag brought by Jolosin, he hurried to the door, skewering three crawling famuli
as he passed. A tidemark of blood stained the white maple of his staff.
On
reaching the doorway, he stopped and looked back, scanning the foul-smelling
room. The stench of decay would soon be overwhelming, but it was all the same
to him. His work was almost done and he was leaving the conference chamber for
the final time.
It
was then that he noticed Rantja and Jolosin. With a brutal swipe of his staff,
he crushed the famulus's skull. His own apprentice had nearly reached the door,
but he nudged her back into the chamber with his boot.
Rantja
rolled onto her back, tears streaming over her face, and uttered a healing
charm. Her magic failed her.
The
magus stooped to stroke her long brown hair. He knew the famula well and she
was talented, one of his most gifted pupils, in fact. She would probably have
made it into his discipleship in Lios Nudin, but he knew that she couldn't be
relied on to cooperate with his plans.
"The
malachite splinter inside you has left you weak and helpless," he told
her. "The magic is gone. You'll die like the others, Rantja."
The
young woman stared up at him accusingly. Her dark eyes were full of contempt
for the magus whom she had trusted implicitly and who had forfeited her
respect.
Nôd’onn
looked away, surprised at how much he was affected by his dying apprentice.
"I didn't want to kill them," he said defensively. "There was no
other way of obtaining their magic. What was I supposed to do? Andôkai,
Lot-Ionan, Maira, Sabora, and Turgur refused to help me, and you and the other
famuli would have turned against me too. I knew it was going to be difficult,
but I did it because I had to. This is my destiny. Girdlegard must be protected
from evil."
"There
is no greater evil than the Perished Land," she said, breathing in rapid
gasps. "The gods will punish you for betraying our circle."
Nôd’onn
thought for a moment. "Perhaps you're right. But the vengeance of the gods
is a small price to pay for saving mankind." He got to his feet and
stepped out of the chamber. "And mankind can be saved only by the Perished
Land and the chosen few."
"You're
mistaken," whispered Rantja. Her gaze faltered. "You're..." A
sigh ran through her body and her head slumped back, falling to the side.
"No,"
Nôd’onn contradicted her sadly. "I'm right, but no one understands. My
dear friend told me this would happen."
Closing
the doors with a wave of his hand, he turned away quickly and hurried through
the palace to the vaults. There was a dull thud as the doors of the chamber
slammed behind him, sealing Girdlegard's most powerful wizards in their tomb.
Clumping
down the stairs, Nôd’onn reached the room where the energy was at its
strongest. From Lios Nudin, the force field extended outward in five
directions, supplying the other realms. He was about to change all that.
The
magi and their highest-ranking famuli had been taken care of, but there was
still the matter of the lowlier apprentices. Nôd’onn was incapable of stopping
the flow of energy, but he intended to reclaim the young wizards' meager powers
by other means.
First there's something I need to attend to. He
loosened the green drawstrings, opened the bag, and turned it upside down.
An
hourglass hit the floor, shattering on impact, followed closely by two amulets,
which tinkled against the marble. A roll of parchment landed on top.
Nôd’onn
stared at the motley collection. These aren't my
things! he thought furiously, scattering the pool of sand in all
directions with his staff. Confound Lot-Ionan!
He
reminded himself of the need for calm. Besides, he could always ask the orcs to
retrieve the items from Ionandar.
Focusing his mind, he used his powers to search for the force field and, on finding a connection, uttered the charm provided by the Perished Land, thereby releasing the magic he had plundered.
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar,
Girdlegard,
Late Summer, 6234th Solar Cycle
To speed their progress, the three
dwarves bought ponies and rode without stopping, dismounting only to spare
their aching backsides. Even then they kept moving, continuing on foot.
Over
the course of the journey the twins taught Tungdil a number of ballads that were known to
all dwarves, irrespective of folk or clan. Little else remained of the common
heritage linking all the children of the Smith.
The
melodies were simple and easy to remember, embellishments and ornaments
playing no part in dwarven songs. To Tungdil's ear, they sounded rather
melancholy, a tendency he attributed to the gloominess of the underground
halls. The mood was noticeably lighter in songs such as "Glinting Diamond,
Cold and Bright" or "There Is a Golden Shimmer in a Faraway
Range," where the lyrics told of great treasures and gold, and he enjoyed
the drinking song "A Thousand Thirsty Gullets, A Thousand Flagons of
Beer," taught to him by Boïndil, who had procured a keg of beer.
Tungdil
awoke the next morning and cursed his pounding head. According to Boëndal, it
was all the fault of the long-uns' ale, which was vastly inferior to the
dwarves' own beer.
Farther
along the way they encountered Sami, a peddler with stubbly cheeks and
peasant's clothing, who had strange stories to tell. "Some people say that
the cleverest famuli in the other five realms have left for Lios Nudin,"
he informed Tungdil, who was examining the array of trinkets on offer while the
twins waited patiently. He wanted to buy something for Frala before he forgot.
"Any tidings
from Greenglade?"
"The
elf maiden is dead. The northern pestilence laid waste to the forest, and King
Bruron is worried that wayfarers might get themselves killed. He wants to set
fire to it." Sami made a show of unpacking his herbal soaps. "Perhaps
you groundlings could do with some of these."
"Just
because we're dwarves doesn't mean we stink!" growled Ireheart. "I'll
put you in a lather, you lanky-legged rascal!"
"My
mistake," Sami said hurriedly. "I thought he wanted something for a
lady friend."
"Actually,
Boïndil, the peddler's probably got a point," Tungdil said slyly, throwing
him a bar of plain soap. He also bought a jasmine-scented soap, a patterned
comb, and a doll each for Ikana and Sunja.
Boïndil
sniffed the soap, scratched at it, and put a shaving in his mouth. "Ugh,
it tastes disgusting! I'm not washing with that!" He tossed it
disdainfully into his bag.
"So
the Perished Land is still advancing?" probed Boëndal.
"It
looks that way. Most of Âlandur has fallen already and the elves are under
constant attack. Some have fled to the plains of Tabaîn, or so I've
heard." The peddler packed the gifts in coarsely woven cloth.
"Everyone says the älfar are getting the better of them. They've taken the
other elven kingdoms, and if you ask me, Âlandur will be next. It's only a
matter of time before the älfar conquer the last of their land." He handed
the parcel to Tungdil. "A silver coin, please, master groundling."
"Dwarf,"
Tungdil corrected him.
"Pardon
me?" "We're dwarves, not groundlings."
"Of
course," Sami said, again hurriedly. "Absolutely." He cast a
distrustful glance at Boïndil, who was admiring his shaven cheeks in a mirror.
Tungdil
was still digesting the news about Âlandur. "What do you think the
assembly will have to say about it all?" he asked the twins.
"Serves
the elvish tricksters right," said Boïndil with a shrug. "Most of
them are dead already and the others will follow if they set foot in our range.
The pointy-ears aren't welcome near Ogre's Death; I don't care whether they
call themselves elves or älfar, they won't be moving in with us."
Tungdil
scratched his beard. "What of the orcs?" he asked Sami.
"Oh,
they're in three places at once, if you believe the rumors." The peddler
looked at them dolefully. "It's not safe on the roads anymore. Tion's
creatures are on the rampage and King Bruron can't do anything to stop them.
Innocent folks like us have to fear for our lives and our wares."
Boïndil
scanned the horizon longingly and licked his lips. Tungdil heard him making
"oink" noises under his breath.
A
while later they took their leave of the peddler and rode on.
To
keep their purse stocked with coins, Tungdil jobbed as a smith, helped by the
brothers, who also ornamented window frames and doorways with wonderful
carvings. That way they kept themselves in ham and cheese while making good
progress toward Lot-Ionan's vaults.
"You've
got bits of cheese in your beard," Tungdil said to Boïndil at the end of a
meal.
"What of
it?"
"Well,
it's not nice to look at," he answered, trying to be diplomatic.
Boïndil
ran a hand over his chin and dislodged the largest morsels.
"There's
still..."
"Look
here," Boïndil told him brusquely, "the rest can stay where it is. It
keeps the whiskers sleek and smooth." As if to emphasize the point, a
bread crumb fell from his lips and landed in his beard.
Tungdil
had an image of the hairs coming to life and feeding on the scraps. It would
explain why nits weren't a problem; the whiskers would gobble them up before
they had a chance to settle. "Surely the girl dwarves must have something
to say about your—"
"There
you go again!" Boïndil clapped Tungdil on the back and grinned lewdly.
There was cheese between his teeth. "Always on about girl dwarves."
"Patience,
scholar," Boëndal advised him. "Play your cards right, and you'll
find out firsthand. You're not bad-looking; I'm sure we'll find you a suitable
lass."
"And then
what do I do?"
"You
make eyes at her, of course." Boëndal gave him a playful dig in the ribs.
"You sing her a song. You give her a hand-forged ring. Then you kiss her
feet, cover her in a nice thick coating of her favorite cheese, swing her four
times in a circle, and the gates to her Girdlegard will open."
"That's...It
doesn't say that in the books," said Tungdil, bewildered. He looked at Boëndal,
whose eyes sparkled roguishly. Boïndil couldn't contain himself any longer and
let out a side-splitting guffaw.
"Idiots,"
huffed Tungdil. "It's not funny, you know. I can't help it if I've never
met a female dwarf."
"We
didn't mean to offend you," apologized Boïndil, wiping away tears of
merriment. "But maybe you should try it; it seems to work for Boëndal!"
That
was it; his brother dissolved into laughter too, the gentle hills of Ionandar
echoing with their mirth.
"Just
be yourself," said Boëndal, endeavoring to be serious. "I can't
speak for everyone, but it's no good pretending to be something you're
not."
"He
used to say he was a poet," his brother chuckled. "His lady friends never
believed it, but with you it might work."
"What sort
of presents do they like best?"
"Ah,
very cunning," exclaimed Boëndal. "Sorry, scholar, but you can't
bribe your way into a lady's heart. There's no secret formula. Either she likes
you, and she'll tell you as much; or she doesn't."
"And
she'll tell you about that too," Boïndil added merrily.
"I
wouldn't wish that on anyone," said
his brother, "but if she likes you, well... anything is possible. But
enough about womenfolk."
Their
journey continued, and after several orbits Tungdil began to recognize his
surroundings, which meant they were getting closer to Lot-Ionan's vaults.
He
was looking forward to seeing the famuli and being reunited with Frala and her
daughters. They'll never believe that I'm an heir
to the throne! To prove that he hadn't forgotten her, he knotted
Frala's scarf around his belt.
After
a while they came to a river. A ferry was moored on the opposite bank near the
ferry master's house and smoke was rising from the chimney.
Tungdil
reached up to ring the bell that was suspended from a tree beside the berth.
That way the ferry master would know to come and fetch them.
Boïndil grabbed
his hand. "What are you doing?"
"I'm
calling the ferry, unless you'd prefer to swim," said Tungdil. "It's
either that or get the boat."
Boïndil
eyed the swirling water. The river was lapping against the banks. "We'll
go a different way," he decided. "It's too deep here. We could fall
in and drown."
"You
could fall off your pony and break your neck," Tungdil countered sharply.
"Come on, Boïndil, it's too far to the next crossing—two orbits, at
least." When he saw the twins' stony faces, he knew it was useless to
protest. "It's this way," he sighed, pointing upriver. "But I
don't see what's wrong with the boat."
It
was all the encouragement that Boëndal needed to launch into the story of why
dwarves and water didn't get along.
"Long
ago, Elria put a curse on us. Elria was born of water and water was her
element. From the beginning, she took a dislike to the dwarves—Vraccas's
fire-loving, furnace-tending children couldn't have been more different from
her water-dwelling creatures. To protect her children, she put a curse on the
dwarves, and now any dwarf who ventures into water outside his kingdom is
doomed to drown."
Lakes,
rivers, ponds, or streams—according to the twins, even puddles could pose a
mortal danger, and they avoided water at all costs.
"It's
an excellent excuse for not washing," Tungdil told them.
They
rode until nightfall and arrived the following orbit at the ford. When the time
came to cross, the brothers waded nervously through the fast-flowing water,
the river swirling ferociously about their thighs as if it intended to carry
them off.
It
was evening when they finally neared the entrance to the tunnel leading into
Lot-Ionan's vaults. Boëndal and Boïndil grew uneasy at the thought of wizardry
and spells.
"I
didn't like coming here the first time," grumbled Boïndil. "Lot-Ionan
is a nice enough fellow, I'll grant you, but he's a magus.
At least we dwarves have the good sense to know that hocus-pocus never did
anyone any good. We stay away from it. If Vraccas had wanted us to dabble in
magic, he would have given us wands." He stared at Tungdil suspiciously.
"You understand that, don't you? I hope he hasn't given you any daft
ideas..."
"I
can't weave magic," Tungdil said soothingly. "I've never even
tried." He stopped for a second and looked at the brothers imploringly.
"Promise me you'll treat him respectfully. Without his charitable
intervention, there wouldn't be another claimant to the throne. In fact, it's
only because of his salutary—"
"Listen
to him!" Boëndal said sarcastically, mimicking his voice. "Do you
hear the scholar speaking? Quite the gentleman, isn't he? He must be refining
himself for highfaluffing conversations with a more h-h-educated race."
"Highfalutin," Tungdil corrected him with
a smile. "All right, point taken. Either way, be nice to him or say
nothing at all. You can wait at the gates if you'd rather. I'll be fine on my
own."
It
was already dark by the time they got there. Even from a distance Tungdil could
see that the door to the tunnel was ajar. It was usually bolted and protected
with a magic incantation, but one of the famuli must have forgotten to do his
job.
Tungdil
grinned mischievously, his tanned face creasing around his eyes. Whoever was
guilty of such negligence would soon regret it. He intended to give the vault's
inhabitants the shock of their lives.
"Tut-tut,"
Boïndil said disapprovingly when they reached the open door. "The
confounded thing better not close behind us. What if it's a trap to catch
innocent travelers?"
"Why
would the magus want to trap travelers?" his brother inquired.
"To
try out new gobbledygook on them, of course! You don't think he'd experiment on
his own apprentices, do you? He needs to be sure that his wizardry works."
He looked to Lot-Ionan's protégé for confirmation, but Tungdil chose not to get
involved. Boïndil unhooked an ax from his belt and mumbled threateningly into
his beard. "If any of those wand-wielders so much as looks at me oddly,
I'll show them what for."
Boëndal
burst out laughing. "Don't worry, I'll be sure to punish them if they turn
you into a mouse or a bar of soap." He gave the butt of his crow's beak an
affectionate pat, but his brother was frowning grimly.
Tungdil
noted their squared shoulders; it was clear from their posture that they were
ready to fight. He decided to head off any possible misunderstandings by
leading the way.
"Keep
the noise down," he told them. "I want to take them by
surprise."
Boïndil
looked skeptical. "Seems to me that's just asking for trouble. What if
they put a spell on us by accident? They might not recognize you in time."
Tungdil
waved dismissively and stepped into the vaults. At once he was surrounded by
the familiar aroma of paper, papyrus, parchment, and a hundred dusty books,
mixed in with the smell of stone and a hearty whiff of supper. "Boiled
potatoes and meat," he declared.
He
looked over his shoulder at the twins, who were more interested in studying the
tunnel and speculating in low tones about who had built the vaults and why.
"You
can tell it's the work of long-uns," Boïndil was saying. "Do you see
this? I noticed it last time as well. To think they didn't bother to work with
the rock! They've cut through the strata with no concern for the veins."
He pointed at something. "If they'd troubled themselves to look properly,
they wouldn't have got themselves into such a mess. Even I could do better, and
I'm a warrior!"
"A
precarious design." Boëndal was gazing at the ceiling that was propped up
every few paces by pillars and struts. "There's too much sand in the soil.
An engineer or a miner would never have taken such a risk." He prodded the
ceiling gently with his crow's beak, loosing a shower of mud and stone.
"I'm no expert, but they should have dug the whole thing out. See how the
warmth has dried the sand strata and made them all crumbly? Your magus needs a
lesson or two in how to dig tunnels. It's a good thing we're here."
"Shush,"
Tungdil reminded them firmly. "You'll spoil the surprise."
"No
sentries, no alarm system, nothing!" Boïndil rolled his eyes. "No
wonder Vraccas told us to take care of the long-uns! The whole place would be
easier to conquer than a dead dragon's den. Dwarves are more careful," he
continued in a whisper still loud enough for Tungdil to hear.
Tungdil
tiptoed on. His eyes had adjusted to the dim light, but the vaults were too
quiet for his liking. There was no chattering of voices or banging of doors. If
it hadn't been for the tantalizing smell of supper, he would have suspected the
magus of moving his school elsewhere.
"Maybe
they've abandoned the vaults and left the cook behind," mused Boïndil out
loud. "Hardly surprising, given the state of the place."
The
comment earned him a reproving look from Boëndal. "Surely they'd take the
cook with them?" he couldn't help asking.
"Not
necessarily." Boïndil grinned. "He might be so bad at his job that
they've made him stay and practice until the ceiling caves in. Either that, or
he's stewing in his soup."
Tungdil
was too intent on reaching the magus's study to listen to their chatter. He
knocked on the door. No one answered, so he walked straight in.
"I'll
wait out here with Boïndil," Boëndal called after him. "We don't want
to spoil the reunion."
On
entering the room, Tungdil could scarcely believe his eyes. One half of the
study was in a state of chaos with books, sheets of paper, and scribblings
strewn over the floor; the other half was impeccably neat.
Tungdil
had never seen such orderliness in Lot-Ionan's study. The books were stacked on
the shelves in alphabetical order, the paper had been left in tidy piles, and
the quill and inkwell were in their proper places.
He must have dreamed up a new charm that makes the mess tidy
itself, he thought, impressed. He could see the logic in trying it out
on one half of the study, but there was still no sign of the magus. I hope the spell didn't tidy him away.
He wandered round the chamber, looking for anything that might explain the silence in the vaults.
Boïndil sighed loudly. "Waiting is
a hungry business," he declared. "I'm off to find the kitchens. If we
ask nicely, they might spare us a bite."
"We
should take Tungdil with us," his brother said anxiously. "The
long-uns won't know who we are, don't forget."
"All
the more reason for introducing ourselves." Boïndil was too hungry to
worry about being cautious. "You can wait if you like, but there's a hole
in my belly stretching down to my knees." He strode off.
Boëndal
was reluctant to let him go anywhere unsupervised. They were guests at the
school, and guests were expected to behave with a modicum of decorum, which
didn't come naturally to his twin.
"Tungdil,
we're off to the kitchens," he shouted. "I'll keep an eye on Boïndil,
don't worry!" He hurried to catch up with his brother, who was
disappearing around the corner.
The
twins had no trouble finding their bearings in the vaults. Vraccas had given
his children an infallible sense of direction when it came to orienting themselves
underground. They knew instinctively whether a passageway would slope upward,
downward, or curve gradually to one side, and they had no need of the stars to
plot their course. In this instance, they were guided by the tantalizing smell.
All
the rooms they passed were empty: There wasn't a soul in sight.
"Maybe
it's dinnertime," Boëndal suggested hopefully, trying to ignore his
growing unease.
They
made for the passageway, where the smell of meat was strongest. Their tunics
and armor clanked softly while their heavy boots clumped rhythmically on the
floor. At last they reached a door that led into the kitchen, judging by the
splashes and smears.
Boëndal
tried to surge ahead to make a more orderly entrance, but his brother beat him
to it. He gave the door an almighty shove.
Four
great hearths burned in the high-ceilinged room, but otherwise the kitchens
were as deserted as everywhere else. Curiously, there was evidence of recent
activity: The stoves were roaring and supper simmered and hissed in covered pans.
Large round cooking pots hung above two of the hearths, chunks of meat rising
to the surface and sinking into the bubbling brown broth.
By
now Boëndal had a definite feeling that something was wrong. Abandoned rooms
and brimming cauldrons: It simply didn't add up.
What's going on? He scanned the kitchen carefully.
"This
is more like it," Boïndil said cheerfully. He let go of his ax, tore off a
piece of bread, and headed purposefully for the nearest stove. Balancing on a
stool, he lifted the lid of a pan and peered inside—juicy slabs of simmering
meat and gravy. His mouth began to water. "It would be rude not to taste
it."
He
dunked a sizable hunk of bread into the sauce and prepared to swallow the
morsel in one bite.
"Stop!"
His
brother's warning brought him to a sudden halt. "What now?" he
snapped, his stomach growling in protest at being neglected for so long.
"Can't you see I'm eating?"
Boëndal
had positioned himself next to the door, crow's beak at the ready. Judging by
his stance, he was anticipating trouble. "I don't mean to spoil your
appetite, but take a look over there."
Boïndil
followed his gaze. The butcher's block, used ordinarily for chopping and
filleting meat, was piled high with bones that had no place in a kitchen. Four
skulls in particular held their attention: They were human in form.
It
took a while for Boïndil to link the bones to the broth, but then he hurled
away the dripping bread in disgust and jumped to the ground, drawing his axes.
"When
I get hold of that magus, there won't be a spell in the world that can save
him," he muttered darkly.
"Humans
and wizards aren't usually cannibals," Boëndal told him. "If you ask
me, there's been a change of guard. The magus didn't forget to lock the door;
someone attacked." He peered into the corridor. "It's time we found
our scholar."
Walking back-to-back, they retraced their steps through the eerily empty passageways, Boïndil leading and Boëndal following and watching his back.
Tungdil sat down on the footstool next
to Lot-Ionan's armchair and waited impatiently for the magus to return. For
want of anything better to do, he dusted off his garments. All he could think
about was what the magus would say when he made his report. He had already
decided to start with the most important business—Gorén's books. There was no
reason to believe that Lot-Ionan would divulge their mysterious contents, but
Tungdil hoped he would.
Just
then he heard someone approaching from the corridor. He knew at once that it
couldn't be Boëndal or Boïndil; the soft footsteps belonged to a light,
unarmored man.
Tungdil
was too bored to pass up an opportunity to amuse himself and, leaving the
knapsack and bag of artifacts beside Lot-Ionan's chair, he leaped to his feet
and hid behind the door, intending to jump out and scare the unsuspecting
famulus. Chuckling silently in anticipation, he peered around the door.
The
young man who came into the room had short black hair and was dressed in the
malachite robes of Nudin's school. He made straight for Lot-Ionan's papers and
set about sorting through his documents with shocking disrespect.
What in the name of Vraccas is he doing? Tungdil
watched from his hiding place as the famulus sifted through a stack of notes,
thereby solving the mystery of the unusually tidy room. Next he made himself
comfortable at the magus's desk and set to work on the higgledy-piggledy
documents and books, sorting them into piles and jotting the details on a list.
Tungdil
looked on in amazement. Who allowed one of Nudin's
pupils to forage through Lot-Ionan's things? What's he doing here anyway?
If Lot-Ionan wanted someone to tidy his study for him, he had plenty of likely
candidates in his own school, but Tungdil knew that the magus was very particular
about his work. The documents that the young man was handling were strictly
private and no one was permitted to look at them, least of all an apprentice
from another enchanted realm.
Dragging
footsteps sounded in the corridor and a second figure appeared at the door. The
famulus looked up crossly, not bothering to hide his annoyance. "What is
it?"
Tungdil
pressed his face to the crack in the door and peered at the newcomer. All he
could see was a broad back and a coarsely woven shirt.
"I've
finished in the kitchens," said a deep, sluggish voice. The dwarf placed
it immediately: It was Eiden, the magus's groom.
"Good.
Then find yourself a quiet corner and stay out of my way," came the
famulus's sharp reply.
Eiden
stayed where he was, filling the doorway like a fleshy statue. "I'm
hungry," he said dully.
"Why
don't you gnaw on some bones in the kitchens?" the famulus said
impatiently. "But remember not to touch the meat—it's for our sentries.
Now, leave me in peace."
"I want
meat," the man insisted.
"Go!"
The famulus picked up a letter opener and hurled it at him. Whether he intended
to wound the groom or whether it was a poorly judged throw, he succeeding in
striking Eiden in the chest. The man groaned and staggered from the room.
At
last the dwarf could see his face, which was ashen and horribly mangled. A club
had crushed the right side of his head and his visage looked barely human.
At
the sight of his torso Tungdil took a sharp intake of breath. The pale fabric
of Eiden's shirt was caked with blood from two deep gashes to his collarbone
and chest. The afflicted flesh was decaying, the skin around it yellow.
Tungdil
was instantly reminded of Greenglade and its gory revenants. No, he thought, the
Perished Land can't have breached the magic girdle. Lot-Ionan had gone
to Porista to renew the barrier and preempt an attack, and in any event, the
Perished Land's dominion ended 450 miles north of Ionandar's vaults. Then why is Eiden still alive?
A
gust swept through the room and a blue shimmer appeared in the air, gradually
assuming the contours of a man. It was Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty.
The
famulus rose and bowed before the apparition. "I've been searching the
school as you requested, Estimable Magus," he reported, straightening up
to face the bloated wizard. "There's no sign of the items you mentioned.
Goodness knows why the old man needed so many laboratories and
libraries." He decided to get his excuses in quickly. "The vaults go
on and on. It's a lot for me to manage on my own."
"Which is
why I shall be joining you in person."
Tungdil
hardly dared to breathe, lest he give himself away. Vraccas seemed intent on
making him eavesdrop on all kinds of awkward conversations. He had seen Nudin
once before, but he remembered him as being slimmer, healthier, and decidedly
less cruel. The Nudin before him was like a caricature, an uncharitable
likeness drawn by a detractor.
"Lot-Ionan
told me that the items were in a cupboard," the magus continued, swiveling
to survey the room. There was something oddly high-pitched about his gravelly
voice. "Have you searched the place properly?"
"Not
yet," the famulus admitted. "I thought the books were more important,
so I decided to hunt for them first."
Nudin
shuffled toward the large cabinet from which Tungdil had retrieved the
artifacts at the start of his errand. "There's no proof that the books
even made it to Ionandar. According to the älfar, a war band stole the books
from Greenglade after the orcs had razed the place. Dwarven bandits,
apparently."
"But didn't
you tell them to... I mean, how—"
"The
älfar are good allies." Nudin's doppelganger stopped in front of the
cabinet and propped his staff against the wall.
It
took some effort for his swollen, spectral fingers to depress the handle, but
he got there in the end. "Their only weakness is their love of art. For
this particular älf, it proved fatal." Bending down, he reached into the
cabinet and came up with a leather bag identical to the one that Tungdil had
been carrying. "It looks as though our search has been rewarded."
He
loosened the drawstrings and tipped out the contents. Five rolls of parchment
tumbled to the floor. His grunts of displeasure seemed to indicate that he had
been hoping to find something else.
Tungdil
peered out a little farther. His packs were hidden by Lot-Ionan's chair, but he
had an uncomfortable feeling that Nudin would be delighted to discover them.
It
was then that it dawned on him: The ties on his bag were blue, but the magus
had said something about green drawstrings. I took
the wrong hag! I marched for miles across Girdlegard, and Gorén's artifacts
were here all the time!
From
the point of view of his errand, it wouldn't have made any difference if he had
got to Greenglade and found Gorén alive—he would still have been carrying the
wrong set of things. But something told him that his mistake had worked out
well.
Tungdil
couldn't quite make sense of it all. He had no idea why Nudin and his
apprentice were behaving as if the school belonged to them, much less why Eiden
was acting so oddly when really he should have been dead, but the fact that the
magus had allied himself with the älfar was clearly bad news. Nudin the
Knowledge-Lusty seemed to have changed sides.
He
had to find out what had happened to Lot-Ionan and his famuli without alerting
the intruders to his presence.
"One
more thing," said the apprentice, riffling through the papers on the desk.
He pulled out two pieces of parchment that Tungdil recognized as the letters
that he had sent. "Lot-Ionan received a couple of letters from someone
called Tungdil who was looking for Gorén on his behalf."
He
passed the correspondence to his master, who scanned the lines with bloodshot
eyes. "Tungdil..." he said musingly. "Of course! The old man
kept a dwarf of that name. It's perfectly possible that he's the one who took
the artifacts and the books." He tossed the letters onto the desk.
"Traveling dwarves are a rarity in Girdlegard, so it shouldn't be hard to
find him. I'll ask the älfar to deal with it, and they'll deliver him, dead or
alive." He nodded to the famulus. "It's a pity you didn't mention it
earlier, but at least we're getting somewhere. You shall have your reward when
I join you. Until then, keep searching. You never know what might turn
up." The apparition flickered and faded, then vanished altogether.
After
his many ordeals, Tungdil was beginning to think that nothing could shock him,
but he hadn't reckoned with listening in silence while someone plotted against
his life. His mettle was being thoroughly tested.
The
famulus smiled smugly and sat down at the desk. He had pleased his master and
secured a measure of the approval that he so craved. He buried himself once
more in the documents.
He
was just dunking his quill into the inkwell, ready to add another entry to the
list, when he happened to glance toward the armchair. The straps of Tungdil's
knapsack were protruding from one side.
"What...?"
He got up slowly and crossed the room to examine the object that had
materialized without his knowledge. He stooped to pick up the leather bag.
Tungdil
drew his ax. Speed and surprise were of the essence: He had to strike before
the famulus saw him and cursed him. He tensed his muscles.
Even as he prepared to charge, a commotion sounded in the corridor, stopping them both in their tracks.
For once the twins were making a
genuine effort to be quiet. They didn't know who had invaded the vaults, but it
seemed safest to hack them to pieces without giving them any warning. Whoever
had butchered the long-uns would surely jump at the chance to eat a dwarf—but a
crow's beak in the belly or an ax through the gullet was bound to cure their
greed.
They heard
lumbering footsteps.
Boïndil
signaled for his brother to freeze, and they waited for the creature to stagger
around the corner. There was a whiff of rotten flesh; then a man stumbled
toward them, groaning.
His
injuries were so horrific that it was a wonder he was alive. No ordinary mortal
would have survived such wounds, but on seeing the dwarves, he yelped in
excitement and lunged toward them with surprising speed, spurred on by the prospect
of fresh meat. His eagerness was no match for the warriors' experience.
Boëndal
saw the blow coming, skipped sideways, and jabbed him in the knee. The revenant
swayed.
In
falling, he hurled himself on Ireheart, who greeted him with a war cry and a
pair of flashing blades. The secondling avoided the toppling body and reached
out to cleave the man's left arm. Teeth grinding in anger, Eiden dragged himself
across the floor, baring his teeth at the twins.
"Would
you believe it? He's coming back for more!" observed Boïndil in
astonishment. "I know revenants are supposed to hate the living, but this
is ridiculous." He decapitated the man, thereby putting an end to his
undead life.
The
brothers set off at a run to find Tungdil. It seemed likely that other
bloodthirsty revenants would be roaming the vaults, in which case the heir to
the throne could be in danger.
On
reaching the door to the study, they saw a young man in malachite robes
standing by an armchair, holding Tungdil's leather bag.
Their
noisy skirmish in the corridor must have prepared him for their arrival.
"Burn, you scoundrels!" His right arm flew up, fingers pointing at
the dwarves, and he opened his mouth as if to speak. The door slammed shut.
The
brothers blinked in surprise. "Surely he didn't need a spell for that?"
said Boïndil.
"Why
didn't he just close it before we got here? I told you wizards are weird."
"Magical
mumbo jumbo. Leave it to me!" Launching himself at the door, Boïndil
stormed inside, shrieking.
The
young man had fallen backward and was lying motionless inside a cabinet. The
doors were open and the shelves had slipped their brackets, scattering their
contents on top of him. His forehead had been gouged in the process, and he was
bleeding from the wound.
Tungdil
straightened up and rubbed his head. "I should have put on my helmet
before I head-butted him in the belly," he declared.
"Didn't
I tell you those lessons would pay off?" Boïndil patted him on the back.
"You've got the makings of a first-class dwarf!"
"It's
about time someone explained what's going on," his brother said
impatiently. "There's human broth on the stove and revenants roaming
through the corridors. What kind of character is your magus, anyway?"
"None
of this would be happening if Lot-Ionan were here." Tungdil gave a brief
account of the eavesdropped conversation between Nudin and his famulus, then
listened while the twins described the scene that had greeted them in the
kitchen. In combination, the stories proved beyond a doubt that Nudin had
seized the vaults and emptied them of their inhabitants.
Surely be can't have killed them all? Tungdil sat
down, overcome with horror and dismay. What of the
apprentices, the servants, Frala, Sunja, and Ikana? He refused to
believe that the lunatic magus could have murdered a wizard as powerful as
Lot-Ionan. He's alive. I just know it! He
clung to the hope that Lot-Ionan had escaped with his senior famuli and was
preparing to do battle with Nudin. I have to find
him!
"The
dwarven assembly needs to hear about this," ruled Boëndal. "Let's get
out of here."
"No,"
Tungdil said firmly. "Not until I know where Lot-Ionan has got to."
He looked at the unconscious apprentice. "I bet he could tell us." He
knelt down and boxed his ears. It had the desired effect: The famulus's eyelids
fluttered open.
Boïndil
stood guard at the door while his brother placed the spiked tip of his crow's
beak in the gap between the young man's eyes. "If you so much as think of
cursing me, I'll ram my weapon through your brains." He obviously had
every intention of carrying out his threat. "I crack skulls as if they
were eggshells."
Tungdil
bent down toward him. "Tell us where Lot-Ionan is," he demanded, torn
between wanting an answer and fearing the truth.
"Are
you the dwarves from Greenglade?" The famulus seemed perplexed. "But
aren't you supposed to be—"
"Answer
the question!" Tungdil told him roughly. Boëndal leaned on his crow's
beak, applying just enough pressure to pierce the famulus's skin. Blood welled
up around the metal spike as it bore into his brow. "Tell us where he is,
or we'll kill you."
"Don't
hurt me," the apprentice whimpered. "I'll tell you anything you want!
He's dead. Nôd’onn killed him."
"Nôd’onn,
commander of the Perished Land?"
"It
was in Porista. He killed them all!" The terrible truth was out: With the
other magi dead, there was no one in Girdlegard who could rival the traitor's
power. "Nôd’onn cursed the force fields so no one else can use them."
An
icy dread took hold of Tungdil when he realized what the famulus was saying.
"So Nudin is Nôd’onn? Nudin commands the Perished Land?" The
evidence had been staring him in the face, but either he hadn't realized or he
hadn't wanted to. He felt like shrieking at the famulus or cutting him to
pieces on the spot, but he forced himself to ask another question. "What
does Nôd’onn want with the books and the artifacts?"
"I
don't know. Nôd’onn told me to look for them, but he didn't say why. I swear I
don't—"
Tungdil
whacked him with the poll of his ax, returning him to his faint. Once he was
safely tied up and locked in the cupboard, they debated what to do with him. It
was obvious that they couldn't release him. A wizard with hostile intentions
posed a serious threat and there could be no justification for not killing him
while they still had the chance.
The
tension over, Tungdil lowered his guard and gave in to his grief, mourning the
loss of his adopted family and friends. Tears rolled down his cheeks, coursing
through his beard, and he wiped them away with Frala's scarf. She had given him
the talisman for luck, but now it was all he had left to remember her by. I won't let your deaths go unpunished, he promised
his oldest friend.
Just
then a familiar stench rose to his nostrils. Tungdil looked up and exchanged
glances with the twins. They too had smelled the rancid butter, which could
only mean one thing: orcs. He picked up his ax and rose to his feet.
"Let's see if I can remember those lessons." They strode grimly to
the door.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Late Summer,
6234th Solar Cycle
Rumor had it that the high king was on
his deathbed. In fact, according to some reports, Vraccas had smitten him
already and he had taken his place in the eternal smithy.
There
was no need to look far to find the source of the gossip. So eager were the
fourthlings to see their own king on the marble throne that they were only too
happy to spread tidings of Gundrabur's demise. Come what may, they were
determined to have their war against Âlandur, whether the elves were guilty of
treachery or not.
At
every discussion, no matter how big or small, Bislipur was there, tirelessly
kindling the rumors, his every waking moment devoted to fanning the fires of
his destructive campaign. No one seemed to need less sleep than Gandogar's
devious adviser, except perhaps Balendilín, whom he regarded as a personal
enemy.
"If
only Vraccas would hurry up and smite the high king with his hammer,"
muttered Bislipur on returning to the chamber where he was staying as the
secondlings' guest. He lowered himself crossly onto his bed. I'm not making any progress. Some of the
fourthling delegates were starting to doubt the wisdom of going to war. That blasted Balendilín is ruining everything. The sooner
I take care of him, the...
"Master,
I bring news for you," a reedy voice announced from under his bed.
"Not that I'd choose to tell you
anything. In fact, I didn't want to come at all."
Bislipur
stood up and kicked the bedpost. "Come out from there, you wretched
gnome!" Sverd had barely emerged from his hiding place when Bislipur's
calloused hand closed round his neck and lifted him into the air. He shook the
gnome vigorously, like a cat would stun its prey, then tossed him roughly into
the corner. "You're not to sneak into my chamber without my permission,
do you understand?"
Sverd
rose groggily and straightened his red jacket. "I wasn't sneaking, master.
You weren't here, so I hid in a place where no one would find me, like you
said." He tugged his hemp shirt over his rounded belly, covering his hairy
green skin. His pointed ears stuck upward, as if pinning his cap to his head.
There were few of his kind left in Girdlegard.
"Shall
I tell you the news, master?" asked Sverd, his large round eyes filled
with mock innocence. Streaks of mud and dirt covered his saggy breeches and his
buckled shoes. He had tramped for many miles. "And if I do, will you let
me go?"
"You'll
go when I've finished with you." Bislipur rested his hand threateningly on
the magical silver wire that allowed him to tighten Sverd's collar from any
distance. "Talk or I'll strangle you."
"I
wish I'd never tried to steal your hoard," the gnome whined piteously.
"I regret it, really, I do." He looked at the dwarf expectantly,
hoping to see a flicker of pity in the stony face.
"No
wonder your kind is dying out if they're all as weak and pathetic as you."
Gandogar's adviser stayed as cold and unbending as the many valuable trinkets
that he wore. He tugged on the wire, tightening the leather band around the
neck of his slave.
Sverd
struggled to loosen the magic collar, but with no more success than at any
other time during his forty-three cycles of bondage. The choker contracted and
he sank to his knees, wheezing and panting. Bislipur waited until he was almost
unconscious before slackening the leash.
"Thank
you, master. Thank you." The gnome coughed. "Another joyous orbit at
your side. How can I repay you?" He sank onto a stool. "Your
pernicious plan failed. By all reports, the heir to the throne is still alive.
Sadly, the same can't be said for our bounty hunters. There were no other takers
for your cowardly mission and I didn't have time to start a proper search.
Girdlegard is changing."
Bislipur
took no notice of his reluctant henchman's sneers. From the beginning of his
enslavement, Sverd had been trying to provoke him into killing him, but
Bislipur chose to ignore him. The gnome deserved to suffer. "What
happened?"
"I
trailed the dwarf and the secondlings to Lot-Ionan's vaults. They were attacked
by orcs..."
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar,
Girdlegard,
Late Summer,
6234th Solar Cycle
The beasts' approach could be heard
from a hundred paces. Suddenly the clunking of their armor was interrupted by a
clamor of snarls and grunts: The orcs had discovered the lifeless revenant.
On
rounding a bend in the passageway, the three dwarves found themselves
face-to-face with their foes. The exit to the vaults lay fewer than three
hundred paces ahead, but it seemed to Tungdil that every inch of that distance
was filled with orcs. A bristling thicket of weaponry blocked their escape.
"What
fun!" enthused Ireheart, squaring his shoulders. "See how narrow the
tunnel is? We'll have the pleasure of killing every last runt!" His
whirled his axes energetically.
"Oink,
oink! By the hammer of Vraccas, this is excellent sport!"
"The
three of us will fight in formation," his brother told Tungdil soberly.
"I know you've never done this before, but stand back-to-back with us and
make sure you can feel us behind you. That way we'll all be safe." His
brown eyes sought Tungdil's. "Trust us to watch your back, and we'll trust
you. You're a child of the Smith, remember."
Tungdil
took up position, wedging his back against the twins'. Trust in the others, he reminded himself, his
heart thumping wildly. Stand by me, Vraccas.
He swallowed and forgot about his fear. For
Lot-Ionan, Frala, and Girdlegard!
"No
more talking now!" Ireheart snapped at them, his eyes flashing wildly.
"We've got skulls to cleave and shins to splinter!"
As the twins commenced their dance of death, Tungdil did his best to keep pace with them, nearly tripping over himself in his eagerness not to ruin their guard.
During the first few rotations, Tungdil
could still see most of his surroundings. He glimpsed leering orc faces, saw
green-hided flesh encased in various types of armor, spotted pillars among the jumble
of legs, and occasionally sighted a whirling black plait.
But
soon they were moving so fast that it all became a blur. Swords, daggers, and
cudgels swooped toward him and he focused on dodging or parrying the blows.
From time to time his ax met with resistance and after a while his blade was
coated in glistening green, leading him to suppose that some of his blows had
struck true.
It
was the same basic strategy that the twins had used in the Eternal Forest.
Back-to-back, the dwarves spun onward, boring their way through the enemy
ranks, striking out furiously and never stopping for an instant, making it
impossible for the beasts to land a proper blow.
Tungdil
was glad of his chain mail. He lacked the secondlings' experience and was
unable to field every strike, but his metal tunic protected him from the worst
of it. He was willing to endure bruises, grazes, and even broken bones if it
meant staying alive and saving the artifacts from Nôd’onn's fleshy hands.
He
could hear Boïndil laughing behind him, his frenzied cackles competing with the
orcs' dying shrieks. Boëndal was far less vocal, preferring to conserve his
breath.
After
a while the strain was beginning to tell on Tungdil's arms, but the battle was
far from over. In addition to the orcs in front of them, there was also the
problem of the survivors who were attacking from behind. In his despair,
Tungdil came up with an alternative solution.
"The
struts!" he yelled, straining to lift his voice above the jangling steel.
"Cut down the struts!"
"Good
thinking, scholar." Boëndal checked a blow, then rammed the offender with
the butt of his crow's beak. A few moments later his weapon powered into a
wooden pillar.
The
force of the blow sent a strut crashing to the floor, followed by a shower of
stone and dirt. The three dwarves repeated the maneuver until the unsupported
ceiling collapsed behind them. Tion's minions disappeared under an avalanche
of debris as ton after ton of rock blocked the tunnel, securing their rear.
The
surviving orcs ran for the exit, afraid of being buried alive. Ireheart chased
after them, swinging his axes furiously and felling all in his path. He stopped
just short of the exit and waited for his companions.
"Come
on," he urged them breathlessly. "There's another twenty of these runts
waiting outside. It would be a shame not to kill them."
They
closed ranks again. For all his hatred of orcs, Tungdil secretly hoped that
the surviving beasts had seized their chance and fled. His weary arms were
reluctant to lift much higher than his belt.
Spinning
in formation, they whirled out of the tunnel and into the darkness outside. The
stars cast a silvery shimmer over the waiting orcs. A hundred pairs of green
eyes glinted menacingly in the moonlight. The beasts were growling and snarling
under their breath.
"I
thought you said twenty?" Tungdil muttered accusingly, his heart quailing
at the sight.
"Like
I told you, some challenges are bigger than others," Boïndil assured him,
glossing over his mistake. "This is one of the bigger ones."
"Should
we go right or left?" asked Tungdil, who was keen to establish their
strategy.
"Straight
through the middle. If they start slaying one another by accident, we'll have a
better chance of making it unscathed. I'll deal with their chieftain, and when
we're out the other side, we'll attack the flanks and hew down the rest."
"Tungdil
is new to this, remember," his brother put in. "The high king told us
to bring him back to Ogre's Death, not to purge the countryside of runts."
Tungdil
was profoundly relieved. He hadn't wanted to say anything for fear of
disappointing the twins, but Boëndal was less reckless than his brother and his
sharp eyes had noted his exhaustion.
"Oh,
all right, then," conceded Boïndil a little indignantly. "We'll go
straight through the middle and forget about the flanks."
The
plan established, they decided to act, not wanting to give the orcish archers
an opportunity to use their bows. At first their tactic worked perfectly and
they were mowing their way toward freedom at a tremendous rate when the enemy
received unexpected support.
The
ranks thinned around them as the orcs backed away, clearing a path.
"Hey!
Come back here, you pug-faced monsters!" bellowed Ireheart, venting his
frustration at the retreating beasts. "I'm not finished with you
yet!"
The
orcs continued to back away from them, and a lone man stepped forward instead.
Tungdil knew the bloated figure from the apparition that had conversed with
the famulus. The dark green robes cloaking the swollen body belonged to
Lot-Ionan's killer.
The
wizard looked doubly repulsive in the flesh. Blood trickled down his cheeks and
his skin hung in flabby folds, occluding his features. He smelled as if he had
been rolling in a pile of rotting rubbish.
"You've
done well to get this far, but enough is enough," he purred. Fixing his
gaze on Tungdil, he extended a bloated hand. "Give me the artifacts and
the books you stole from Greenglade. After that, you can go."
Tungdil
gripped his ax stubbornly. "These items belong to my master and I'll be
damned if I'm giving them to you."
Nôd’onn
chuckled. "How terribly valiant of you." He took a step toward them.
"The artifacts belong to me. I'm in no mood for a discussion." The
end of his staff struck the ground and he leveled the onyx-encrusted tip at
Tungdil.
No
sooner had he done so than the knapsack and the leather bag jerked away from
Tungdil, struggling against him and trying to wrest themselves from his grip.
He hung on to the straps as best he could, but his efforts were no match for
the wizard's sorcery. The leather ripped and slipped from his fingers. He
brought his foot down on one of the drawstrings just in time.
"I'll
destroy the pouch and everything in it," he threatened, raising his ax.
"Be
my guest. It would save me some work." Nôd’onn held his right arm on high,
splayed his fingers, then clenched them into a fist.
The
bags left the ground with such force that Tungdil could do nothing to stop
them. Their flight ended when they dropped into the arms of an enormous orc,
who clutched them to his chest with a grunt.
The
magus was seized by a coughing fit. Blood leaked from his nostrils and he wiped
it hastily away. "Go back to your kingdom, dwarves, and tell your ruler
that I require his land. He can give it to me willingly, or my allies will take
it by force. The choice is his." He gestured in Tungdil's direction.
"Take him with you. I don't need him."
The
two brothers said nothing. Gripping their weapons with steely determination,
they were biding their time for an opportunity to attack. When the requisite
diversion presented itself, they would hurl themselves on Nôd’onn and cut him
to ribbons, but it was no good attacking while they were under the surveillance
of the wizard and his hordes.
Suddenly
there was confusion in the ranks. Beasts were pushing and shoving, and angry
words were exchanged; then a particularly strapping specimen drew his sword
against his neighbor and, snarling furiously, buried it up to the hilt in his
gut. Within the space of a few heartbeats, the orcs were slaughtering one another.
Ireheart
squared his shoulders, a sure sign that he was preparing to attack. His brown
eyes were fixed on Nôd’onn's knees.
"Tungdil,
you chop up his staff," he ordered in dwarfish. "The fatso won't
stand a chance against the three of us." As always, he showed not a
flicker of self-doubt.
"Ordinary
weapons won't harm him." Tungdil glanced out of the corner of his eye at
the iron-clad beast who was guarding the knapsack and the artifacts. "Our
priority is to get the bags. Nôd’onn seems determined to destroy them, so
they're obviously important."
Ireheart
nodded. "You know what to do, Tungdil. On my signal..." The dwarves
were preparing to leap into action when someone got there first.
From
the crest of a nearby hill, a bolt of lightning flashed toward the magus and
struck him in the side. Gasping, he dropped his staff and crumpled to the
right.
The
next bolt sped toward the orcs, reducing ten of their number to charred metal
and flesh. The remaining beasts snarled in confusion, looking for the source of
the attack. Spotting the figure at the top of the hill, they closed ranks and
charged.
Nôd’onn
raised his head and stretched out his right palm; the staff sprang into the air
and flew into his hand.
This
was the opportunity that the dwarves had been waiting for. Shrieking, Ireheart
bore down on him, planting his axes into his legs, while Boëndal swung his
crow's beak above his head and rammed it into Nôd’onn's broad back. He raked
the blade upward, and the magus slumped to the ground.
The
wizard's orcish protectors were too distracted by the arrival of the powerful
new adversary to notice his plight. As they raced up the hill, black clouds
formed above them, and a roll of thunder announced the coming storm.
The
first orcs were paces away from their target when the tempest was unleashed.
Lightning crackled to earth, striking the front line of orcs and splitting
their skins like sausages in boiling water. The dazzling flashes blinded those
farther back, and the assault on the summit faltered and stopped altogether.
A
wind whipped up, raging among the beasts and knocking them over like skittles.
Pitching into one another, the orcs were hurled against trees or dragged to
their deaths by the gusts.
Meanwhile,
Boëndal had skewered the magus on his crow's beak and was pinning him to the
ground. Ireheart leaped to his brother's aid, raining four fearsome blows on
the magus's neck and cleaving his vertebrae. Nôd’onn's head rolled across the
grass, and foul-smelling black blood spilled from the gushing stump.
Ireheart
opened his breeches and was about to sprinkle the corpse with dwarven water,
but was stopped by his brother. "The artifacts!" Boëndal reminded him
sternly, pulling him away.
A
moment earlier, Tungdil had summoned his remaining strength for an all-out
assault on the orc who was guarding his bags. He let his instinct, combined
with his recently acquired knowledge, guide his ax. The beast fell sooner than
he expected, the speed of his victory taking him by surprise. I can hold my own without the twins, he thought,
gratified, quickly grabbing the bags.
Boëndal
ran up, his plait swinging vigorously as if it were alive. "We did it!
Girdlegard is free of the traitor."
They
hurried off, with Tungdil and Boëndal in the lead and Ireheart covering their
backs. "It was child's play," he boasted, taking the opportunity to
slay another couple of orcs. "We showed the traitor who's..."
Ireheart's eyes shifted sideways and he let out a terrible howl of rage.
"By the beard of Beroïn, I thought we'd..."
Nôd’onn
was rising to his feet. His headless body straightened, and he stretched out a
hand, beckoning to his skull, which flew toward him and settled on his severed
neck. Not a scar remained to show where Ireheart's axes had raged. The magus
seemed as strong and alert as ever. He ordered the remaining orcs to deal with
Tungdil and his companions, then turned to the hill to destroy his magical foe.
"Seize
the artifacts and the books," he boomed through the darkness. "And
kill the dwarves!"
The
onyx on the end of his staff throbbed with light as he raised his hand toward
the knoll. The ground quaked, a deep furrow opening in the earth and burrowing
toward the figure on the hill. Bolts of lightning shot from the dark clouds,
only to melt harmlessly into the protective shield that cocooned Nôd’onn's
body.
I knew it! Ordinary weapons can't harm him. Tungdil
grabbed his companions. "This way," he panted. "The path leads
south."
The
trio raced off, slipping into a ditch to throw off their pursuers. They
listened to the heavy trample of boots as the orcs charged past without seeing
them.
"We
should have stood our ground," Boïndil whispered crossly.
"And
been killed!" Tungdil pushed himself deeper into the warm soil of the
trench. "Didn't you see what he did back there? He got up, even though
you'd beheaded him! It proves he's more powerful than the Perished Land."
He pointed to the leather pouch that they'd managed to salvage. "The key
to his destruction is in that bag."
"You're
the scholar," Boëndal told him. "Find a way of killing him and leave
the rest to us. It's time we got back to Ogre's Death. Our kingdoms are in
danger and we need to warn the assembly of Nôd’onn's plans. You might be the
only one who can stop him."
"I
don't know about that." Tungdil's hopes were centered on their mysterious
rescuer, who had fought magic with magic, thereby saving their lives. Please, Vraccas, let it be Lot-Ionan, he prayed,
unable to fight his tiredness any longer as he drifted off to sleep.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Late Summer, 6234th
Solar Cycle
...
and I was following them into the woods when they suddenly disappeared,"
said the gnome in conclusion. He tugged at the leather collar that had left him
with a weal around his throat. "I had to get out of there quickly because
the orcs were on my tail."
Bislipur
was already deep in thought. Sverd's news obliged him to rethink his plans.
"They're on their way here, then," he muttered to himself.
"Who?
The orcs or the dwarves?" When Bislipur didn't answer, Sverd tried another
tack. "You're not going to keep the news to yourself, are you? Didn't you
hear what I said? The magus wants to attack
the dwarven kingdoms! Only a real scoundrel would—"
Bislipur
limped to the door. "Wait here," he ordered. "Don't show
yourself unless I tell you."
"Yes,
cruel master." With a sigh, the gnome settled on a stool, his short legs dangling above
the floor.
Bislipur
rapped on Gandogar's door. "It's me," he shouted. "Put your
cloak on. We've got business to attend to."
Gandogar
stepped out into the corridor and gave his adviser a bewildered look.
"Wouldn't you rather come inside?"
"The
exercise will do us good. Besides, there's enough gossip about me already.
Apparently, I spend my time behind closed doors, plotting against the high
king." He snorted derisively. "They're welcome to see us talking, if
that's what they want."
Gandogar
threw a light cloak over his mail and followed Bislipur through the stone
labyrinth that was Ogre's Death.
All
around them were carvings and ornaments. The secondlings had sculpted great
artworks out of the humble stone, but the masonry was all the more striking
because of its lack of pretension. Gandogar marveled at its simple beauty, but
his reverie was cut short.
"I
was just saying," Bislipur repeated softly, "that everything will be
ruined if they keep us waiting any longer. The high king is an obstinate
fool."
"Then what
do you suggest?"
"I've
consulted with the other chieftains. They think we should defeat the elves
before the Perished Land gets there first."
At
last he had Gandogar's attention. "Then let the Perished Land defeat them.
It would solve the problem for us."
"Actually,
Your Majesty, it would make our task harder. Remember what the Perished Land
does to the fallen? They rise again! Our warriors would never prevail against
an army of undead elves. The Perished Land is immensely powerful,
remember." Bislipur's mail clunked slightly as he limped beside his king.
"And what if the elves were to flee the threat and ensconce themselves
somewhere quite unreachable?
Their
crimes against the dwarves would go unpunished and your father and brother
would never be avenged."
Despite
the urgency in his voice, Bislipur was careful to speak softly. Anyone who saw
them talking would assume they were preparing for the coming assembly—which was
exactly what he intended.
"It's
time you were made high king and led the folks against Âlandur. The Perished
Land has lain dormant for some time. If it stirs, we must be back in our
stronghold so we can wait in safety until the trouble has passed."
"You
heard what Gundrabur said," the fourthling sovereign reminded him.
"The laws were written by our forefathers, and I can't and won't defy
them."
Their
path led them to a beautiful sunlit valley whose verdant slopes were dotted
with sheep and goats. Rocky peaks towered on either side with clouds stacked
above them. To Gandogar, it seemed as if the mountains had impaled the bad
weather on their summits to clear the skies for the pastures below.
"How
peaceful it is here," he sighed, lowering himself onto a boulder. "I
wish our assemblies were as harmonious as this."
Bislipur's
cold eyes scanned the grassy slopes. "If you ask me, the other dwarves are
exactly like sheep. They flock together, bleat until they get their food and
beer, then fall into a self- satisfied slumber." He laid a hand on the
monarch's shoulder. "You're a true king, Your Majesty, and you shouldn't
be made to wait while some guttersnipe of a dwarf strolls across Girdlegard to
challenge what's yours. Force a decision and the delegates will support you;
I'll make sure of it."
"You're
asking a great deal, Bislipur." The king rose, and they strolled back to
the tunnel that led into the mountain and deep inside the Blue Range.
At
length they came to a series of stone bridges whose backbones arched over dark,
fathomless chasms. These were the ancient mine shafts, now empty and abandoned.
The secondlings had plundered the mountain's riches and left deep gashes in its
flesh.
Bislipur walked in silence,
allowing the king to reflect.
"But
what of the laws?" muttered Gandogar, turning the matter over in his mind.
"I can't force another vote without challenging the laws of our
forefathers and defying the high king's decision."
"It
would take courage, the courage to do what's best for our race. You need to act
now, Your Majesty. You've never been afraid to take a stand."
The
passageway led over one of the kingdom's many quarries, where sheets of smooth
marble were being hewn from the rock. A river meandered peacefully to the right
of the stoneworks. The king and his adviser stopped on a bridge 180 paces above
the laborers and gazed at the bustle below.
"Gundrabur
might die at any moment," said Bislipur, still pressing for a decision.
"Surely you don't mean to make us wait until the stranger arrives and the
hustings have been held? What if the Perished Land attacks while the throne is
vacant? Without a high king, there'd be no one to organize our defenses and
lead us to victory. The folks would squabble among themselves and our race
would be destroyed."
Gandogar
pretended to ignore him, but the speech resonated with his own deliberations.
He had been pondering the same questions, although he was still no closer to
deciding what to do. The laws come from Vraccas, but
should we stick to them slavishly? What if it means forfeiting opportunities
and exposing ourselves to danger? He gave up and focused on the laborers
below. They were working with incredible care and precision, handling the stone
with as much consideration as if it were alive. Each sheet of marble was
measured painstakingly before being prized from the mountain with pick axes,
crowbars, hammers, and chisels. Water mills powered the blades of the enormous
saws.
Dust
hung in the air like gray mist and the laborers wore cloths to protect their
mouths and noses. A thick layer of powdered stone covered any piece of
equipment not in regular use.
It
made Gandogar proud to think that he would soon be king of the dwarven folks.
The children of Vraccas had their differences, but they were dwarves—united by
ancestry, heritage, and a common foe.
Should we suffer because of our laws? He pictured
the faces of his father and brother who had been felled by elvish arrows. They were killed in cold blood. His fists clenched
and his face darkened.
He
had made up his mind. "Very well, Bislipur, we shall act. I am the one who
is destined to unite the children of Vraccas and what better way of
strengthening the bonds between our kingdoms than a joint campaign against the
elves? Victory over our enemies will pave the way for a new united future and
put an end to this feuding and quarreling."
"And
your name will be linked forever with the start of a glorious era,"
Bislipur added approvingly, relieved that his constant sermonizing had
eventually paid off.
"We've
wasted enough time already. I shall tell Gundrabur that he has thirty orbits to
hold a vote in which my succession will be confirmed."
"And if he
dies before then? He's old and infirm..."
"Then
I'll be crowned, whether the mountebank has got here or not. Let's go back. I'm
tired and hungry."
Privately,
Bislipur was already working on his next assignment, unwittingly conferred on
him by the king.
A great deal can happen in thirty orbits, he
thought grimly. Murder was not the worst of his crimes, and a little more
skulduggery would be neither here nor there. But this time he needed to do
everything right.
"Coming,
Your Majesty," he replied. Leaning over the parapet, he peered into the
open quarry. Anyone who had the misfortune to
plummet from such a height would never be seen again. He had just the
assignment for Sverd.
Enchanted Realm of Ionandar,
Girdlegard;
Late Summer,
6234th Solar Cycle
Come on, scholar, time to get up,"
a voice whispered in his ear. A wiry beard scratched his throat and he was
roused from his carefree dreams.
Boëndal
and Boïndil were peering out of the ditch, scanning the woods for roaming
orcs, but the beasts had continued their search elsewhere. Tungdil and the
others were free to head south toward the secondling kingdom.
What a mess, he thought glumly. Things had turned
out worse than he could have imagined. His errand had seemed simple enough, but
now he was caught up in a succession crisis and everyone he had known and
loved was dead, leaving him and his two companions to flee for their lives
across Girdlegard while a crazed magus waged war on their kingdoms and tried
to steal his bags. And I don't even know what's
inside them.
Tungdil
pulled the twigs and foliage out of his hair and beard. He was still fretting
over Nudin's threat: The magus had declared war on all Girdlegard, men and
elves included, and was planning to do battle with the dwarves.
"You
look as though something's bothering you," said Boïndil, handing him some
bread and cheese. He pointed to the woods. "Come on, you can eat on the
way."
Tungdil
fell in behind them. "Warning the dwarven kingdoms is a big risk. Nudin
wouldn't mention the invasion unless he thought he could win."
Boïndil
snorted. "Ha, that was before we chopped off his head!"
"Not
that it had much effect," his brother reminded him gravely. "What did
you make of it, scholar? Is it normal for magi to survive a mortal wound?"
Tungdil
shook his head. "Wizards are just ordinary humans. They live a little
longer than most, but they're susceptible to injury like everyone else.
Lot-Ionan once cut himself on a knife and wove a spell to heal the skin. I
asked whether his magic could counteract death, but..." He pictured
Lot-Ionan and Frala and was too choked to continue. His companions didn't press
him.
"Magi
don't have the power to thwart death," he said finally.
"Nôd’onn
was definitely dead," Boëndal told him. "He had my crow's beak buried
in his back and his ugly mug was rolling on the ground. Maybe it's something
that only dark wizards can do."
"If
you ask me," said Boïndil, "it's a special kind of jiggery-pokery
taught to him by the Perished Land."
Tungdil
didn't know what to make of it all. Seeing the magus recover from his beheading
had put pay to any theories about him being a revenant, leaving the dire
possibility that Nudin had discovered the secret of eternal life—in which
case, Girdlegard was doomed.
"We
should have chopped him into tiny pieces and burned the lot," growled Boïndil.
"It
wouldn't have worked," said a voice from the trees. The clear tones rang
through the forest. "No known weapon can harm him. Swords, axes,
magic—nothing will kill him. I tried and failed."
The
trio whipped out their axes, and Ireheart wheeled round to cover their rear.
"It can't be an orc," Boëndal whispered to Tungdil.
"Maybe,
maybe not," said his brother. "I'm game for any kind of challenge,
big or small."
The
man who stepped out from among the pines drew a gasp of amazement from Tungdil.
He had never imagined that a human could attain such dimensions; this one had a
chest like a barrel and was as tall as two dwarves.
Although
Tungdil had seen pictures of suits of armor in Lot-Ionan's books, nothing had
prepared him for the sight of a real plated warrior. The man's breastplate,
gorget, spaulders, and greaves were made of fine tionium and forged in such a
way that the metal mimicked the curve of bulging muscle. The rings of a mail
tunic, worn to give extra protection, were visible between the plates. A thin
layer of cloth separated the segments of metal and dampened the clunking.
Sabatons
protected the warrior's huge feet, and his head was encased in a helmet. A
demon's face stared out from the elaborately engraved visor and a ring of
finger-length spikes encircled his helm like a crown.
In
his left hand he held a shield, while in his right he gripped a double-bladed
ax, the mighty weapon raised effortlessly as though it were made of mere wood.
A cudgel and a scabbard hung from his belt, the long blade resembling a dagger
because of his great size. And as if this arsenal were not weighty and powerful
enough, a two-handed sword was slung across his back.
Boïndil
glanced over his shoulder to see what was going on and was instantly transfixed
by the colossus.
"Swap
places with me," he begged his brother. "You cover our backs and I'll
bring down this mountain of metal." His eyes flashed eagerly. "That's
what I call a big challenge. Better than a
pack of runts!"
"Shush,"
Boëndal silenced him sharply. "Wait and see what he wants."
"His
voice seems very high for a man of his size," said Tungdil, bewildered.
A
blond woman with a severe face and a long plait stepped out from behind the
warrior. "The voice wasn't his." Her blue eyes pierced the trio.
"It was mine."
Tungdil
appraised her commanding features and striking garb and wondered whether they
had met before. She was athletic in appearance and wore black leather boots,
gloves, and a tunic of dark brown leather, slit at the sides to give maximum
movement. Her right hand rested on the pommel of her sword. There was something
about her that reminded Tungdil of a woman that Lot-Ionan had once described.
"Are
you Andôkai the Tempestuous?" he ventured at last.
The
maga nodded. "And you need no introduction: Tungdil and his two friends
who cheated Nôd’onn's wrath." She pointed to the warrior who was standing
motionless beside her like a sculpted god of war. He was five heads taller than
her. "This is Djerůn, a loyal ally."
Boëndal eyed her suspiciously.
"What do you want?"
Tungdil
took over quickly. "What's happened to Lot-Ionan? Is he alive?"
Andôkai
looked at him with angry, tortured eyes. "Lot-Ionan is dead—and so are
Maira, Turgur, and Sabora. They're all dead. Nôd’onn didn't want them to
interfere with his plans, so he killed them."
Tungdil
bowed his head. It hurt to have the truth confirmed. The pain of losing his
foster father gnawed away at him, leaving a void inside.
"Our
senior famuli met a similar fate. Nôd’onn was careful to ensure that none
survived who could challenge his power," she continued grimly.
"Then
it was you who cast lightning at him!" Boïndil said excitedly. "I
hope you caused more damage than we did."
"He
survived. I did everything in my power to kill him, but it was useless. As soon
as I saw him recover from your attack, I feared the worst, and I was right; we
can't do anything to stop him."
"Wretched
long-uns," Boëndal muttered crankily. "We dwarves tear our beards out
patrolling the ranges and fighting Tion's hordes, and what do the humans do?
Plot their own downfall! Vraccas should have made us into nannies, not
warriors. Humans can't be trusted on their own."
"I'm
afraid you're probably right." Andôkai took a step toward them. "I
came here because I wanted to ask what Nôd’onn was after." She crouched in
front of Tungdil. "We were watching from the hillside. You must have
something that he covets. What is it?"
"Er,
nothing really," he fibbed. "Just a few things that belonged to Lot-Ionan.
I kept them to remember him by, but Nôd’onn wanted to destroy them. He and my
magus can't have been good friends."
"There
was a time when they liked each other well enough." She smiled wryly.
"Lot-Ionan wasn't terribly fond of me."
That
triggered Tungdil's memory. As far as he could recall, Lot-Ionan had
disapproved of her values and her worship of Samusin. If the twins find out that she keeps orcs in her realm,
things could turn nasty, and we're bound to come off worse. Not only would the maga attack them with her wizardry, but
her companion looked capable of snapping trees with his hands.
"To
be honest," said Boïndil, who had decided not to beat around the bush,
"I don't much like you either. You go your way, and we'll go ours. We've
problems enough of our own."
"Problems?"
Andôkai said scornfully. She straightened up. "Your problems won't seem
important when Nôd’onn invades. The dwarven kingdoms will fare no better than
the realms of men and elves. The magus has allied himself with the Perished
Land and together they seek absolute, unlimited power." Her chin jutted
out and she eyed Boïndil with a look of contempt. "Run along and hide in
your mountains. Tion's creatures will storm your strongholds from both
sides."
"What do you
propose to do?" asked Tungdil.
"We're
leaving," she said frankly. "I'm not foolish enough to think that I
could stop the Perished Land. No army will be mighty enough to challenge Nôd’onn,
regardless of what the kings of men may think. What good would it do to stay?
I'd only be condemned to become a revenant—a fate which, Samusin willing, I'm
anxious to escape." She searched the dwarves' faces. "And you? If
you're headed for Ogre's Death, we'd like to join you. Rest assured, we'll
leave by way of the High Pass and never see you again, but we could journey as
friends until then."
The
dwarves discussed the matter in private and decided to accept the proposal. Boïndil's
objections were overruled: The other two had learned from their encounter with Nôd’onn
and could see that the maga would be a useful ally when facing the dangers
ahead.
Boïndil
made a show of complaining, but fighting with words was not his strong point
and Tungdil argued him into a corner with his scholarly speech.
"Fine," sulked the secondling, "but don't say I didn't warn
you."
Tungdil informed
the pair of their decision.
"But
remember, we're the ones in charge!" Boïndil glared at the maga's
companion contemptuously. He was obviously longing to pit his strength against
the colossal warrior. "Hey! What's wrong with your tongue? Maybe if you
took that bucket off your head, you'd be able to speak!"
"Djerůn
is mute," the maga rebuked him sharply. "Remember your manners or I
might have a thing or two to say about your height..."
"My
manners are my concern," huffed Boïndil, smarting. He tossed his plait
over his shoulder and turned back to the warrior. "Take my advice and keep
out of my way," he warned, quickening his pace to lead the procession. I
deal with the orcs, all right? No doubt you'll learn soon enough."
Tungdil fell into line behind Andôkai, and they set off. I'll wait until this evening to find out more, he decided. It would be easier to ask his questions without the twins listening in.
Estimable Maga, how did Lot-Ionan
die?" Andôkai had withdrawn a few paces from the fire and was sitting on
her cloak, gazing into the flames. Instead of addressing her in dwarfish,
Tungdil deliberately chose the language spoken by junior wizards. He wanted to
demonstrate that he was educated and not a simple working dwarf.
It
had taken a while for him to summon the courage to sit down beside her and
engage her in conversation.
Back
propped against a tree, Djerůn was positioned nearby.
The giant's weapons
were arranged neatly on the grass in order of length, easily reachable with
either hand. Owing to his visor, it was impossible to tell whether he was
dozing.
"Lot-Ionan
schooled you well, it seems," she said slowly, eyes still fixed on the
flames. "An educated dwarf is a rarity in Girdlegard. Well, dwarves are
rare enough." She paused. "I could tell you how your magus died, but
the story of Nudin's treachery would only grieve us both."
"I want to
know why Nudin changed."
"So
do I, Tungdil." Andôkai turned and looked at him bitterly. "I don't
suppose we'll ever find out." She recounted what had happened in Porista
that night. "Nudin struck out at me without warning. He drew on his magic
to deal me a blow that knocked me senseless. I didn't regain consciousness
until later." She paused, resting her chin on her hands. "I cut him
down with my sword, but he plunged his staff into my chest. After that I was
too dazed to register anything but the sounds of the struggle." The maga
took a deep breath, stretched out her legs, and looked up at the stars.
"They must have fought him all the way. The sound of their screams will be
with me forever. As for me, I could feel the blood seeping from my body and
there was nothing I could do."
"But you
survived."
"Thanks
to my bodyguard." She glanced tenderly at the unmoving giant. "Nôd’onn
must have forgotten that Djerůn had accompanied me to the palace. As soon
as the lunatic magus had gone, he broke into the room and treated my wounds. I
was too weak to confront the traitor, so Djerůn stole a corpse from the
morgue, dressed it in my clothes, and left it with the other bodies. We wanted Nôd’onn
to think he was safe." She reached for a branch and tossed it into the
fire, sending sparks crackling into the night sky. "He is safe," she
said dismally.
"And
Lot-Ionan? What..."
"By
the time Djerůn found me, your magus had been turned to stone. Nôd’onn
turned him into a statue." A tear of helpless rage trickled down her
cheek.
"A
statue," whispered the dwarf, drawing closer to the fire. "Isn't
there any way to..."
The
maga shook her head but said nothing. They sat in silence, their thoughts with
the dead. Stars twinkled in the firmament, and long moments passed.
"So
you're leaving Girdlegard," Tungdil said wearily. "Where will you go?
Aren't you worried about your realm?" He wiped the back of his hand across
his face. He had been staring unblinkingly at the flickering flames, and the
heat had dried his tears, leaving a salty residue in his eyes. "Will
things be better elsewhere?"
"I'd
be a fool to throw myself in front of a rolling stone when there's nothing else
to stop it," she said softly. "It's not in my nature to prolong
suffering without good cause. I shall give up my realm without a fight. What
good would come of resisting? I may as well take my chances across the border
now that Girdlegard's defenses have fallen." It was clear from her tone
that the matter was closed. "I need to sleep."
After
thanking the maga for her confidences, Tungdil withdrew and joined the twins
to tell them what had happened in Lios Nudin.
"The
wizards are really dead?" Boïndil skewered another piece of cheese from
his seemingly endless supply. "So much for their miraculous powers!"
"The
strongest shield is useless when the sword is wielded by a traitor," his
brother said wisely, munching on a hunk of toasted bread. "The long-uns
are a wretched lot. I can't imagine what the gods were thinking when they
created them." He chewed his mouthful vigorously. "It's bad enough
that they kill each other without dragging the rest of us into it."
Tungdil
reached for a helping of molten cheese and popped it into his mouth. He had
developed a taste for the pungent delicacy, which he regarded as a sign of
progress as far as his dwarven credentials were concerned.
Boïndil
gave him a nudge and pointed his cheese skewer at the mismatched pair on the
opposite side of the fire. "Would you believe it? He's still wearing that
bucket. I bet it's stuck on his head!"
Boëndal
was more respectful. "It's his height that gets me. Granted, I don't know
much about humans, but he's by far the biggest long-un I've ever seen. He makes
orcs look like children."
"What
if he's not really a long-un?" his brother said suspiciously. "He
could be a baby ogre or Tion knows what." Already he was on his feet,
preparing to march over and confront the giant. "I'm telling you, if
there's a green-hided runt hiding in that armor, I'll kill it on the
spot." He grinned dangerously. "The same goes for the lady. So what
if she's a maga? She's not much use to Girdlegard now."
Tungdil's face
flushed with panic. He wouldn't put it past Andôkai to have one of Tion's
monsters at her side. I can't let Boïndil pick a fight with Djerůn.
If he starts on the giant, Andôkai will join the fray and we'll all be in
trouble.
"No,
he's a man, all right," he said firmly. "Haven't you heard about the
human giants? I read somewhere that they join together in formidable armies.
The orcs are scared stiff of them!"
It
was a nerve-racking business lying to his kinsfolk, but he knew it was for the
best.
"How
do they get that big?" persisted Boïndil, reluctant to let the matter
drop. He jiggled his axes, hoping to find some reason that would allow him to
test his strength against the giant.
"Um,
it's their mothers... You see, they..." Tungdil tried feverishly to dream
up an explanation; almost anything would do. "Straight after birth, the
mothers tie ropes to their arms and legs and stretch them as much as they can.
They keep doing it, every morning and every night," he blustered,
"and it works, as you can see. They've got a fearsome reputation on the
battlefield. They actually grow into their armor; they can't take it off."
The
brothers looked at him incredulously. "Their mothers really do that to
them?" Boïndil was shocked. "It's pretty gruesome, don't you
think?"
"That's what
it says in the books."
Boëndal
looked the warrior up and down. "I'd like to know what he weighs and how
much he can lift."
The
three dwarves stared at the giant, trying to work out whether or not he was
asleep. His demonic visor shone in the flames, grinning at them mockingly.
Boëndal shrugged. "Sooner or later he'll show his face. He'll have to lift his visor when he eats."
Kingdom of Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Late Summer, 6234th Solar Cycle
It had been a long time, perhaps
thousands of cycles, since Girdlegard had last seen a band of travelers as
strange as the company that had been toiling through Ionandar and Gauragar for
several orbits.
First
to appear over the hilltop was Djerůn, his formidable armored body
provoking horrified panic among any peasants who happened to be tending the
land.
The
dwarves led the way, but their stocky figures took longer to loom into view. Boëndal
and Boïndil walked ahead, with Tungdil in the middle and Andôkai and the giant
a few paces behind. Djerůn was forced to take miniature strides in order
not to outpace his mistress and the dwarves. The maga had offered a farmer a
ridiculous number of gold coins to part with his horse, which now bore the weight
of her bags and the giant's spare weaponry.
Tungdil
was still trying to work out whether to tell Andôkai about the books. He had no
idea what was written in the scholarly tomes, but it was encouraging to know
that Nôd’onn feared their contents as much as the artifacts. Who knows if I can stop him, hut Andôkai surely can.
She's the last of Girdlegard's magi. He was determined to do whatever it
took to make her stay. Slowing his pace a little, he fell in beside her.
"I've been thinking about your magic and I can't figure out why it still
works. Didn't Nôd’onn corrupt the force fields?"
"Why do you
ask?"
"It's
important?"
"For you or
for me?"
"For
Girdlegard."
"For
Girdlegard! Very well, Tungdil, how could I refuse?" She smiled balefully.
"I was never as kind-spirited as my fellow magi. My god is Samusin, god
of equilibrium, who cherishes darkness as well as light. Thanks to him I have
the ability to use both. It's harder for me to store and use dark magic, but
the corruption of the force fields hasn't really affected my powers. Nôd’onn
knows that, but he wasn't expecting me to survive. Not that he's got anything
to worry about—my art is nothing compared to his." Shielding her eyes with
her hand, she squinted into the distance. "There should be a forest ahead.
I can't stand this sun much longer."
You've got to ask her now, Tungdil told himself. He
summoned all his courage. "Maga, suppose there was a way of stopping the
traitor. Would you try it?" he asked.
There
was silence. Just as the tension was becoming unbearable, Andôkai spoke.
"Would this have something to do with the contents of your bags, little
man?"
"We
found something in Greenglade," he told her, giving a brief account of
what had happened in the woods. "Nôd’onn sent in the älfar, but we got there
first."
"Are you
going to show me?"
Tungdil
thought for a moment and decided that there was no point leaving the matter half-solved.
He slid the package out of his knapsack, removed the wrapping, and handed over
the books.
Andôkai
opened each of the tomes in turn and leafed through the pages, her face
remaining an inscrutable mask.
Tungdil
couldn't help feeling disappointed: He had reckoned with her amazement. Seeing
her dispassionate expression made him fear the worst.
At
length she returned the volumes. "Was there anything with them?"
"What
are they about?" he asked, deciding not to give away anything until he'd
found out more.
"They're
anthologies: descriptions of legendary beings and mythical weapons, and an
obscure tale about an expedition across the Stone Gateway into the Outer Lands.
It says in the preface that a single survivor returned, mortally wounded but
bearing manuscripts that are reproduced in the book. Why Nôd’onn should take an
interest in the volumes is a mystery. I suppose he's just as knowledge-lusty as
before."
"What else
do they say?"
"Nothing."
"Nothing?
Nôd’onn wouldn't have sacked Greenglade for nothing! He had us chased by a war
band of orcs just to get his hands on the books!" He glared at the maga
defiantly. "With respect, maga, I think you're wrong. There's something
important in those volumes, even if you can't see it."
"Are you daring to…?" The mistress of Brandôkai
stopped and erupted into laughter. "Did you hear that, Djerůn? Here I
am, traipsing along a dusty road, being corrected by a dwarf who thinks he
knows best!"
The giant kept
walking, impassive as ever.
"I
didn't mean to cause offense," said Tungdil, "but at least I'm not as
arrogant and sure of myself as you are. I shouldn't wonder if there's elfish
blood in your veins!"
"Fighting
talk, little dwarf!" she said in amusement. She nodded in the direction of
the twins. "The other two would have drawn their weapons and settled the
matter another way, but you learned from Lot-Ionan, I can tell." Suddenly
she was serious again. "I'll take a proper look at the volumes tonight.
Maybe you're right and there's more to them than I thought."
"Thank
you, Estimable Maga." The dwarf inclined his head respectfully and
quickened his pace to catch up with the twins. "We'll soon find out what
the magus wanted with our books," he announced proudly.
"What?
You didn't tell the wizard-woman about them, did you?" gasped a horrified Boïndil.
"Not only that; I showed them
to her."
The
secondling shook his head reprovingly. "You're too trusting, scholar. It's
time you became a proper dwarf and stopped acting like a human."
"I
see. So you'd like me to splice her skull if she disagrees with me, would
you?" said Tungdil, his temper beginning to fray.
"I'd like to
see you dare," Boïndil retorted with venom.
Boëndal
quickly squeezed between them. "Stop it!" he said firmly. "Spare
your fury for the orcs; I doubt we've seen the last of them. For what it's
worth, I think Tungdil was right to tell the maga. I don't like being hounded
because of a couple of books I know nothing about."
His brother just
grunted and surged on.
"I
never said traveling with us would be easy," Boëndal said with a grin.
Tungdil sighed, then burst out laughing.
Dusk was falling when they set up camp.
The air had cooled and there was a smell of earth and grass. A band of crickets
was chirping its evening concert.
The
dwarves divided up their dwindling provisions—the sight of the Blue Range's
summits in the distance reassured them that they would soon be feasting on
fresh dwarven treats. Meanwhile, Andôkai kept her word and studied the books.
Not
wanting to distract her, Tungdil allowed the maga to read in peace, approaching
only to bring Djerůn his supper. Like every other evening, he placed a
loaf of bread, a chunk of cheese, and a large slab of meat beside the warrior.
This
time he was determined to keep an eye on the giant while he ate; so far neither
Tungdil nor the twins had seen behind the metal visor.
"Djerůn
will sit the first watch," said Andôkai without looking up from her
reading. "The rest of you can get some sleep."
"Suits
me fine," said Boïndil, then burped. He shook the worst of the crumbs from
his beard, coiled his plait into a pillow, and settled down next to the fire.
"Listen, long-un," he told the giant, who was sitting motionless as
usual, "don't forget to wake me if you see any orcs. It's about time they
had a taste of my axes."
The
twins seized the chance to get some sleep, and in no time loud snores were
reverberating through the woods, setting the leaves aquiver.
Andôkai
slammed down her book. "Now I know why they always take the first
watch," she said irritably. "It's a wonder their snores never woke
me. How am I supposed to concentrate when they're making such a din?"
Tungdil
chuckled. "Imagine what it sounds like in Ogre's Death."
"I don't
intend staying long enough to find out."
Tungdil
looked at her rippling muscles as she stretched. She was impressively strong
for a woman—stronger even than the scullery maids who were used to hard labor.
"Have
you found anything new in the..." Tungdil checked himself. He had resolved
not to ask her about the books.
Hugging
her knees to her chest, she rested her chin on her hands and turned her blue
eyes on him. "You think I'll change my mind if the books tell us how Nôd’onn
can be defeated."
"Samusin
is the god of equilibrium; surely it's your duty to strive for a balance
between darkness and light," he said, appealing to her faith since honor
alone was not enough to persuade her. Her decision to abandon her realm was
proof enough of that.
Andôkai
laid a hand on one of the leather-bound volumes. "If I could find a spell
or a charm that would cause Nôd’onn's downfall, I would take the traitor
on," she said earnestly, "but the books contain nothing of the
kind—just far-fetched stories and myths."
"So you're
turning your back on Girdlegard?"
"My
art is useless against Nôd’onn's power. I was lucky to escape." She
flicked through the book, opening it at random. "Maybe there is some kind of hidden meaning. All I know is that
I don't have the key."
Tungdil
decided to come clean. He produced the letter that Gorén had written in
scholarly script. "This was with the books. I suppose it might help."
"Is
there anything else you're not telling me, or is this the last of your
secrets?"
"It's the
last, I swear."
Andôkai
accepted the sheet of parchment, folded it, and placed it between the pages of
one of the books. She rubbed her eyes. "The darkness is hardly conducive
to study. I'll read it tomorrow." She returned the volumes to their wax paper
wrapping, arranged the parcel as a pillow, and nestled her head on top.
"Tomorrow?"
Tungdil had been expecting her to read the letter at once. He sighed; the maga
was a troublesome person to deal with. He settled down next to the fire and
glanced at Djerůn.
The
giant was still wearing his helmet, but the food was gone. Tungdil cursed:
Talking to Andôkai had distracted him from looking at Djerůn's visor,
although, now that he thought about it, he hadn't been alerted by a telling
clunk of metal. There was something unnerving about the maga's companion.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Late Summer,
6234th Solar Cycle
Balendilín barely had a moment to
himself. On reaching his chamber, he discovered that two dwarves from the
fourthling delegation had requested to see him.
Not a moment too soon. It's about time Gandogar put a stop
to this foolishness. He turned round and hurried to the meadows, where
the delegates were expecting him.
The
high king's counselor was feeling remarkably upbeat. For weeks he had poured
most of his energy into rebutting the rumors about Gundrabur's failing health,
and rightly so: The high king had a strong heart and an even stronger will,
which he employed in persuading the assembly to await the arrival of the other
pretender to the throne. Such was his success that there was talk of
strengthening the bonds among the folks in more permanent ways.
It's going almost too well, thought Balendilín,
gripped by a sudden apprehension. He stepped out of the passageway and onto a bridge
across a chasm fifty paces wide. Deep in thought, he made his way over the
disused copper mines two hundred paces below.
It
bothered him that Bislipur never seemed to tire of rekindling the passions of
those who favored a war against the elves. He and Gundrabur would have achieved
much more if it hadn't been for the fourthling's inflammatory speeches. He's a rabble-rouser. You can guarantee his influence is at the
heart of Gandogar's misplaced zeal.
Just
then he noticed a movement in the mouth of the tunnel ahead. Bislipur was on
the bridge in front of him, his left hand resting lightly on his ax. For a
moment Balendilín wondered whether the fourthling could have heard his
thoughts through the thick stone walls. There was something threatening about
his demeanor. Balendilín stopped and waited. "Were you looking for
me?"
"Do
you know what they're calling it?" Bislipur shouted, his voice echoing
against the rock. "The quarrel of the cripples:
one-armed Balendilín against Bislipur the lame. Is that how you see it?"
Balendilín
paused, hoping to hear sounds of other dwarves, but the tunnels were deserted.
He and Bislipur were alone. "Quarrel is
too strong a word," he answered. "You have your convictions, I have
mine, and we're both trying to persuade the assembly of our views." He
took a step forward, then another one. Bislipur did the same. "What is it
that you want?"
"To serve
the dwarves," Bislipur said, grim-faced.
"What is it
you want from me?"
"A
change of heart. How can I persuade you that the future of the folks and clans
lies with Gandogar and me?"
"If
you persist in campaigning for a war against the elves, I will never be able to
support your king," Balendilín said frankly. He stood his ground and
Bislipur stopped too. Fifteen paces remained between them.
"Then
a quarrel it is," Bislipur told him harshly. "Until Gandogar has been
elected, I shall regard you as an enemy and a danger to the prosperity and
safety of our race. The others will come round to my view." He walked
toward Balendilín, who was advancing along the bridge. Only an arm's length
separated the two dwarves. "It's about time the high king was spared your
counsel so he can come to his senses at last."
By
now they were so close that their noses were almost touching.
"To
his senses? That's rich, from you." Balendilín stared at Bislipur and saw
implacable hatred and enmity in his eyes. "Let me tell you this," he
said, trying not to betray his fear, even though Bislipur undoubtedly intended
to harm him. "Your war against Âlandur will never happen. Even the
fourthling chieftains are having second thoughts."
"The
throne is ours. You're no match for Gandogar and me." The words were spat
violently, Bislipur's pent-up fury ready to erupt at any moment.
"I didn't
realize you were bidding for a joint succession."
Neither
flinched as they glared at each other, eyes locked in combat. All of a sudden
Bislipur's air of menace fell away.
"Well,
good luck with your lost cause," he said breezily. "May Vraccas be
with you." He stepped past Balendilín and continued along the bridge.
The
high king's counselor closed his eyes and swallowed. Having resigned himself to
a duel, he could scarcely believe that he was going to make it across the chasm
without a fight. Bislipur's whistling reverberated through the tunnel, the
simple melody repeating itself and overlapping as he strode away.
It
was a relief to leave the bridge and feel solid ground beneath his feet. At least I know be means business, thought Balendilín
philosophically. He pressed on, anxious not to keep the fourthling delegates
waiting.
He
was just approaching a bend in the passageway when the floor seemed to shake.
The movement was so slight that a human would never have detected it, but the
dwarves had learned to take notice of the faintest vibrations in the rock.
Something heavy was heading his way.
The
next instant, he heard agitated mooing and thundering hooves. From what he
could gather, a herd had been startled on its return from the meadows.
Balendilín
scanned his surroundings, searching in vain for a niche that would save him
from the cattle's charge. There was no choice but to regain the bridge, climb
over the parapet, and balance on the narrow ledge.
He
turned and sped back along the passageway, spurred on by the sound of horns
scraping against the polished walls. Panting heavily, he reached the end of the
tunnel and the bridge came into view; the animals were right behind him.
Without
hesitating, he swung himself over the side and steadied himself on the ledge.
The momentum nearly carried him into the abyss, but the daring maneuver paid
off and the cows streamed past behind him.
Vraccas be praised!
There
was a jolt and the bridge cracked audibly. He could see the first fissures
running through the rock.
It
was only then that it occurred to him that the bridge was not designed to bear
the weight of stampeding cows. It had been built for dwarves, not cattle. The
herd exceeded its strength by a matter of tons and the rhythmic pounding of
their hooves had a devastating effect.
The
first crack opened at the midpoint of the bridge where the stone was at its
thinnest. The struts beneath it snapped, heralding the next stage in the
disaster.
A
section of stone measuring four paces in length gave way, sending a number of
cows plummeting into the abyss. From there the destruction spread along the
bridge. Slab by slab the stone fell away, cows tumbling to their deaths, their
moos becoming fainter and fainter. At the back of his mind Balendilín was aware
that there was still no sign that they had hit the bottom.
His
position was precarious in the extreme. With the bridge crumbling before his
eyes, he was faced with a choice of dying among the cows or casting himself
voluntarily into the abyss.
At
last the herd stopped surging and the dwarf summoned the courage to leap into
their midst. Barely had his feet touched the ground when the stone gave way
beneath him. Grabbing wildly at the edge, he managed to catch hold of a jagged
overhang and clung on for dear life.
An
able-bodied dwarf would have hauled himself to safety easily, but Balendilín,
dangling by his only arm, had no means of saving himself and no prospect of
being rescued. He knew it was merely a matter of time before his muscles gave
out.
"Is
anyone there? Help!" he shouted, straining his voice to alert his kinsmen
to his plight. With any luck, someone would be on their way to retrieve the
wayward herd. "Over here!"
The
cows were calmer now and answered his cries with gentle, mindless moos. Two of
the animals ventured to the edge and, sniffing at his hand, licked it heartily.
Their saliva collected in a pool, making his position more dangerous than
before.
It
seemed to Balendilín that three grown orcs could not weigh more than he did.
His arm was getting longer, while his voice grew hoarse.
Suddenly
the herd parted as someone barged through their midst.
"Over
here," he called, relieved that help had arrived before he lost his grip.
"I'm falling!"
Dust
showered over him, coating his hair and his beard, and he found himself looking
into the green face of a gnome whose sizable nose was tipped with a wart of
impressive dimensions. The creature's round eyes stared at him greedily and its
clawlike fingers slithered down his arm.
"Nearly
done." Sverd leaned over the edge and fumbled with Balendilín’s belt.
"Just one moment," he told the unfortunate dwarf.
A
clasp clicked open and Sverd straightened up, a look of satisfaction on his
face. He brandished Balendilín’s purse and the jewel-encrusted belt. "Much
indebted to you, I'm sure! You can let go now." Chuckling maliciously, he
beat his retreat.
"You
can't just leave me!" Balendilín shouted, aghast. "Come back!"
It was too late: His fingers slipped and in spite of his frantic efforts, he
failed to get a purchase on the saliva-covered overhang. He steeled himself for
the long slide into darkness.
At
that moment, an ax sped toward him, the short metal spur catching in the rings
of his mail shirt. Balendilín was reeled in like an anchor on a chain.
Breathing
heavily, he lay on the floor beside his rescuer, who was panting from the
strain.
"Gandogar!"
Balendilín could not conceal his astonishment at being saved from his fate by
the fourthling king.
"You
and I may not always agree with each other, but we're hardly enemies,"
said the monarch, smiling wryly. "First and foremost, we're dwarves,
children of the Smith. Our enemies are Tion's minions, not the other clans or
folks. That's how I see it, in spite of our differences." He straightened
up and helped the royal counselor to his feet. "What happened?"
Balendilín
seized his hand thankfully. Gandogar had spoken from the heart and his heroic
intervention was evidence enough of his sincerity. "Something must have
startled the cattle," he said.
He
didn't elaborate further. He wasn't prepared to blame Bislipur and Sverd for engineering
the "accident" until he had firm proof. The gnome's appearance on the
scene had convinced him that Bislipur was behind his attempted murder; Sverd
always acted on his master's command.
"I
owe you my life," he said earnestly. "It doesn't mean I think you're
right about the elves, but I'm deeply indebted to you all the same."
"Spoken
like a true dwarf," the king said warmly. "Besides, I didn't do
anything that you wouldn't have done for me."
"Oh
really?" Balendilín paused and smiled. "I'm not sure I would have
helped."
Gandogar looked
at him, shocked. "I..."
"How
could I have rescued you with only one hand?" Balendilín burst out
laughing and, after a short silence, Gandogar joined in. It saddened the
counselor that the fourthling monarch was so determined to go to war; he had a
feeling that Gandogar would make an excellent king.
Later,
when Balendilín regained his chamber, he knew without a shadow of a doubt that
the whole episode had been a trap. The delegates who supposedly wanted to see
him were an invention.
At
least his purse and his buckle had been deposited by his door. The gnome must
have thought better of harboring evidence of his despicable crime. Balendilín
replaced the purse, fastened his belt, and vowed not to give his would-be
murderers another chance.
Kingdom of Sangpûr, Girdlegard,
Early Autumn,
6234th Solar Cycle
Autumn left the travelers in no doubt
that it was a force to be reckoned with, particularly at night. Even though
they were deep in the south of Girdlegard, having crossed the border into Queen
Umilante's realm, there was little warmth to be found in the desert, only a
constant barrage of tiny grains of sand.
No
sooner had darkness drawn in and the sun sunk below the horizon than the air
took on a nasty chill. Andôkai wasted no time in lighting a blazing fire, in
spite of the twins' disapproval. To Boëndal's mind, the comfort it provided was
outweighed by the risk of attracting orcs and other riffraff; it seemed foolish
to court danger when they had come so far and were almost at their goal.
Somewhat begrudgingly, Boïndil agreed with him. But the maga ignored them
anyway and persisted in tossing logs into the flames.
They
were only eight or so orbits from Ogre's Death when they came to a village
among the dunes. The settlement was situated next to a tranquil lake, which
made it a popular and flourishing trading post. Tungdil and the others decided
to grant themselves the luxury of a night's shelter.
For
merchants returning home from the secondling kingdom, the village was a last
oasis before the long journey through Sangpûr, where nothing awaited them but
desolate wasteland and the occasional brigand.
"It's
safe here," Boëndal assured them. "The traders like dwarves because
they know we offer decent, solid wares that fetch good prices when they sell
them in other towns."
The
party still attracted considerable attention, but only, as Tungdil realized,
because they were accompanied by a walking tionium tower. Children crowded
round them, marveling at Djerůn, who bore the fuss with equanimity. The
giant was accustomed to causing a stir.
Visitors
to the settlement were accommodated in tents by the lake. Depending on the
needs of each party, the canvas and wood constructions could be expanded or
reduced in size, with the option of adding an extra floor to create a two-story
dwelling not dissimilar to a house.
Djerůn
was too tall for a standard model, so they opted for a two-story tent and
removed the upper floorboards. The wind was freshening, so they retreated under
the canvas, lit a fire in the corner, and got the kettle boiling.
"Just
think," Tungdil said excitedly, sipping his steaming mug of tea, "I'm
about to meet my folk. I can hardly wait!"
"I'm
not surprised," Boëndal agreed, smiling at him warmly. "And the
others will be pleased to meet you too. The delegates will be dying of
impatience."
"Ugh!"
his brother interrupted. "Why would anyone drink this stuff? I'm off to
find some beer. There aren't any sensible buildings in this village, but
they're bound to sell something that tastes better than tea!" He got up
and left.
"So
tell me, Tungdil," said Andôkai, who had been poring over the books,
"what makes you special enough to merit a royal escort?" Gorén's
letter rested on her knee. It was the first time she had taken any interest in
why the twins had been sent to find Tungdil.
He
hesitated. "What does it matter?" he said disdainfully. "The
Estimable Maga is abandoning Girdlegard. I don't see why she needs to
know."
Andôkai
broke off her study, taken aback by Tungdil's harsh tone. "Dear me, I've
incurred your eternal displeasure, have 1? I'm sorry to disappoint you, but
you're wasting your breath it you think you can stop me by appealing to my
conscience."
Boëndal glanced
at Tungdil, eyebrows raised.
As
far as Tungdil was concerned, the maga had no right to give up on her homeland
so easily. She wasn't the only one who stood to lose by staying in Girdlegard.
In spite of his excitement at being reunited with his folk, he knew that his
chances of survival were slim, unless of course there was something in the
books that could help them vanquish Nôd’onn. But unlike the maga, he was
determined to fight beside his kinsmen to the end.
Rain
pattered against the canvas. Fat droplets left meandering tracks on the
outside of the tent and pitted the dusty ground. Autumn showers were nothing
unusual in Sangpûr’s deserts. In most other places, the wet and dry weather
would have been ideal for agriculture, but the soil was impossibly barren in
these parts. Trees and plants rarely took root and were tended jealously by
their owners.
Just
then the tent flap swung open and a cloaked intruder appeared in their midst.
Like
a statue conjured to life, Djerůn leaped into action. His left gauntlet
closed around his two-hander; then he raised the sword with both hands, dropped
into a half crouch, lunged forward, and brought the blade whistling toward the
stranger's throat.
"Stop!"
the maga commanded. Djerůn froze.
"Forgive
me," stammered the man. "I didn't mean to startle you. I was told to
deliver this." Hands trembling, he deposited the keg of beer and fled,
worried that the giant would change his mind and cut him down regardless.
"Good
work," Boëndal said admiringly. "I wouldn't have thought it possible
that a man could move so fast wearing all that armor."
Djerůn
returned to his former position, cross-legged on the floor. Boëndal's comment
failed to elicit a response from the giant or his mistress.
The
secondling persevered. "The warrior is your business," he told Andôkai,
"but our sentries won't let him cross the High Pass unless he's prepared
to show his face and declare his lineage."
"What
kind of foolishness is this?" the maga said irritably, weary of the
constant interruptions. "We'll be leaving Girdlegard! What does it matter
what he looks like or where he comes from? You'd be well advised to focus on
your defenses, instead of interfering in the business of travelers who can't
wait to leave your land."
"Whether
you're coming or going is of no concern to us," Boëndal said emphatically.
"No beast of Tion will set foot on our pass."
"Hang
on," Tungdil told him, "he's just an elongated—"
Boëndal
didn't let him finish. "I played along to keep the peace, but we're almost
home now." He looked at Andôkai grimly. "When we reach the Blue
Range, the giant will be bound by the same laws as everyone else. You're
welcome to seek your own route through the mountains, but you won't be crossing
our kingdom if you're hiding something dangerous behind that mask."
"I'll
take my chances," said the maga, returning to her book.
"Your chances!" exploded Boëndal.
"Do you mean we've been traveling all this way with a creature of
darkness?"
"That's
not what I said. Besides, I don't recall there being anything in the creed of
Samusin to forbid it."
"Samusin?
I won't have any truck with him." The
dwarf's face hardened and he rose to his feet, the long shaft of his crow's
beak clasped in one hand. "Tell me what's behind the visor."
"That
does it!" Andôkai closed her book with a snap. "Nôd’onn himself could
be hiding inside that armor and I wouldn't tell you! Djerůn is with
me." If anyone had been wondering how Andôkai the Tempestuous had earned
her name, the matter was now resolved. "Who cares if he's an ogre or a
dark spirit or Tion knows what? He's the perfect traveling companion and he
doesn't stink like a pig—which is more than can be said for you and your brother!"
Her blue eyes glinted menacingly as she swept the long blond hair from her
face. "He'll raise his visor when he's good and ready, and if you don't
like it, too bad!" She pointed toward the main village. "Did you
notice the bathhouse on your way in? I recommend you pay it a visit. It's a
wonder the birds don't die of asphyxiation when you're around."
She
fixed him with an icy stare and opened the second volume with a thud.
The
silence that followed was broken by the sound of someone running toward the
tent. The next moment, Boïndil burst through the door.
"Pointy-ears!"
he spluttered. "Pointy-ears from Âlandur! The trader said they—" He
noticed the keg of beer abandoned forlornly on the floor. "I thought
you'd be thirsty!" he said, shaking his head in surprise. He pierced the
lid with his ax, filled his tankard, emptied it in a single draft, and burped.
"Not bad," he pronounced, helping himself to more.
"You
were saying?" Andôkai reminded him sharply, diverting his attention away
from the beer.
"Er,
elves!" Boïndil sat down on a leather stool. "I bought the keg from a
trader who told me what's been happening in Âlandur. He thought we'd be
drinking to the ruin of the elves. From what he said, their kingdom is all but
done for. He reckoned they were scouting Girdlegard for new places to
live."
"In
Sangpûr?" the maga said incredulously. "Why come this far south when
there's nothing but sand, dust, and stone? It doesn't make sense. What would an
elf want with a treeless desert?"
Tungdil
glanced at Boëndal, who was clearly thinking on similar lines.
It
took another sip of beer before his brother caught on.
"Are you saying
they're älfar?" he ventured finally. Ideas invariably took longer to
penetrate Boïndil’s mind.
"Nôd’onn
wants the books," Tungdil explained patiently. "A motley company like
us doesn't go unnoticed. They must have followed us here and waited until
nightfall to enter the settlement. As soon as it's dark, you can't see their
eyes and there's no way of telling they're not elves."
"In
which case, they could be either," Boëndal pointed out. "I say we
post a watch. If they're älfar, they'll be after us. Why else would they be
staying in the village, if not to steal the books? From now on, none of us
leaves the tent, no matter what. We'll let them come to us."
"Nonsense,
we'll go after them!" Boïndil said fiercely. "If they're älfar, we'll
kill them, and if they're elves... we'll kill them too! The pointy-ears deserve
to die." It had been a while since he'd last used his axes.
Andôkai
listened, then signaled to Djerůn and settled down to sleep.
"No,
brother," ruled Boëndal, "we'll leave them in peace. The whole
village could turn against us if we start a fight. We're not in our own kingdom
yet, remember. Cool your temper. I'll take the first watch."
Tungdil yawned and finished his tankard of beer before lying down on a pile of rugs. His fingers clutched the haft of his ax, making him feel a little less exposed. He wasn't sure what to think, but in some ways he was hoping that the älfar would attack. At least that would persuade Andôkai of the importance of the books.
Tungdil was just dozing off when a
shouted warning woke the desert oasis. The dwarves, were on their feet in a
flash, weapons at the ready. Andôkai had drawn her sword and was monitoring the
tent flap and the walls.
Ax
raised and shield held in front of him, Djerůn knelt by the entrance,
blocking it like a wall. His helmet glinted, the demonic visor coming alive in
the dying firelight. For a fraction of a heartbeat, Tungdil thought he
glimpsed a purple glow behind the eyeholes.
Boëndal
damped the flames lest their shadows be seen through the canvas. The three
dwarves stood back-to-back, the maga beside them.
For a
few moments it was quiet; then agonized screams rent the air. Now sounds could
be heard from the other tents as people emerged from their flimsy shelters,
their voices mingling in a clamor of questions as each tried to establish the
cause of the noise. Willowy silhouettes and strange shadows flitted across the
canvas walls, while all around there was a clunking of metal as shields knocked
against tent poles, armor was donned, and weapons were unsheathed. Roused
abruptly from its slumber, the village among the dunes was preparing to fight.
"What's
going on?" asked Tungdil in a whisper. "Do you think it's a
trap?"
Just
then a human voice cried out in terror, "Orcs!" Swords met in a
ringing din. The battle had commenced.
The
beasts stopped skulking through the settlement and abandoned all pretense at
stealth. Listening to their grunts and snarls, Tungdil was reminded of
Goodwater, of Ionandar, of those who had died...
He
was torn between staying in the tent and running to the aid of the people
outside. His instinct was to help, but for all he knew, the älfar were out
there, waiting for him and his companions to emerge.
"What do we
do?" he asked the battle-hardened twins.
"We
wait," came Boëndal's strained reply. He tightened his grip on his crow's
beak.
The
clash of swords was getting louder and more violent, mingled with the screams
of dying men. Sounds of fighting echoed from every corner of the village. The
orcs had evidently surrounded the settlement and were attacking from all sides
simultaneously, making it impossible for anyone to escape.
As
the fighting raged around them, Tungdil and the others followed the progress
of the battle on the walls of their tent, men and orcs locked in combat like
figures in a shadow theater.
Boïndil
held a whispered conference with his brother. At last a decision was reached.
"We need to get out of here," he announced. "The runts will sack
the settlement and we can't risk Tungdil getting—"
An orc
burst through the tent flap, grunting and waving his sword. He ran full tilt
into the expanse of unforgiving metal that was Djerůn's shield.
Nose
gushing with blood, he staggered groggily to the side, only for the giant to
hew his collarbone with a downward swipe of his ax. The force of the blow
cleaved armor and bones, slicing the ore diagonally in two. Blood and guts
spilled from the body in a horrible, reeking mess.
"Hey!
I thought I told you to leave the runts to me," protested Boïndil.
"The next one's mine, all right?"
A
second orc stormed into the tent, and Andôkai called out to Djerůn, who
swung his shield obediently to the side. The beast ran on unhindered, failing
to notice his fallen comrade or the colossal warrior.
"That's
more like it!" Boïndil rushed forward and stopped the beast without ado.
Felled by his axes, the ore died with a final grunt.
"No
more tomfoolery, Boïndil," his brother said sternly. He cut a slit in the
rear of the tent and peered through the gap. "All clear." The sharp
blade of his crow's beak tore neatly through the canvas and he slipped outside.
When he was sure it was safe, he signaled for the others to follow.
They
had taken no more than a few paces when a long, slender shadow appeared in
front of Boëndal and attacked.
Only
the dwarf's helmet prevented the sword from cleaving his skull. Even so, the
force of the blow brought him to his knees.
"Elf
or älf, prepare to die!" His brother hurled himself at the figure with a
blood-curdling shriek.
As
their assailant stepped back, his cloak fell open to reveal a black metal
breastplate that reached to his thighs. His beautiful face and pointed ears
removed any doubts about the identity of their attacker.
Another
älf appeared out of nowhere and challenged Djerůn, while a third bore down
on Andôkai. Stretching out her hand, the maga conjured a glimmering black
sphere and cast a bolt of lightning in his direction.
Tungdil
expected the creature to burst into flames, but his hopes were disappointed.
The älf produced an amulet, which intercepted the spluttering charm, absorbing
the magic and leaving the target unharmed. Cursing, the maga drew her sword.
Tungdil
glanced round, looking for a possible fourth attacker. To his horror an älf
leaped from a nearby cart and landed in front of him. His eyes took in the
crimson gloves, long spear, and golden hair... It was one of the two älfar who
had parleyed with the orcs near Goodwater.
Sinthoras! His lips appeared to be moving.
"Speak
up!" commanded Tungdil, dwarven bloody-mindedness conquering his fear. He
had no intention of surrendering.
"Look
at me: Sinthoras is your death," the fair-haired älf whispered softly. "I will take your life as I have taken the life of every
groundling before you."
"We'll
see about that. Vraccas helped us to kill one of your kind in Greenglade and
he'll help us again." Tungdil decided not to wait for the älf to attack.
"For Lot-Ionan and Frala!" Raising his ax, he charged.
Sinthoras
laughed, easily evading the energetic but poorly planned attack. Realizing at
once that he was dealing with a novice, he decided to have some fun with his
victim before dealing the fatal blow.
His
spear flashed forward, its long, tapered point boring through Tungdil's mail
shirt and passing through his undergarments. The tip pierced his left
shoulder, deep enough to hurt him but too shallow for serious harm. The wound
enraged the dwarf further and he redoubled his efforts, little realizing that
the älf was toying with him.
Slowly
but surely Sinthoras drew his victim away from his companions, leading him into
the jumble of tents. While the älf skipped and danced ahead, Tungdil blundered
among the guy ropes and tent pegs, grimly focused on staying on his feet.
The älf's
weapon approached with such speed that Tungdil gave up trying to block its
attack. One moment the creature would be in front of him; the next his spear
would be buried in his back. He was losing blood from myriad perforations that
smarted abominably.
At
last Tungdil looked round and realized his mistake. Amid the confusion of ropes
and tents he had lost sight of the others and even the giant was gone. A moment
later, Sinthoras vanished as well. The älf was enjoying his murderous little
game.
Wherever
Tungdil looked, men were fighting with a courage born of despair, knowing with
grim certainty that the orcs would show no mercy. Meanwhile, the beasts kept
coming at them, more determined than ever to sink their teeth into the traders
and their wares.
A
number of tents had been pulled to the ground and the canvas caught fire.
Flames and glinting swords reflected in the surface of the lake, the watery
image of destruction warped by rippling waves.
"Where
are you hiding?" Tungdil was learning to his cost that älfar were harder
to deal with than orcs. He decided to rejoin his friends while he still had the
chance.
But Sinthoras
wasn't finished with him.
"Over
here!" The älf loomed up behind him, thrusting his spear violently into
the dwarf's right shoulder.
Something
seemed to tear inside Tungdil's arm, the pain surging through him like liquid
fire. His hand opened and the ax fell from his grasp.
The
dwarf's tormentor pulled his legs from under him, tipping him face-first to
the ground. Crouching over him, Sinthoras threaded the spear through his mail
shirt on a level with his heart. The metal spike ground against the rings.
"What
did I tell you?" said a whisper in Tungdil's ear. "Sinthoras is your death. It would have been
wiser to leave the books in Greenglade, but it's too late for that now."
"Go
ahead and kill me, but answer me one thing: What do you want with the
books?"
Sinthoras
laughed. "Only a groundling could be so simple-minded! To think that
you've been lugging around the volumes, and you don't even know what they
are!" He thought for a moment. "They're precious, more precious than
anything you can imagine. A single syllable is worth a sack of gold. They could
make you the wealthiest being in Girdlegard—or the most powerful, if you kept
the secret to yourself. Acting on their contents would make you a hero beyond
compare." He leaned on his spear and lowered his voice to a malicious
whisper. "All this you had—but you lost it. I'll take even more pleasure
in killing you now."
Tungdil
shuddered as the älf muttered unintelligibly in his own dark tongue. At any
moment the spear would reach his heart and put an end to his life.
Before
the weapon could penetrate farther, a shadow fell over them and something
whirred through the air. The älf dove to safety, only this time the maneuver
was anything but elegant. He hit a tent, the canvas collapsing around him.
Djerůn
strode past the stricken dwarf and went after the älf. Using the lower edge of
his shield as a knife, he beat down on the muffled body, first with his shield,
then his ax, until the bloodied canvas lay still. Three orcs tried to stop him
but were slain on the spot.
Tungdil
wondered whether he was hallucinating when he saw what happened next.
The
giant, whose back was turned to Tungdil, opened his visor—or so the dwarf
concluded from the movement of his arm—and tore a chunk of flesh from an orcish
corpse. He raised the dripping meat toward his face.
What is he doing? Grunting with pain, Tungdil
lifted himself onto his knees, leaned on his ax for support, and called to the
giant.
Djerůn
whirled round in surprise and pushed down his visor.
In
the light of the burning tents, Tungdil caught a brief glimpse of a skull with
wide jaws, long fangs, and slits for eyes. The helmet clicked into place and
violet light glimmered through the demon's eyes. The chunk of flesh had vanished,
but it was obvious from the mutilated corpse and the green blood dripping from Djerůn's
gauntlet that something extraordinary had occurred.
He's
not an orc or an ogre, so what kind of creature is be?
Djerůn
gestured with his ax in the direction from which he had come. Tungdil followed
his lead, relying on the giant to slay the orcs who barred their path. He was
finding it difficult enough to walk with his injuries.
Before
they were out of the maze of tents, Boïndil rushed toward them, a panicked look
on his face. His lips twitched and his jaw tightened when he saw the blood on
Tungdil's shirt; he didn't need to be told that the giant had saved his
charge's life.
The
trio hurried on, arriving in time to see Andôkai drive her sword through the
neck of a dying älf who was flailing at her feet. She snatched up the amulet
that had warded off her magic power. Her leather armor seemed to strain at the
seams as she gasped for breath, her physical strength exhausted.
She
greeted Tungdil with a brief nod, then led the company out of the village on a
southerly bearing. Between them, Djerůn, the twins, and the maga had put
pay to three älfar.
Boëndal
stoically ignored the blood trickling down his neck. It took more than a blow
to the head to make a dwarf complain.
Tungdil
gritted his teeth and followed at the rear. His wounds could be bandaged just
as soon as they had got the books to safety, which meant throwing off Nôd’onn's
henchmen and making their way to Ogre's Death as quickly as they could.
Three
orcish sentries were waiting for them at the top of a dune. Djerůn drew
his sword.
"That's
enough from you, long-un!" In no time Ireheart was at his side, hacking
savagely at the beasts. The rage he felt at neglecting his duty to Tungdil was
channeled into his blows and he cut down two of the beasts in the time it took Djerůn
to slay one.
"At least
I'm faster than you," he told the giant.
Down in the village, the noise of the
battle was fading. From the jeering and grunting it was obvious that the orcs
had prevailed against the inhabitants of the desert's lone oasis. Flames were
spreading from tent to tent and the orcs were loading chopped-up corpses onto
carts. A band of runts spotted the travelers on the crest of the dune and set
off in pursuit. Two dozen beasts scrambled up the sandy slope behind them.
"You'd
think they'd have the sense to give up." Andôkai waited until they were
almost upon them, then raised her arms and uttered an incantation.
A
tearing wind swept out of nowhere, gusting and circling until it formed a
tornado four paces in diameter, becoming stronger and fiercer with the maga's
every word. Sand, scree, and boulders were sucked into its midst; then, on Andôkai's
command, the gale unleashed its force on the orcs, who were hanging back in
confusion.
The
wind and debris peeled the skin from their bones. Grunting and yelping, the
orcs fled the lethal gust.
"Carry
on without me," Andôkai told the dwarves. "I'll keep the orcs busy
for a while."
The
trio resumed their march and soon the maga was back in their midst, with Djerůn
behind them, on the lookout for any attacks from the rear.
This time, though, the orcs let them go. Unlike the älfar, they weren't equipped to deal with magic, and the night of looting and destruction had been profitable enough.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Early Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
I call on the assembly to decide the
matter without further delay," said Gandogar loudly, his voice ringing out
across the great hall. With the intention of cutting a regal figure, he had put
on full mail and was wearing his diamond-encrusted helmet. "Thirty orbits
have passed, thirty orbits in which..."
He
continued his address, the chieftains and elders listening in silence.
Gundrabur's
eyes were closed and the ceremonial hammer was resting on the arms of his
marble throne. His counselor was following the speech without visible emotion.
He had not succeeded in uncovering any evidence to incriminate Bislipur or
Sverd, and worse still, the mood among the delegates was tipping in favor of
war.
"You
saw the smoke! It came from a village across the border with Sangpûr."
Turning slowly, Gandogar scanned the semicircle of dwarves; he knew he had to
make eye contact if he wanted to win their trust. "The settlement was
razed to the ground by orcs. Tion's runts are marauding through the
countryside, brazenly attacking the races of Girdlegard. We can't afford not to know who our next leader will be.
Every orbit brings new dangers. According to the traders, strange things are
happening in the enchanted realms and Âlandur is in turmoil. Some say that the
elves have abandoned their kingdom and are scouting for land elsewhere. We must
act!"
"Here
or in Âlandur?" said a bewildered voice from the benches.
"Here and in Âlandur!" bellowed Bislipur, before
Gandogar had a chance to reply. His dwarven blood was boiling over with
impatience and he couldn't endure the prospect of another interminable speech.
"Âlandur must be invaded before the pointy-ears give us the slip and
vanish Vraccas knows where!" He raised a clenched fist. "Destroy the
elves and avenge our murdered kin!"
The
call was taken up by most of the delegates, although a few of their number
abstained from the general excitement, some signaling their disagreement by
frowning or shaking their heads.
Gandogar's
gaze settled on a chieftain who was wearing his withered elf's ear with pride.
The call to arms had been resoundingly successful, but there was still the
matter of the succession, and the elderly monarch showed no sign of preparing
to vacate the throne.
At
that moment, Gundrabur's eyes opened wearily. "Silence!" he
commanded. "Baying for blood like beasts... You should be ashamed of
yourselves!" He raised a gnarled hand and pointed to the dwarf who was
sporting the grisly trinket. "Get rid of it!"
The chieftain
looked to Gandogar for support.
Seizing
the hammer, the high king rose from the throne and made his way from the dais
to confront the disobedient dwarf. His wrinkled fingers gripped the chain and
snapped it from the delegate's neck. The shriveled ear dropped to the floor.
"I'm
not dead yet, and while I'm your high king, I shall set our course," he
thundered. "The assembly will wait!"
"No,"
Gandogar contradicted him, "we have waited long enough. Beyond these
walls, orcs are laying waste to Girdlegard and the elvish villains are getting
away. I will sit and wait no longer!"
Balendilín
stepped down from the platform and strode over to the fourthling monarch.
"You forget yourself," he said, hand resting lightly on his belt.
"The high king deserves your respect." The reprimand was delivered
without any of the usual formalities behooving Gandogar's rank.
"The
high king has been wearing the crown for too many cycles to know what's best
for our folks!" Gandogar snapped back. "I won't put up with this
nonsense any longer. Why should I sit back and do nothing when we should be
seizing our opportunity and getting vengeance on the elves? Âlandur is as good
as defeated! We need to attack while we can, not sit here, wasting our energy
on pointless discussions. Orbit after orbit, all we ever do is talk and
drink!"
Balendilín
squared his shoulders. "Think carefully before you continue, King
Gandogar. Our laws were not made to be broken by you." He pointed to the
stone stelae engraved with the sacred commandments of the dwarves.
"They're the very basis of our existence. Defy them, and you'll be
endangering the fragile unity of the folks. Why not take a hammer to the
tablets if that's your intention? By all means, write your own laws, but
remember: History will be your judge."
Hand
on his ax, Bislipur stepped forward, positioning himself at Gandogar's side.
The atmosphere in the great hall was unbearably tense; for the first time it
seemed that the difference of opinion was going to end in blows.
Suddenly, the
doors swung open.
"Get
out!" Gandogar shouted furiously. "We don't need more confounded
beer!"
But
this time the interruption wasn't the fault of attendants bearing tankards. A
herald walked in. "The second candidate has arrived!" he announced.
The
delegates whirled round and stared excitedly at three squat figures silhouetted
in the doorway. Behind them stood a human female and an armored giant. A buzz
of whispers filled the room.
"Let
me speak with him," said a visibly relieved Gundrabur. "The assembly
is dismissed." Balendilín helped him back to the throne and they waited
for the delegates to leave the hall.
The
departing dwarves cast curious glances at the stranger standing between the
twins, but no one dared to address him. Then Bislipur drew level.
He
stopped and took a menacing step toward Tungdil. "You're not one of
us," he said scornfully. "Go back to Lot-Ionan and leave us to settle
our own affairs. You needn't have bothered coming; we've decided on a successor
already."
"Oh
really? Let's hope he's as good as this one," Boëndal said coolly. He
stepped in front of his charge. "Didn't you hear what Gundrabur said? The
assembly is dismissed."
Boïndil
joined him and flashed the fourthling adviser an insolent smile. "Looking
for trouble, are you? I'll shave your miserable chin with my axes, you see if I
don't." Bislipur merely snorted and left. The doors closed behind him,
shutting Andôkai and Djerůn outside.
The
high king motioned for the trio to approach. He and his counselor looked at
Tungdil warmly. "The lost dwarf has returned to his kinsfolk," he
said, rising to clap a hand on his shoulder. "Thanks be to Vraccas for
bringing you here."
Tungdil
bowed his head, overcome with emotion. He wanted to say something, but his
throat was dry with excitement. He felt sweaty and grubby, and his body ached
all over in spite of Boïndil's efforts to treat his wounds. In fact, the
shoulder that the high king was gripping was particularly sore. All in all, he
was too tired and disheveled to appear before Gundrabur, but the king of all
dwarves generously refrained from commenting on his state.
The
monarch turned to the twins. "You've done yourselves and the secondlings
proud. Ogre's Death boasts no finer warriors than you," he lauded them.
"You can be sure of my gratitude. Retire to your chambers and get some
rest."
Boïndil
stared at the floor, uncomfortable at being praised. He hadn't forgiven himself
for what had happened in the desert oasis when Tungdil had nearly been killed.
It was mortifying to think that his charge would have died without Djerůn.
Gloomily, he left the hall with his twin.
"You'll
hear our side of the story in a moment," promised Balendilín, "but
why don't you tell us about your journey first?"
This
was the moment that Tungdil had been waiting for. He tried to swallow his nerves,
but it was hard not to be distracted by the great hall's monumental galleries,
pillars, and statues. It was all so very dwarven.
"Gladly,"
he said, "but what of Andôkai and Djerůn? They were loyal protectors
during our travels. I trust they will be provided for?" Without really
meaning to, he had adopted a more flowery way of speech, perhaps because of his
magnificent surroundings.
Balendilín
gave his word that the maga and her companion would be taken care of, so
Tungdil launched into his account, beginning with Lot-Ionan, the vaults, and
his errand, then proceeding by means of the Blacksaddle, Greenglade, the fate
of the magi, the treachery of Nudin (or Nôd’onn, as he called himself), his
run-in with the bounty hunters, Gorén's mysterious books, and the älfar's
attempts to track them down, then concluding with the magus's threat to the
dwarven kingdoms and his plans to bend Girdlegard to his will.
Soon
his cheeks were flushed with talking, but he tried to state the facts plainly,
without glossing over the horror or embellishing his report.
He
spoke without faltering, save for one occasion when he was understandably
thrown. It happened when three serving girls opened the doors and walked into
the hall. Tungdil, who yearned to become acquainted with the fairer sex, was
transfixed by the mysterious creatures who had colonized his imagination for
as long as he could remember. They were a little shorter than he was and not as
broadly built, but their ample robes betrayed an unmistakable fullness of
figure. Fine, almost imperceptible fluff covered their plump faces from the
cheekbones to the lower jaw. The wispy down matched the color of their hair
and, unlike his own bristly whiskers, their furry skin seemed soft and smooth.
This then was the origin of the myth about bearded women. Tungdil found them
utterly beguiling.
His
remaining composure crumbled when they turned to him with shy, friendly smiles.
His heart started beating so wildly that he had to abandon his story until they
were gone. Gundrabur and Balendilín made no comment, although the one-armed
counselor could barely suppress a grin.
At
last Tungdil concluded his report, ending with a brief account of the attack on
the desert oasis. He reached for his tankard, which smelled enticingly of beer.
The dark liquid washed over his thirsty lips, coating his tongue with its powerful
malty flavor. A single sip was enough to convince him that humans knew nothing
of beer. It tasted so good that he could have kissed the dwarf who had invented
the recipe, but instead he took another swig.
"These
are ill tidings," Gundrabur said sadly. "We intend to be honest with
you, Tungdil, so you shall hear of our problems too." His counselor
described the dwarves' predicament, including the proposed war, the question of
the succession, and the rift among the delegates, as succinctly as he could.
"It seems from what you've told us that an alliance is imperative. The
races of Girdlegard must unite and fight together against the Perished
Land."
Tungdil
sighed. "An alliance won't save us if we can't make sense of the books or
the artifacts. There must be a way of getting
to Nôd’onn or he wouldn't be so afraid. The trouble is, we can't do anything
without Andôkai and she's determined to wash her hands of Girdlegard. Without
her power and knowledge, our chances of defeating the evil are no better than
any of the other realms'."
"And
we must watch powerlessly while the northern blight advances," Gundrabur
murmured somberly, closing his eyes. "Then it is settled: I shall appeal to
the maga for help."
Tungdil
said nothing, although he doubted the efficacy of the scheme. No amount of
dwarven reasoning could influence the workings of the maga's mind. The thought
of Andôkai reminded him that Djerůn had been permitted to enter the
stronghold without raising his visor. At the time it hadn't occurred to him,
and it clearly hadn't registered with the sentries or the twins, who had
blithely waved the armored warrior through their gates. She must have put a spell on us. He decided not to
say anything, least of all to Boïndil, whose hot temper would explode in
incandescent fury. The last thing they needed was for Djerůn to be
challenged to a duel.
He
took the opportunity to broach the subject of the succession. "I don't
mean to sound ungrateful," he said, determined to nip the matter in the
bud. "You've done me a great service in reuniting me with my folk, but I
can't be made king. I was raised by long-uns and learned the dwarven ways from
books—extremely inaccurate books, I might
tell you. My rival is a much more suitable candidate, so I intend to renounce
my claim and vote in favor of him. We need a high king whom everyone will
respect."
"Your
speech and sentiments do you credit," Gundrabur praised him, "but the
fact is, we made up the story about your birth. Lot-Ionan played along because
we swore him to secrecy. I'm afraid you have no claim to the throne; there's no
proof that you're even a fourthling."
Tungdil's
mind was reeling. "But why...I mean, I don't see why you made me come all
this way just to tell me it isn't true..."
"Think
of all the good that has come of it already," Balendilín said soothingly.
"It's put us in a better position to do something about Nôd’onn. And if we
hadn't sent the twins to look for you, the orcs would have killed you in
Greenglade."
"True,
but..." He fumbled for the right words. "What of the delegates? All
this time, the assembly has been waiting for me, and I'm not even a genuine
heir!"
He
felt as if the ground had been tunneled from under his feet. After the ordeals
of his journey he had just been getting comfortable, and now he had nowhere to
call home.
"Please
don't be angry with us," Gundrabur entreated him. "If Gandogar is
crowned, our race will be locked in combat with the elves, and we can't let
that happen. Our idea was to postpone Gandogar's appointment until the assembly
had been persuaded of the folly of waging war. When your magus wrote to us with
news of a foundling dwarf, we took the liberty of inventing a story about your
lineage to buy some extra time."
"We
were hoping to find a solution—an ancient law or suchlike that would force the
assembly to vote against a war," Balendilín explained. "Fighting the
elves would be ruinous for both our races, but Gandogar just won't see it. I
expect you think we're as dishonest as kobolds, but our intentions are
honorable: We want the best for our race."
Tungdil
kept his mouth shut for fear of saying something he might regret. He helped
himself to more beer and emptied the tankard in a single draft. "And did
you find anything?"
"Not
exactly," the high king confessed. "That's why we're asking you to
join our conspiracy and challenge Gandogar for the throne."
"What
good would it do?" Tungdil shrugged. "They'd never elect me."
"No,"
agreed Gundrabur, "but if I'm not happy with the assembly's choice of
heir, I can veto the succession."
"And
what then? Would you rather our folks fought each other than waged war on the
elves?"
"It
won't come to that," Balendilín reassured him. "Our laws state that
the heir must challenge his rival to a duel. Of course, the rival candidate
would have to be backed by some of the chieftains and elders, but roughly a
third of the delegates have been won over to our cause. That should
suffice."
"And
then Gandogar will have the privilege of slicing me in two." Tungdil
scowled. "I still don't see how it changes anything."
The high king and
his counselor exchanged glances.
"Swear
that you won't breathe a word of this to anyone," Balendilín demanded,
eyeing Tungdil solemnly until he complied. "We need to banish Bislipur
and Sverd from Gandogar's circle. Bislipur is obsessed with the idea of wiping
out the elves and his zeal has rubbed off on Gandogar. Thanks to Bislipur's
constant whispering, the fourthling king rarely has time to think for
himself." He frowned. "The villain tried to kill me. I can't prove it
yet, but I will."
"But
assuming you succeed," Tungdil said doubtfully, "won't Gandogar still
go ahead with his plan?"
"We'll
open his eyes to the perfidy of his mentor and the folly of an elven war.
Gandogar is a good dwarf at heart; his adviser is to blame." Balendilín
paused and looked at Tungdil intently. "But I need more time; and for that
we're depending on your help."
"You'll
be doing your kinsmen a great service," Gundrabur assured him.
"They'll realize it eventually. History will record how a foundling dwarf
named Tungdil was hewn by Vraccas to save his children from destruction."
"I'll
do it," agreed Tungdil, "but I'll need your full support."
"We'll
do everything we can for you," promised Balendilín. "You're an
honorable dwarf, Tungdil. Forgive us for burdening you with our troubles before
you've even had a chance to rest. Now that we've settled the important business,
you should get some proper sleep. You'll have one orbit in which to recover and
prepare yourself for the hustings." The one-armed counselor smiled at him
encouragingly.
"Buy
us some time, and we'll forge a better future without the likes of
Bislipur," the high king exhorted him. He picked up the ceremonial hammer
and held it out to the dwarf. "Swear on the hammer that brought us into
being that you won't tell a soul."
Tungdil
gave his word and left the great hall. Outside, Andôkai and Djerůn were
still waiting in the corridor.
"They
said we could stay for a while," she said evenly. "As it happens, I
could do with a break. These past few orbits together have been horribly
stressful."
"My
sentiments exactly," said Tungdil, leaving the maga to decide whether it
was the journey or her company that he found such a trial.
An
attendant arrived to take them to their rooms. As they followed, Tungdil
marveled at the splendor of their surroundings. The masons had worked the
walls with incredible finesse and the smooth surfaces were decorated with
sculpted reliefs and chiseled inscriptions. Dwarven runes inlaid with precious
metals shimmered in a kaleidoscope of silver, gold, and red.
But
what really caught his attention was the staircase. He had always thought of
steps as being rectangular, smooth, and plain.
These
were a revelation. Each slab of stone was different from the next, the flat
treads decorated with elaborate patterns and the uprights engraved with runes.
It
was only when he read the runes in sequence that he realized the purpose of
the design: The staircases spelled out stories that served to distract the
weary secondlings from the grueling ascent. Tungdil could tell from Andôkai's
expression that she too had noticed the runes and was reading with interest.
The
stories told of glorious days of old, evoking heroic adventures, each more
impressive than the last. Tungdil climbed eagerly, relishing every step until
at length they reached their chambers.
Andôkai
disappeared inside her room before he could inquire about the books. He was
sure that her change of heart was connected to something she had seen or read.
Maybe Gundrabur will be lucky, he thought hopefully as he shuffled to bed.
That's the beauty of being among
friends," said a deep voice. "You don't even have to lock the
door."
Tungdil
woke with a start and sat up drowsily, only to discover Bislipur in his room.
"Good
morning, Tungdil." Somehow the greeting sounded suspiciously insincere.
"We'll talk properly at the hustings, but I'm sure you're as impatient as
I am to have a little chat."
"I
wasn't really expecting visitors," Tungdil said hesitantly. The sudden
appearance of Gandogar's adviser had thrown him slightly. In fact, now that he
thought about it properly, walking in without an invitation was downright rude.
His friendly feelings toward Bislipur as a kinsman had withstood their bristly
encounter in the great hall, but this was something else.
Bislipur
sat down on the bed and gave him a long stare. "You think you're one of
us, do you?" he mocked. "A poor little foundling, raised by a wizard,
but of genuine royal blood—it sounds like a fairy tale, doesn't it?" He
leaned forward. "Because it is! I'm not
going to beat about the bush: You're an impostor. What proof do you have of
your lineage?"
"You'll
see soon enough," Tungdil said firmly. If it hadn't been for his
conversation with Gundrabur and Balendilín, he would have stepped aside for his
rival. Only last night he had been assailed by doubts about the wisdom of
maintaining the deception, but now, thanks to Bislipur's obnoxious behavior,
his mind was made up.
"None
of the fourthlings can remember a case of a missing child."
"And
I suppose you know them all in person and every detail of their lives. That's
really quite a claim." Tungdil stood up. He had a feeling that the long
hours spent reading in Lot-Ionan's library and studying the art of disputation
would stand him in good stead. All of a sudden he felt naked without his chain
mail and his weapon. He threw on his tunic and belted his ax to his waist. His
confidence flooded back. "Wait until tomorrow and you'll hear the full
story."
"I've
got a better idea," said Bislipur. "Cancel the hustings, and we'll
adopt you as one of our folk. All we ask is that you agree to back Gandogar.
Retract your claim and you'll never want for anything."
"Supposing I
refuse?"
"Supposing
you refuse?" Bislipur laid a muscular hand on his ax. "If you refuse,
you'll see what happens when a fourthling—or a fake fourthling, in your
case—turns against the leader of his folk. None of us will submit to your rule.
Even if you're elected, you'll never really be king."
Tungdil
could tell from the muffled fury in his voice that Bislipur meant business.
"That's for the assembly to decide, not you," he informed him, doing
his best to sound like a prospective monarch. "Now go," he commanded.
"Supposing
I refuse?" the thick-set dwarf said mockingly.
"Supposing
you refuse?" thundered Tungdil, placing a hand on his ax. "If you
refuse, I'll throw you out myself! I've dealt with enough orcs and älfar to
know what to do with a dwarf who sneaks his way into my chamber while I'm
asleep." His brotherly tolerance of Bislipur had given way to undisguised
dislike. "Get out!"
Bislipur
wavered for a moment, unsure whether he should commit to a trial of strength.
To Tungdil's relief, he decided to see himself out. "You'll regret
this," he threatened by way of a farewell.
"That's
a risk I'm prepared to take," Tungdil retorted. Alone in his chamber, he
stood in front of the mirror, put his hands on his hips, and squared his
shoulders. Rather than get dressed, he practiced looking steely until he was
confident of his ability to assume a determined expression whenever he
pleased. It took considerable willpower not to crawl back into bed.
He
was in the process of removing his nightshirt when someone knocked on the
door. Without waiting for an answer, a female dwarf in a skirt and leather
blouse strode in and placed some fresh linen on the marble dresser. She giggled
when she saw him rooted to the spot. I should say
something, he thought, racking his brains desperately, but already she
was gone.
"I
guess it takes practice," he muttered, pulling on his clothes
absentmindedly. His mind was whirring with a thousand different thoughts.
It
was dispiriting to know that he was still a foundling dwarf. For the first time
in his life he was surrounded by others of his race, but deep down he was the
loneliest soul in all Girdlegard. In fact, he'd been better off when he'd lived
among humans; at least then he'd belonged to Lot-Ionan and the school.
It
didn't help that he was obliged to pose as a fourthling and put on a show of
happiness at being reunited with his folk. For all his honest intentions, it
made him feel like a terrible fraud.
Keen to
distract his thoughts, he reread Lot-Ionan's letter about his provenance,
memorizing every fabricated detail until he was sure that none of the delegates
could pick a hole in his story. There was nothing else to do in his chamber, so
he wandered into the corridor and roamed the majestic stone passageways while
his stomach growled hungrily.
Dwarves
streamed past him, clad in leather aprons and covered in a dusting of rock.
Tungdil guessed from their appearance that they were heading for the quarry.
They smiled and called out to him and he returned their greetings with a nod.
Soon
afterward he was intercepted by an attendant who marched him off to breakfast.
Tungdil understood the real purpose of the summons when he was welcomed to the
table by Balendilín, who wanted to prepare him for the hustings.
"It's
all under control," the counselor assured him. The trinkets on his braided
beard swung back and forth as he spoke, which earned him fascinated glances
from Tungdil. "Three dwarves from Gandogar's delegation have agreed to say
they remember hearing a rumor about a missing child. Their testimony, together
with the letter from your magus, should give us the credibility we need. After
that, you'll make your speech and then—"
"My
speech?" said Tungdil, looking up sharply from the array of pungent
cheeses, salamis, pickled mushrooms, and roasted lichen. All of a sudden he
stopped caring about the absence of ham, porridge, and bread: The prospect of
addressing the assembly had banished any thought of food.
"It
needn't be terribly long. You can talk a bit about your journey and your
encounters with Nôd’onn and the Perished Land. You'll lose the vote, of
course, but that's no great inconvenience; we'll proceed to the next stage of
our plan." Balendilín’s eyes twinkled. "It's all under control,"
he said again.
"I'm
glad you think so." Tungdil sighed and piled his wooden plate with a small
helping of everything. He told the counselor of Bislipur's visit.
"That's
just the kind of underhanded behavior I'd expect from him." Balendilín
seemed to take the news in stride. "You know what it means, don't you?
We're on the right track. The scoundrel wouldn't bother with you unless he
thought you were a threat."
Tungdil
didn't share his optimism. He hadn't forgotten that Bislipur had tried to
murder Balendilín, and he saw no reason to suppose that the fourthling wouldn't
do the same to him.
"There's
one more thing," said the counselor. "The maga and her bodyguard have
gone."
"Gone?"
Tungdil echoed, aghast. So she's really left us? How could she
give up like that and leave Girdlegard to its fate? "When did she
leave?"
"This
morning, just after dawn. We had to let her cross the pass. There wasn't any
justification for detaining her, and besides... how do you stop a maga?"
"You
don't." Tungdil put his head in his hands. It was hopeless; no one apart
from Andôkai had anything like Nôd’onn's power and now she was searching for
force fields beyond the Blue Range. She must have given up on Gorén's books. Why couldn't one of the other magi have survived instead?
He felt certain that Maira or Lot-Ionan would have stayed and led the fight
against the traitor.
"We'll
have to rely on you to decipher the tomes," said Balendilín. "You can
always consult our archives, if you think they'll be of use."
"You
should ask your historians. I'm sure they'd do a better job than me,"
muttered Tungdil.
Balendilín
shook his head. "They don't know the magi's writings as well as you do. No
one understands the long-uns better than you." He looked encouragingly at
the dejected dwarf. "I know it's a heavy burden, but a great deal is at
stake. We'll never forget it."
"I'll
do my best," he promised, forcing down his mouthful. He hiccuped
discreetly. His palate had adjusted to the cheese, but his stomach was proving less
adaptable—not unreasonably, considering the quantities involved. To round off
the meal he poured a mug of sour milk and stirred it through with a spoonful of
honey. Dwarven cuisine was a lot better than he had thought.
Excusing himself from the table, he made his way back to his chamber, this time looking fixedly at the floor so as not to be distracted by the magnificent marble carvings. The speech that was taking shape in his mind was going to cover all the events of the previous weeks and more.
Tungdil drained the strong malt beer
from his tankard, wiped his beard, and looked up at the assembly. The delegates
had listened patiently while he'd read out Lot-Ionan's letter and tried to
establish his lineage as the illegitimate offspring of the dead fourthling
king.
True
to their word, three of Gandogar's chieftains claimed to recall a rumor about a
missing heir. Bislipur instantly accused them of lying.
"I
expect you're wondering why I think I would make a good king," said
Tungdil, raising his voice above the tumult. The beer had settled his nerves
and quashed his inhibitions about appearing before an assembly of dignitaries
and chieftains. "The fact is, I know better than anyone the dangers that
lie ahead. I know the power of the Perished Land; and I know we need to stand
united. It would be fatal to squander our strength on a campaign against the
elves. Their numbers may have dwindled, but their army is not to be
mocked."
"We're
not afraid of the pointy-ears!" Bislipur shouted, incensed.
"Maybe
not, but dead heroes are no use to us at all," Tungdil retaliated.
"The elves have been fighting the älfar for hundreds of cycles. What
chance would we have of defeating them? Their bowmen are the best in
Girdlegard. Before we get within three hundred paces, they'll bombard us with
arrows!"
"Not if we
sneak up on them," Bislipur objected.
"You
can't honestly believe they won't notice an army of a thousand dwarves!
Friends, this war will end in our defeat." He looked at them beseechingly.
"Darkness has eaten its way into the heart of our lands. Vraccas entrusted
the safety of Girdlegard to our race; it's our duty to defeat Nôd’onn and expel
Tion's minions—and if the elves and humans are able to help us, we must ally
ourselves with them!"
"The
high king's puppet has learned his part well," sneered Gandogar.
"Our
minds think alike because we both see reason. If there was anything between
your ears but sheer bloody-mindedness, you might see sense as well." A
ripple of laughter swept the room.
"The
elves must be punished," shouted Bislipur, drawing himself up to full
height. "You heard how they betrayed our kinsfolk and allowed Tion's
beasts to storm the Stone Gateway. Their crimes cannot go unavenged!"
"And
what of Nôd’onn? A war against the elves would weaken us dangerously."
Tungdil thumped his hand against the marble. "Of course, if we really want
to make things easy for the magus, we could always open our strongholds to the
orcish invaders! Is that what you want? Maybe you should ask the runts if they'd
like to join us in a campaign against the elves!" He waited for the
commotion to settle. "In my possession are two tomes belonging to
Lot-Ionan in whose household I was raised. Once I have unlocked their meaning,
we will hold the key to defeating Nôd’onn and the Perished Land." He
neglected to mention that even Andôkai had failed to make sense of the books.
"Just think of the glory if the dwarves were to save Girdlegard! Our
heroism would humiliate the pointy-ears far more than military defeat."
There
was a hum of excitement from the benches. Books that could defeat the Perished
Land; that was news indeed!
"He's
lying!" roared Bislipur. "Since when did magic ever help the dwarves?
It brings us nothing but trouble! Magic is to blame for the dark wizard's
power!"
"I
say we fight the elves, then retreat to our ranges until the humans have
settled the matter for themselves," added Gandogar, springing to his feet.
He hurried to the middle of the assembly to be sure of the delegates'
attention. "Don't listen to the foundling who learned our lore from books.
He'll
never understand our ways." He laughed. "A high king
who knows nothing of his race? It's downright ridiculous!"
"It
can't be that ridiculous or you wouldn't be so het up," Tungdil said
pointedly. There was another low rumble of laughter. He was doing Lot-Ionan
proud with his witticisms, although the beer could take some of the credit. I mustn't get carried away, he told himself.
Gundrabur
had heard enough. He raised the hammer and pounded it against the marble table.
"Both candidates have made their cases and the assembly must decide.
Delegates, remember you are voting for your future high king. Those in favor of
Gandogar Silverbeard of the clan of the Silver Beards, raise your axes!"
Tungdil
counted the glistening blades. To his great surprise, Gandogar's share of the
vote had dwindled to less than two-thirds among the fourthling chieftains. When
his own name was called, the number of axes was far greater than expected. Balendilín
gave him an approving nod.
Tungdil's
personal victory did nothing to change the end result: The majority had voted
in favor of Gandogar, which amounted to a mandate for war. Bislipur held his
head high. It was clear from his triumphant expression that he thought his work
was done.
"At
this stage in the proceedings, it falls to me, the reigning high king, to
approve the assembly's choice," declared Gundrabur. "Regrettably, in
view of King Gandogar's foolish determination to steer our race toward
destruction, I see no option but to declare him unfit for office. For that
reason, I nominate Tungdil in his place. Who will back me?"
Gandogar
and Bislipur watched in stunned silence as a third of the delegates raised
their axes, thereby investing Gundrabur with the authority to proceed.
The hammer crashed noisily against the marble. "Then the succession shall be decided on merit. Our candidates will prove their ability in a contest: Gandogar and Tungdil will each nominate a task, two further tasks will be set by the assembly, and the fifth task will be drawn at random. You have seven orbits to prepare." With that, he called the hustings to a close.
Dazed, Tungdil made his way along the
line of supporters who were queuing to pat him on the back, wish him well, and
intercede with Vraccas on his behalf. Faces, beards, and chain mail loomed on
either side of him, disappearing in a blur. His mind was reeling from the
uncommonly strong beer and the exhilaration of success. It was incredible to
think that dozens of dwarves had been won over by his arguments, but there was
no escaping the knowledge that his triumph was founded on a lie.
Although
the chances of discovering anything about his provenance were slim, Balendilín
had promised to do what he could to investigate without arousing suspicion. The
counselor was too tactful to mention the possibility that the foundling was
descended from Lorimbur's folk, and the notion of it seemed ludicrous to
Tungdil, who felt comfortable living in Ogre's Death and shared nothing of the
thirdlings' murderous dislike of other dwarves. In any case, there were more
urgent matters than establishing his origins. First and foremost, he needed to
practice his axmanship in case Gandogar opted to challenge him to a duel. And
he still had to settle on a task of his own.
No
one knew what to expect from the fifth and final task. Each candidate could
nominate four challenges and one would be drawn from a pouch. Only Vraccas
could predict the outcome.
Tungdil
returned to his chamber to find Gorén's books and the contents of the leather
bag strewn across his bed. Andôkai must have broken
the spell and examined the artifacts!
He
turned over the fragments of two silver-plated decanters and studied the runes. What a pity! If the
inscriptions were to be believed, it took a single drop of liquid for the
vessels to fill themselves over and over again. Mixed in with the shattered
decanters was a broken hand mirror. The fractured glass cast back a cracked
reflection of his bearded face. Seven years
of bad luck. He chuckled grimly as he picked up a
shard. To be cursed by a mirror was the least of his problems.
He
turned his attention to a couple of lengths of wood. They were as long as his
arm and had a gray, almost metallic shimmer to them. The grain was wayward and
irregular. What are they? He supposed they
could be cudgels. But what would they be doing in
the bag? He tossed them carelessly onto the bed.
The
maga had written him a note. Furious with her for leaving Girdlegard and for
rummaging through his things, he left it unread. Then curiosity got the better
of him.
The mystery is solved, or as good
as.
You were right: There is a way to defeat Nôd’onn and the
books explain how. However, the means are beyond us, which is why I'm leaving
Girdlegard for good.
The first book is an account of the Outer Lands that tells
of a place called Barrenground, where demonic beings have the power to enter
human souls, take possession of them, and invest them with extraordinary
power. Men possessed of such demons are driven by an urge to destroy goodness
wherever they find it and bend everything to their will.
The second book tells of a race called the undergroundlings
who invented a mighty ax to destroy the demonic power.
The blade of this ax must be made of the purest, hardest
steel, with diamonds encrusting the bit and an alloy of every known precious
metal filling the inlay and the runes. The spurs should be hewn from stone and
the haft sculpted from wood of the sigurdaisy tree.
The ax must be forged in a furnace lit with the fiercest of
all flames and its name shall be Keenfire.
This is the weapon with the power to slay the demonic
spirits. Keenfire can slice through flesh and bone, cutting through the human
body to destroy the evil presence within. Any harm that has been done reverts
to good.
Regrettably, I was unable to make sense of one passage,
which means I cannot vouch for the method's success. The task is as good as
hopeless.
All the same, it explains why Nôd’onn is interested in the
artifacts. The bag contains two fragments of sigurdaisy wood.
The sigurdaisy is extinct in Girdlegard, but its wood is
exceptionally hard, so hard that it can't be worked with ordinary tools. Humans
used to believe that the trees were sacred and they burned the wood for its powerful
aroma and deep crimson flames. They stopped conducting the rituals when all the
trees were gone. I once witnessed a sigurdaisy fire in honor of Palandiell, but
that was over a hundred cycles ago.
Even if were possible to make such a miraculous weapon, no
one would get close enough to Nôd’onn to slay him. The whole business is
ridiculous.
If the dwarves have any sense, they will cross the ranges
and settle in the Outer Lands. Maybe the undergroundlings will give them
shelter.
My work here is done.
Tungdil
read and reread the letter until there was no further doubt: Lot-Ionan's
murderer was not completely invincible. They had everything they needed to kill
him—even the wood.
He
hurried to find Balendilín. The counselor had lit a number of oil lamps, which
bathed his chamber in light. Like the rest of Ogre's Death, the room was hewn
from rock and the masons had even thought to sculpt a bed and cabinets. It
looked as if the mountain had created a furnished chamber especially for his
use.
Tungdil handed
him the letter.
"There
is mention in our records of distant kin on the far side of the mountain,"
he said when he saw the reference to the mysterious undergroundlings. "The
inhabitants of the Outer Lands seem to have more experience of fighting the
Perished Land."
Tungdil
brandished the piece of parchment. "It explains why Nôd’onn was desperate
to get his hands on the books and the bag! Well, it's too late now: His secret
is out. Balendilín, you've got to tell the human sovereigns of our discovery
before they lose all hope. They need to keep the magus fighting while we work
on the weapon. If only they can keep him busy until then!"
Balendilín
studied the passages relating to the making of the ax. "We'll have to
enlist the help of the fourthlings: Their skill in diamond cutting is
unsurpassed. Our people can take care of the stone, but as for the best
smiths..."
"Borengar's
folk!"
"Yes,
but none of their nine clans are here. The firstlings ignored our summons.
Giselbert's fifthlings were exceptional blacksmiths, but their line was snuffed
out." Balendilín scowled. "And that's not the only hitch. The
fieriest furnace in Girdlegard belonged to the fifthlings. Its name was Dragon
Fire and the hardest metal would melt in its flames. But the Gray Range has
been in the hands of the Perished Land for over a thousand cycles." He
rested his head in his hands. "The maga was right. It's not
possible."
"We
can't give up now. Call a meeting and let the delegates decide. We need to send
word to the firstlings and ask for their assistance. Then we'll..." He
trailed off. "Well, I'll take a look in the archives. Maybe I'll find
something that will help."
"Good luck
to you, Tungdil."
The
dwarf left the chamber and headed for the vaults, where the written record of
the secondlings' history was preserved. Now that the initial excitement was
over, he was left with the sobering realization that they were barely any
closer to saving Girdlegard from Nôd’onn's grasp.
I'm not giving up! The very hopelessness of the
situation made Tungdil more determined than ever to succeed.
He settled down to his task with all the stubbornness and persistence typical of his race. It was his solemn intention not to leave the secondlings' archives until he found something of use.
Tungdil hurried back and forth,
fetching ancient tomes, rolls of parchment, and stone tablets from their places
in the vaults. He piled everything on a table to examine it at length.
Lot-Ionan must have known that my schooling would come in
handy. Some of the parchment was so fragile that it tore or crumbled at
his touch. It made Tungdil appreciate the durability of the marble tablets that
lasted an eternity, provided they weren't dropped.
After
a good deal of reading, he found evidence to back up Balendilín’s vague
assertions about the undergroundlings. According to the archives, a race of
dwarves on the other side of the ranges went by that name. Whether or not
Vraccas had created them was anyone's guess, but they seemed to have much in
common with the children of the Smith. They were accomplished metal workers and
shared the dwarven passion for the forge.
On
the fourth orbit he learned the secret of Dragon Fire, and his optimism, which
had survived in spite of everything, was dealt a grievous blow.
The
flames of the fifthlings' fiery furnace had been lit by the white tongue of
Branbausíl, a dragon who had roamed the Gray Range until Giselbert's dwarves
stole its fire, killed it, and seized its hoard. Argamas, its mate, had taken
refuge in Flamemere, a small lake of molten lava at the heart of the fifthling
kingdom. The creature had never been seen again.
The
stolen fire enabled the dwarves to heat their furnace to phenomenal
temperatures and create alloys from metals that had never been melded. Dragon
Fire was powerful enough to melt tionium, the black element created by Tion,
and combine it with palandium, the deity's pure white metal.
Later
records indicated that the furnace had fallen with the fifthlings. Neither the älfar
nor any other creature of Tion could find a use for the strange white flames,
and Dragon Fire had been extinguished.
Tungdil's
only hope lay in finding the dragon's mate who had escaped the dwarves' axes.
If the firstlings could provide a smith and Argamas could furnish the fire,
Keenfire could be forged and Nôd’onn defeated.
"More
traveling." He sighed. We'll have to go west to the
firstlings, then north through the heart of the Perished Land to the lost
fifthling kingdom. But how are we supposed to cross Girdlegard without Nôd’onn
finding out?
He
put the question to Gundrabur and Balendilín when he met them in the great hall
to report on his findings and share a keg of beer. The king and his counselor
looked at each other knowingly.
"There
is a way," the high king told him, "a secret way that has faded from
memory over the cycles. My predecessor told me of it." He lit his pipe and
sucked on it vigorously. "It dates back to the glorious orbits of old. In
those happy times traveling was easy. We used underground tunnels that crisscrossed
the whole of Girdlegard, linking our kingdoms."
"Tunnels...So
we could travel unseen. With ponies we could—"
"You
won't need ponies. You'll get there soon enough." Gundrabur pulled his
cloak tighter and sent for another blanket. His inner furnace was burning
worryingly low.
Tungdil frowned.
"I don't follow."
"You've
seen the wagons carrying iron ore through the mines?"
"Sure,
but..." Then he grasped what the high king was saying. "We can go by
wagon?"
Gundrabur
smiled. "Indeed. Our forefathers used wagons to travel by the shortest
route from the firstling kingdom to the seconding kingdom and the secondling
kingdom to the fourthling kingdom and so forth, unimpeded by marshland,
wilderness, rain, or snow. They could convey troops wherever they wanted in no
time at all. Within a matter of orbits an entire army could cross from north to
south undetected by men, elves, or magi."
"That's
the answer!" Tungdil cried excitedly. "If the tunnels are still
intact, we'll be able to forge the ax before the dark magus has time to defeat
the human armies and conquer their kingdoms."
"I
can't guarantee what kind of state they're in," warned Gundrabur.
"According to the ancient records, some sections of the tunnels have
collapsed. Balendilín, fetch the maps."
"Why hasn't anyone come across
them since?"
"The
entrance lies in an area of the Blue Range that became polluted with sulfurous
gas. Our kinsfolk abandoned that side of the mountain and the tunnels were
forgotten."
At
length Balendilín returned with two ancient maps showing the path of the
tunnels through the secondling kingdom. The tunnels cut straight through the
heart of the Blue Range and were well hidden, with numerous mechanisms and
traps securing them against intruders. Even if Tion's creatures had known about
the tunnels, there was no way of breaking into them, so the forces of darkness
were obliged to conduct their invasion overland.
"Well,
that's settled," Tungdil told the others. "I'll do it."
"Good," said Balendilín with a smile. He refilled their tankards. "In that case, you should be the one who tells the assembly of the tunnels' existence. The delegates will be impressed." They clunked tankards and drank.
Vraccas made me party to this knowledge
so that the dwarves could liberate Girdlegard from evil," said Tungdil,
coming to the end of his impassioned speech. "Why else would he have given
me the artifacts and books?"
"Forgotten
relics from a glorious era!" Gandogar said scornfully. "Nothing
you've stumbled upon is of any practical use. A miracle ax to be forged
secretly in a furnace fired by dragon's breath at the heart of the Perished
Land—it can't be done! If you ask me, the whole thing's a fiction, a legend
that found its way into our archives by mistake!"
"You
may not believe it," Tungdil cut in, "but Nôd’onn clearly does. He
wiped out a whole settlement to get his hands on the books. He tried to kill me
too! Why would he be so worried if it were just an old story? Clansmen,"
he begged the assembly, "we need to send an expedition. Vraccas will see
us through this."
"Of
course he will," jeered Bislipur. "If you don't mind my asking, how
exactly were you intending to slay the dragon? They're tough old beasts, but
tell it one of your stories and the poor thing will probably die of laughter on
the spot."
The
roars of merriment were enough to convince Tungdil not to put the matter to the
vote. The motion would only fail. Common sense had yet to bludgeon its way into
the delegates' thick skulls.
"To
business," Gandogar said impatiently. He threw off his cloak, revealing a
shimmering mail shirt. His adviser handed him his shield and his ax, while
another fastened his helmet. "The purpose of this meeting is to decide the
succession. Let the contest begin! For the first task I challenge my rival to
a duel. Victory will go to whoever draws first blood or forces his opponent to
his knees."
In an
instant Boïndil and Boëndal were at Tungdil's side, helping him on with his
armor. His metal tunic looked cheap and dull compared to Gandogar's glittering
mail. "Beware of his shield. He's bound to try to ram you with it,"
whispered Boïndil. He clenched his fists. "If only I could take your
place," he growled. "I'd hammer him into the marble."
"You've
been wonderful teachers," Tungdil reassured the twins as he buckled his
chinstrap. "And I'm not just talking about the past few orbits; you taught
me a great deal during our journey as well. If I lose, it won't be because of
you."
The
two candidates stepped into the semicircle between the throne and the benches. Balendilín
acted as referee. His eyes smiled reassuringly at Tungdil. "Fight valiantly
and honorably," he told them as he backed away. The rivals were alone in
the arena.
The
fourthling king lost no time in launching his attack. Tungdil parried blow
after blow, all the while trying not to be distracted by the twinkling diamonds
on Gandogar's ax. He watched the swooping trajectory of the blade from behind
his shield, retreating farther and farther until his back came up against a
column.
As
the next blow swung toward him, Tungdil ducked and struck back. There was a
shrill metallic shriek as his blunted ax scraped over Gandogar's hastily raised
shield and struck the lower edge of his helmet. Head spinning, the king staggered
back.
"Now
attack!" yelled Boïndil, caught up in the excitement. Fired on by his
success and the encouragement of his tutor, Tungdil rushed forward.
Not if I can help it. Bislipur had no intention of
allowing Gandogar to be defeated. Sverd was standing beside him, so he gave him
a little shove. The gnome pitched forward and struck his head on a tankard.
Beer slopped to the floor.
The
incident was Tungdil's undoing. In his haste he didn't notice that the slippery
marble floor was as treacherous as an ice rink. His right foot skidded to the
side; he struggled to keep his balance and flailed out vainly with his ax.
"Foolish
gnome!" Bislipur unleashed a volley of curses, threatening to thrash the
hapless Sverd and tighten his collar until it cut off his breath.
"The
scoundrel did it on purpose!" protested Boëndal.
"He's
just clumsy, that's all. He'll pay for this, believe me!" said Bislipur,
still pretending to be furious with the gnome.
None
of that was any comfort to Tungdil, who skidded past Gandogar just as the
latter straightened up and took aim. The king's ax thwacked his back with
enough force to send him spinning out of control. Cursing, he lost his footing
and forfeited the task.
A
cheer went up from the fourthling corner where Gandogar's supporters were
gathered. The jubilation turned to mocking laughter when Tungdil struggled to
his feet. The contest wasn't unfolding quite as he'd hoped.
"Now
for my task," he shouted above the din. The great hall fell silent.
"What is the
nature of the challenge?"
"We
shall both transcribe a text. The first to finish wins."
"What?"
Gandogar protested. "I'm a king, not a poet!"
"You
don't have to be a poet; all you have to do is write. A good monarch must have
a steady hand and a smart mind to guide it; how else would he make the laws?
But maybe fighting is your only virtue..." Without further ado he sat
down at a desk and waited for Gandogar to follow suit.
"What if I
refuse?"
"If
you refuse," said Balendilín, "you'll lose the challenge and the
tally will be one task each, leaving the succession to be decided by the final
three challenges."
"Besides,"
Boëndal added snidely, "it would be cowardly not to accept. The scholar
wasn't afraid to face your ax. I hope the fourthling leader isn't frightened of
a quill!"
The
gibe and resulting hilarity prompted Gandogar to lay down his shield and helmet
and take a seat at the desk.
The
referee called for the rolls of parchment and chose one at random. "You
may begin."
In no
time the scholar, as Boëndal jokingly called him, was scribbling furiously,
while his opponent glared at the runes and scratched awkwardly at the parchment
with his quill. The dwarves devoted themselves to the task in industrious
silence.
"Finished,"
declared Tungdil at length. His work was scrutinized and found to be
faultless. Gandogar took longer and made several errors along the way. Balendilín
awarded the task to Tungdil.
The
twins whooped in delight, pleased that their charge had used his cunning to
secure a draw. "Too bad you lost that one, eh, Bislipur?" Boïndil
shouted cheerfully.
At Balendilín’s
request, the delegates noted down their challenges and the slips of paper were
collected. Gandogar would draw first, then Tungdil.
"For
the next challenge," announced the referee, "you will forge an ax
from the poorest quality iron and strike it ten times against a shield without
fracturing the blade."
Tungdil
had spent so much time at Lot-Ionan's anvil that he was sure he would prove the
superior smith. Balendilín declared a break in the proceedings while the
necessary equipment was set up in the hall and soon the high-ceilinged chamber
was echoing with the sound of ringing hammers.
Tungdil
hit his stride, working in time with a dwarven ballad that had been taught to
him by the twins. Not to be outdone, Gandogar belted out a song of his own and
hammered all the more furiously.
"You'd
think it was a singing competition." Boëndal grinned and hoisted his belt.
"If that doesn't please Vraccas, I don't know what will."
"Tungdil
is the better singer, so Vraccas will favor his cause," said his brother.
The
singing continued until both candidates had finished their blades. Balendilín
instructed them to attach the ax heads to iron hafts; then each took up the
other's weapon, ensuring the blade's exposure to maximum force. They positioned
themselves in front of their shields and at the referee's signal, the contest
began.
"Let's
see how His Majesty fared in the forge," said a sweat-drenched Tungdil,
preparing to strike. The blade, still glowing with heat, traced an orange
semicircle through the gloom of the hall, hitting its target in a shower of
sparks. The ax withstood the blow.
"Better
than you thought," retorted Gandogar. He struck the shield with equal
force and the blade held true.
They
dealt six further blows apiece, but on the eighth strike Tungdil heard a faint
crack when Gandogar's ax hit the shield. He knew the next blow would be its
last. "Take a look at this," he called to the king. The blade
fractured, shattering into countless shards. Panting, Tungdil threw the haft to
the floor and fumbled for his water pouch.
A
murmur went through the watching crowd. The fourthling king tensed his
muscles, summoning all his strength for the final blow. The shield groaned and
shuddered, but the blade survived the strike.
"Hurrah
for the smith!" boomed Boïndil. "Two-one to Tungdil. It was the
singing that did it. Even the poorest metal can't resist a good tune."
Gandogar
laid down his ax in order to shake his opponent's hand. "I didn't think
anyone could forge such a fine blade from such woefully inadequate metal. You
are the undisputed master of the forge—but I shall be king of the dwarves. The
next victory will be mine."
"We'll see
about that."
Already
Balendilín was unfolding the next piece of paper. There was no time for the
dwarves to catch their breath. "The fourth challenge will be a race. Each
candidate will be given a tankard of molten gold and must carry it to the end
of the first meadow and back before proceeding to the gates. In addition to
your chain mail, you will be given a pack weighing precisely forty pounds. The
first to return with a full tankard wins the task."
To
ensure that both competitors ran the full distance with their tankards, Balendilín
dispatched a pair of dwarves to the meadow and another to the gates.
This is my kind of task, thought Tungdil, hefting
the knapsack to his shoulders. He was accustomed to the heat of the forge and
as for carrying gold, it was more a privilege than a burden. Even the thought
of racing with a forty-pound knapsack didn't deter him: He had walked hundreds
of miles across Girdlegard with two heavy packs.
They
were handed their tankards, thick-rimmed glass vessels with a thin layer of
pewter plating. The contents had been heated to several hundred degrees and
would sear through the flesh on contact with the skin. There was an obvious
risk of serious injury; even the steam rising from the molten metal was
treacherously hot.
"Go!"
shouted Balendilín. With that, the race was underway.
Gandogar
surged forward, barely glancing at his tankard as he focused on his course.
Tungdil took the opposite approach, feasting his eyes on the pool of liquid
sunshine. He had marched for enough miles to have faith in his footing.
Soon
the king was in the lead and had vanished from the hall. Tungdil followed
leisurely. Balendilín had said that the task would be won by the first to
return with a full tankard. He would rather
take his time and bring back his quota than waste any of the precious gold. He
even stopped and set down his tankard occasionally to give his calloused
smith's hands a chance to recover from the heat.
He
had almost reached the valley when Gandogar raced past in the opposite
direction.
"You'd
better hurry if you want to beat me, Tungdil," he shouted. There was an
unmistakable whiff of scorched skin, but the king kept going regardless,
content to let his fingers suffer. As far as Tungdil could tell, not a drop of
gold had been spilled.
He
stopped in the meadow, gave his hand a quick rest, and set off in hot pursuit. I shouldn't have counted on Gandogar making a mistake,
he admonished himself.
It
wasn't long before his hand began to shake. He was feeling the effects of the
duel and the metalworking contest, but no amount of self-pity was going to help
him win the task. He was just approaching the gates when Gandogar ran past,
sweating and cursing, on his homeward leg. The fourthling smiled cockily at
Tungdil, his tankard still full.
"We're
even now! One last challenge and victory will be mine," he vowed.
That
was enough to revive Tungdil's competitive spirit, and he hurried after
Gandogar, determined to pass him as quickly as he could.
Just
then a small creature darted into the passageway and collided with his legs.
Tungdil stumbled and caught himself. "What in the name of Vraccas..."
The
molten gold was swirling dangerously, ready to spill over the edge, but Tungdil
had no intention of releasing his grip. A golden wave slopped over the side and
splashed onto his skin. The pain was excruciating, but he gritted his teeth and
continued without so much as a curse. His eyes scanned the passageway
furiously, but the offending creature was gone.
Owing
to the mishap, he reached the hall in second place and without his full quota
of gold. He had lost by either reckoning. But Gandogar's victory had not been
won without sacrifice and his poor scalded hands were being treated with ice
and water by a nurse.
This
time it fell to Tungdil to congratulate his rival. He refrained from shaking
his hand out of consideration for his burns. "Well, you kept your promise
this time," he said, immersing his own tender skin in the ice-cold water.
"Don't
worry, I intend to keep all my
promises," Gandogar informed him, turning quickly away.
Tungdil
held up his hand to inspect the damage. The gold had solidified, leaving a
permanent coin-sized patch on his skin.
The
golden stain made his right hand glisten in the light of the coal lamps,
catching Boïndil's eye. "Take a look at that, brother."
"Tungdil
Goldhand! That's what we'll call him," said Boëndal. "I hope he likes
it. I reckon it suits him well."
"It's
a darned sight better than Bolofar," his twin agreed.
"Attention,
delegates," called Balendilín. "The score stands at two all, so we
must progress to the fifth and final challenge, on which the choice of
successor and the future of the dwarven folks shall rest." He instructed
the rivals to note down a maximum of four tasks.
It has to be something I can definitely win...
Tungdil thought for a moment, then grinned. Of
course! The perfect task had occurred to him in the nick of time.
Each
slip of paper was folded in the same fashion and placed in a leather pouch held
open by Balendilín. The counselor pulled the drawstrings, gave the bag a good
shake, and paced along the row of dwarves, stopping in front of Bislipur.
"Once
the task has been drawn, there can be no complaints about the fairness of the
choice. Bislipur, my friend, I should like you to pick the challenge." He
held the pouch toward him.
The
thick-set dwarf seized the bag without any pretense at politeness. He fixed the
counselor with a stony glare.
Without
looking down, he reached inside the bag, swept the bottom, and came up with a
slip of paper. He was about to unfold it when the parchment slipped out of his
fingers and fell back into the pouch. His hand plunged after it and he thrust
the note wordlessly toward Balendilín.
"No,"
said the referee. "You picked the task; you read it."
Bislipur
shifted his gaze from the counselor's face to the note. He unfolded the paper
and scanned its contents. "Oh," he said breezily, "that's not
the one I drew first." He reached inside the bag again.
"Rules
are rules." Balendilín snatched the pouch away. "You made your
choice; now read out the challenge."
Bislipur's
jaw was clenched as if to hold back the challenge and prevent it from reaching
the delegates' ears. He took a deep breath, hesitating for so long that Tungdil
began to hope.
"The
fifth and final task is an expedition," he announced, his voice trembling
with rage. "The candidates are challenged to journey to the Gray Range and
return with Keenfire. The winner will wield the ax against Nôd’onn."
There
was a faint sigh as Gundrabur released his pent-up breath in relief. Balendilín
closed his eyes and permitted himself the briefest of smiles.
No
one could have anticipated that the greatest challenge to Gandogar's succession
would come from a task chosen and read by Bislipur himself. It was obvious that
Tungdil was far cleverer than his fellow dwarves had thought. Silence descended
on the hall as the delegates digested the unexpected twist.
Tungdil
stepped forward quickly to forestall any protests about the nature of the task.
"I issued the challenge, and I accept." He turned to Gandogar.
The
fourthling king was visibly seething. "Ditto," he growled.
"Stop!
We must draw again," insisted Bislipur, knowing that an expedition to the
Gray Range would sabotage his plan for a war against the elves. "You saw
me drop the first note. This isn't the right one!"
Balendilín
stood his ground. "What do you propose I do? We'll never know which note
was drawn first. No, the decision must stand. Both candidates have accepted
the challenge, and the outcome will decide the succession."
"But
what of the delay?" protested Bislipur. "An expedition will saddle
us with orbits of uncertainty."
"Please
don't worry unduly," Tungdil said politely. "I'll endeavor to return
as quickly as I can." The delegates laughed. "If you'll excuse me, I
need to get going and choose my traveling companions. There's no time to
waste." He signaled to Boëndal and Boïndil to follow. "I would never
have got this far if it hadn't been for you. With your agreement, I should like
you to accompany me on my expedition to the Gray Range. Can I count on your
assistance in escorting me there and back again?"
Boïndil
guffawed. "Did you hear that, brother? He's the same old scholar!" He
turned to Tungdil. "We'd be honored to join you, but only if you promise
to drop your fancy speech. Besides," he added with a tinge of sadness,
"there's the matter of restoring my good reputation after I failed you in
the desert."
Tungdil
placed his hands on the brothers' shoulders. "Don't worry, Boïndil, I'm
sure you'll have more than enough opportunities to save me from certain
death."
The
dwarf grinned and his brother nodded. "You earned yourself a new name
today, scholar." Boëndal pointed to the shimmering metal grafted to his
skin. "Tungdil Goldhand. What do you think of that?"
"Goldhand..."
Tungdil held up his right hand. "Yes, I rather like the sound of it."
His hand hurt devilishly, but he managed a smile.
Goldhand—a proper dwarven name.
The delegates dispersed and Bislipur and Gandogar stormed out of
the great hall, leaving the high king and his counselor alone.
"Was that your idea?" inquired Gundrabur, reaching
for his pipe.
Balendilín
laughed softly. "Not at all. I would never have come up with such a
preposterous suggestion. If you ask me, Tungdil was sent here by Vraccas
himself." He ascended the dais and stood by the throne. "He'd make an
excellent high king, you know. His ideas are pure gold."
"Tungdil
chose wisely," agreed the monarch. "Whichever of the candidates comes
back first, Girdlegard will be the real winner—and of course the dwarves. Our
task is to make sure nothing untoward happens while the two of them are
away."
"It
means keeping your inner furnace alight a little longer," Balendilín
reminded him anxiously.
Gundrabur
levered himself out of his throne and stuck his pipe between his teeth.
"Vraccas knows our need and will stay his hammer until the time has
come," he said, undaunted.
His
counselor watched him go, then sat down on the footstool to examine the
contents of the leather pouch. His efforts were focused on finding the slip of
paper that Bislipur had originally drawn. He knew it as soon as he saw it
because of the nick in one corner. Bislipur's expression on reading the
challenge had discouraged him from intervening and correcting the mistake.
And
rightly so, as he discovered when he opened the note. If Bislipur had kept hold
of the paper, Tungdil would be cutting diamonds instead of preparing for his
quest. He would have lost the challenge and Gandogar
would be high king.
He
unfolded the other slips of paper and laughed out loud: four times
diamond-cutting and four times an expedition.
Thank
Vraccas for Bislipur's clumsiness! he thought, chuckling in relief.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
Knowing that he would require the
services of a mason, Tungdil had asked the high king's counselor to recruit a
suitable artisan from the secondling clans. Balendilín felt strongly that the
final decision should rest with Tungdil, and so it was agreed that a group of
candidates would be selected for him to take his pick. Not long afterward a
one-eyed dwarf knocked on Tungdil's door.
Tungdil
looked him over in surprise. "Are you the only one? Balendilín promised to
narrow it down, but I didn't expect him to be quite so ruthless. Who are
you?"
"Bavragor
Hammerfist of the clan of the Hammer Fists, mason and stoneworker of two
hundred cycles." His bearlike hands reminded Tungdil of Balendilín. His
black hair hung loose about his shoulders, and his beard was artfully shaped
around his cheeks and chin. "My masonry is second to none and my right eye
sees twice as keenly as two. Nothing escapes me, not the tiniest fault in the
stone nor the slightest flaw in the working of it."
Tungdil
explained that the expedition required a mason to fashion the spurs for an ax.
Since the blade was to be forged in the Gray Range, the other components of the
weapon would be made and assembled there. "Which means journeying through
the Perished Land. It's bound to be hazardous—only Vraccas knows what will
befall us." Tungdil left the briefing at that and looked the mason in the
eye. A dark red ring encircled the brown iris. How
peculiar.
"Count
me in," said Bavragor. He held out his hand. "Let's shake on it. Do
you promise that I, Bavragor Hammerfist, will be your one and only mason?"
Tungdil obliged by clasping his hand and giving his word. The mason grinned
and seemed almost relieved. "When are we leaving?"
"In
two orbits' time. I need to recruit a diamond cutter from the fourthling
delegation."
"Then
I'll start packing. A weapon like Keenfire deserves my finest tools." He
hurried from the room.
Tungdil
had expected the interview to last a little longer, but he soon forgot about
the mason and turned his attention to finding a diamond cutter.
None
of the fourthlings could be expected to join his company of their own accord,
so he was obliged to ask Gandogar to spare him a suitable dwarf. The strategy
was safer than it sounded: The fourthling delegation was composed of first-rate
artisans and warriors, as tradition dictated.
The
more Tungdil thought about it, the less inclined he was to ask his rival for a
favor, but in the end he swallowed his pride, reminding himself that vanity was
a luxury when Girdlegard's future was at stake.
He
was just leaving his chamber when he saw four dwarves hurrying down the
passageway toward him. One by one they introduced themselves. "Balendilín
sent us. He says you're to choose."
Bewildered,
Tungdil stared at the bearded countenances looking at him expectantly.
"I've made my choice," he said. It hadn't occurred to him that there
might be other candidates. Now he was regretting his haste. "I chose
Bavragor."
"Bavragor
Hammerfist? Not Bavragor who polishes the stone with the beer on his
breath?" said one of the dwarves incredulously. "Not the merry
minstrel?"
"He got here
first."
"He
didn't make the final cut! You can't take him!" The masons looked at him,
aghast. "He's been trying to drown himself in beer for as long as anyone
can remember. Four full tankards are barely enough to steady his hands!"
"I
gave him my word. I can't go back on it now." Tungdil's cheeks flushed
with fury when he realized that he'd walked straight into the one-eyed mason's
trap. I shall ask him to release me from our agreement.
The
secondlings directed him to Bavragor's favorite tavern, and Tungdil marched
off to give the trickster a piece of his mind.
He
soon found the place. A line of lamp-lit columns ran down the center of the
barrel-vaulted chamber, and lanterns dangled from the ceiling, casting golden
halos through panes of tinted glass. At the far end was a stone-hewn counter
where four barmaids were filling tankards from huge dark barrels and carrying
them to the waiting clientele. The band was made up of two krummhorns, a stone
flute, and a drum, whose task consisted mainly of accompanying the rowdy choir.
Bavragor
was sitting at a table with a group of laborers who had come straight from the
quarry and were covered in dust. He was celebrating his selection for the expedition
in timeworn mason's fashion, waving his tankard and singing at a volume that
sent tremors through the room. Beer slopped out of his tankard, spattering his
brown leather breeches with white froth.
"Bavragor!"
Tungdil shouted sternly.
"Ah,
the high king to be!" The mason raised his vessel. "Three cheers for
Tungdil Goldhand!" His drinking companions joined in, raising their
tankards and scrambling to their feet in a fog of gray dust.
Tungdil
seethed. In a few determined strides he crossed the tavern, tore the tankard
from Bavragor's hand, and slammed it onto the table. "Balendilín didn't
send you to me. You tricked me into giving you my word and now I want you to
release me."
"Oops,
careful there. That's good beer you're spilling." The mason gave him an
innocent smile. "I didn't actually say that Balendilín sent me, did
I?"
Tungdil
was lost for words. "Well, no, you didn't, but..."
Bavragor
picked up his tankard. "Was it part of the deal?"
"Yes... I
mean, no..."
"Look,
here's what happened: I came in, asked for the job, and you agreed. We shook
hands, you gave me your word of honor, and that was that." He took a long
gulp. "In any case, you made the right choice: There's no better mason
than me. I expect you saw my work when you got here: inscriptions, statues, the
lot. Pretty impressive, I'd say." He raised his right hand. "This is
the hand you shook, and your grip was true. The sooner you find a diamond
cutter, the better; we can't hang around forever." He turned back to his
fellow drinkers and launched into song.
Tricked by a drunkard! Speechless with rage,
Tungdil stomped off to find Gandogar. He tried to swallow his anger and think
about it logically. Perhaps Bavragor really was the best mason in the
secondling kingdom—but it didn't make up for his barefaced cheek.
He
was halfway down the corridor when he suddenly burst out laughing. It was
almost as if Vraccas were trying to demonstrate that a little bravado could go
a long way. The Smith had shown a fine sense of irony in saddling him, the
false heir to the throne, with an impudent drunkard who had bluffed his way
into the mason's role. I'll have to remember to
pack enough brandy and beer to steady his hands when we reach the Gray Range.
At least Balendilín will be able to tell me whether he's really as good as he
claims...
Tungdil
fetched one of the two lengths of sigurdaisy wood and entered the assembly room
where Gandogar was waiting.
The
fourthling monarch was sitting at the table with five of his entourage. Tungdil
was struck by their glittering jewels and diamonds; compared to the
secondlings, their tunics and mail were unashamedly ostentatious.
"It
is not in my nature to make others beg. You don't need to explain yourself,
Tungdil. I know what you want." He pointed to the delegates, who rose to
their feet. "Take your pick. They're all expert craftsmen, masters in the
art of cutting and polishing gems."
Tungdil
paced along the line of dwarves, studying their faces and allowing his
instincts to guide him.
The
artisans were a little on the small side, but for some reason he was drawn to
the puniest of the lot. Something told him that this was the one. The dwarf's
beard glittered with diamond dust that had caught in his curly whiskers. It
looked as though thousands of tiny stars were shimmering under his chin.
Tungdil's mind was made up.
"Goïmgar
Shimmerbeard," said Gandogar, introducing him. "A fine choice,"
he added.
The
artisan's nervousness turned into full-blown panic. He turned to his monarch.
"But, Gandogar, Your Highness...Surely you won't make me...You know that
I can't..."
"I
gave Tungdil a free choice," Gandogar said sharply. "Do you want me
to break my promise? You're going with Tungdil, and that's that."
"B-but,
Your Majesty..." the artisan stuttered desperately.
"Think
of the reputation of our folk. Do exactly as Tungdil tells you, and if you get
to the Gray Range before us, be sure to cut the diamonds as conscientiously as
you would for me. Farewell—and, Goïmgar, come back in one piece."
The
king rose and signaled for the remaining four dwarves to follow. When he
reached the door, he stopped and turned.
"I
don't want you to come to any harm, Tungdil Goldhand, but as the rightful heir,
I can't honestly wish you well. Vraccas will lead me to victory and expose you
as a sham. I will be Gundrabur's successor."
"You
can have the title, King Gandogar," Tungdil said graciously, handing him
the sigurdaisy wood. "Just remember to slay Nôd’onn and protect Girdlegard
and our kingdoms from harm."
He hurried away without waiting for a reply. The scrawny artisan followed him, eyes cast gloomily to the floor.
Tungdil, Bavragor, Goïmgar, and the
twins were sitting in the central hall of the library, a ribbed vault lined
with lamps and mirrors that afforded sufficient light for reading and study. All
around them were tablets and rolls of parchment, the collected knowledge of
hundreds of cycles. The archive, the secondlings' repository of the past,
seemed the ideal place to hold a meeting about the future.
Tungdil
unrolled a map showing the territory between the five ranges. "We'll go
down and take a look at the entrance to the underground network," he told
them. "With a bit of luck and the blessing of Vraccas we'll be able to
travel west—"
"You
mean north," interrupted Bavragor. The strapping dwarf leaned forward and
pointed at the Gray Range. "We need to go north."
"Sure,
but first we'll go west to Borengar's folk. The firstlings have always been
the best smiths. They're the only ones capable of forging the blade."
"That's
as may be," objected Bavragor, giving Tungdil a searching look with his
right eye. "But who's to say they're still there? For all we know, they
may have been wiped out by orcs." He reached for his beer. "We should
take a smith with us and head north right away."
"Ah,"
said Boëndal, "so we've got a new leader, have we? Don't tell me you want
to be high king as well?"
"I
wouldn't mind being high king if it meant I could lock up maniacs like your
brother," the mason retorted harshly.
Boïndil
frowned, his hand moving automatically to his ax. "Careful, one-eye, or
you'll end up blind."
"They
never liked each other," Boëndal explained in a whisper. "The
incident with Bavragor's sister only made things worse."
Tungdil
sighed. He had a nasty feeling that the journey was going to be harder than
he'd thought. "His sister?"
"I'll
tell you later," hissed Boëndal. "They'll only end up fighting—or
worse."
"What
are we going to do with the dragon if we actually find it?" asked Goïmgar.
The skinny artisan was barely half the width of Bavragor or the twins. "If
you ask me, the whole thing sounds dangerous. Orcs, the Perished Land, älfar, a
dragon..." He swallowed nervously. "I must say, I am a bit...concerned."
"Concerned?
It's going to be fabulous!" bellowed Boïndil,
clapping him on the back. Goïmgar winced in pain.
"We
all like a good bit of orc-baiting, don't we? It's good dwarven fun."
True
to his name, Goïmgar beard shimmered in the candlelight. "Speak for
yourself. I'd rather be in my workshop."
Boïndil
eyed him suspiciously. "You do know how to use an ax, don't you? You sound
more like a whining long-un than a child of the Smith." He jumped up and
threw him an ax. "Come on, then, show us how you fight!"
The
ax clattered across the floor and slid to a halt in front of Goïmgar, who left
it where it lay. He patted his sword. "I'd rather use this and my
shield," he said peevishly, offended by the secondling's mocking tone.
"Call
that a sword? It looks more like a bread knife. A gnome would be too
embarrassed to use a pathetic blade like that." Boïndil whinnied with
laughter. "By the beard of Vraccas, you must have been hewn from
soapstone!" He sat down, shaking his head in despair. Bavragor chuckled
into his beer, emptied his tankard, and burped. On the subject of Goïmgar, the
two archenemies were united in scorn.
Boëndal
turned his attention to the map. "We'll be able to get to the firstling
kingdom without coming up against the Perished Land. Let's hope we can use the
tunnels. I wonder what kind of state they're in."
"I
expect we'll find out when our wagon hits a broken sleeper and we plunge to our
deaths," Goïmgar said despondently. "No one's been in the tunnels
for cycles and cycles. It'll be a miracle if—"
"Now
I know why Gandogar said we could take you with us. What a pumice-hearted
weakling you are! I've never heard so much wailing and sighing," Boïndil
said scornfully.
Bavragor
eyed him coldly. "If you'd been at my sister's funeral—"
"Enough!"
Tungdil silenced them. He was starting to have serious doubts about his ability
to hold the group together. Vraccas give me
strength. "Is this an expedition for dwarves or for children? No
one would ever guess that you're older than me! We're not visiting a gold mine
or a salt works. We're supposed to be saving Girdlegard."
"Oh,
I thought we were risking our lives so you could steal the throne," Goïmgar
said spitefully. Bavragor turned his tankard upside down and caught the last
drops in his hand. He licked them up regretfully.
Tungdil
smiled at the artisan. "No, Goïmgar, that's not true. Our priority is to forge
a weapon that will slay Nôd’onn and give us the means to fight the Perished
Land. Without Keenfire we don't stand a chance." He hadn't let on that he
was missing a section of the instructions for Keenfire that Andôkai hadn't
managed to translate.
"Is
that how you're planning to persuade the firstlings to lend us their best
smith?" the mason asked derisively. "They've probably never heard of
the magus or the Perished Land."
Tungdil
looked from Bavragor to Goïmgar and back again. "Why are the two of you so
keen to make problems before we've even started?" he asked frankly.
Bavragor
scratched his beard. "I'm not the one who's sitting here chatting,"
he retorted. "But if you want my opinion, we'll need more than Vraccas's
blessing if we're to forge the blade and make it back across Girdlegard."
"Then
take it from me that he'll give us his blessing and more. If you'd experienced half
the adventures that I went through on my journey, you wouldn't be so skeptical.
And remember, Bavragor, we're not doing this for me, we're doing it for
Girdlegard and the dwarves." And for Lot-Ionan,
Frala, Sunja, and Ikana, he added
silently. He smiled. "Just think: If we're lucky, we'll find some
gold."
"Well,
I'd drink to that, but I need some more beer," said the mason. He lumbered
out of the room.
Tungdil
turned to Goïmgar. "What about you? Do you see why we're doing this?"
"Absolutely.
For Girdlegard, like you said." The flippant response did little to
satisfy Tungdil, who tried to look him in the eye. Goïmgar stared fixedly at
the bookshelves that lined the walls from floor to ceiling.
It
wasn't long before Bavragor returned with an even larger tankard, having drunk
at least half of its contents on the way. "To the next high king!" he
said loudly, omitting to stipulate which of the candidates he had in mind.
"I hope he achieves all his goals." He downed the rest of his drink.
"He
hasn't even stopped for breath," Boïndil said in astonishment.
"There must be a lake of the stuff inside him."
Bavragor
wiped the froth from his beard. "Back in a minute," he said, rising
to leave.
"Stop!"
commanded Tungdil in a firm but friendly voice. "You can drink all you
like as soon as we've finished." Bavragor sat down sullenly, dropping the
empty tankard to the floor. The hallowed library echoed with the noise.
"Our first stop is the Red Range. If the firstlings haven't heard about Nôd’onn,
we'll tell them of the danger and ask for the loan of a smith. Then we'll
continue through the tunnels to our next stop, the Gray Range."
He
picked up another map and laid it out in front of the dwarves. "This is an
ancient map from the 5329th solar cycle, showing the main paths through the
fifthling kingdom."
Boëndal
peered at the yellowing parchment. "Look, there's Flamemere. That's where
we'll find our dragon."
"And then
what?" Goïmgar inquired weakly.
Tungdil
leaned back on his chair. "The way I see it, there's no need to actually
fight the beast when all we need is a bit of its fire. Boïndil, if you dance
around on its tail for a while, the rest of us can wait until it spews flames,
at which point we'll jump out, light our torches, and hurry to the
furnace."
"Can
I slay it, or am I only allowed to dance on its tail?" asked Boïndil,
practically bursting with excitement. Goïmgar gave him a sideways look.
"If
it makes you happy, you can slay it—but only after we've
got the fire," his brother instructed him firmly. "Dead dragons don't
breathe flames."
"The
furnace is near the entrance to the stronghold." Tungdil gave Boïndil a
stern look. "I know you're looking forward to killing some orcs, but the
fifthling kingdom will be crawling with them. If you take them on, neither you
nor the rest of us will come out of there alive. You're going to have to be
reasonable."
"Fine,"
Boïndil said obstreperously. He crossed his arms in front of his chest. "I
won't kill the stinking orcs—yet. I'll slaughter the lot of them when it comes
to the showdown with Nôd’onn." He glared at the others. "And let's
get this straight: If we run into orcs on the journey, the first ten are mine.
You can fight among yourselves for the others."
"Not
on your nelly," muttered Goïmgar, just loud enough for Tungdil to hear.
He
changed the subject. "Goïmgar and Bavragor, have either of you had much
experience of humans?" They shook their heads. "I'll give you some
tips on dealing with them in case we end up traveling overland for part of the
way. But first you should get some sleep. We'll be leaving in the
morning."
Bavragor
and Goïmgar set off in the direction of their chambers.
"What about
us?" asked Boëndal.
"We've
got some exploring to do." Tungdil and the twins followed a stairway that
wound deeper and deeper inside the mountain, taking them toward the ancient
tunnels that had carried their forefathers through Girdlegard at incredible
speed.
Tungdil
walked in front with the map, while Boïndil and Boëndal trailed behind, staring
wide-eyed at galleries and passageways whose existence they had never
suspected. None of their folk had entered this part of the kingdom since it had
been contaminated by sulfur hundreds of cycles before.
The
air smelled dank and a little staler than usual, but there was no hint of gas.
From time to time they came across a skeleton of a sheep or a goat that had
lost its way and died a slow and painful death of thirst.
They
followed the stairway for what seemed like hours. Broad-backed bridges of stone
carried them over plunging chasms whose depths shone with a mysterious yellow
glow. They passed mighty waterfalls and many-columned chambers as splendid as
their own great hall. Overcome with wonderment, they walked in silence,
hearing only the tread of their boots and the sound of rushing water. Soon the
path sloped upward again.
"To
think these shafts have been here all the time," said Boïndil, unable to
keep quiet any longer.
"It's
what happens when things aren't used. They get forgotten. I bet it's been free
of poisonous gases for ages," his brother remarked.
"Aha!"
Tungdil pointed to a door measuring four paces wide and three paces high and
inlaid with golden runes. "This must be it."
They
held up their oil lamps and scraped away at centuries of accumulated grime
until they could read the runes. The inscription was written in an ancient
dwarven dialect, and it took a bit of concentration for Tungdil to work it out.
At last he recited the lines to the twins:
Whether finding
friends
Or fighting foes,
May Vraccas be with you
And bring you safely home.
As he uttered the last syllable, the door creaked back,
allowing the three dwarves to enter. Inside was a vast chamber filled with all
manner of cogs, their teeth meshing vertically and horizontally in a confusion
of rust and verdigris. Various rods connected them to a series of cauldronlike
vessels and the apparatus was topped with chimneys of all shapes and sizes.
There were hatches below.
Boëndal
studied the machinery with interest. "To think the three of us have
restored to life a forgotten miracle of science," he said reverently.
"Not
yet we haven't." Tungdil took a closer look at the cauldrons and
discovered slim tubes of glass, each with a single leaden ball. The tubes were
calibrated and the cauldrons marked with the dwarven symbol for water. He knelt
down to look inside the hatches and came across traces of ash. He laughed and
thumped the sheet of metal. "Bavragor would say it's a distillery, but I
reckon it's some kind of engine."
"How
does it work, scholar?" asked Boëndal, while his brother disappeared
behind the array of cauldrons and crankshafts.
Tungdil
had seen diagrams of similar devices in Lot-Ionan's hooks. "Think of it as
a kind of mill," he explained. "The gears turn and drive the
equipment."
"Look
at this!" called Boïndil from the far side of the machinery. "There's
more stuff over here!" They followed.
At
the center of the chamber was a starting ramp wit h eight metal rails sloping
gently toward eight closed doors. The uppermost end of four of the rails
terminated in a wooden barrier, slung over with decaying sacks of straw.
"Those must
be tracks for the wagons," said Boëndal.
Tungdil
nodded. "We'll be gliding along a monorail. It's a hundred percent
safe."
"Try telling
that to Goïmgar," joked Boëndal.
Tungdil
glanced across at Boïndil, who had discovered a depot of a hundred or so wagons
in a corner of the hall. "Let's take a look."
There
were various different designs of wagon. Some boasted ten narrow benches, while
others had a single seat and were obviously meant for freight.
Near
the front of each vehicle was a lever. Tungdil took hold of one and jiggled it
gently. There was a squeaking sound from below. He peered beneath the carriage.
"Brakes," he announced. "If you pull on the lever, the wagon
slows down. We'll have to scrape off the rust, though."
"Hang
on, scholar," said Boëndal. "How do you propose to lift the wagons
onto the rails?" He glanced at the starting ramp, which was two paces high
at its uppermost end. "They're too heavy for us to carry."
"True."
Tungdil pointed to the ceiling. "But look up there."
"Hoists!
We can use the hooks to raise the wagons and place them on the rails. I say we
give it a go and see what happens."
They
collected some leftover charcoal and set light to it with their oil lamps. Next
they set out to fill at least one cauldron, which they did by drawing water
from a pool at the bottom of a nearby waterfall.
"What
now?" Boïndil asked eagerly.
"We
wait," said Tungdil.
They
dozed for a while, worn out from their exertions, until Boïndil woke up and
grabbed Tungdil's arm. "Look!" he shouted. "The lead ball just
moved!"
Tungdil
sat up. The ball had risen and was dancing excitedly halfway up the glass
tube. Hot steam shot from two of the vents.
"Well,
well," exclaimed Boëndal, watching attentively to see what happened next.
The
crankshaft turned on its axis and the first of many gears screeched into
action, achieving half a rotation before grinding to a halt. A third valve
opened and a hiss of air escaped.
"It's
powered by steam," explained Tungdil, full of admiration for the
engineers who had designed the contraption millennia ago. "It's like a
water wheel, except it's turned by steam instead of water." The twins
looked at him blankly. "Surely you must have tried holding a lid on a
boiling pan?"
"What
do you think I am?" Boïndil said testily. "A cook?"
His
brother understood what Tungdil was getting at. "The steam turns the gears
and the gears power the hoist, so the wagons can be lifted onto the rails
without us breaking our backs!" He looked at the thicket of rods and
wheels. "It'll take more than just one cauldron of water to get that
going."
"It
shouldn't be a problem," said Tungdil. "We're leaving tomorrow
morning and by then we'll—"
Boïndil
spun round and glared at the door. "Did you hear that?" he growled,
already keyed up for a fight.
"An
orc by the sounds of it," teased Tungdil. "You'd better go and
look."
"Too
right!" He set off at a jog, stopping to peer both ways at the door.
Picking up a stone, he weighed it in his hands and turned to the right, only to
whirl round and cast his missile into the shadows.
There
was a loud squeal, then the rapid patter of footsteps in the darkness. Tungdil
saw a small yet somehow familiar silhouette dart past the entrance where
Ireheart was waiting, ax in hand. The creature was too quick for him.
"What
was it?" Tungdil asked Boëndal. "Did you see anything?"
"No,
but from the way it took off, I shouldn't think it was a threat." He
watched his brother traipse back dejectedly.
"Shame
it wasn't an orc," he grumbled. "I would have killed the little
critter if it hadn't been so fast."
"We're
nearly done here anyway," said Tungdil. He pointed to the row of eight
doors. "We can head back once we've had a look at these."
"Even
I know what's behind them," protested Boïndil, who had been longing to
whet his ax on a worthy opponent. "Rails, that's what."
There
were eight levers at the top of the starting ramp. Tungdil pulled the one next
to the first rail and the corresponding door swung open. The rail continued
through the opening, into utter darkness.
"It's
going to be quite some journey," said Boïndil. "We'll be as good as
blind in there. It's darker than a troll's backside."
His
brother laughed. "Stop exaggerating. You know perfectly well that we don't
have any trouble seeing in the dark." Even so, he had to concede that the
tunnel would pose a considerable challenge. Visibility was limited to about ten
paces. "The long-uns would need torches," he said.
"We
should use torches as well," Tungdil told them. "If we get too
accustomed to the darkness, we'll be dazzled by the least bit of light. What
happens if there's a cleft in the rock? Even the tiniest chink of sunshine
would blind us."
Boïndil,
always the intrepid explorer, disappeared through the opening and took a few
paces along the rail. Tungdil read the inscription chiseled into the wall.
"It
leads to the firstling kingdom," he announced for the benefit of the
twins. He was beginning to understand how the underground network had worked.
Four
of the rails carried outgoing passengers away from Ogre's Death, and the other
four were for wagons returning home. The wooden barriers and straw sacking
served to absorb the impact in case the brakes failed.
He
turned the matter over in his mind and paced along the row of doors. "Look
at this," he exclaimed, stopping suddenly. "There's even a tunnel to
the thirdling kingdom!" Maybe the folks were
more united back then. Why else would they build a tunnel to Lorimbur's
dwarves?
"It's
probably so we could attack them," boomed a hollow voice inside the
tunnel. "By the beard of Vraccas, it's pretty tight in here," cursed Boïndil.
"No more than a dwarf's breadth either side of the wagon, I reckon."
Tungdil
ignored Boïndil's typically warlike explanation of the tunnel's purpose and
chivvied him along. "It's time to get going!"
"Hang
on, I'm nearly at the end and...Whoa, the tunnel goes straight down! We'd
better not tell Goïmgar or he'll die of fright." Boïndil's muffled
laughter grew louder as he finished his reconnoiter and returned. "Look at
the state of me!" He was covered from head to toe in spiderwebs, the desiccated
corpses of countless insects sticking to his beard. He fished the cobwebs from
between the rings of his tunic and dusted his whiskers.
"There's
obviously plenty of wildlife in the tunnels," observed Tungdil, reaching
for the lever to close the first door.
Boïndil
sighed. "And all of it totally harmless. Still, any spider more than so
big," he said, measuring out a space the size of his head, "belongs
to me!" They all laughed.
Before
they made their way home, they put out the fire beneath the cauldron and locked
the door by reciting the verse. Without the sun to guide him, Tungdil wasn't
sure how long it had taken to climb the hundreds of steps from the bustling
heart of the kingdom to the forgotten hall, but it seemed from his rumbling
stomach that they had been walking for some time.
They
were sweaty and tired when they finally joined the other delegates in the
dining hall. Ignoring the curious glances cast in their direction, they sat
down wearily at the table.
"We
won't show them the tunnels until tomorrow," Tungdil told the twins.
"The last thing we need is for Gandogar to rush off and get ahead. We'll
have our work cut out racing him to the Gray Range as it is."
"What
are you complaining about?" grinned Boïndil, cutting a slice of fungi
about the size of his plate and sprinkling it with pungent cheese. "You've
got the best warriors, haven't you? Nôd’onn's days are numbered, just you wait
and see."
"Boïndil's
right," said his twin, "although there is
one thing that bothers me. Remember the description of Keenfire?"
"Which
part?"
"The
purest, hardest steel for the blade, stone for the spurs, precious metals for
the inlay, not to mention diamonds for the bit," Boëndal reeled off.
"We'll
take everything with us," said Tungdil, guessing the nature of his
concern. "I asked Balendilín to supply us with ingots and gems. He said
that our task was important enough to merit a donation from the secondlings'
hoard. He's giving us everything we need."
"Gold,
silver, palandium, vraccasium, tionium, and a handful of diamonds...Vraccas
almighty! Every bandit in Girdlegard will be after us!"
"Don't
forget the steel, granite, victuals, and other provisions," Boïndil
reminded them. "I know we've got sturdy legs, but not even an ogre could
carry that much."
"If
everything goes to plan, we'll be traveling by wagon so we won't need to worry
about transporting the materials. And if we're forced to leave the tunnels,
we'll buy a pony to carry our valuables. It'll be fine; you'll see."
The
twins said nothing and focused on their supper, but Tungdil knew from their
silence that they were unconvinced.
"Fine!
What do you propose we do? Quarry the ancient mines of the fifthling kingdom
for precious metals and steel?" He sighed and reached for a morsel of
cheese.
"We
could take some extra diamonds and buy the precious metals on the way. In fact,
we could buy the metals once we get there," suggested Boëndal.
"Too
risky," ruled Tungdil. "What if we end up with no tionium? We'd be
missing a vital component of the ax."
He
raised his fourth tankard to his lips and emptied it in a single draft.
"The
decision stands: We're taking everything with us." He stood up briskly,
cursing himself for drinking too quickly as the beer rushed to his head.
"We'll manage," he said encouragingly and left the hall in the
direction of his chamber, swaying slightly as he walked. Feeling rather too
full and somewhat light-headed, he stretched out on top of his bed and fell to
thinking about the small silhouette that had darted past the door. He was sure
he recognized it from somewhere.
Suddenly he was assailed by doubts. I hope we'll really manage. What have I let myself in for? Tired from hours of walking, he fell asleep in his clothes.
Tungdil was roused from his dreams by a
vigorous shake of his arm. He sat up blearily and groaned. I thought dwarven beer wasn't supposed to give you
headaches?
"They've
gone!" he heard Balendilín saying. "Tungdil, are you listening to me?
They've gone!"
He
opened his eyes. The high king's counselor was standing at his bedside, with
Bavragor, Goïmgar, and the twins in the background. They were clad in their
mail and looked ready to leave. "What are you talking about? They're
behind you," murmured Tungdil, struggling to move his tongue.
"Not
them! I'm talking about Gandogar. His party has left." This time Balendilín's
voice was louder and sharper. "You'll never catch them if you don't leave
now."
Tungdil
slid out of bed. His body and mind were in no fit state to embark on a
high-speed journey in the dark. "Don't worry," he said soothingly.
"They'll take forever to reach the Gray Range. Ask Goïmgar how long they
needed to get here!"
"They're
not traveling on foot," Boëndal broke in. "They've all vanished
except Bislipur, and no one knows where they've gone."
"They didn't
go through the gates," added Boïndil.
Suddenly
it dawned on Tungdil: "Sverd!" In an instant he was wide-awake.
Bislipur's gnome had followed them and eavesdropped on their conversation until
Boïndil had scared him away. Which means Gandogar
knows exactly how to operate the rails. Sverd was every bit as devious
as his master.
Tungdil
wriggled into his leather jerkin and pulled on his mail, leather breeches, and
boots. At last he was ready for the adventure to begin. He told Bavragor and Goïmgar
to follow the twins through the disused passageways and light the fires beneath
the cauldrons.
"I
want the wagons to be on the rails by the time I get there. I've got a thing or
two to say to Bislipur first."
He
asked Balendilín to accompany him. "I see you've chosen your mason,"
the counselor remarked.
"Not
exactly." Tungdil sighed. "Bavragor volunteered himself and I fell
for it. It's too late to go back on my word, but I wouldn't mind knowing why
everyone is so against him. Is his drinking really that bad?"
Balendilín
drew breath. "Either he's sober, in which case he's bitter and rancorous;
or he's tipsy, which means he won't stop singing and playing the clown—the
merry minstrel, they call him. As far as his masonry is concerned, he's past
his peak."
"You mean
he's not the best mason?"
"Oh,
he's the best, all right. You only need look at the parapets, halls, and
passageways to convince yourself of that. But Bavragor hasn't used his chisel
for ten cycles or more. Thanks to his perpetual drinking, his hands can't be
trusted to do what his mind commands. No other mason has ever come close to
rivaling his art, so yes, he's the best." He pursed his lips. "I
didn't want to recommend him because his mood is unpredictable and he may not
be as skilled as he was. Either way, it's not worth dwelling on now."
They
found Bislipur breakfasting in the dining hall with a group of fourthling
delegates. His companions broke off their whispered conversation to warn him of
Tungdil and Balendilín's approach.
"Still
here?" said Bislipur, feigning surprise. "I expected more of you,
Tungdil. Strike while the iron is hot—isn't that the smith's motto?"
"I
was waiting for Gandogar," retorted Tungdil, struggling to contain his
rage. "Why isn't he here? And who told him how to get to the
tunnels?"
Bislipur
eyed him dismissively. "We did some exploring of our own," he said
casually. "Besides, there was no agreement about departing together.
Gandogar and his company were ready, so they left. They'll be back with
Keenfire before too long." He wrinkled his nose. "You're the one who
spent last night in his cups and frittered away the morning in bed. You should
be setting Bavragor an example, not the other way round."
"Then
let the race begin. We'll soon see who gets to the firstling kingdom and
recruits the best smith. Your monarch will be wishing he'd had more of a
lead."
Bislipur
picked up his mug of hot milk. "Well, don't let me delay you. You're free
to go whenever you please." There was a rumble of laughter from his
companions.
"Where's
that gnome of yours?" Balendilín asked sharply. "I hope he isn't
snooping on your behalf. He wouldn't be plotting anything untoward against
Tungdil, would he?"
Bislipur
jumped to his feet and drew himself up threateningly. "How dare you
insult my honor, Balendilín Onearm. If you had enough limbs to defend yourself,
I'd challenge you to a duel."
"You
can guarantee it will come to that if you continue to provoke me," the
counselor said evenly. "All I want is your assurance that the expedition
will be conducted without interference from you."
Bislipur
put his hands on his hips. "Vraccas forfend that I should interfere!
That's precisely why I stayed behind—so no one would wrongfully accuse
me."
"And what of
your little helper?" demanded Balendilín.
"The
same applies," Bislipur said haughtily. "Of course, I don't always
know what he's up to. Sometimes he gives me the slip."
Tungdil
didn't believe a word of it. We'll have to keep our
eyes open. He excused himself brusquely and hurried out of the hall.
"So,
Bislipur," Balendilín said softly, "why don't you tell me why you
really stayed behind?"
The
dwarf laughed balefully. "I've given you one good reason already, but
since you insist: I'm here because I don't want you
deciding our future if the high king was to die. I owe it to my folk to ensure
that the secondlings don't seize the crown while the legitimate heir is
away." He leaned forward. "When I say
legitimate heir, I don't mean your puppet. He isn't one of us."
"Nonsense,"
Balendilín said flatly. "Tungdil is a fourthling. You heard the evidence
just like everyone else."
Bislipur
took a step toward him. "I'll tell you where Sverd is," he whispered.
"He's on his way to our kingdom to study our archives and speak with those
who would know of a bastard child." His eyes narrowed. "The story of
Tungdil's origins is an outrageous lie, an insult to the honor of a king who
was faithful to his queen until his dying orbit. Sverd will bring back proof
that your puppet is a liar, a slanderer, and a fraud, and I shall take pleasure
in exposing the deceit. I'll smash the charlatan's ambitions as thoroughly as
this ax has splintered hundreds of orcish skulls. Make no mistake, my friend,
everyone involved in this trickery will meet the same fate. I swear it on
Vraccas's hammer."
Balendilín
considered the threat and decided that Bislipur stood a good chance of
uncovering the deceit. If Tungdil was to return victorious, he would have to be
protected from the allegations until Nôd’onn was defeated. The crusade against
the magus was more important than anything else.
"That's
good to know," he said equably. "Like you, I'm an honest dwarf with
nothing to fear from the truth. I look forward to seeing which of our
candidates is the first to return. In the meantime, I'm sure you won't mind if
I examine the authenticity of your document about the elves. I think it's
important to establish who was really responsible for the fifthlings' fall. Of
course, if the text you provided turns out to be a forgery, I'll know who to
blame." He nodded curtly and left the hall.
Bislipur
sat down and watched the one-armed counselor disappear into the corridor.
"Much good may it do you! Just wait and see who'll soon be sitting on the
throne," he muttered darkly.
His
ambitious plans had been foiled by the appearance of the impostor, but he had
no intention of giving up. I'm not letting cycles of
preparation go to waste. We're going to war, no matter what.
In
the event that the delegates changed their minds about a military offensive, he
had another trick up his sleeve.
Bislipur
turned back to the breakfast table to refill his plate. He cut himself a slice
of ham and stared at the streaks of white fat amid the soft pink flesh.
Suddenly it came to him: My enemies' enemies are my
friends.
* * *
Tungdil threw his most important belongings into a knapsack and
hurried down the passageways at a jog. As an afterthought, he had briefed Balendilín
and Gundrabur about the eight rails leading out through the mountain: Gandogar
was gone already, but the other delegates deserved to be told of the forgotten
depot of wagons and machines.
On
reaching the hall, he found his companions awaiting him with faces as long as
elves'. The air was damp and sticky and he was perspiring from every pore.
"Someone
has gone to great lengths to delay us," Boëndal explained grimly.
"Take a look at this."
The
rail that sloped toward the firstling kingdom was lying warped and twisted on
the floor. The oppressive warmth came from steam that was escaping from
countless perforations in the sides of the cauldrons. Even if it was possible
to repair the rail, they had no means of moving the heavy wagons.
"So
much for letting the best dwarf win," Boëndal said testily. "Although
it's flattering that Gandogar feels threatened enough to cheat."
"I'd
rather do without that sort of flattery. Besides, I don't suppose Gandogar had
anything to do with it." Tungdil bent down and examined the rail more
closely. Someone had used the pulley system to prize it from the ground.
"If you ask me, Bislipur decided to give his monarch a helping hand." What are we supposed to do now?
Goïmgar
had stationed himself a few paces away and was cultivating a detached
expression. Meanwhile, Bavragor was leaning against one of the perforated
cauldrons and drinking from his pouch. He licked his lips contentedly, sealed
the pouch, and walked over to inspect the damage.
"It's
simple, really," he breezed. "All we have to do is swap the
rails." He pointed to the neighboring rail that served as the disembarking
point for passengers arriving from the firstling kingdom.
"You've been
drinking," Boëndal said reproachfully.
The
mason didn't bother to look at him. "So what? I don't complain when you've
been eating. Beer just happens to be my sustenance." His huge calloused
hands thumped the metal track. "We'll send for one of our smiths and let
him take care of it." His right eye settled on the punctured cauldrons.
"As for these, we should fetch a tinker from the trading post. I expect
our artisans could handle it, but it's more a job for a tinker. And while we're
at it, we may as well ask the womenfolk in the brewery. They know a good deal
about vats."
Tungdil
stared at him in surprise. All of a sudden the one-eyed dwarf was bubbling with
enthusiasm and confidence. Balendilín had been right: The mason's mood was
unpredictable. "Good work, Bavragor; those are excellent suggestions,"
he said approvingly.
"I
know." Grinning, the mason rewarded himself with another draft of beer.
The
combined efforts of the tinker and his apprentices, assisted by the women from
the brewery, resulted in the cauldrons being repaired to the point where they
could withstand the build-up of steam for long enough to get the machinery
going.
It
took a further two orbits to undo the rest of the damage. At last the
cauldrons were filled with water and fired from below, the gears moved
smoothly, and the hoists did as instructed. By the afternoon of the third orbit
their wagon was stationed on its new rail, ready to begin its journey into the
unknown.
Tungdil
and Boïndil sat at the front, with Bavragor and Goïmgar on the next bench and Boëndal
at the rear. Their luggage, including comestibles, equipment, and the materials
for Keenfire, was shared among them and stowed at their feet.
Tungdil
turned round and scanned the faces of his companions. There was no telling
what awaited them at the bottom of the first steep drop or how much of an
advantage Gandogar had gained. Everyone looked understandably grave.
"Trust
in Vraccas," he said, shifting his gaze to focus on the door ahead. His
left hand grasped the lever beside the rail. He pulled it back and the door
swung open, clearing their passage into the darkness ahead.
"And
now to save Girdlegard..." He let up on the brakes and the wagon rolled
gently down the ramp toward the tunnel.
"What
if Gandogar sabotaged the rail?" Goïmgar asked anxiously. "Or what if
we're too heavy and fly off the side?"
"Let's
hope we don't find out!" There was a crazed glint in Boïndil's eyes as
they rushed toward the final pitch. "Here we come!"
Gathering
speed, the wagon reached the point where the tunnel took a sudden plunge. Its
passengers held on tightly as the vehicle tipped over the edge and careered
into the abyss.
Ireheart whooped in excitement, Boëndal held on for dear life, Bavragor burst into song, and Goïmgar petitioned Vraccas, while Tungdil wondered whether any of his companions were sane.
Underground Network, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
The windswept dwarves sped through the
tunnel, hair and beards streaming behind them as the wagon thundered along the
rail, swooping and juddering at an incredible rate. The speed of the descent
pinned them to their seats, and Tungdil felt himself being pushed and pulled in
ways he had never thought possible.
Bavragor
had stopped singing after choking on something that had flown into his mouth,
leaving Boïndil to whoop and bellow with untrammeled enthusiasm, exhilarated by
the stomach-turning ride.
Goïmgar
was praying with his eyes closed and beseeching Vraccas to protect him from
harm. His mortal terror betrayed a lack of confidence in Gandogar's sense of fair
play.
The
carefully hewn walls flashed past so rapidly that all they could see was a blur
of polished stone. After a while the tunnel opened out, becoming at least as
wide as the wagon was long.
"You'll
burst my eardrums if you keep yelling like that," Boëndal told his twin.
"It's even noisier at the back because of the wind."
Boïndil
roared with laughter. "Isn't this fun?
It's a million times faster than boring old ponies. I'd like to shake our forefathers
by the hand!"
"I
don't know," grumbled Bavragor, wiping brandy from his eyes. "They
could have made it a bit easier for me to drink."
Tungdil
smiled quietly. Being with other dwarves almost made up for the ordeals he had
suffered since leaving Ionandar, and he had no regrets about visiting Ogre's
Death, even though it meant embarking on another trip. At least this time he
wouldn't be traveling alone. "If only it weren't for their blasted
feuding...," he said, not realizing that he was speaking aloud.
"Blasted
what?" Boïndil bellowed. "Speak up! I can't hear you!" Tungdil
gave a helpless shrug.
Their
steep slide into darkness ended as abruptly as it had begun and they continued
at a more agreeable pace, with a few gradual climbs and the occasional gentle
downhill.
They
clattered over two junctions without being thrown off the rail.
"I
hope we're on the right track," called Boëndal from the rear. "Has
anyone seen any signposts?"
"I
saw some levers before both sets of points," Tungdil shouted back.
"There was dust and lichen all over them. I don't think anyone's used them
for some time." He hoped to goodness he was right.
The
tunnel stopped widening, and the view, now that they had slowed enough to see
it, was disappointingly monotonous. Save for the odd patch of lichen or moss,
the walls were smooth and unchanging. Twice they spotted stalagmites on the
rail; then the wagon ran over them, snapping them in two.
"There's
your proof that Gandogar didn't come this way," said Bavragor, uncorking
his leather drinking pouch and using the leisurely tempo to drink a few sips
before the next descent. "Do you think they might have switched the
points?"
"No,"
Tungdil said firmly. "The levers definitely hadn't been touched." Where else could they have gone, though?
"Maybe
they lifted the wagon across the rails so we wouldn't be able to tell,"
surmised Boïndil.
Tungdil
didn't argue, but privately he was wondering whether Gandogar's company had
taken an entirely different route. What if they've
found another tunnel that will get them there more quickly? It was
conceivable that Gandogar had come into possession of a proper map that showed
more than just entrances and exits. Then again, maybe Bavragor was right and
the points had been changed so that he and the others had been tricked into
traveling in the wrong direction while Gandogar and his companions raced west.
He decided not to mention his concerns.
Meanwhile,
the wagon was purring along the rail as if it had been making the journey every
orbit for a hundred cycles. In time the tunnel widened again and they reached a vast hall that served as an interchange
with three other rails. They rolled to a halt.
Tungdil
jumped down stiffly. "Come on, you lot, let's see where we go from
here." He was glad of the chance to stretch his legs after hours of
sitting down.
Between
them, they explored the hall and discovered an array of hoists and cauldrons similar
to the setup in the secondling kingdom.
"It's
a kind of junction," murmured Boëndal, shouldering his crow's beak. He
scanned the hall to make sure nothing had taken up residence in the underground
network without the dwarves' knowledge.
"Hey,
Shimmerbeard! What are you doing?" boomed Boïndil.
The
fourthling sprang away from the wall, revealing a tab- let of light gray
granite. It was roughly the height and width of a gnome and held in place with
long rusty nails. "I was..." He cleared his throat. "I was
wiping the dust away," he said defiantly. "I wanted to see what it
said."
"It
looks like a map," said Tungdil, hurrying over. "Well done, Goïmgar.
You've got sharp eyes."
He
knew the fourthling didn't deserve his praise: Goïmgar had been scratching out
the lines with his dagger to disadvantage the expedition and allow the
fourthling king to get ahead. Tungdil had no means of actually proving it, so
he kept the observation to himself and made a quick sketch of the map. I'll have to keep an eye on him.
"Look,
Tungdil," Bavragor said cheerfully. "We're on the right track; it's
this way."
"That's
all we need: directions from a one-eyed dwarf," muttered Goïmgar just loud
enough for Bavragor to hear.
The
mason turned on him, snarling with rage. His right hand shot out, his fingers
winding their way into the artisan's wavy beard and pulling him close.
"Come
here, you pathetic excuse for a dwarf," he growled, raising his free hand
and peeling back his left eyelid to expose the shriveled remains of an eye. A
shard of rock was impaled at its center. "You think I'm blind, do you? Ha!
Let me tell you about my eye. One orbit the mountain tired of my masonry and
exacted its revenge. A splinter of rock as sharp and fine as a needle flew up
and robbed me of my sight, but Vraccas took pity on me and made the other eye
ten times as strong. That's ten times,
Shimmerbeard. My one eye sees more clearly than ten!" He pushed the
delicate artisan away and laughed grimly. "It sees the slightest flaw in
the rock, the pores of your skin, and the fear in your eyes; what do you have
to say about that?"
Goïmgar
backed away from the mason's mighty hands and rubbed his chin. He had endured
the humiliation silently, but now that Bavragor had released him, he felt brave
enough to vent his fury in a threat. "You'll regret this, Hammerfist. Just
wait until Gandogar is high king: The mountain won't be the only one to exact
revenge!"
"That's
right, run to Gandogar! You're a coward as well as a weakling."
"Let's
call it quits now," Tungdil said sharply. "You've both said more than
enough." In fact, Goïmgar’s threat about Gandogar being high king was
proof that he intended the expedition to fail. "I don't want to hear
another insult from either of you. In any case, it's time to go."
He
strode back to the wagon, the other four following in silence. The strained
atmosphere was a worrying portent for the company's future.
What happens when I can't stop them from quarreling? His
spirits sank lower when he remembered that Bavragor and Goïmgar weren't the
only ones at loggerheads: Boïndil and Bavragor couldn't stand each other
either. Only the calm and practical Boëndal hadn't made any enemies. Who knows how long that will last? It's not easy being a
leader, he thought gloomily. Vraccas give me
strength.
Boïndil,
ever hopeful of finding someone or something to fight, wandered over to the
mouth of the tunnel. He opened the door and peered inside. "It goes
straight down. The wagon will need a bit of a push; then the slope will take
care of the rest."
The next leg of the journey awaited them. They hauled their vehicle to the top of the ramp and jumped aboard, save for Boëndal, who waited a moment longer to give them a final shove. Soon they were hurtling westward, squeaking and rattling through the tunnel to the kingdom of Borengar's folk.
Enchanted Realm of Lios Nudin, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
The scouts returned on horseback with
news that Porista was going about its usual business, untroubled by the twin-flanked
advance of forty thousand soldiers under the command of Girdlegard's finest
human warriors.
Gentle
sunshine bathed the lush green countryside, bringing out the rich autumn hues
of the trees. Everywhere the foliage was putting on a last show of splendor
before the winter frosts.
All
the same, the air was decidedly chilly, so Tilogorn and Lothaire had erected an
assembly tent to guard against the winds. They stood outside and listened to
the scouts' report.
The
first envoy sent to Porista to negotiate on their behalf had returned with a
list of preposterous demands, not to mention tidings of the magi's deaths.
Many orbits had passed since then, but the brief exchange had taught them that Nôd’onn
was the real enemy and would have to be destroyed.
Clasping
flasks of hot tea, the kings of Idoslane and Urgon studied the sketched map of
fortifications and marveled at Porista's meager defenses. A single wall
protected the city from attack.
Tilogorn
was wearing plain but solid armor. He was heartened to see Porista's
vulnerability: There were villages in his kingdom that were better defended
than the capital of Nôd’onn's realm. "Victory will be swift, provided the
magus doesn't jinx us. We made the right decision in not waiting for
reinforcements."
"Between
us we'll bring the villain to his knees. He can't be in two places at once: One
of the gates will fall and Porista will be ours," Lothaire said
confidently, checking the buckles on his lightweight leather mail.
Each
was wearing armor in keeping with the style of combat in his kingdom. In
Idoslane, Tilogorn was accustomed to fighting heavily armed and powerful orcs,
which called for heavy- duty protection against axes and swords, whereas a
solid suit would be impractical in Urgon because of the lakes and hills.
Agility and speed were of the essence when death was the likely consequence of
stumbling on a narrow mountain pass.
The
mismatched sovereigns were in command of an army that was similarly diverse.
Each of the seven human kingdoms had sent units to Porista, but the other
monarchs were content to let Tilogorn and Lothaire direct the motley troops.
Another forty thousand soldiers were already on their way, ready for the next
stage in the campaign: the assault on Dsôn Balsur.
Queen
Umilante had sent her lightly armored and sparely clad warriors to line up with
Queen Wey IV's waterguards and Queen Isika's guerrillas, whose favored
territory was the forest. Not a soldier among them had ever stormed a city, and
so it fell to Lothaire's and Tilogorn's units, who, along with King Nate's
cavalry, formed the mainstay of the army, to show them what to do.
It's a good thing we're attacking Porista first. The men
could use the experience before they cross blades with the älfar. Lothaire
pointed to the city gates. "Tilogorn, you attack the northern gate; I'll
approach from the south. The catapults and ladders are ready and waiting."
He held his head high. "I'll go in first. Take up position with your
twenty thousand men, but don't advance straightaway. As soon as you see my
signal, charge through the other gate and attack the palace from the
north."
"Agreed."
Tilogorn reached for his helmet. "Then let's rid Girdlegard of Nôd’onn.
After that we can focus on routing the älfar and the orcs. May Palandiell be
with us."
"She's
with us already, there's no doubt of that." They shook hands, mounted
their horses, and rode to join their units three miles from Porista's walls.
Lothaire
ordered the fanfare to be sounded and the men raised their standards in a
billowing sea of cloth. The divisions attacked from the south as agreed, the
first wave of soldiers pushing wheeled screens of wood in front of them to
shield their advance.
Porista
waited until they were within firing distance before waking from its doze. A
dark shadow whooshed toward them, arrows and missiles raining on the troops.
The
men huddled behind their wooden defenses and all but a handful escaped the
storm unscathed. Lothaire's archers returned fire and the advance continued behind
the moving screens. The men reached the wall, flipped the panels over, and held
them aloft while others banged posts into the soil on which to balance the
wooden shields. With the makeshift roofs overhead, there was no risk of injury
from bombardment from above. Soon ladders were clattering against the walls.
It was then that Nôd’onn gave them a taste of his might.
Tilogorn was watching on horseback
while his foot soldiers stole toward the northern gates. There was no
opposition worth speaking of: Porista's guardians had been tricked into
thinking that the opposite side of the city was the focus of the attack. By the
time news of a second invasion reached the troops in the south, Tilogorn and
his men would be through the northern gates and advancing on the palace.
We'll soon decide the matter in our favor, he told
himself firmly. There was something unsettling about fighting magic with
manpower, but he couldn't think of any other way.
Tilogorn
had opted to ride at the head of the five-thousand-strong cavalry and he
planned to bear down on the palace and take the magus by storm. In a battle
against the wizard's magic, he needed every advantage of speed and shock to
survive.
Two
lone riders looped toward him, raising their flags as a signal for the king and
his units to advance.
"Palandiell protect us." Tilogorn checked each of his weapons, making sure his sword and dagger were at hand. On his orders, the bugles were sounded, heralding the attack. The first eight thousand men swarmed toward the gates like ants. Lothaire had used the same tactic on the other side of the city, only two miles farther south.
The attacking force met with almost no
resistance. A few arrows were loosed from the parapets but the damage was
minimal.
In no
time ladders had been laid against the walls and the first of Tilogorn's
warriors were scaling the defenses to grapple with the handful of plucky
soldiers left in charge of the northern gates.
Tilogorn watched as Idoslane's flag was raised on the ramparts. He buckled his helmet and pushed down the visor. "For Girdlegard!" He and his five thousand cavalrymen pounded toward the open gates.
The first block detached itself from
the parapet and shot toward them like a missile from a catapult. The slab of
stone, as long as a forearm in its shortest dimension, struck a soldier in the
chest, his body compressing like honeycomb beneath the mass of granite.
It
was the start of a bombardment more gruesome than anything the men had ever
witnessed. Most of them weren't destined to survive it.
Block
by block, the city wall was coming undone. Starting from the top, the stone
slabs hurled themselves from the parapet, hitting the attacking army with such
force that neither shields nor armor could save them. The massive projectiles
crashed straight through the wooden barricades, flipping them over or smashing
them to pieces and showering the nearby troops with a lethal hail of wood and
stone.
Each
of the blocks met its target. Everywhere armor was shattering, bones
splintering and granite embedding itself in the ground. Shouts of terror gave
way to screams for help and the anguished howls of the dying. Soon there was
nothing left to support the ladders and they toppled back among the troops.
"Pull
back!" commanded Lothaire, wheeling his horse about. A block struck his
stallion's head and it fell to the ground, twitching.
The
king tumbled from the saddle and was trapped beneath the fallen mount. When at
last he dragged himself free, he realized that his leg was wounded, perhaps
broken. Barely able to stand, let alone walk, he was rescued by two of his
guards, who carried him to a ditch, the only place that offered any protection
against the flying granite.
"Curse
the magus and his wizardry," muttered Lothaire, gritting his teeth as pain
shot through his injured leg. The situation was worse than anything he had
imagined: Nôd’onn was using his terrible powers to bring death and destruction
to the allied troops. He tried not to think about the quantity of blocks in the
wall; it was a formidable arsenal by anyone's standards.
At
last, when the thudding and pounding had ceased, the king raised his head and
looked out of the ditch.
The
flat ground at the foot of the gates was littered with stone slabs of varying
sizes: Even the base blocks, each the length of a fully grown man, had lifted
from the foundations and hurled themselves at the troops. Limbs, broken lances,
warped shields, and snapped spears protruded from beneath the masonry, the
hunks of stone providing grisly markers for every corpse.
Lothaire's
gaze traveled over the debris and settled on the unprotected streets and houses
beyond. Bereft of its wall, the capital of Lios Nudin lay defenseless before
him. Only the watchtowers on either side of the gates were still in place.
"This
is our chance," he said, straining to speak through the pain. "We've
got to attack." With the help of his guards he left the trench to spur on
his army.
Barely
three thousand of his twenty thousand men had survived the bombardment, and
over half of those had taken flight, their courage defeated by the invisible
malice at work. Who can blame them? he
thought bitterly.
The
sight of their leader strengthened the soldiers' resolve and Lothaire was soon
surrounded by a loyal cohort of fifteen hundred men, all determined to invade
the city and storm the palace.
Just
then the masonry came back to life. The biggest blocks were the first to move,
rising one by one and lowering themselves into position. Next came the smaller
slabs, piling one on top of the other until the wall loomed once again above
the horrified troops, only this time it glistened red with the blood of their
comrades.
That
was the moment when Lothaire stopped believing that Nôd’onn could be defeated.
Lowering himself onto the blood-drenched grass, he stared at the insurmountable
obstacle in their path. Fragments of armor, broken weaponry, and mutilated
body parts stuck to the wall like trophies, daring the army to launch another
doomed assault. Ye gods, what can I do?
Weapons
at the ready, his soldiers hesitated. Lothaire was still praying for
inspiration when the voice of the magus sounded from above.
"How
thoughtful of you to bring me an army, King Lothaire."
"Enjoy
your monstrous work while you can," Urgon's ruler shouted furiously.
"Your cruel dominion will soon be over."
There
was a flash of dark green cloth and the magus came into view through an
embrasure. Lothaire looked up at the great white oval of his bloated face.
"You
thought you were invading a defenseless city. It wasn't your only mistake. The
human eye is easily misled." He raised his arms and gestured with an
elegance belying his bulk. "All the best with your final battle, King
Lothaire. Don't worry: This time you'll be fighting humans, not stones."
He withdrew and disappeared behind a merlon.
On looking
round, Lothaire was rooted with horror. The grass beneath him was turning gray
before his eyes. All around him the trees were drooping, the branches shedding
their richly colored leaves, whose pigment faded as they fell. This was the
true face of Lios Nudin, disguised by the magus to trick them into setting foot
in the Perished Land.
Lothaire
knew what it meant for him and his fifteen hundred men.
The
Perished Land knows no such thing as death. Lothaire had heard stories about the northern
pestilence and the thought of it made him shudder with horror. Closing his
eyes, he prayed to Palandiell and other benevolent deities to deliver them from
their fate.
His
desperate prayers were cut short by the sound of low groans from all over the
battlefield. The dead soldiers were rising, clambering clumsily out of
block-shaped craters and pushing their way through shattered blockades.
Depending on the extent of their injuries, they crawled, limped, or staggered
toward the surviving troops. A few walked without impediment, but their open
wounds and terrible deformities gave them away. Already there were a hundred of
them, each clutching a sword, lance, or other weapon, and their ranks were
swelling all the time.
"But
they're... It's impossible! What are we to do?" cried a terrified officer.
"We
fight our way out," ruled Lothaire. "If we stay, our courage will be
of no greater use to anyone than it was to these men; the Perished Land will
enslave us. We'll head south." His loyal guards had been waiting for his
signal and offered him their shoulders to lean on. A dozen warriors surrounded
the trio and shielded the wounded king. "Make haste! And may Palandiell be
with us!"
With that, Lothaire and his men surged forward to break through the ring of undead soldiers who had once been their allies.
The cavalry thundered through the
deserted streets of Porista with no regard for their own limbs or the safety of
their mounts. Tearing round the corners, many of the horses skidded on the
treacherous cobblestones and careened into houses. Those behind leaped over the
bodies and galloped on.
Their
goal was already in sight. Towering above the rest of the city, Nôd’onn's
palace, once the seat of the council of the magi, pointed them on their way.
To
Tilogorn's relief, the citizens of Porista did nothing to halt the charge. The
assault on the gates had gone according to plan and now the invaders could
focus on the purpose of their mission—subduing the magus himself.
The
king trusted entirely to the power of numbers, believing his army to be
stronger and more powerful than any wizard's spell. To think otherwise would be
irresponsible—the men would sense his hesitation and an anxious army was easy
to defeat.
The
riders streamed through Porista like a torrent of shimmering water, channeled
by the streets into three separate tributaries, which flowed toward the palace
walls and collected in the marketplace outside the palace gates.
Ahead
of them a crowd of people had gathered in front of the entrance. Judging by
their dress, they were ordinary citizens, mainly women and children, who barred
the way without weaponry or aggression.
From
the throng of three hundred souls an unarmed youth stepped forward with his
hands in the air. "Leave the magus in peace, men of the east," he
called. "He has done nothing to hurt you and wishes you no harm."
Prince
Mallen, clad in the armor of the Ido dynasty, pushed his mount through the rows
of horses and drew alongside Tilogorn. "Nôd’onn has bewitched them,"
he whispered urgently. "Break them up or we'll lose our advantage."
He glanced nervously at the turrets. "We're a sitting target out
here."
"Prince
Mallen? Didn't Lothaire..."
"The
attack failed. Girdlegard is depending on you and your men."
I was right to fear the wizard's magic. He sat up
tall in the saddle. "Move aside, good people. Our quarrel is with Nôd’onn,
not you."
"You
can trample us into the ground if you like," their spokesman retorted.
"You'll have to kill us if you want to get past." He turned his back
to them and returned to the others, who closed ranks, leaving no room for a
horse to pass.
Tilogorn
ordered three hundred riders to advance in a line and push the crowd through
the gates. The row of armored horses bore down on the townspeople like a wall
of steel, pushing them aside, while a second line of cavalrymen prevented them
from rushing back to the entrance.
Suddenly
one of the riders tumbled from his horse, clutching his leg and howling in
pain. A moment later, a citizen of Porista took his place in the saddle and
whipped out a cudgel spiked with nails. The unsuspecting rider to the left was
struck in the face before the right-hand neighbor could reach across and run
the intruder through. As the young man fell, his simple garments disintegrated,
revealing an armor-plated orc. The snarling beast hit the ground and died.
With
that, the spell was broken and the unarmed crowd became a war band of orcs. It
was conclusive proof, if any were needed, that Nôd’onn was in league with Tion
and his minions.
"Cut
them down!" shouted Tilogorn. "Kill every last one of them! It's an
illusion!"
The
formerly peaceful crowd hurled themselves on the cavalry, attacking the horses
and riders with cudgels, axes, and notched swords. Thrown off guard by the
transformation, dozens of soldiers were killed.
On
recovering from the initial shock, the riders discovered that it was impossible
to land an accurate blow amid the jostling bodies. They endeavored to leave
the scrum.
The
green-hided beasts chased after them, hacking at the horses' legs, slashing their
flanks, and hanging off their manes like rabid dogs until the poor animals
bolted in agony and terror.
Wild
with panic, the horses charged the waiting units, and the chaos was complete.
Meanwhile,
the orcs were everywhere, snarling, striking, and ducking out of sight. The
horses kicked out, making no distinction between friend and foe, whinnying,
snorting, and pawing until they were seized by an overwhelming urge to flee.
Even the best riders were unable to stop the stampede: The instincts of the
herd were stronger than any bridle or spurs.
Mallen
and Tilogorn lost valuable time as they struggled to round up their men and
regroup in the marketplace. By then the foot soldiers had arrived and were
readying themselves to join the charge through the gates.
In
the blink of an eye, the orcs disappeared, leaving only the dead and wounded as
evidence that a savage confrontation had occurred. The two commanders didn't
stop to worry about the whereabouts of the enemy, but gave the order for the
gates to be breached.
Three
thousand riders tore into the palace forecourt. Tilogorn dispatched the units
in different directions and the search for Nôd’onn began. Racing up the broad,
flat steps, the horses sped through the corridors and halls, unimpeded by
defenders or orcs.
"Stay
down here and continue the search," Tilogorn instructed the bulk of his
men. He eyed the highest turret, where his instincts told him that Nôd’onn
would be waiting. "I'm going up there." He dismounted and wound his
way up the flight of stairs with Mallen and three hundred men. As the staircase
narrowed and steepened, he lifted his visor so he could breathe.
On
entering the first chamber, he glanced at the large window through which the
southern streets of the city could be seen. An armed unit was heading for the
palace, the flags of Urgon and their other allies fluttering in the breeze.
"Look,
Mallen," he said, relieved to see the reinforcements. "King Lothaire
has taken the gates. The wizard is at our mercy."
The
fair-haired prince of Ido stared in astonishment. "But Lothaire was... I
mean, I thought I saw him..." He trailed off, puzzled, and followed the
king. Buoyed by new courage and energy, they strode down the corridor until
they came to an imposing door, which they opened by force.
Their
persistence was rewarded. Twenty paces away a colossal figure in dark green
robes was standing with his back to them. The magus was studying the commotion
at the base of the turret and didn't turn round.
Without
waiting for Tilogorn's order, the men spread out and silently leveled their
bows. The target was so broad that it seemed the arrows couldn't fail to hit
their mark, but on nearing the magus's back, the tips rusted, the shafts
disintegrated, and wood dust trailed through the air. Soon nothing remained but
fragments of metal, which tinkled against the marble floor.
"Welcome,
King Tilogorn," the magus greeted them, his back still turned. "You
have entered the enchanted realm of Lios Nôd’onn. What brings you here?"
"The
plight of our kingdoms," Tilogorn replied steadily, drawing his weapon in
readiness for a duel. "You are a danger to Girdlegard."
"And
you, King Tilogorn, have invaded my realm, stormed my palace, and threatened my
life. Should I consider you a danger?"
"You're a
traitor, Nôd’onn—a murderer and a traitor."
"A
murderer, yes, that much is true. But I killed only because 1 had to, because I
wanted to save Girdlegard—like you. Humankind is facing a much greater danger,
a danger that only my friend and I are powerful enough to combat, and for that
we need mastery over Girdlegard. The races of men, elves, and dwarves must cede
their lands for the greater good—or die." Turning at last, he looked at
them sadly with watery green eyes. "It pains me greatly that some have chosen
death already. You'll join me, won't you?" He took a step toward Tilogorn
and held out his hand.
"Never!"
The king signaled for his men to attack and a dozen soldiers stormed forward.
They
were still charging when their weaponry, mail, clothes, flesh, and bones
perished like the arrows. The unseen power worked so swiftly that there was no
opportunity for them to retreat. A semicircle of dust surrounded the magus,
four paces from his feet; then an autumn gust dispersed the disintegrating
men. The remaining soldiers drew back in fear.
"You
underestimated my power, King Tilogorn," the magus said slowly. "You
refused a hand extended in friendship. Your men are paying for your
arrogance."
The
fresh wind carried the sound of fighting to Tilogorn's ears. He listened
intently.
"You
thought the battle was over, did you?" Nôd’onn gestured to the window.
"Why don't you see for yourself what has become of King Lothaire and his
men?"
Tilogorn
kept the magus in his sights and sent a soldier to the window to report on the
skirmish below.
"They're
fighting our men," he said in consternation. "The soldiers are waving
Urgon's banners, but they're... They're joining forces with the orcs!" He
gasped. "Palandiell have mercy on us! The dead soldiers are rising!
They're still alive, and they're killing our troops!"
Nôd’onn
chuckled. "You have been treading the Perished Land for some time, King
Tilogorn. I created the illusion to draw you to me and sure enough, you brought
me the army I desired—"
He
broke off midspeech, racked by violent coughing. Blood dribbled from his lips
and two dark streams formed beneath his nostrils. He sank to his knees, still
spluttering, and more blood gushed from his mouth, forming a crimson pool on
the immaculate marble floor.
"This
is our chance," shouted Tilogorn, rushing toward him. "For
Girdlegard!" His soldiers joined the charge.
Most
of the valiant warriors were turned to dust, but the magus's weakness had
damaged his magic shield. Thirty men, among them King Tilogorn, penetrated his
guard and were able to attack. Three, then four arrows embedded themselves in
the bloated body, and the soldiers rushed in, hacking at Nôd’onn's prostrate
form. Seconds later, Prince Mallen joined the fray.
Terrified
that they too would fall prey to some wizardry, the men attacked with preternatural
force. Their arms rose and fell in a savage frenzy, the blows raining harder
and faster all the time. Blood seeped from every inch of the mutilated body,
washing over the floor and poisoning the air.
Tilogorn
saw a flicker of movement in the open wounds. There's
something alive in there, he realized with a shudder. He threw all his
strength behind his blade. "Die, why don't you!"
"No!"
screeched Nôd’onn. Even as he spoke a gust of wind swept his assailants off
their feet, knocking them backward. "Girdlegard will be ruined without
me!" Black lightning shot from the onyx on his staff, zigzagging in all
directions and incinerating the flesh and armor of all in its path.
"Don't
listen to him!" Tilogorn sprang forward and raised his sword. "Keep
fighting," he gasped. His right arm swooped toward the magus.
"Keep—"
A
bolt raced toward him and seared through his armor, piercing his heart. With a
groan he sank down and let go of his sword, which clattered to the ground and
disappeared among the muddle of legs and feet. He was filled with a sense of
crushing failure.
"Congratulations,
Prince Mallen," Nôd’onn said mockingly. "I suppose this makes you
Idoslane's new king." He stepped forward and made to shake his hand.
"The question is: Will you join me, or lose your kingdom as quickly as you
gained it?"
The
last of the Idos didn't stop to consider. Picking up Tilogorn's sword, he
helped the wounded king to his feet. "Let's go," he said to Tilogorn.
"We'll deal with Nôd’onn another time." He dragged the monarch to the
door, protected by a guard of men.
The magus watched
incredulously. "Not you as well?"
"How
could I ally myself with Idoslane's enemy?" Mallen lifted Tilogorn's arm
over his shoulder and half carried, half propelled him down the stairs. Nôd’onn
strode after them.
"Then
you shall die together!" he shouted hysterically. "You're no use to
me!"
A
volley of bolts crackled toward them, searing through the last remaining
guards. Mallen slung Tilogorn over his shoulder and raced down the stairway.
"I'm not leaving you with that monster. I'll get us out of here if it's
the last thing I do," he said, gasping under the strain.
"Rule
our kingdom more wisely than your forebears." Tilogorn was fading, his
voice little more than a whisper. A trickle of blood leaked out of his mouth
and onto the prince's armor. "Listen carefully: Wait for the other units
at a safe distance from Porista. Rescue the wounded and be sure to burn the
dead. If you don't, you'll face an army of revenants that nothing and no one
can defeat. Whatever happens, Nôd’onn mustn't be granted his invincible
undead."
"You
can't die on me, Tilogorn. I need you to help me exact our revenge." The
prince had to fight for breath as he struggled beneath the extra weight.
"Don't tell me you're prepared to leave your kingdom to an Ido!" he
said harshly, hoping to stir the king's anger and galvanize his will to live.
"What's the matter with you, Tilogorn?"
"Promise
me you'll make a better king than your grandfather. Promise that you won't
tear Idoslane apart!"
"You have my
word."
"Burn
the dead," the king whispered. "You must save Idoslane. Palandiell
be..." The tension left his body.
I shall honor my promise, Tilogorn of Idoslane.
Mallen laid the body gently at the foot of the turret. To regain the throne at such a price...He
took the dead king's sword, clasp, and signet ring and ran on.
It
was only through sheer determination and good fortune that he and his remaining
men escaped the violent fury of the revenants.
As they left the city, they set fire to the buildings, creating a sea of flames that no amount of wizardry could contain. Even the rain invoked by Nôd’onn could not prevent Porista from being razed to the ground, leaving nothing save the palace and the foundations. King Lothaire and King Tilogorn were never to rise from the blaze.
Underground Network, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
By now the five dwarves had a rough sense
of how far they were from their destination. At first they hadn't noticed the
numerals on the tunnel walls, marking the completion of each twenty-five-mile
stretch. In no time they covered an incredible two hundred miles.
After
a while they rolled to a halt in another large hall and decided to rest for a
few hours before embarking on the next descent. Traveling by wagon was less
tiring than walking, but their muscles were sore after hours of sitting
uncomfortably and being thrown from side to side. Even the constant rattling
was wearying after a while.
Boïndil
told the others to stay seated while he stood on top of the wagon and scanned
the dusty floor for prints. "Either they've been pulverized or no one's
been this way in ages," he said. He jumped down and vanished in a thick
gray cloud.
Boëndal
thought for a moment. "The rail doesn't look especially clean. Gandogar
must have taken a different route."
Tungdil
unfolded the map he had sketched in the previous hall. "It's possible, I
suppose."
"I
hope the ceiling collapses on top of him," scowled Boïndil, searching the
hall for firewood. He found a stash of abandoned timber, but it turned to dust
in his hands. There would be no melted cheese on toasted mushrooms after all.
They
ate their meal in silence, each absorbed in his thoughts. Bavragor took long
drafts from his drinking pouch and eventually burst into song, ignoring his
companions' objections. His powerful voice reverberated through the hall,
echoing down the tunnels.
"For
pity's sake, be quiet! We don't want every creature below the surface knowing
that we're here," snapped Goïmgar.
Boëndal
grinned. "I don't think it's much of a secret. He hasn't stopped warbling
since we left."
"Poor
little Shimmerbeard," teased Boïndil, laying his axes in his lap and
setting to work with his grindstone. "You're not scared, are you? Don't
worry: My brother and I are here to protect you." He tested each blade
with his thumb. "It's a long time since they tasted orc flesh. They're
almost as impatient as me."
"Orc flesh?
Down here?" Goïmgar asked anxiously.
"Who
can tell?" the secondling replied. Boëndal and Tungdil saw the strange
glint in his eyes and knew at once that he meant to have some fun: The poor
artisan was about to be scared witless. "The tunnels have been abandoned
for hundreds of cycles. All kinds of creatures could have moved in without us
knowing." He tapped out a noisy rhythm with the butts of his axes.
"It won't be safe until we get rid of them. From now on, it's war!"
"That's
enough, mighty warrior," Tungdil warned him.
Boïndil
laughed, spurred on by his fiery spirit. "Show yourselves, you ogres,
trolls, orcs, and beasts of Tion! Come out and be hacked to pieces by the
children of the Smith!" He had to shout at the top of his voice to drown
out the mason's singing. "Come out, so I can kill you!"
"Don't
provoke them," Goïmgar pleaded, edging away until he was sitting with his
back against the wall. "You shouldn't bait them like that."
"Someone
once told me about hideous beasts that live down here and plague the
dwarves," said Bavragor, joining in the fun. He oiled his throat with
another helping of whatever he kept in his mysterious pouch. "Tion
created them as our natural enemies, like he created the älfar to wipe out the
elves."
"Someone
once told me about innocent creatures dying
in agony because of your singing," quipped Boëndal.
"More
than likely," said his brother. "You'd better keep your mouth shut,
Bavragor. I won't have you chasing away my orcs."
The
mason gesticulated rudely and launched into another rousing song, only to be
silenced by Tungdil. "We need to know if anything's sneaking up on
us," he explained. Goïmgar and the twins hastened to agree.
"All
right, you win." Bavragor lowered his voice to a hum and curled up in his
blankets. Soon he was snoring at a volume to rival his singing. The twins
settled down for the night, but Goïmgar stayed exactly where he was. At last
Tungdil handed him a blanket since he clearly intended to sleep with his back
against the wall.
"I
saw what you were up to," he said softly when he was sure that the others
were asleep.
"I don't
know what you mean."
"You
know, when we stopped in the other hall. You were trying to ruin the map so we
wouldn't be able to read it. Why?"
The
diminutive fourthling glared at him defiantly. "I was dusting it."
"Not
with the tip of your dagger, you weren't." Tungdil looked at him intently
and tried to meet his eye. "I wish you'd stop seeing me as the
enemy."
"Don't
flatter yourself," the artisan said coldly. "You're not the enemy.
You're nobody, not even a fourthling. You can say what you like about your
lineage; all I know is you're not one of us. If you want my opinion, you're a
common thief who's trying to steal the throne, and I won't let you get away
with it. I know what King Gandogar said about obeying your orders, but I'll see
to it personally that the rightful heir is crowned."
"Is that why
you didn't want to join the expedition?"
"Maybe—or
maybe I don't like traveling, fighting, and enduring all kinds of
unpleasantness when I'd rather be at home. The journey to Ogre's Death was bad
enough, but now I'm risking my life for a liar."
"This
isn't about being made high king," Tungdil said earnestly. "Frankly,
the whole business is rather a bore."
Goïmgar
looked at him in astonishment. "Then why are you here?"
"All
I care about is forging Keenfire so we can fight Nôd’onn and put a stop to the evil.
Girdlegard is in danger and we dwarves are the only ones who can save her
inhabitants from the magus's deadly scheme. That's what I'm interested in—not
the throne."
"How
do I know you're not lying? In your position, I'd swear blind that my beard was
blue and the mountain was made of cheese. And besides, what if we get to Ogre's
Death first? According to the rules of the contest, you'd have to be king. I
don't see why we're hurrying if you're not interested in the throne."
Tungdil
could tell that the discussion was going nowhere. It would take more than a
single night to convince Goïmgar that he was mistaken about his intentions. The
fourthling didn't trust him one bit.
In
any case, Tungdil didn't like to be reminded about the uncertainty of his ancestry.
All his efforts were focused on playing the part of the long-lost heir, but
deep down he felt lonely and confused. It was only the thought of Lot-Ionan and
Frala that gave him the strength to keep pretending. He would do anything to
lead the company to the fifthling kingdom so that Keenfire could rob Nôd’onn of
his power and his life.
"There's
no point arguing," he said glumly. "You should get some sleep. I'll
keep watch." He wrapped himself in a blanket to ward off the underground
cold. At that moment he heard something. It sounded like a single strike of a
hammer on rock.
Goïmgar
stopped fussing with his bedding and froze. "An ogre," he whispered
tremulously. "Or the ghost of a dwarf who died here when the tunnels were
being built..."
Tungdil
made no reply. It could be anything, he
thought. Reaching for his ax, he listened to the darkness. There was silence.
"It was probably just a stone," he said slowly, relaxing his vigil.
"A bit of stone falling from the ceiling and hitting the floor. It's
nothing to worry about."
"Shouldn't
we wake the twins? I bet they'd know what to do."
"It
was nothing," Tungdil said firmly. "Forget it and go to sleep."
Goïmgar
pulled up his blanket until his beard was completely hidden, then balanced his
shield across his chest. Tungdil heard him draw his sword. At last, the
artisan decided that it was safe to close his eyes.
Tungdil
rose quietly and paced up and down, listening at the mouths of the tunnels for
footsteps or any sound of movement. I wonder what
it could have been...
Silence. The
underground network was at peace.
Even so, his uneasiness remained. There's no reason why other creatures shouldn't have occupied the tunnels. He hoped to goodness that Boïndil's bluster hadn't elicited an unfavorable response.
Tungdil waited until they were back in the wagon before telling
the others what he and Goïmgar had heard. Boïndil was torn between excitement
and pique, thrilled at the thought of possible antagonists, but angry with
Tungdil for letting him sleep. He made a show of sulking and refused to say a
word.
The wagon tore through the tunnels like the wind, accelerating,
slowing, rolling uphill, and swooping back down. Twice they ran out of momentum
and had to push the vehicle to the next downward slope.
For
Bavragor, the interludes were an excuse to belt out a stirring melody,
presumably to lift their spirits while they toiled. To make matters worse, he
switched to a mournful love song and succeeded in antagonizing Boïndil so much
that he could barely contain his rage.
Anyone would think he was baiting him on purpose. In
fact, Tungdil was under the impression that the brawny mason was throwing just
a fraction of his weight behind the wagon in order to make Boïndil take the
strain. He took Bavragor aside and confronted him with his suspicions.
"Of
course I'm doing it on purpose," the mason said without batting an eyelid.
"I want him to suffer every mile of the way."
Tungdil
looked at him reproachfully. "You know that's not fair."
Bavragor just
shrugged.
"Is it
because of your sister?"
The
mason glanced back at the twins. Boëndal was handing his heavily perspiring
and thoroughly exhausted brother some water. "Yes," he said slowly,
taking out his own drinking pouch and removing the bung. There was an instant
smell of brandy. He took a sip and wiped a few stray drops from his jet-black
beard. "Yes," he whispered a second time, staring absently into the
distance. He lowered his head.
"What
happened between your sister and Boïndil?" Tungdil asked gently.
Bavragor
raised his head slowly. His jaw was clenched and a single teardrop leaked from
his patch and rolled down his cheek. He couldn't speak, so he took another
draft.
"Is
it because of her that you're drinking yourself to death?"
He
put the pouch away. "No, I drink to forget how good I used to be," he
said sadly. "Not that it helps, of course. Every corner of Ogre's Death is
filled with my masonry. My sculptures and engravings look down at me and mock
my useless hands." He leaned back against the wall and let his gaze sweep
the room. "Do you know why I came on this mission?" he asked
abruptly. Tungdil shook his head. "To get out of Ogre's Death and never go
back." His hoarse voice was full of drunken earnestness. "I'm tired
of being pitied. I want to be remembered as Bavragor Hammerfist, mason extraordinaire
who sculpted the spurs for Keenfire and gave his life for the dwarves — not as
drunken old Bavragor whose chisel danced over the rock of its own accord."
He smiled wanly. "I promise to do my bit for the dwarves and for
Girdlegard, but I won't return from the fifthling kingdom." He took
another long draft to show that his mind was made up.
Tungdil's
heart went out to the mason. Bavragor wasn't the noisy, occasionally rude but
fundamentally cheerful and resilient character he had taken him for. "We
can't leave you in the fifthling kingdom," he protested, realizing at once
how feeble he sounded. "We'll need your fists in the fight against Nôd’onn."
Bavragor
reached for his arm and squeezed it tightly. "No, Tungdil, you need
warriors like the twins, true fighters whose confidence never falters." He
released his grip. "Don't worry, my hands are steady enough to sculpt the
strongest, most beautiful spurs ever fashioned by a dwarven chisel. I'll tell
you about my sister another time. For now, I'd like a moment with my
pouch."
Tungdil
got up and strolled over to the twins, who were snacking on ham and cheese. Poor Bavragor.
Boëndal
had observed the conversation from a distance, but refrained from asking
questions because he didn't want Boïndil to get wind of the mason's distress.
He offered Tungdil a morsel of goat cheese. "Well, scholar, only two more
orbits and we'll be in the firstling kingdom—assuming we don't have any
problems with the wagon."
"Gandogar
will be there already," Tungdil said gloomily.
"For
all we know, he might have gone the wrong way." Boïndil laughed and wiped
his glistening brow. "I hope his blasted shortcut leads him straight into
a fathomless chasm." Goïmgar glared at him. "You can stare all you
like," Boïndil told him, rising to the silent reproach. "The king of
the dwarves is sitting right here. Your king is a warmonger, a cowardly—"
"That's
enough, Boïndil!" Tungdil interrupted. "I know you'd rather be
fighting than trundling along in a wagon, but you're going to have to keep your
temper under control." He waited until Boïndil had finished growling.
"Right, let's get going. The sooner the first leg of the journey is over,
the better." He stood up and the other four followed him to the wagon. Will they ever stop squabbling?
"I
wonder what it's like in their kingdom," mused Boëndal, preparing to get
the wagon rolling. "The firstlings are supposed to be consummate smiths.
Do you think they'll forge me a weapon to beat my trusty crow's beak?"
"Good
thinking, brother," his brother applauded him. "Not many axes are as
good as mine, but I'll lay them aside if the firstlings can do better."
The wagon crept along the rail. Boëndal waited until they were inches from the downward slope, then jumped in and they thundered into the tunnel.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
Bislipur knelt before the high king.
"I came because you summoned me," he said, rising. "Not because
you can change my mind."
His
obdurate tone left Gundrabur and his counselor in no doubt that the private
meeting in the great hall would come to nothing. They could only hope and pray
that Vraccas would knock some sense into Bislipur's intransigent skull.
Gundrabur motioned for the burly dwarf to be seated.
Bislipur appraised
him intently. He looks weaker. His fingers are shaking and he
can barely lift his arms. Nature is on my side.
"We
should have been straight with each other from the beginning," said Balendilín,
taking his place beside the king. "We're tired of game playing. I know we
don't share the same opinions, but it's no excuse for scheming like
kobolds."
"Our
folks have been offered a unique opportunity, and I'm trying to persuade the
assembly to take it. Is that what you mean by scheming?" Gandogar's
adviser retorted.
"His
Majesty and I have been wondering what could possibly motivate you to agitate
for war," Balendilín said forth-rightly. "It baffles us that you
should wish to lead the children of the Smith against the elves when a battle
of far greater magnitude awaits us."
Bislipur
seemed to find the topic too tedious to be worthy of anger. "Your Majesty,
there's nothing to be gained by talking. Your concerns are as unintelligible
to me as mine to you. I've got better things to do than—"
"Better
things?" Balendilín cut in. "Such as what?"
"Private
cogitation," Bislipur answered dourly. Without waiting for the high king
to dismiss him, he got up and limped to the door.
"You're
going to cogitate, are you?" Gundrabur called after him. "Well, here's
something for you to consider: None of the fourthlings knows anything about
your family."
The
dwarf stopped short, but didn't turn. "What are you insinuating?"
"I'm
not insinuating anything. I thought you should be warned."
The
elderly monarch paused and Balendilín took over. "You questioned Tungdil's
lineage, and you're entitled to do so. But I'm sure you've heard the maxim
about scorched dwarves not playing with fire..."
Bislipur
strode toward him, his huge hands clenched into fists. "And you dare to
accuse me of scheming like a kobold," he
snarled. "What do you want?"
"Nothing—although,
of course, we may find ourselves obliged to share our suspicion that your
ancestry is no clearer than that of the high king's nominated successor,"
the counselor said gravely. "Incidentally, the document accusing the
elves of treachery was a fake."
"You're
lying!" Bislipur struck the marble table with a resounding thwack.
"You
don't look like a child of Goïmdil. No other fourthling comes close to rivaling
your stature. You've never been seen polishing diamonds or fashioning trinkets,
but your reputation as a strong and talented fighter is known even to the orcs.
I learned this from my inquiries," Balendilín told him coldly.
"Anyone with a less charitable mind would be inclined to think you're one
of Lorimbur's dwarves."
"I
have never heard such scandalous bile in all my life! By my beard, if you
weren't a helpless cripple I'd fight you for insulting my honor with your
lies!"
Balendilín
listened in satisfaction. He had no evidence for his allegations, but he seemed
to have touched a nerve. "This is what we propose: First, that you cease
your scheming until one or the other of the companies returns from the
expedition; and second, that you make it known that the elves' involvement in
the fall of the fifthling kingdom can't be proven, since the document was
forged. For our part, we'll say nothing of the doubts surrounding your
lineage."
"The
outcome of the expedition must decide the succession," Gundrabur added.
"Are we agreed?"
Jaw clenched,
Bislipur nodded curtly.
"How
about a beer to seal the truce?" proposed Balendilín.
Bislipur
turned away. "Drink all you like. I have matters to attend to." He
smiled balefully. "You needn't worry: I'll keep my word and say nothing
about the succession. As for the business about the elves, I assume you'll
permit me to convene an assembly so I can explain to the delegates." He
took leave of the high king without bowing. I'll
show you yet, he thought grimly. You're both
mistaken if you think I care about your truce. From now on, I'll be more
discreet about my scheming.
An
attendant appeared at the far end of the corridor. He was carrying a pitcher in
one hand and three tankards in the other.
Perfect timing, thought Bislipur. The high king's refreshments. This is my chance.
He waited until the dwarf was level with him, then stumbled and clutched at
him, knocking him over. Like a shot, Bislipur reached out and caught the
pitcher and two of the tankards, allowing the third to shatter on the marble
flagstones.
"I'm
really sorry," he said apologetically. "My lame leg is a curse on
these slippery floors. Still, I managed to save everything except one of the
tankards."
It
took a moment for the attendant to recover. He got up shakily and looked at the
debris. "Er, actually, the tankard was for you. I'll go and fetch a—"
"Don't
trouble yourself," Bislipur interrupted. "I wasn't thirsty anyway.
You may as well clear up the mess."
The
attendant stooped and gathered the pieces into his apron. "All done,"
he said, straightening up again. "Now, if you pass me the other tankards
and the beer..."
Bislipur
hesitated and gave the pitcher a little shake, watching the layer of white
foam slop back and forth without mingling with the beer. "Light on top
and dark below," he said thoughtfully. He returned the vessels to the
waiter. "Let's hope light will triumph over darkness in Girdlegard as
well. You'd better hurry; the high king is thirsty."
Humming
contentedly, he set off to find the fourthling delegation, while the attendant
continued down the corridor toward the great hall.
Underground Network, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn,
6234th Solar Cycle
The
next downward pitch gave the wagon a burst of speed that sent them careering
through the tunnel. For the first time Tungdil was obliged to pull sharply on
the brake. Any faster, and we'll come flying off
the rail. There was a flurry of sparks and a terrible squealing and
screeching.
"It's
worse than Bavragor's singing," Boïndil objected, shouting above the
noise. Obligingly, the mason burst into song, thereby adding to the din. Boïndil
rolled his eyes despairingly.
The
tunnel opened out and they found themselves inside a natural grotto, shooting
along an enormous bridge hewn from stone. A river raged beneath them, drowning out
the squealing of brakes. Tendrils of spray splashed against the sides of the
wagon; then they were back in the tunnel and racing on.
"Did you see
that?" marveled Tungdil.
"How
could we miss it?" Goïmgar said unhappily. "We could have fallen in
and died."
Tungdil
was bubbling with enthusiasm. "What a spectacular bridge! Our forefathers
must have been incredible masons."
If
Bavragor had been in the driver's seat, he would have turned back to take
another look. "I bet it was sculpted by secondlings," he said
proudly. "We're the only folk who could build a bridge like that." He
paused, waiting for someone to contradict him. "In that case, I propose a
toast..." Suddenly the wagon started to judder and rattle. "Steady
on, Tungdil! You're spilling my drink and we don't want Goïmgar spewing all
over the place."
Tungdil
was less inclined to joke. "There's gravel on the track. I'm worried
we'll—"
They
felt a terrible jolt and the wagon tilted dangerously to the right. Orange
sparks shot to the ceiling.
Before
the dwarves could react, the wagon lurched, turned over, bounced, turned over,
and crashed to a halt. The tunnel ahead was blocked with fallen stone.
Tungdil
was catapulted into the air and had to curl into a ball to preserve his limbs.
He hit the ground with a thud, grazed his face on the rock, and whacked his
helmet against something unyielding. I suppose it
was bound to end this way. He sat up groggily, looking for the others.
The
twins were already on their feet. Like Tungdil, they had scuffed and torn their
breeches, but seemed otherwise unharmed.
Bavragor
picked himself up with a groan, clutching his hip. Only Goïmgar was lying still
beside the battered wagon. His breath was coming in faint gasps.
"Vraccas
have mercy!" Tungdil made his way unsteadily toward the stricken dwarf.
Much to everyone's relief, Boëndal and Boïndil took charge of the examination
and declared the artisan to be intact.
"We'll
have you up in no time," said Bavragor, administering a sip from his
pouch. "I hope you appreciate the sacrifice I'm making."
The
fragile fourthling wasn't much of a brandy drinker and came to with a splutter.
Sitting up sharply, he yelped and clutched his right shoulder. He grimaced in
pain. "It's broken, I know it is!" Boëndal bent down to take a closer
look, but Goïmgar waved him away. "No! You'll only make it worse!"
"Keep
acting like that and I'll make it
worse," Boïndil growled menacingly.
"Come
on, Goïmgar," Tungdil pleaded. "Boëndal and Boïndil are warriors.
They know about injuries."
"Cuts
and bruises, maybe, but not broken bones," said Goïmgar, shrinking away.
Groaning loudly, he struggled to his feet, his right arm dangling limply.
"I've broken my collarbone," he whined. "I can't move my
arm."
"Here,
have a sip of this to ease the pain," said Bavragor, tossing him the
pouch. Goïmgar reached out and caught it with both hands. The others turned on
him accusingly.
"You
lava-livered liar!" barked Boïndil. "Stringing us along, were
you?"
"I
thought it was broken," Goïmgar protested hastily. "But I guess it was,
er... dislocated! What a stroke of luck! I put it into joint when I moved. Did
you hear it click?" He lifted his arm gingerly and feigned discomfort.
"Hmm, it's still quite sore, but I should be able to put up with it."
He returned the pouch to Bavragor. "You can keep your rotgut. It tastes
like poison."
"Next
time I'd advise you to try a bit harder," fumed Boïndil. "Hoodwink us
again, and I'll wallop your backside until it's redder than a forge."
If
only I hadn't chosen him in the first place, Tungdil thought ruefully. I didn't
realize I was hanging a millstone around my neck. He could see now why
the fourthling monarch had let him pick Goïmgar: The artisan was a pest.
From now on I won't believe a single word he says.
Tungdil
decided to focus on their immediate plight: The tunnel leading west to the
firstlings was completely blocked by an avalanche of rock, and the ingots and
gems for Keenfire were scattered across the floor. He beckoned to Bavragor.
"When do you think the roof collapsed?"
The
one-eyed mason inspected the rockfall, clambered all over it, and ran his
fingers over the fractured stone. At length he returned. "Quite recently.
There's a fair bit of dust about, but it must have come down with the ceiling.
See how shiny these edges are?" He patted the warped chassis of the wagon.
"We were lucky the wagon derailed itself when it did. If we'd hit this lot
at full tilt..."
"Do you
think it was sabotage?"
Bavragor
rubbed the dust from his one good eye. "I can't say for sure, but it
wouldn't surprise me." He stroked the wall lovingly. "It seems
strange that the tunnel would collapse of its own accord after all these
cycles."
"It
was probably your singing that did it," Goïmgar said witheringly.
"Your singing and the idiot's lunatic yells."
"You're
the one who keeps whining. If I were the mountain, I'd cave in on myself rather
than listen to your voice," the mason retorted.
"You're
both wrong," said Boïndil, not wanting to be outdone. "The tunnel
split its sides laughing because of Goïmgar's size."
The artisan
opened his mouth to protest, but Tungdil ordered them to pile up the ingots and
cover the treasure with rocks. "We're going up to the surface," he
decided. "The next hatch isn't far from here. We'll leave the underground
network, find a settlement, and buy a pony." He unfurled the map. "We
can reenter the tunnel here. It's only eighty miles overland."
"That's
all very well, but what are we going to do without a wagon?" asked Boëndal.
"If
we don't find a wagon when we get to the tunnel, we'll buy a couple of extra
ponies and ride the last two hundred miles." Tungdil rolled up the map and
helped the others to stack the heavy ingots. He put the wood in his pack.
He sneaked a sideways
glance at his four companions. All this squabbling is bad for the
mission. I need to make them work together or I won't have a company to lead at
all. Help me, Vraccas.
They
bowed their heads and delivered a quick vote of thanks to their creator for
saving their lives, then marched back through the tunnel. At last they came to
a narrow flight of steps that zigzagged steeply to the surface.
Bavragor
led the way, but Goïmgar refused to follow. "Where are we?" he
demanded suspiciously.
"According
to the map, we'll be entering Oremaira," said Tungdil. "It used to be
ruled by Maira the Life-Preserver, but there's no telling what's happened since
Nôd’onn took charge."
"Not
another enchanted realm," moaned Boïndil. He laid his hands on the hafts
of his axes. "Still, it might be a chance to slay a few runts. I just hope
the magus doesn't plague us with any of his tricks."
The rest of the company nodded in mute agreement.
After a long and arduous ascent the
five dwarves reached a door inscribed with runes. Weapons at the ready, they
prepared themselves for the outside world.
The
stairway led out into a cave some four paces high and seven paces wide. The
noise of a waterfall roared in their ears. Water was streaming past the mouth
of the cavern and tumbling down the mountainside, sending showers of spray that
spattered their dusty mail, helms, and cloaks. Faint rays of sunshine sloped
through the watery curtain, forming pools of light on the dank rock floor.
"Bloody
typical," shouted Boïndil, straining to drown out the noise. "I'll
wash when I'm good and ready, not because of some blasted waterfall."
His brother
laughed. "And when might that be?"
They
found a narrow path that led past the waterfall toward a rocky plateau. With a bit of luck, we'll be able to see for miles,
thought Tungdil.
"Come
on," he chivvied the others, "let's see where we are."
One
by one they edged past the cascading water, treading carefully because of the
slippery stone. None of them escaped without a good soaking and Goïmgar was
nearly knocked off his feet.
It
was around about noon when they emerged into the autumn sunshine. A rainbow was
shimmering in the waterfall and the air smelled fresh and moist. They reached
the edge of the plateau and peered down at the fifty-pace drop. The firs,
pines, and spruces formed a dark green mass of bristling spears. Judging by the
gathering clouds, they were about to be rained on.
To
the west, a vast lake shimmered on the horizon, but in the north they could see
a collection of houses ringed by a wall. The settlement lay on the other side
of the forest, and beyond that were fields.
Tungdil
was heartened by its proximity. It shouldn't take
more than an orbit to get there. "Vraccas has been merciful,"
he told the others. "We'll have our pony in no time."
"A
town full of long-uns," Goïmgar said glumly. "What if they don't like
us?"
"Stop
whining! We don't need the hillside caving in on us as well," snapped Boïndil.
"I don't know why you're worried about long-uns. They might be tall, but
I'm strong."
"Let
me do the talking," said Tungdil, alarmed. "I've dealt with humans
all my life."
The
others saw no reason to argue, so they set off to find a way down from the
plateau, taking a narrow path that led through the forest below.
There
wasn't much light beneath the canopy of conifers. The mist, fine and wispy in
the upper branches, thickened toward the ground, forming a dense milky layer
around the dwarves' waists. Their eyes needed time to adjust to the sunlight
and they were grateful for the gloom.
"Maira
turned these woods into a sanctuary for unicorns," Tungdil told them. He
felt a rush of excitement at seeing the forest that he had read so much about.
"If we're lucky, we'll see one."
Boïndil
looked at him blankly. "What's the good of that? We can't ride them, can
we?"
"No,
but they're beautiful creatures and they're rare. The älfar hunted them almost
to extinction."
"Quiet,
isn't it?" said Bavragor. "You'd think no one else lived here. Maybe
I should sing something. The unicorns might show themselves if they know we're
here."
"Unicorns
are timid animals. Singing—"
"Isn't caterwauling the word you're looking for?" Boëndal
chimed in softly.
"Either
way, making a noise won't help. Legend has it that they only approach young
virgins," explained Tungdil.
"Young
virgins, eh?" said Bavragor. "That's me out, then. I don't suppose
any of you...?" He look slyly at Tungdil, who tried desperately not to
blush.
Just
then Boïndil stumbled into something and came to a halt in the fog.
"What
do we have here?" he said in surprise, feeling his way through the mist
with one of his axes. The blade met something soft and came up tinged with
blood. "Here, give me that," he said, grabbing Goïmgar's shield and
waving it back and forth until the bloodied body appeared through the mist.
"It's
a horse," exclaimed Bavragor, staring at the white-coated mount. "At
least...Hang on a minute, it's not a unicorn, is it?"
Tungdil
knelt beside the dead animal. Its throat hung in shreds, chunks were missing
from its flesh, and its beautiful horn had been wrenched from its skull.
"It was a unicorn," he said sadly, stroking the
animal's white flank. Lot-Ionan's books described the unicorns as pure
creatures, incapable of malice or evil, but their gentle nature had done
nothing to save them from their fate. "Nôd’onn's hordes must have got here
first."
"Do
you think they're still around?" Boïndil asked hopefully. "They
might be lurking in the bushes."
Goïmgar
retreated hastily, only to fall over backward in the mist.
For a
moment he was lost; then he reappeared, shrieking. His hands were stained with
blood. "There's another one," he shouted, sheltering behind the
others. "I need my shield! Give it back to me this instant!"
Boïndil
strode off and fanned away the mist where Goïmgar had fallen. A light wind
gusted through the milky swathes and helped to clear their view.
They
stared in silence at the gruesome sight. Strewn across the ground were twelve
dead unicorns and three times as many orcs. The fabled mounts had been brought
down by arrows and slashed to pieces, but not before they had gored their
attackers with their fearsome horns and hooves.
As
the mist continued to clear, the outlines of a corral made of tree trunks
loomed into view. The unicorns had been rounded up and slaughtered.
"They
hunted them down," Bavragor said, aghast. "Aren't unicorns almost
extinct?" he asked Tungdil.
"There
used to be just over a dozen of them," Tungdil answered shakily. Even in
death, the unicorns looked dignified, peaceful, and pure; they must have been
exceptionally beautiful before their mauling by the vilest of beasts.
"There can't be more than a couple of them left."
"Girdlegard
is in a bad way," Boëndal said sadly. "It's time we got a move on and
bought a pony. Nothing except Keenfire can stop Nôd’onn from taking innocent
lives." Setting aside their sorrow, they scrambled over the stockade and
set off through the forest.
How many more deaths? The sight of the murdered unicorns
reminded Tungdil of how much he wished Lot-Ionan, Frala, and her daughters were
still alive.
Boïndil
was still brandishing his axes, hoping to encounter an orcish war band and work
off his pent-up rage. Suddenly a strange look came over him and he smiled. His
brother reached silently for his crow's beak.
"Smell
that?" Ireheart whispered excitedly. "Oink, oink!"
The
next moment, the rancid odor of fat-smeared armor reached Tungdil's nostrils
too. It smelled doubly repugnant among the fresh moss, damp earth, and fragrant
pines. "We can't stop now, Boïndil. We're going straight to the
settlement."
"Not
until I've split their ugly skulls," Boïndil growled defiantly. His fiery
spirit had been trapped for so long that his inner furnace had overheated,
driving him to open mutiny. "Come out, you runts! Come here and be
slaughtered!" He threw back his head and let out a long, drawn-out grunt.
His
call was answered by grunting and snarling amid the dense trees.
Goïmgar
shrank back, disappearing behind his shield. "Shut up, you lunatic!"
he hissed fearfully. "They're..."
The
clunking and jangling of armor was getting closer all the time. Eyes closed,
Ireheart listened in rapt concentration. "They've climbed the
stockade," he told them. "There must be"—he listened
intently—"oh, twenty of them at least!" He swung his axes
impatiently. "They've found us. They're picking up speed!"
His
eyes flew open and he was off, grunting and oinking as he ran. With an
apologetic glance at the others, Boëndal chased after him. There was a short
pause, then the sound of steel impacting steel. The woods echoed with the din.
It was all too much
for Tungdil. If he's not careful, his inner furnace will melt his
mind.
"Well,"
Bavragor asked quizzically, "aren't we going to help them?" He raised
his war hammer.
"I
should think not!" snapped Goïmgar. "It's their fault for starting
it. Let them finish it themselves."
"No,
we'll fight together," ruled Tungdil. "And after that, we're heading
for the settlement as fast as we can."
They
hurried off. Charging ahead, Bavragor hurled himself on the nearest orc with a
bloodcurdling howl. The beasts were too busy surrounding the twins to spot the
new arrivals and were taken off guard. Their response was predictably poor.
Moments
later, two dozen orcish corpses littered the forest floor—no thanks to Goïmgar,
who had avoided all contact with the enemy by hiding behind the mason's back.
Ireheart
was responsible for most of the carnage, but Boëndal and Bavragor had fought
with such ferocity that Tungdil had barely had a chance to land a blow.
"Serves
them right, the stupid runts," laughed Boïndil, mopping his sweaty brow.
"They won't be killing any more unicorns now!" He kicked out at one
of the corpses. "That's for Tion," he told the dead orc. "Be
sure to give it to him with my regards."
"Shush,"
Goïmgar hushed him. "Did you hear that? There's more!" He raised his
shield and sneaked fearful glances over the top.
Boïndil
nudged his brother boisterously. "Look, a two-legged shield!" He
turned in the direction of their new adversaries and grinned. "This is my
lucky orbit!" Listening attentively, he tried to calculate the number of
approaching orcs. "One, two, three..." His voice became more measured
and less exuberant. "... four, five." His carefree expression was
gone. "One, two, three..." His eyes widened and he squared his
shoulders defiantly. "This is a challenge worthy of a dwarf."
By now they could
hear the clunking of armor.
"Exactly
how many are there?" Tungdil demanded. He had a bad feeling about Boïndil's
idea of a challenge.
"Five
plus two," Ireheart said laconically. "Most of them are advancing
head-on, but a smaller party is closing in from the right."
"Only
seven?" Goïmgar breathed a sigh of relief and emerged a little from behind
his shield.
"Five
dozen infantry, plus two on horseback," Boëndal explained.
Tungdil
grabbed Ireheart by the shoulders. "That's not a challenge; it's lunacy.
We need to get ourselves safely behind those walls." Goïmgar didn't hang
around for the discussion; he fled toward the town.
Ireheart refused
to budge.
"This
time you'll do as I say," Tungdil ordered him. "You've had your fun.
You need to put our mission first."
The
warrior fidgeted moodily. "All right, all right. Those runts don't know
how lucky they are — but they'd better not catch up with us, or I'll show them
what for!" He turned on Bavragor. "As for you, keep your confounded
hammer away from my orcs. If I wanted your help, I'd ask for it."
"My
help?" scoffed the mason. "I was helping your brother, not you.
Nothing would give me greater pleasure than seeing you sliced down the middle
by an orcish sword!"
"Not
now," Tungdil scolded them, setting off at a jog.
They
raced through the forest, crashing through branches, snapping twigs, and doing
everything they could to throw off their pursuers. There was no sign of Goïmgar,
who had disappeared ahead.
From
the sound of the bugles, it was obvious that the orcs were fanning out to hunt
them down, but the dwarves' smaller stature worked to their advantage, allowing
them to slip through the undergrowth while the beasts blundered and stumbled
behind them.
Soon they
reached the fringes of the forest where the trees grew farther apart.
Panting and wheezing, Tungdil
risked a glance over his shoulder and realized that the dark silhouettes of
their pursuers looked bigger than before. It's
going to be close, he thought.
Once out of the forest, they
settled into a steady trot. Salvation lay half a mile away in the shape of the
settlement's walls: Goïmgar was almost halfway there already.
What in the name of...Tungdil blinked, not trusting
his eyes. The dark forest seemed to be keeping pace with them, advancing on
either side. Then he heard the jangle of chain mail and the clatter of armor
and realized the truth: We're in the middle of a
raid.
A division of orcs left the
shelter of the trees. There were a thousand of them or more, all advancing
toward the settlement in a living line of weaponry. The line became a circle
as orcs closed in from every direction. The town was surrounded—and so were the
dwarves.
"Run!"
Tungdil urged the others. "Run for your lives!"
Enchanted Realm of Oremaira, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn,
6234th Solar Cycle
Goïmgar reached the protective walls of
the settlement and hammered on the locked gates. Faces peered down at him from
the battlements. "Let me in!" he shrieked. "In the name of
Vraccas the Eternal Smith, save me from these beasts!"
"You'd
think he'd put in a good word for the rest of us," snorted Bavragor, as he
and the others struggled to catch up.
A
panel opened in the gates and Goïmgar pushed his way through. The door slammed
behind him. It remained closed, even when his companions arrived.
"Hey! What
about us?" Bavragor bellowed.
Not again, cursed Tungdil. Surely he won't
abandon us out here?
The
orcs were dangerously close. Arrows whined toward them and landed just short.
Raising
his axes, Boïndil turned to face the oncoming hordes. "Looks like I'll
get my battle after all," he said, bringing the polls of his axes together
in a loud, ringing beat. "Oink, oink!"
"Open
the door!" shouted Tungdil. "We're dwarves! Dwarves like the other
fellow. We're on the same side!"
There was no
response.
The
first beasts were already upon them. Ireheart dealt with them swiftly and
bloodily, but their agonized howls brought orcish reinforcements to the scene.
The
twins got down to business, fighting so savagely that the floor was awash with
green blood. None of the orcs came within striking distance of Bavragor and
Tungdil, who were standing at the back. After a while, Ireheart took an arrow
to the leg, but he stood his ground, laughing manically and sending orcs to
their deaths.
At
least a dozen of the beasts had been massacred before the door finally opened
to let them in.
Ireheart,
still intent on slaying his opponents, had to be dragged inside. Boëndal talked
to him in a low, soothing voice until the crazed glimmer left his eyes.
Bavragor
gave Tungdil a satisfied look. "What did I tell you? He's a nutcase! A
dangerous, unpredictable lunatic."
Tungdil made no
reply.
Their
reception committee was made up of thirty heavily armed and armored men. The
soldiers eyed them suspiciously, not sure what to make of the dwarves. Goïmgar
was waiting by the door, his face a deathly shade of pale.
The
captain stepped forward. "Who are you and what do you want?" he asked
gruffly.
Tungdil
introduced them by name. "We're dwarves on a mission to track and kill
orcs," he explained. "It's our Vraccas-given duty. We heard
Girdlegard was in terrible danger, and we're trying to help the humans as best
we can."
"Killing
orcs is our specialty, as you probably noticed," added Ireheart. "I
wanted to stay and flay the beasts alive, but the others were worried about
being outnumbered."
Boëndal
knelt down to inspect the damage to his brother's leg. The arrow had passed
through the flesh without hitting the bone, so he snapped off the arrowhead and
extracted the shaft from the opposite side. His brother endured his ministrations
uncomplainingly, wincing only slightly when an herbal dressing and bandage were
applied.
The
captain was impressed by his stoicism. "In that case, Mifurdania welcomes
you," he said. "The present moment augers well for orc hunters, but
less favorably for our town. You'll have plenty to do here. Report to me when
you're ready to join our ranks."
He
hurried away. Ten of his soldiers stayed behind to barricade the door, placing
a steel panel across the gates and securing it with sturdy bolts. There was a
clattering and banging as the orcs laid siege to the gates, but after a time
they retreated, defeated by the steel.
"That
was close," Bavragor said to one of the guards. "Why didn't you open
up earlier?"
The
man glanced at the pale-faced Goïmgar, who was cowering in a corner. "He
said to bolt it behind him," he told them. "You'd better ask
him."
With
that, the soldier turned away and returned to his comrades who were
reinforcing the steel cladding with all available means. The gates were
required to withstand the impact of a battering ram, hence the need for
supporting struts and bars.
"That's
not what I s-said," stammered Goïmgar. "I told him to bolt it after you." Bavragor took a menacing step toward
him, and the artisan sidled out of the gate tower, ready to flee through
Mifurdania's streets.
"You've
been nothing but trouble since we set out," the mason accused him, waving
his mighty fists in Goïmgar's face. "I'll beat you to a pulp, you
miserable liar."
"And
I'll shave off your shimmering whiskers with my axes," added Boïndil.
That
did it. Picturing himself bruised and beardless, Goïmgar fled, vanishing into
the bustling town.
"Stop!"
Tungdil shouted after him, but the artisan didn't look back. I should have known
this would happen. Tungdil fixed Bavragor and Boïndil with a stony
glare. "Congratulations," he said with heavy sarcasm. "How
extraordinarily helpful of you both! We're on an urgent mission and thanks to
your childish taunting, a vital member of our company has taken to his heels.
Perhaps a nice game of hide-and-seek will take our minds off the fact that we're surrounded by orcs.'" This time Tungdil
didn't bother to conceal his rage; he wanted them to know how furious he was.
Bavragor and Boïndil
stared sheepishly at the floor.
"He nearly
got us killed," ventured Bavragor.
"Says
who?" snapped Tungdil. "You didn't let him finish. You had only the
guard's word for what happened and you threatened to beat him up."
"Why
else would he take off like that?" protested Boïndil. "If that's not
the sign of a guilty conscience, I don't know what is!"
"Unbelievable:
The one time you're in agreement, and it has to be this. Once we've tracked
down Goïmgar, we'll get to the bottom of the matter—by discussing it calmly.''' He scanned the streets and spotted a
tavern. "I want the two of you"—he nodded at Bavragor and Boïndil—"to
take yourselves over there and wait at a table for Boëndal and me to return.
Don't get into any arguments—and remember what I told you about dealing with
humans."
Bavragor
scratched his beard. "But where are you going?"
"To
find Goïmgar, of course! Do you think he'd show himself in front of you? You
scared the living daylights out of him." Tungdil hurried off, signaling to
Boëndal to follow.
Bavragor
and Boïndil did as instructed and found themselves a table in the tavern. They
ordered a hot meal to fill their bellies and a tankard of beer to while away
the time.
The
other drinkers stared in open amazement at the two dwarves whose mail was
covered in orcs' blood. Stone-faced, the pair returned their glances and
focused grimly on their meal.
At
last Boïndil emptied his tankard and took the first step toward ending their
feud. "Listen, about what happened between me and—"
Bavragor
held up a hand to silence him. "I don't want to hear it," he said,
spurning the attempt at a truce. "I wish she'd never had anything to do
with you. I told her so from the beginning, but she was too stubborn to listen.
Don't expect me to forgive you, because I won't; I want you to be tortured by
your conscience for the rest of your life." He poured the contents of his
tankard down his gullet and burped. "After what you did, I don't even want
to share a table with you."
He
got up and strode to the door. "Tell Tungdil that I've gone to buy a
pony."
Boïndil watched him go and bit his lip. The publican brought him another tankard of beer.
Meanwhile, Boëndal and Tungdil had
split up and were scouring the streets of Mifurdania in search of Goïmgar.
Tungdil had made straight for the battlements and was reeling from his first bird's-eye
view of the town.
The
sheer number of houses was incredible. Mifurdania consisted of nothing but
roofs, the solid expanse of thatching and tiles interrupted only by
marketplaces or temples. A dwarf on the run from a beating and an unwanted
shave would find no shortage of places to hide.
Tungdil
permitted himself a final sigh, then put his mind to finding Goïmgar. Before he
made his way down into the jumble of houses and streets, he crossed over to the
other side of the battlements and looked out at the forest. For the time being,
the orcs had retreated and were setting up camp among the trees. There could be
no further doubt that Mifurdania was under siege.
We're trapped, he thought glumly.
Tungdil
started down the street that the fourthling had taken. At first he called out Goïmgar's
name, but after a while he fell silent, discouraged by the townspeople's
stares.
It
seemed to him that Goïmgar's disappearance was the predictable outcome of the
quarreling among the group. Please, Vraccas, help me
find him. He peered down every alleyway and searched every courtyard,
but the missing fourthling was nowhere to be found.
At
length he came to a marketplace where a man in bright garments was standing on
a platform, ringing a bell and shouting at the top of his voice.
"Roll
up, Mifurdanians, roll up for Theater Curiosum and learn the truth about Nudin
the Knowledge-Lusty. Witness the grisly circumstances leading to his
reincarnation as Nôd’onn the Doublefold and resulting in Girdlegard's
demise," he called stirringly. "Marvel at our celebrated actor, the
fabulous Rodario; be transported by Furgas, the best prop master in Girdlegard;
allow yourselves to be spirited away to a world where the sun always
shines!"
The
man took a sip from his hip flask, seized his torch, and sent a tongue of fire
crackling over the townspeople's heads.
"Mifurdanians,
for one orbit only this rare entertainment can be viewed in our magnificent
theater for the bargain price of three small coins. Don't delay a moment
longer—we won't be performing tomorrow if the orcs have their way!" There
was scattered laughter from the crowd as he mimed his own beheading. "What
are you waiting for, Mifurdanians? Roll up and join the queue!" He
motioned to the building behind him. "The players are ready and the
spectacle awaits! Leave your worries at the door!"
The
townspeople were already streaming through the double doors, glad of the
chance to forget their woes.
Tungdil
clambered onto the platform. "Excuse me," he asked the man,
"have you seen a fellow who looks a bit like me?"
"Like
you?" The man grinned. "You're not exactly the ordinary type."
He made a show of rolling his eyes and squinting; then his features fell back
into place. "Hang on a minute; he wouldn't be a bit scrawnier, would he?
Scrawnier, but with a bushier beard?" Tungdil nodded. "In that case,
he's in the Curiosum already." Tungdil leaped down from the platform and
joined the back of the queue.
He
paid for a seat in one of the boxes in order to get a better view. It seemed a
strange time for Goïmgar to be cultivating a passion for the arts. Maybe he thinks Bavragor and Boïndil won't find him if he
hides among the crowd.
The
auditorium was shaped like a circle with a raised platform at the center,
allowing the stage to be seen from every side.
Tungdil
noticed that the building was made entirely of wood. The stalls and galleries
groaned with the weight of the audience, but the theater bore the strain
valiantly.
Perfume
and perspiration battled for mastery of Tungdil's nose. He caught a whiff of
petroleum from the lamps in the rafters, the lone source of light in the
windowless room. The noise of the chattering spectators made him think of a
gaggle of geese.
Tungdil
found his seat in a narrow booth with flimsy walls. The hard wooden bench was
so low that he had to perch on the backrest and place his feet on the cushions
in order to see the stage. Come on, Goïmgar, where
are you? he thought impatiently.
His
brown eyes searched the audience without discovering the familiar features of
the dwarf.
He must be somewhere, he thought. He could only
hope that Goïmgar was seated on the other side of the theater, hidden from view
by the crimson curtains that were draped around the stage. He waited patiently
for the performance to begin.
Suddenly
the lights went out and the voices dropped to a whisper. A tense silence
descended on the room.
The
first soft notes sounded from the orchestra, inviting the spectators to enter
the actors' world. The musicians, seated in a separate gallery, continued the
melody, while a winch squealed into action and the curtain went up on the
stage. Tungdil found himself looking at a grassy plateau.
The
scenery was so convincing that he almost had to pinch himself. He could
practically feel the wind and smell the soil.
Overhead,
daylight flooded into the theater as prop hands unveiled the windows in the
roof. The glass panels were arranged in such a way that only the stage was
illuminated, leaving the wings and the rest of the auditorium shrouded in
gloom.
It
didn't matter to Tungdil that the spectators were seated in the shadows: His
eyes were accustomed to seeing in the dark. At last he could survey the whole
auditorium and continue his hunt for the missing dwarf.
He
barely noticed that the performance was underway, having more important things
to think about than humans in fancy dress. He scanned the audience attentively,
but could see no sign of Goïmgar.
I may as well keep looking outside. He stood up
with the intention of leaving and was amazed to see a beige-clad figure on the
stage. He froze.
Surely it can't be...Resting on a rock, delivering
a monologue, was an elderly man with a white beard.
Lot-Ionan! The fair-haired woman clad in armor, hand resting
encouragingly on his shoulder, looked exactly like Andôkai. Tungdil listened to
see whether the voices were as he remembered them.
In no
time the purpose of his visit was forgotten and he was focused on the plot. The
actors were so convincing that he felt as if the real Lot-Ionan and Andôkai
were before him, even though he knew that the magus was dead and the mistress
of Brandôkai had left Girdlegard forever.
"Come,
Lot-Ionan," said Andôkai, "the time for forbearance is over."
Entr'acte
We
must fight the Perished Land!"
Lot-Ionan
sighed. "We can halt its advance, but that is all." He ran a hand
over the lush grass. Barely half a mile away the meadows gave way to a bleak
expanse of withered vegetation and gray earth: No living plant could survive
within the Perished Land. "It is not in our power to defeat it."
Andôkai
chose not to reply, turning instead to ascend the slope where the other magi
were waiting. Lot-Ionan followed, leaning heavily on his staff. At last the six
members of the council were assembled on the grassy knoll, looking down on
their foes.
A few
paces away, the promontory fell away in a sheer cliff. The wind gusted toward
them, whipping at their clothing and carrying the foul cries of the invaders to
their ears.
Held
back by the magic girdle, the beasts were pushing, shoving, snarling, and
jostling in their eagerness to breach the unseen barrier and invade the lands
beyond.
Seen
from above, their massed ranks were a rippling sea of darkness. Orcs toting all
kinds of lethal weaponry mingled with hideous trolls, ogres, and other vile
beasts, forming a ragged and disorganized force. All had left their homeland
north of Girdlegard and swarmed over the Stone Gateway like a plague of
locusts, laying waste to towns and villages in an orgy of destruction.
The
rulers of men had sent an army to stop them, but the beasts had cut them down.
Now only the magi could check the invasion and hold back the Perished Land.
"Let
them come to us," said Andôkai. "Stay your magic until they're in
reach of the village, then attack."
Maira
looked at the buildings below. Nestled at the foot of the mountain, the little
wooden huts seemed to be clinging to the hillside for support. "They must
be terrified," she said softly, her voice full of compassion. "How
desperate they must feel."
"Utterly
desperate," agreed Turgur, whose splendid robes were more suited to a
banquet than a war. "Which means, of course, they'll be doubly grateful
when we come to their rescue."
Nudin
the Knowledge-Lusty was too busy scanning the enemy ranks to respond. It was
exciting to see so many new and unfamiliar creatures, and he was looking
forward to learning more about their kind. I'll
spare a few of them and question them later, but I won't tell the others.
They'll only accuse me of being too lenient with the beasts.
Maira
seemed to read his mind. "Every last beast must die, Nudin. We can't let
the Perished Land encroach any farther."
Nudin
nodded, already focused on the battle ahead. Everything hinged on the magi
intervening at the critical time. Without his efforts, they would never have
discovered the flaw in the girdle: He had used the malachite table to pin point
the problem and identify a place where they could wait for the beasts and take
them unawares.
Just
then a loud crackling filled the air. The Perished Land was launching an attack
on the girdle and at length it gave way. Snarling and shouting, Tion's minions
charged toward the village, the ogres and trolls outpacing the orcs and the
diminutive bögnilim squawking in frustration at the rear.
At
once Andôkai summoned a storm, and the sky darkened above the promontory,
bright lightning flickering between the roiling clouds. The first volley of
bolts shot toward the charging hordes.
That
was the signal for the others to join in. Together they unleashed their magic
against the forces of the Perished Land.
Orbs
of fire soared through the air, wreaking havoc among the troops. The earth gave
birth to strange creatures of rock and dust who hurled themselves on the orcs,
while the ground opened up, swallowing ogres and trolls.
The
assault on the village faltered, then failed. The first to retreat were the
short-legged bögnilim, who sought shelter in the Perished Land, little
realizing that the destruction of the girdle had laid them open to attack. The
magi's missiles scorched through the ranks of the fleeing creatures, setting
them ablaze.
Every
effort was made to destroy the beasts entirely, so that nothing could be
salvaged by the Perished Land's dark power. Corpses were consumed by tongues of
fire, cremated by lightning, turned to dust, or dashed to pieces against the
ground.
Andôkai
whipped up a fearsome gust that tore into the last dogged attackers, sweeping
them back into the Perished Land. Meanwhile, the other magi were preparing to
restore the girdle and make it stronger than before.
With
a sweep of his robed arm, Lot-Ionan summoned the waiting apprentices, who
hurried over with the malachite table. The six magi joined together for the
complex ritual, channeling their energies and harnessing the magic to restore
the barrier, thus securing Girdlegard against future attacks. At last it was
safe for the villagers to leave their houses and thank their deliverers with
waves and cheers.
As
for the magi, their relief was tempered by the knowledge that the northern
pestilence had spread. The Perished Land had extended south, claiming every
inch of territory trodden by Tion's beasts and advancing as far as the gates of
the village, where the new girdle was in place.
Turgur
waved back at the devoted crowds. "We should let them thank us in
person," he said. "The simple souls would be delighted to have us in
their midst."
Nudin
managed a weary smile. "Do the simple souls need Turgur or does Turgur
need the simple souls? Be careful about casting yourself into their adoring
arms, fair-faced magus. It's an awfully long way down." The others
chuckled gently.
"I
vote we retire to our tents, recover our strength, and enjoy a glass of
wine," proposed Maira.
"Someone
needs to tell the villagers to leave their homes without delay. Next time the
Perished Land attacks, they might not be so lucky," said Nudin. "I'll
take care of it while the rest of you relax."
Andôkai gave him
a hard look, but said nothing.
A
narrow path led down from the promontory to the settlement below. On nearing
the village, Nudin was showered with gifts of bread, fruit, and wine as the
villagers offered him simple tokens of gratitude.
Nudin
acknowledged their generosity by stopping and accepting a sip of wine. He lost
no time in warning them of the continued threat. "I'll send some men to
help you with the move," he promised. "We'll find a safer place for
you to make your homes."
He
helped himself to an apple, then made his way back, skirting the edge of the
battlefield without venturing into the Perished Land.
Here
and there the ground was still smoldering, the energies unleashed by the magi
vaporizing the soil and turning grains of sand to glass. The earth was pocked
with craters and furrows and everywhere reeked of death.
The
shallow sound of breathing brought him to a sudden halt. He listened, heart
pounding, trying to locate the wounded beast. The death rattle sounded again
and this time he was able to trace its source.
Gingerly,
he stepped over the corpses and poked about in the jumble of body parts until
his staff uncovered the injured beast. Lying beneath the vast torso of a troll
was a bögnil, unable to free itself from the colossal weight. It looked rather
like a stunted ore.
"Don't
be afraid," Nudin reassured it in the language of Tion's beasts. "I'm
not going to hurt you."
The bögnil
stuck out its tongue and fumbled for its sword.
"I'll
make a deal with you," said the magus. "I'll get you out of your
predicament, but only if you answer my questions. I want to know about your
species: where you come from, what kind of society you live in, and how you
employ your time when you're not invading Girdlegard." He produced a roll
of parchment and an inkpot from his satchel. "Remember: I have the power
to ensure that you speak nothing but the truth." The creature stared back
at him with soulless eyes and blinked in confusion. It didn't know what to make
of the crazy stranger who was proposing something more complicated than rescue
or death. It still hadn't responded when a long black arrow bored through its
throat and pinned it to the troll.
"Andôkai?"
Nudin wheeled round and blanched. Even a confrontation with the tempestuous
maga would be preferable to this. He watched in horror as four älfar slipped
through the magic girdle, effortlessly breaching the unseen barrier. The lead älf
set another arrow to his string and leveled the bow at Nudin.
Just you try it! Nudin's hastily conjured charm
stopped the quivering arrow in midflight and sent it speeding back toward the
archer. A look of panic crossed the creature's dark eyes in the instant before
he died.
Nudin
raised his left hand and killed two of the älfar with searing bolts of light.
He restricted himself to stunning the fourth älf with the intention of
interrogating him.
Stooping
down, he examined their faces. Their elegant features reminded him of their
cousins, the elves of Âlandur and the Golden Plains, whom Turgur admired for
their flawless beauty. His gaze settled on the amulets fastened around their
necks.
Protective
charms, he
muttered in astonishment, taking one of the crystals in his hands. The mystery
of how the älfar had crossed the girdle was solved. The Perished
Land has found a way of sending its most lethal emissaries through the magic
barrier. I must tell the council of this.
He
disarmed the stunned älf with a curse, then roused him from his faint. The
creature's eyes opened, revealing fathomless pits. In the bright sunlight,
Nudin could see that he possessed neither pupils nor irises. The magus held up
the amulet. "Who gave you this?"
The älf returned
his stare.
Nudin
invoked a truth spell to coax out his secrets, but the creature spoke in an
unintelligible tongue. Like elvish, the language was melodious and elegant, but
with a sinister, darker tone.
The
learned magus was none the wiser. He stood up, took a few steps back, and
incinerated the creature in a towering blaze. Its three companions and the bögnil
met a similar fate.
"It
won't be long before the Perished Land renews its attack," he muttered
fretfully.
Still, he thought to
himself, there's no need to spoil the celebrations. The news of
the amulets can wait until breakfast. After exhorting the sentries to be doubly vigilant,
he retired to his tent.
* * *
That night Nudin was visited by the strangest of dreams.
Fog
settled around his tent, pushing through the canvas and swirling around his bed.
Tiny streaks of black, silver, and red rippled through the gloomy mist as it
snaked through the bedposts, encircled the mattress, and contracted warily
around the sleeping man. At last it was so close that Nudin appeared to be
hovering on the glimmering cloud.
A
wisp of vapor, long and spindly as a finger, slid toward him and touched his
hand. The magus awoke at the soft, velvety touch.
"Don't
be afraid," a voice whispered. "I'm not going to hurt you."
Nudin
sat up slowly and examined the flickering mist. "Afraid? My name is Nudin
the Knowledge-Lusty, not Nudin the Timorous," he informed it calmly.
"Who are you?"
"The
soul of the Perished Land," came the whispered reply. "It is time for
you to make your choice."
"What
choice? The Perished Land kills its enemies. Is that what you mean by
choice?"
The
mist rose a few inches and wrapped itself around Nudin's feet, stealing slowly
along his legs. It felt warm and soft. "You can choose to rescue
Girdlegard—or join the other magi in hastening its doom. That is your
choice."
"The
magi are committed to rescuing Girdlegard. You are its doom," the magus
said firmly.
"My
power can protect these lands and the races that inhabit them—men, elves, and
dwarves," the mist replied. "I want to secure Girdlegard against the
coming threat, but your magic won't let me." The mist arranged itself into
a human face, opening and closing its mouth in time with the voice. "The
tide of evil will soon be upon us, streaming through the Stone Gateway or
surging over the western ranges to swamp Girdlegard and wash me away. The belt
of mountains will stay standing, but everything within them will be
destroyed."
"Why
should I believe you? What kind of soul nourishes itself on the souls of the
dead?"
"The
greatest of souls," the voice purred. "I do not feed on them; I
gather them to me for their protection. When the threat has passed, I shall
release them to their gods. For now, while Girdlegard is in danger, I need
their power."
"Be
gone," Nudin commanded. "I have heard enough of your lies."
The
mist began to dissolve away. "Listen to my proposal," it whispered.
"I need your body. Lend it to me for a while and acquire my knowledge
while I borrow your form. You will learn things beyond your wildest dreams,
things whose existence exceeds the power of your imagination. I know charms
devised by illustrious magi in faraway lands; I know nature, life, and the
stars; I know mankind in ways that you will never glean from books. With my
knowledge, you will be the wisest, most powerful magus in the history of
Girdlegard and your name will be Nudin the All-Knowing." The particles
melted into nothingness. "The All-Knowing..."
The All-Knowing... Nudin woke with a start, sitting
upright in bed and glancing frantically round the tent. Unable to discover anything
unusual, he told himself off for being foolish and settled back to sleep.
At
breakfast the next morning he sat in silence, his mind on other matters, while
his colleagues discussed their projects and plans.
He said nothing of his peculiar dream and omitted to mention his encounter with the älfar, keeping the news of the amulets to himself.
*
* *
The messenger arrived just as Nudin was
preparing for bed. He read the letter and froze.
Lesinteïl,
the elven kingdom of the north, was in the hands of the älfar. They had
breached the magic girdle and overwhelmed the unsuspecting elves.
According
to the letter, the first settlements had been taken in a matter of orbits. The älfar
had overrun the kingdom before the elves had had time to raise a proper army, and
the outcome of the battle had never been in doubt.
Now
the northern pestilence was creeping through the exalted lands of Lesinteïl,
destroying the blossoming beauty that centuries of nurture had elevated to its
highest form.
Nudin
hurled the roll of parchment to the floor and clambered into bed. In less than
forty-eight hours, the council would meet to erect a girdle around the fallen
kingdom. Already the älfar were using their newly conquered land to send war
bands into Gauragar, Idoslane, and Urgon to extend the boundaries of the
Perished Land.
Nudin
felt a stab of conscience. Unlike the other magi, he had a good idea of how the
älfar had breached the girdle. He tried telling himself that nothing could have
stopped them, even if the council had known.
That's
not quite true,
his conscience contradicted him. If you'd shown them the amulet,
they would have studied the inscription and erected a barrier impervious to its
power. By saying nothing, you allowed the älfar to advance.
"But
I..."
Lesinteïl
fell because of you. You broke faith with the council and betrayed the elves.
Pulling
the covers over his head, Nudin tried to silence his troublesome conscience by
falling asleep.
But
sleep brought no delivery. That night the soul of the Perished Land cajoled its
way into his dreams and the whispering mist paid another visit to his bed.
"Have
you made up your mind? Has Nudin the All-Knowing resolved to rescue
Girdlegard?"
"You
breached the barrier and took Lesinteïl. How did you do it?"
"Nudin
the All-Knowing wouldn't need to ask." The mist slipped beneath the covers, where
it soon became pleasantly warm.
"The first elven
kingdom is
mine. Âlandur will be next, and the magi can do nothing to
stop me.
My protective power will extend deep into the south of Girdlegard, but I'm running out
of time."
"Protective
power? You're seizing the lands by force!"
"Only
for a heartbeat in the continuum of time. Remember, Nudin, no one relinquishes
freedom gladly. Rulers and races are like children and I am their mother. I
protect them from harm." The swirling mist became a human face. "Imagine
a small boy whose mother won't let him play with a dog. She picks him up
because she knows that the dog is dangerous, but he resents her intervention.
He kicks, screams, and struggles against her, not realizing that the dog would
bite him as soon as it had the chance." The voice paused for a moment.
"The mother chases the dog away, then sets her son down and lets him play
as he pleases. The boy is too young to understand, but in time he'll see that
she did the right thing. His resentment will turn to gratitude because she
helped him in spite of his protests."
The
analogy made perfect sense. Nudin's conscience warned him against the
silver-tongued whisperer, but he shut out his inner voice. "You've
explained it to me, so why can't you explain it to the rulers of the other
realms and kingdoms? And why ally yourself with beasts? Orcs and älfar are
feared by men and loathed by elves and dwarves: Why choose them to carry out
your will?"
The
mist swathed the bed, covering every inch of his body and shrouding his eyes.
It felt like the caress of a thousand soothing hands. "Girdlegard is in
danger. I didn't have time to choose my allies; I had to take what I could
find. My creatures can be counted on to bring me rapid victories. It's the
best way of protecting Girdlegard from the threat."
"And
this threat, have you fought it before?" Nudin asked sleepily. He was
struggling to focus.
"More
times than I can remember, but the enemy is powerful, swift, and wily. Victory
has always eluded me. We need time to prepare ourselves properly if we are to
win." The caressing intensified, the whispers multiplying and echoing
through Nudin's mind. "I need your body, Nudin. Lend me your form and I
will give you my knowledge, a knowledge greater than any possessed by mortal
man. Remember, when our enemy has been vanquished, your body will be your own.
You will always have the power to drive me out. You must make your decision,
Nudin."
"What
if your knowledge isn't as spectacular as you claim?"
"Watch.
I will show you." The mist contracted around his temples, pulsing
furiously with streaks of black, silver, and red.
The
soul of the Perished Land gave Nudin's dreaming consciousness a glimpse of the
marvels that would soon be his.
Strange
runes danced before the awestruck magus and unintelligible languages filled
his ears. Images flashed through his mind—snatches of spells and curses,
strange and formidable landscapes in the Outer Lands, and faraway cities and
palaces more splendid than anything known to men, elves, or dwarves.
He
drank in the wonderful sights and sounds, thirsted for more, and was rewarded.
Plunged into an endless stream of images, he bathed in knowledge and imbibed
its wisdom until the vision was brought to a halt.
"Don't
stop," Nudin said greedily. "Show me more."
"Will you
lend me your body?"
"Let
me—"
Runes
glimmered in the air while distant voices reverberated in unknown tongues. The
sun dimmed over a breathtakingly beautiful meadow and the landscape dissolved
away. Stacks of books swayed dangerously and learned volumes of spells and
incantations moldered, leaves perishing and turning to dust.
"Will
Nudin the All-Knowing save Girdlegard?" the mist whispered. "Will he
help a mother protect her child?" The magus's defenses crumbled.
"I will help
you," he whispered hoarsely, peering into the mist. By letting the spirit
in, he would be able to control it, or so he told himself. If I
find out it's lying about the threat to Girdlegard, I'll force it to give back
our lands and send its servants over the Northern Pass. Whatever happens, I'll
get the promised knowledge and Girdlegard will win. "What must I
do?"
The
mist glimmered excitedly. "Nothing. Lie still and don't stop me. Open your
mouth, empty your mind, and think of nothing. You'll know when I'm in."
Nudin lay back
and did as instructed.
Three
tendrils of mist snaked toward him and slipped between his lips. It felt as if
they were reconnoitering the territory in preparation for an invasion.
What
happened next took Nudin by surprise. Suddenly, the mist contracted and forced
itself inside his mouth. The pressure was so great that his jaws seemed to
break apart and his ears were filled with the sound of cracking. His hands dug
into his bedclothes, ripping the sheets.
Once
inside him, the mist pushed onward with no regard for his body. It expanded
along his gullet, cutting off his airway and expelling the breath from his
lungs. His veins throbbed frantically, his blood racing at four times its usual
speed.
Red
fluid spurted from his nose and eyes and he realized with horror that he was
losing blood from every pore. His lifeblood was seeping from his body,
streaming over his skin and staining his sheets.
He
sat up, gurgling unintelligibly, and tried to reach the door. The floor rushed
toward him.
He
had no control over his legs or any other part of his body; even his mind
refused to obey him. Babbling, laughing, and choking, he screamed in pain and
terror, crawling and writhing through his chamber and leaving a glistening
crimson trail.
He
could feel the mist pushing through every vessel in his body, pounding his
flesh, foraging in his guts, torturing his manhood, and never pausing for a
moment on its agonizing path.
Then at once the
suffering was over.
Nudin
lay on the cold marble floor, struggling to regain his breath. Slowly, his
dazed senses cleared, and his thoughts and perceptions became extraordinarily
acute.
He
clambered to his feet. Blood was caked to his skin and the smell of excrement
clung to his robes. Repelled by the filth, he hurried along the corridors and
stood beneath a fountain to wash away the dirt. The cold water revived his
spirits, leaving him refreshed and alert.
And now for a test... He tried to recall the spells
he had heard. The words and gestures returned to him effortlessly, but more
remarkably, he knew their purpose and the correct inflection of every syllable:
It was all imprinted on his mind.
Strictly
speaking, it wasn't his mind that was furnishing the information, but he brushed
that thought aside.
With
a rush of exhilaration he thought of all the wonders he had seen, and at once
they returned to him, only this time he could hear, taste, and smell them. The
beautiful meadow had its own distinctive aroma, which he recognized instantly.
He remembered the melodies sung by the birds, and he knew that Pajula, for that
was the name of the spot, was located beyond the mountains of his homeland in a
place that no one in Girdlegard had heard of, let alone mapped.
Chuckling
delightedly, he let the water splash over his skin.
Well,
are you satisfied?
asked a voice inside his head. Have I kept my side of the
bargain?
"Yes," he
said aloud, then corrected himself. Yes, your knowledge is
everything you promised it would be. He decided on a further test. I want
you to leave.
At
once he felt an unpleasant burning sensation, then a sudden chill and a feeling
of abject loneliness and abandonment. The mist was preparing to depart. Nudin
shuddered at the thought of experiencing such agony a second time.
Stop! he commanded.
You can stay. I wanted to be sure I could trust you to go.
I
entrusted you with my knowledge and memory; you have to trust me. We two are
one.
"We
two are one," the magus murmured. He clambered out of the fountain to look
for a mirror. There was nothing peculiar about his reflection: He looked the
same as before, although the shirt he took from his wardrobe seemed tighter
than usual and the sleeves were a little too short.
The
soul of the Perished Land shared his satisfaction. I chose well, it whispered. You needn't feel ashamed. You're not a traitor.
So you can read my thoughts? Nudin felt embarrassed
that his doubts had been detected.
We are one.
Then I should be able to read
yours.
Patience!
Such things take practice, and practice you shall have. For now our pact must
remain a secret. Buy me some time and say nothing to the other magi until I am
ready to be a mother to these lands. Begin your preparations, but work alone
and be sure not to arouse their suspicions. They will accuse you of treachery,
Nudin the All-Knowing, but you're not a traitor; you're my friend—my one and
only loyal friend.
The whisper faded and the magus was alone.
He
strolled to the window and looked out. Sunrise was only a few hours away, but
Porista was still slumbering. He turned his back to it and scanned the rows of
books that lined his room.
All
these folios, encyclopedias, and grimoires contained only a fraction of the
knowledge that was stored in his head. It gave him a feeling of contentment,
infinite wisdom, and completeness. No sooner had a thought occurred to him than
he knew everything there was to know on the matter. He could sate his lust for
knowledge without the help of study, travel, experiments, or books.
A moment later he felt bored: Everything he yearned for was already accomplished. Saving Girdlegard is the last remaining challenge and nothing and no one can take it from me.
* * *
Nudin drew up a plan of action and devoted himself to his task. It
seemed wrong to leave the responsibility of saving Girdlegard to his
knowledgeable friend. He could picture the terrible threat bearing down on his
homeland, ready to sweep over the high mountains and take Girdlegard by storm,
and he knew that it was up to him to stop it.
There
was no doubt that his new knowledge was useful, but incantations and formulae
weren't enough. In order to apply the magic, he needed power—more power.
He
had already devised a way of acquiring it, channeling it, and making it his
own. When the magi next gathered in Porista to renew the girdle, he would
harness their magic energies and present his colleagues with a choice: Join
him—or get out of his way.
Every
waking moment was devoted to his plan. He ensconced himself in his laboratory
and selected a few of his most loyal famuli to assist him; when the time was
right, they would help him with whatever he had to do.
Älfar
emissaries took to visiting him in secret, bringing intelligence gathered in
the mountains of Urgon, the plains of Gauragar, and the highlands of Idoslane.
His scouts informed him that the orcs in Tilogorn's kingdom were prepared to
fight on his behalf.
Nudin's
greatest fear was betrayal. Resistance was not to be tolerated: Anyone who
challenged him was a threat to Girdlegard and a traitor to the cause.
Dissenters were crushed.
Sometimes,
in rare moments of doubt, he wondered whether he was in charge of his actions
or whether the spirit inside him was governing his will.
His
misgivings soon disappeared, vanishing as mysteriously and abruptly as they
had come. Every now and then his friend would speak to him and offer his
advice, rounding out his plan with helpful suggestions and ideas.
We
are one, he
thought gratefully. Together we will save the race of men.
And yet your cause has been
betrayed.
How so?
One
of your apprentices, Heltor, talked to a man by the name of Gorén, a former
famulus of Lot-Ionan's. Our friends heard them talking at the doors of the
palace when the council was in session. He thinks he knows our secret and how
we can be sundered.
Nudin was aghast.
Sundered? That's impossible. I can't allow it!
Listen
to me, Nôd’onn. Gorén won't be working alone. Lot-Ionan gave him books that
tell of our pact. They're jealous of your knowledge and power. Don't let them
tear us apart. We are one!
Nudin decided to have
Gorén killed. The älfar will deal with him. They'll bring back
the books and have the famulus punished.
If
you kill Gorén, the others will be suspicious. You'll have to kill them all.
No,
I'll reason with them. They're bound to understand if I explain it to them, as
you explained it to me. Just think what we could achieve with the power of six
magi. We'll be able to advance on different fronts and our friends will be
grateful for the speedy victory.
The
spirit doubted the wisdom of the scheme but said nothing to oppose it, fearing
that a disagreement might alienate the magus. I'm
afraid you'll be disappointed, my one and only friend.
"I
hope not," Nudin said softly. He turned his attention to a book whose
contents he knew by heart: There was nothing in his library that wasn't present
inside his head.
A
drop of blood fell onto the open page, obscuring four characters so that the
word became unreadable. Blood seeped from his nose and his eyes, slowly at
first, then faster and faster until it became a constant stream.
Nôd’onn
knew what lay in store. He rose quickly and hurried to his bed. His bones
creaked, his head throbbed, his brain hissed, and his skin stretched painfully
as he suddenly gained another few inches in height.
He
screamed, cried, bit his lips until they bled, and thrashed about so violently
that he fell out of bed and blacked out.
When
he woke, the suffering was a distant memory and all he felt was the habitual
desire to eat. His regular feasts resulted in enormous weight gain, obliging his
tailors to replace his wardrobe every week.
He
scrubbed the blood from his face and his hands. How
much longer until it stops hurting?
Not
long, the voice
whispered. All this knowledge is too much for a human body. It
needs more room. You won't come to any harm, I promise. We are one.
Nudin
made his way hungrily to the dining hall and had his servants set the long
trestle table. He ate enough to feed a whole family, but his appetite wasn't
sated and the cook had to bring out a pair of sizzling roast chickens before he
declared himself full. As he rose from the table he noticed that his sleeves
were too short.
A female älf entered the room, holding a letter in her hand...
Part Two
I
Enchanted. Realm of Oremaira, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
Tungdil was so wrapped up in the story
that he couldn't be sure how much of the drama had been enacted by the players
and how much he had imagined for himself.
The
spell was finally broken when a hand reached out from the curtain at the rear
of the box, took hold of his knapsack, and pulled it carefully by the straps.
Tungdil
saw none of this and was alerted only when the villain lost patience and jerked
the bag across the floor. He turned just in time to see the filcher's fingers
disappearing behind the curtain, together with his pack.
"Hey!
Stop thief!" he shouted furiously. "Come back with my bag!"
Whipping out his ax, he stormed into the aisle, his hobnailed boots clattering
on the floorboards. "I'll teach you to respect other people's
property!"
The
dramatic tension barely withstood his heavy footsteps and was demolished by his
booming voice. There were angry shouts from the audience, most of them directed
at the victim and not the thief.
Count yourselves lucky, Tungdil thought grimly,
ignoring the outcry. He raced after the dark-robed figure, his short legs
powering up and down and filling the auditorium with a thunderous rumble.
"Perhaps
the gentleman could make a little less noise!" boomed the counterfeit Nôd’onn
from the stage. His älf emissary put her hands on her slender hips and frowned.
She was clad in black armor and looked remarkably convincing despite the
ruined play. The fearsome magus was just an indignant actor. "If you don't
mind, I'm trying to entertain our audience!"
"I've
been robbed!" the dwarf bellowed without slowing. "Your precious
theater is harboring a thief!"
"The
only thief in this theater is you, my stunted friend," the actor said
waspishly. "You're stealing my time, not to mention plundering my
patience, neither of which you can afford. Kindly take your thieving presence
out of my theater and allow those of more cultured sensibilities to see the
rest of the play, which shall have the finale it deserves!"
On hearing the
cheers and laughter, he took a deep bow.
Jackass, muttered Tungdil. Bursting out of the
theater, he stopped on the street, looked both ways, and ran on. On rounding
the next corner, he spotted his man. The scoundrel had slung the stolen pack
over his shoulder in order to free his hands.
"Stop!
That's my bag you've stolen!" Tungdil set off in hot pursuit.
At
the end of the third street he still had the thief in his sights, but somewhere
along the fourth street, after what must have been the tenth sudden change in
direction, the fellow vanished into a marketplace. Tungdil was left stranded
among a crowd of people with no hope of spotting his knapsack amid the
seething mass.
The sigurdaisy wood! He felt hot and cold all over
at the thought that the relic was lost. Of all the misfortunes that could have
befallen him, this was surely the worst. I didn't
come all this way to be thwarted by a petty criminal! he thought
determinedly, forcing himself to continue the chase.
Still
gripping his ax with one hand, he used the other to push his way through the
crowd until he reached a table piled high with woven baskets. He clambered on
top.
From
this angle the situation looked no better than before. The only way of
recovering the bag was to enlist the help of the guards, but his plight was
unlikely to elicit much sympathy—and understandably so. What could he possibly
say to convince them of the importance of retrieving his pack?
Er,
excuse me, I know the town's surrounded by orcs, but I've lost a lump of wood.
I was hoping to use it to save Girdlegard and its inhabitants from the
Perished Land.
No one would ever
believe him.
He jumped to the ground and set off toward the tavern where, Vraccas willing, Bavragor and Boïndil would be waiting. To his unspeakable dismay he realized that he was lost.
Tungdil had sent his companions to the
tavern without checking its name. Now his only hope of finding them was to
return to the gates.
Which gates? Did we enter from
the north?
He
started on his way, grumbling to himself and glancing up from time to time to
check his position against the watchtowers that rose above the sloping roofs.
Striding along determinedly, he passed a dingy side street without slowing and
heard a muffled groan.
He
stopped in his tracks, gripped his ax with both hands, and doubled back.
Stepping warily into the darkness, he spotted a tall, slender figure whose
garments were enveloped by a dark gray cape.
At
his feet was the villain who had stolen Tungdil's pack.
The
thief was lying on the cobbles, bleeding from a dozen stab wounds, while his
killer rummaged eagerly through the bag.
Tungdil's
instincts told him something was wrong. In height and build the stranger looked
less like a man than an älf. Vraccas be with me,
he murmured.
The
knapsack's new owner buckled the lid, grabbed the straps with his left hand, and
hid the bag beneath his cape. Groaning in agony, the thief rolled onto his back
and clutched the ground. His assassin was unmoved by his suffering and strolled
away without looking back.
"Excuse me!
That's my bag," shouted Tungdil.
The
stranger whipped round and his cape flew open, obscuring his face. Tungdil was
still trying to get a proper look at him when two heavy objects collided with
his chest. The throwing knives glanced off his chain mail, clattering to the
cobbles.
Before
Tungdil could recover, his crafty assailant had taken off down the alleyway and
rounded the next bend. The dwarf was at a disadvantage because of his stumpy
legs, and by the time he reached the corner, the stranger was nowhere in sight.
Tungdil
stepped back into the shadows and leaned against a wall to catch his breath. One blasted misfortune after the next! What have I done
to displease you, Vraccas?
He
felt an arm wrap itself around his neck. A narrow blade flashed in front of his
face and came to rest against his bare throat.
"It's
your knapsack, is it?" whispered a voice in his ear. "In that case,
you must be Tungdil. We weren't expecting you here. A friend of mine has been
longing to make your acquaintance ever since you murdered his companion in
Greenglade."
Tungdil
tried to prize away the arm, but the pressure on his neck increased.
"Keep
still," the voice commanded. "You've got some explaining to do."
"I'm
not telling you anything," Tungdil said defiantly, now certain that the
stranger was one of Nôd’onn's älfar.
"We'll
see about that." His attacker stepped backward, dragging Tungdil beneath a
covered archway at the front entrance to a house. Total darkness engulfed them.
"Where are you taking the relic?"
The dwarf
maintained a stubborn silence.
"Talk or
I'll kill you."
"You'll kill
me anyway. What difference does it make?"
The älf
laughed. "The difference between a quick death and an agonizing end. Let's
try again. Are you alone?"
Footsteps
hurried along the alleyway, accompanied by clunking mail. Two figures rounded
the corner. The älf fell silent.
By
some vindictive twist of fortune, Boëndal and Goïmgar chose precisely that
moment to make their appearance.
Boëndal
was doing his best to reassure the wary artisan that neither Bavragor nor Boïndil
had any intention of carrying out their threats. Tungdil heard him vow to
protect Goïmgar from any rash acts of vengeance; then he and the fourthling
disappeared from sight.
"Very
well," the älf whispered, "so there are five of you. What is the
purpose of your journey?"
"To
foil you, your master, and all of your ilk!" Tungdil said loudly, choosing
that moment to make his escape. He made a grab for the knife and threw his
weight backward, hoping to ram his captor against the wall. The älf stepped
aside, and Tungdil barreled into the brickwork, still struggling ferociously
to fend off the blade.
The
noise was enough to alert the other dwarves. They rushed to his aid.
"Is
that you, scholar?" Boëndal skidded to a halt in front of the archway,
leveled his crow's beak, and barred the way. Skulking behind him was Goïmgar,
doing a convincing impression of a two-legged shield.
The älf
thrust his knee into Tungdil's nose guard, forcing the metal into his face.
Tungdil's eyes watered, blurring his vision; then the knife tore a gash in his
unprotected left arm. The älf set about making his escape.
I don't think so! Tungdil darted after the knapsack
and managed to catch hold of the flap. He clung to it, growling, and aimed his
ax at his antagonist's wrist.
The älf
whipped his hand away and the blade missed, slicing through the air, hitting
the knapsack, and slitting the canvas. The flap came away in Tungdil's hands,
and he lost his balance and fell.
"I've
got what I came for." The situation was too perilous for the älf and he
turned to leave, trying to wrong-foot the experienced Boëndal, who saw through
the feint and timed his attack to perfection. The deadly tip of the crow's beak
passed through the leather armor, penetrating deep into the flesh.
The älf
uttered an unintelligible curse and staggered sideways, stepping into a lone
shaft of light. His deep blue eyes became two dark pits.
But
that was only the beginning of his transformation. Thin lines appeared on his
pale skin, and in no time his face and throat were patterned with what looked
like tiny cracks. Clutching his wounded side, he stumbled down the alleyway,
the knapsack bouncing on his back.
"He's
not going anywhere!" Boëndal was about to sprint after him when Tungdil
called him back.
"Let him go.
For all we know, it might be a trap."
"But he's
got the knapsack!"
Tungdil
wiped the blood from his nose, then proudly produced the sigurdaisy relic.
"This is what he was after, and it's right here with me!"
"How did he
find you in the first place?"
"I'll
explain on the way. We'd better get back to the others." He gave a quick
nod to Goïmgar. "Don't worry, those hotheads won't hurt you."
"I
told them to close the door after you,"
the artisan said softly. "Honestly, I did."
"It's
all right, Goïmgar," Tungdil reassured him, although deep down he wasn't
sure what to believe. The fourthling had forfeited his right to be trusted, and
there was still no sign of him understanding what the mission was all about.
"We
ought to warn the guards that at least one älf has found his way inside the
gates," Boëndal reminded him. "Whichever way you look at it, it's bad
news for Mifurdania. It's probably a trick to open the settlement to the
orcs."
"They
know we're here now," Goïmgar pointed out. "Do you think they'll come
after us?"
"They've
been after us all along," Tungdil told him bluntly. "It's a shame
they had to find us. We need to get back to the tunnel as soon as we can. The älfar
don't know about the underground network."
The trio hurried through the streets until they reached the southern gates, where Tungdil told the sentries of his brush with the älf. Then they set off toward the alehouse where Bavragor and Boïndil had been instructed to wait.
They were still some distance from the
rundown tavern when the sound of Ireheart's ranting reached their ears. They
heard cracking wood, then a chorus of screams.
"Bavragor
and Boïndil! The älfar must have found them!" Boëndal charged ahead to
save his twin.
Just
then glass sprayed everywhere as a narrow window shattered and a man hit the
cobbles with a thud. The next unfortunate was ejected from the tavern together
with the door. Bruised and bleeding, he picked himself up and fled.
The
three dwarves rushed inside to be met with a scene of devastation. It looked as
if a tornado had hit the bar. Nothing was in its proper place, the chairs,
tables, and benches broken or upturned and the floor strewn with groaning
bodies. All had taken a beating, some more severely than others.
At
the heart of the carnage was Boïndil, glowering like a dwarven god of
vengeance. He was busy ridding a man, hair by hair, of his mustache. There was
no sign of Bavragor.
"What's
got into you?" his brother asked incredulously, staring at the mess.
"Is this your doing?"
Ireheart
turned to face them, and they saw his singed beard. "You'd better believe
it!" he slurred. "The long-uns set fire to my whiskers, so I gave
them a good walloping." He giggled and plucked out another hair.
"This ruffian started it. I only meant to punish him for ruining my beard,
but the others piled in. I suppose I should thank them, really; it made a
better fight."
"Tell
him I'm sorry," groaned his victim. "It was a misunderstanding. I
was offering him a light for his pipe, that's all. I'm begging you, make him
stop hurting me."
Ireheart
seized him by the ears and looked at him blurrily. "Will you never, ever
burn another hole in a dwarf's bearded glory?"
"Never,"
the man whimpered.
"Then swear
it!" The man complied and was released.
"Get
out of my sight," barked Boïndil. As a parting shot, he grabbed another
clump of hair and aimed a kick at the man's behind. He sat down on the table,
laughing, and reached for his tankard. He took a noisy slurp. "I haven't
had this much fun in ages," he burped. Just then he spotted Goïmgar.
"Ah, there's our little flower."
"He's
drunk as a skunk," said his brother, pursing his lips.
"Where's
Bavragor?" asked Tungdil. Keeping tabs on this
lot is worse than herding cats, he thought crossly. "Don't tell me
we'll have to look for him too."
"Oh,
him... He'll be back in a moment. He went to buy a pony so we can fetch the
ingots from the—"
"Boïndil!"
His brother snatched away the tankard and pulled him down from the table.
"What in the name of Vraccas are you thinking? We're in a strange town,
the orcs are at the gates, and all you can do is drink yourself silly. You're
as bad as Bavragor!"
"So
that's the thanks I get for buying two ponies," came an offended voice
from the door. "He's the one who's been beating up locals, not me!"
"I
told you he'd be back!" Boïndil said happily. He seized the tankard from Boëndal
and knocked it back. "There, try taking it from me now!" He grinned
and burped again.
"Orcs!"
They heard the shout even before the guard rushed in. "To arms! To arms!
The southern gates have fallen and the enemy has invaded! To arms, good people
of Mifurdania, to arms!" He stopped short, noticing the bodies strewn
around the room. "What in the name of..."
"To
arms!" shouted Boïndil excitedly. "Let's get the runts! Oink,
oink!" He drew his axes and stumbled to the door. His brother pulled him
back and gave him a good talking to.
"Boëndal
didn't mean what he said," Tungdil told Bavragor, hoping that the comment
wouldn't spark another feud.
"Old
Hookhand can say what he likes; he's usually right," the mason said
mildly. "You'll find a couple of ponies waiting for us outside. I got
them cheap, but they're sturdy little beasts."
"We
need to get out of here," muttered Tungdil, deciding to save the story of
what had happened in the theater until they were safely out of town—not that he
had the faintest idea as to how they would escape. "The älfar are after
me."
"In that
case, we need a plan," observed Bavragor.
"I've
been thinking, scholar," said Boëndal. "Our enemy will be focusing on
the main gates, so all we need is a side exit. Once we're out, we can hack our
way through the fringes of the battle." He glanced at his brother, whose
uncharacteristic silence was explained by the fact that he was snoring in the
doorway. "Obviously, the circumstances aren't ideal," he finished
with a sigh.
Goïmgar
shuddered. "Through the battle?" In his mind's eye he was already
fleeing from snarling orcs, grunting bögnilim, and nimble-footed älfar, while
arrows rained down on him and swords, spears, and pikes slashed and jabbed all
around. "Are you sure that's wise?"
"I
don't suppose you can fly, can you?" asked Bavragor. The artisan shook his
head wretchedly. "In that case, we don't have a choice."
There
was a loud crash behind them. Ireheart had gone down like a felled oak and was
lying inert on the floor. His loud snores were the only indication that he
hadn't been smitten by Vraccas's hammer.
"A
fat lot of use he is," Goïmgar said accusingly. "Just when we could
do with a bloodthirsty warrior, he knocks himself out on beer. Think of how
many orcs he could have butchered for us."
"I
know." Bavragor nodded, helping Boëndal to drape the unconscious Boïndil
over one of the ponies. "It beats me how he got into this state. The
long-uns' beer is no better than flavored water."
"He
drank five whole tankards of it," Goïmgar told him. He looked at the mason
in sudden amazement. "You're not saying..."
"I
had seven, not counting the two at the market." He winked at the smaller
dwarf and passed him both sets of reins. "Here, look after the
ponies."
Hefting
his mighty war hammer, he took up position at the rear of the procession. Boëndal
and Tungdil took the lead.
From
time to time they heard the clatter of swords, but they avoided trouble by
taking frequent detours and keeping out of sight. The tactic was to Goïmgar's
taste.
People
were charging past them in every direction, some armed and rushing to defend
the town, others clutching their children and possessions and hoping to find
refuge in passageways and backstreets that hadn't yet fallen to the orcs.
Another doomed settlement, thought Tungdil,
remembering the charred wreckage of Goodwater. He knew what the orcs would do
to Mifurdania and he was tempted to forget about the mission and rush to the
townspeople's aid. They were desperately in need of a few extra axes. He wondered
whether to declare a change of plan.
What if one of us gets killed? If we don't forge Keenfire,
Girdlegard will be lost. He agonized for a moment and decided that he
had to put the mission first, regardless of how hard it was to leave the
Mifurdanians to their fate. May the gods preserve
you, he thought bleakly, lowering his head.
Boëndal
laid a comforting hand on his shoulder. It was clear from his expression that
he shared Tungdil's torment.
At
length they reached the eastern battlements and discovered a small door
watched over by a pair of sentries. Moments later, a bugle sounded and the
sentries grabbed their spears and raced to the northern gates. The streets and
marketplaces echoed with the sounds of fighting as the orcs advanced through
Mifurdania, beating back the defenders.
The
dwarves inspected the door. Heavy-duty chains and padlocks prevented anyone
from tampering with the four steel bolts.
"Well,
well, well," said a disapproving voice. "What do we have here? Five
plump cannonballs on legs...I hope you weren't intending to slip out
unnoticed."
The
man who stepped out of the side street had an aristocratic face and a pointed
beard. His flamboyant robes looked expensive. Behind him was a tall, slender
woman in leather armor with a crimson head scarf over her long black hair. A
plainly dressed man with gray-green eyes, dark hair, and a thin mustache
brought up the rear. All three were carrying duffel bags.
"Dear
me, little giants," said the man with the pointy beard, "didn't
anyone tell you that this door is out of bounds?"
"Thieves,
are you?" growled Bavragor, grasping his hammer in his brawny hands.
The
man laughed theatrically. "Thieves! That's a good one! What funny little
fellows... No, my bearded warrior, we're not even commoners, let alone common
thieves! Surely you don't need two eyes to see that?"
The
snarling and grunting was getting louder all the time.
"Let
me through," the dark-haired woman commanded. She pushed past the
bewildered dwarves and lifted her sword belt to reveal a leather pouch.
Producing a number of finger-length implements, some sharpened to a point,
others curved or bent at right angles, she set to work on the locks. Soon there
was a click.
"I
knew they were thieves," said Bavragor, pleased to be proven right.
"We're
nothing of the sort, my good fellow." The man with the pointed beard
gestured to his male companion. "Meet Furgas, the most accomplished prop
master since"—he waved vaguely, unable to think of a suitable period of
time—"since time began." He pointed to the woman. "It is my
pleasure, nay, my privilege, to introduce you
to the delightful Narmora, whose exquisite beauty caused the mayor of Mifurdania's
roses to wither in shame. As for myself, I am—"
"The
fabulous Rodario!" exclaimed Tungdil, who had suddenly placed the actor's
voice.
At
once the man seemed to warm to him. "An admirer of my art? Who would have
thought it! And I took you for a—" He stopped short and his features
hardened. "Drown me in a privy, if it isn't the racket maker, the
despoiler of my scene, the saboteur of the illusion skillfully woven for the
delectation of the public." His brown eyes stared accusingly at Tungdil's
boots. "That's him, all right, the dwarf and his accursed footwear. His
trampling and shouting ruined my act!"
There
was another click as Narmora opened the final padlock and unthreaded the
chain, letting it clatter to the ground. "Hurry!"
"Aren't you
coming?" Furgas said anxiously.
She
smiled and gave him a lingering kiss on the lips. "You go through and I'll
lock up behind you. I don't want to be blamed for handing Mifurdania to the
orcs. I'll climb over the parapets."
The
dwarves led the way, followed by Rodario and Furgas.
It
was immediately obvious that the invaders were throwing all their energy into
besieging the main gates and had forgotten about the flanks of the town. The
runaways were spotted by a pair of Mifurdanian soldiers, who shouted at them
from the parapets to identify themselves, but the order went unheeded. Only the
actor turned to wave. "Take good care of my theater for me. We'll be back
when you've fought off the orcs. The very best of luck!"
"This
is real life, Rodario, not one of your plays," Furgas chided, dragging him
on.
The
impresario seemed not to grasp the full seriousness of their plight. "All
the hallmarks of drama are there, though," he said thoughtfully.
"What an excellent suggestion, my dear Furgas. I shall write a new
work." He put his hands on his hips and struck a heroic pose. "A
fearless guardsman—that's me, of course—spots an army of orcs advancing and, in
a pitched battle with, say, half a dozen of them, saves the town from certain
ruin."
Just
then a rope unfurled from the top of the wall and Narmora descended nimbly,
hand after hand, and joined them at the base. Shouting wildly, the guards stormed
along the parapet and hauled up the rope before it could be spotted by the
orcs.
Tungdil
and company hurried toward the shelter of the forest, the other three following
purposefully behind.
"A
word, oh worthy hoarders of gold and gems. Would you consent to us accompanying
you for a while on your overland excursion?" inquired the fabulous
Rodario, doing his best to dazzle them with his smile. "I don't mean to be
personal, but you look like the sort of fellows who could tackle the green- hided
beasts. These are dangerous times, and my friends and I are feeble artists,
aficionados of the stage." He turned his tanned face toward his thin arms,
which protruded like broomsticks from his expensive cloak. "A fine group
of soldiers we'd make: two men as slender as saplings and a beautiful, yet vulnerable
woman who wears her armor merely for show. I shudder to think what would
happen if the orcs were to..."
"Very
well, you can join us," conceded Tungdil. With Boïndil still under the
influence, they were two axes down, and in the event of a skirmish, the gasbag
and his companions would serve as a distraction while he and the others
attacked.
"A word," Goïmgar echoed in disbelief. "I
think I lost count of them."
"Men
talk a lot when they're frightened," Bavragor said knowledgeably. "If
you ask me, he must be scared silly. Have you seen their teeny beards? I had
more hair when I was born!"
Tungdil
headed in the direction of their ingots and gems, steering a course through the
forest toward the plateau. He was only grateful that his new companions were
oblivious to the comments being bandied about in dwarfish.
We'll
have to carry the ingots up the stairs, past the waterfall, and out to the
ponies, he
thought. It's bound to take a while. The delay was
infuriating, particularly since the wagon's mishap seemed to have been
planned.
He
decided not to wonder where Gandogar and his companions might be. There I go again, he cursed, banishing the thought
of their rivals from his mind. He focused on picking a path through the forest
and listening for noise.
"Little
man," opened Rodario, blundering through the undergrowth in an effort to
catch up with the dwarf. He didn't seem to notice the snapping twigs or his
echoing voice. "Unless I'm much mistaken, you are the leader of this merry
band, and so I address myself to you. Groundlings—"
"Dwarves,"
Tungdil corrected him automatically.
"As
you prefer...As I was saying, dwarves are a rare sight in these lands, and so I
wonder: Why did the five of you abandon your underground home? Were you driven
out by your kin?"
"That's our
business, Mr. Rodario."
"True,
very true. It was impolite of me to ask. But perhaps you and your companions
would consent to join my itinerant theater and collaborate on a play?" He
beamed at Tungdil. "With your permission, I'd like to pen a script
especially for five dwarves. People would come from far and wide to see our
show. There wouldn't be anything like it in Girdlegard. They'd shower us with
coins!"
"I'm
sorry, Mr. Rodario, but we've business to attend to."
"Business?
What kind of business?" He frowned. "Are you in search of
treasure?"
"We're
on a quest to forge Keenfire!" came a rambunctious shout from the back of
the pony. In spite of the slurring, the words were clearly audible.
"We'll go to the Gray Range and fashion a weapon more powerful than Nôd’onn
himself. The fat wizard won't be bothering us much longer—"
"Shut
up, you drunken fool!" Boëndal barked gruffly. "If you're going to
give away all our secrets, at least have the decency to do it in
dwarfish!"
"Sorry
about him," said Tungdil, turning to Rodario with an apologetic shrug. The
impresario's face had lit up with interest. "I'm afraid his imagination
gets the better of him when he's had too much to drink." He did his best
to sound nonchalant, not wishing to give the impression that Boïndil's ravings
bore any relation to the truth.
"Don't
apologize," Rodario said lightly. "I'm all in favor of imagination. A
good writer welcomes inspiration, whatever its source. Besides, I like the
sound of the idea. It's just the sort of story that audiences love to see on
stage. The trouble is, who would I cast?" He threw up his arms
despairingly. "I can't use children or gnomes or kobolds with false
beards! I need stocky fellows, proper groundlings, like you. Nothing else would
do! Are you sure I can't persuade you?"
"We're
dwarves, not groundlings," Boëndal told him crossly. "And keep your
voice down, unless you're looking for inspiration on the tip of an orcish
sword."
With
an offended toss of his long brown locks, the man fell into line with his
friends and drew them into a whispered conversation.
"Actors,"
tutted Boëndal. "You wait: He'll perform our story in every marketplace in
Girdlegard before we've finished forging Keenfire. If Nôd’onn finds out what
we're up to because of that peacock..." He left the rest of the sentence
unsaid.
"Nôd’onn
will be long dead before he gets round to writing his play," said
Tungdil, clapping him reassuringly on the back. He glanced round to see the
fabulous Rodario scribbling frantically in a little notebook that dangled on a
ribbon round his neck. Suddenly Tungdil's optimism seemed a little misplaced.
"We'll have to take them with us," he said, having thought the matter
through.
"You can't
seriously suggest that we—"
"I
mean it, Boëndal. We'll take them as far as the firstling kingdom. The
impresario won't be able to resist an adventure like that. We'll get Borengar's
dwarves to lock them in their stronghold for a while—or until the mission is
over, if need be. I'm sure they'll find somewhere cozy where our friends will
be obliged to enjoy their dwarven hospitality for as many orbits as it
takes."
"Assuming
they fall for it."
Tungdil
gave him a confident wink. The full brilliance of his plan was dawning on him.
"Don't worry, they will. When the impresario hears the incredible stories
I'm going to tell him, he'll be desperate to see the firstling kingdom for
himself."
Boëndal muttered
unhappily into his beard.
"Fine,"
said Tungdil, "I'll warn the others. I don't want them looking too
surprised."
He
stopped to talk to Goïmgar, then Bavragor, on the somewhat flimsy pretext of
checking their armor, and informed them in whispers of his plan.
They
were almost on the other side of the forest when they came to the last resting
place of the slaughtered unicorns. Rodario immediately stopped to sketch the
corpses and make notes on the once-beautiful and peaceable creatures.
Was it wrong to abandon Mifurdania? The sight of
the dead unicorns was a painful reminder that they had abandoned the
settlement and left Girdlegard's last surviving unicorns to their fate. The gods will understand that we had no other choice.
The
group approached the foot of the narrow path that wound its way up to the
plateau. From ground level, the track was completely hidden.
"On
guard!" Stopping abruptly, Boëndal drew his crow's beak. Bavragor
responded by reaching for his war hammer, while Goïmgar interpreted the warning
in his own fashion and hid behind his shield.
"On
guard? My dear fellow, whatever for?" said the bewildered Rodario. His
female companion drew her weapons. The first seemed to consist of a pair of
scythes mounted on either side of a metal haft, while the second was a
straight-bladed version of the same. Judging by the shimmering keenness of the
blades, both the inner and outer edges were deadly sharp. She wore metal
baskets on her wrists to protect her fingers from enemy swords.
The
impresario turned to her. "What could you want with those, precious rose
of Girdlegard?"
If
Tungdil had learned anything since the start of his journey, it was to trust
his friends' instincts. He steeled himself to face the threat.
A
moment later he detected the stench of their hidden foes. They smelled sweeter
and stronger than orcs, but there was definitely a whiff of rancid fat on the
gentle breeze.
Suddenly the
enemy disgorged from the bushes.
Shouting
and shrieking, the bögnilim stormed toward the humans and dwarves. Bringing up
the rear were two orcs wielding studded riding crops, which they used to whip
the beasts into a frenzy and galvanize the attack.
The bögnilim,
cowardly creatures by nature, were carrying short swords whose notched blades
were encrusted with gore from their previous victims. Lolloping and leaping
like apes, they screamed and screeched, partly in terror, partly in hatred.
Their fighting technique relied on numbers, not skill: If one fell, two or
three others would rush into the breach, biting, scratching, and slashing or
hurling themselves at their opponents and knocking them off their feet. They
descended on the company, stabbing and hacking with indiscriminate rage.
"Back-to-back!"
came the terse order from Boëndal. Bavragor took up position, dragging Goïmgar
with him, so the artisan had no choice but to join the fight. Rodario was nowhere
to be seen, but Furgas and Narmora lined up with the others.
The
dwarves' weapons swooped back and forth relentlessly, cleaving skulls and
hewing bones, but they had to be careful that none of their slippery assailants
sneaked past their guard. Goïmgar barricaded himself behind his shield, his
short sword darting out like a flash of silvery lightning and slashing through
the bögnilim's insubstantial leather armor. Pus-colored fluid spurted from the
gashes and dripped down his shield.
Narmora
fought at triple the speed of her companion, her light yet phenomenally sharp
weapons giving her an immense advantage over their foes. Just as it seemed the bögnilim
had lost the battle, the orcs gave their smaller relatives such a thrashing
that they relaunched their attack with a ferocity fueled by mortal fear.
The
surging bögnilim caused the defenders to draw closer together until there was
barely enough room for the dwarves to swing their weapons. The long blade of
the crow's beak caught on the haft of the war hammer, and Bavragor's weapon was
torn from his grip. Two or three of the beasts darted forward and knocked the
mason to the ground. Others poured through the breach and Tungdil found himself
dangerously overextended.
Just
then there was a loud hiss and a cloud of green smoke took shape between two
trees, crackling and spluttering menacingly. As the air cleared, an enormous
two-headed monster loomed out of the mist. With a terrible roar, it opened its
vicious jaws and engulfed the bögnilim in a torrent of flames. Two died in the
blaze; the others were rooted with shock.
The
ensuing commotion sufficed for Bavragor to retrieve his hammer and overwhelm
the bögnilim who had infiltrated their circle, pounding them to a pulp. Tungdil
and Boëndal also went on the attack.
"I'll
take care of the monster if it ventures our way," said Boëndal. "If
it sticks to killing bögnilim, so much the better."
Narmora
ducked out of the circle and vanished into the bushes, reappearing behind one
of the orcs. Her curved blades sliced through his beefy neck, and his headless
body toppled to the ground. The second orc lashed out at her, but she dove
beneath the whistling whip and launched herself into the air, landing coiled at
his feet." Her straight-bladed weapon drove into his belly. The sharp
blades cut through his mail, spilling intestines and killing the beast.
Alarmed
by the appearance of the fire-spewing monster and thrown into confusion by
their flagellators' deaths, the bögnilim panicked and fled in all directions.
None were left, save the thirty or so whose corpses were littered about the
ground.
Boëndal
turned to the two-headed dragon. "Now for you, foul beast of Tion,"
he growled, preparing to charge. The monster hastily retreated behind the
fading smoke.
"Don't
strike!" Furgas cried suddenly. "It's Rodario!"
"Rodario?"
echoed Bavragor, bewildered. He was brandishing his weapon, ready to join the
attack. Hurriedly, he stayed his hammer's momentum by swinging it round his
head.
They
heard a rustling in the bushes, then a peal of laughter. "Did you see them
run?" the impresario said happily, stepping out of the smoke. He was
dressed in a leather costume that was several paces too long for him. In his
right hand he held two enormous heads; in his left was a pair of hinged stilts.
"I
had a feeling I'd be more useful as a monster than a swordsman. I prefer to
reserve my fighting prowess for the stage—outside the theater my enemies tend
to laugh instead of tremble. Thankfully, I had time to grab a few props and
teach the wee beasts some respect. With a little bit of alchemy, anything is
possible."
"But we
nearly killed you," Bavragor said, stunned.
"I
looked the part, didn't I?" Rodario smirked, gratified. He gave a deep
bow. "What's this, worthy spectators? Don't I deserve a round of
applause?" The dwarves continued to look at him in mute disbelief.
"All
humans are barmy," the mason observed. "He makes Boïndil look
sane."
"He
might be barmy, but he probably saved your life," Tungdil reminded him.
"Vraccas knows what would have become of us if it hadn't been for him. To
think we were fooled by a man in fancy dress!" He chuckled, and after a
while the others saw the funny side too.
The
impresario gave another low bow, straightened up, and smiled. "Thank you.
You're most kind. I gather from your laughter that you enjoyed my performance.
I'm deeply flattered."
This
was the moment that Tungdil had been waiting for. He summoned the three
players. "My friends and I have been discussing the matter," he said
solemnly, as if he had something of vital importance to convey. "You're a
trustworthy trio, and we've decided to tell you where we're going. We're on a
mission to the firstling kingdom, home of Borengar's dwarves, who guard the
western pass."
"Aha!
So you're gathering an army to fight against Nôd’onn!" Rodario said
excitedly. "Does that mean the story about Keenfire is true?" He
scrabbled for his quill.
Tungdil
ignored him and plowed on. "You came to our aid, and we'd like to show our
gratitude. You may accompany us to the firstling kingdom, where you will enter
a dwarven stronghold and behold its splendor. That, and a bag of gold coins,
should cover our debt." It seemed to Tungdil that only the foppish actor
had been won over by his words, so he tried again, this time waxing lyrical about
the wonders of a kingdom he had never set eyes on. For the benefit of Furgas,
he invented all kinds of extraordinary machinery and ascribed it to the genius
of the firstling engineers, while Narmora was treated to descriptions of
wondrous jewelry and armor. On finishing his protracted speech, he fell silent
and awaited their decision with mounting impatience.
To
his horror he realized that Bavragor had reached for his blood-encrusted hammer
and intended to attack the players should they decline. Boëndal looked equally
resolute.
"Just
think," mused Rodario, stroking his pointed beard. "I could found a
new theater. We'll see wonders in this kingdom never known to humankind!
Furgas, imagine all the new contraptions you could build!"
Furgas
nodded enthusiastically, leaving Narmora looking unimpressed. He stroked her
hair fondly and kissed her. "You'll come too, won't you?" She pouted.
Tungdil
looked at her intently. He still thought of her as the actress who had played
the älf. Her face isn't quite elven enough, he
told himself. She's just an unusually beautiful
human, that's all.
"I
hope you don't mind me asking," he said brightly. "But how did you
learn to use these?" He pointed to the weapons hanging in narrow leather
sheaths from her belt. "I've never seen the like of them. What are
they?"
"Their
names are Crescent and Sunbeam. I designed them myself."
"You
designed them?"
Furgas
planted another kiss on her cheek. "She's our lead älf, and we didn't want
her to have the same weaponry as everyone else." He glowed with pride at
his mistress's ingenuity. "We had to ask around a bit until we found a
smith with the skill to forge the blades."
"I'm
not surprised," said Tungdil, refraining from further comment. He pointed
to the steep track. "We'd better get going before the bögnilim recover
from the shock."
He knew there had to
be more to it than that. You don't just invent those sorts of
weapons and you certainly don't wield them with such proficiency unless you've
been properly trained.
He
glanced at Bavragor and Boëndal, who were obviously thinking the same. None of
them had any doubt that Narmora was really a warrior, an accomplished fighter
who had abandoned the battlefield in favor of the stage.
Tungdil watched as
Furgas looked at Narmora tenderly and drew her to him. Did she
lay down her weapons for love? He would ask her when he had the chance.
I bet she was a mercenary in Umilante's or Tilogorn's army, although she still
looks very young...
Furgas
and Narmora helped the impresario out of his oversize breeches, while Goïmgar
turned his attention to the startled ponies, who, contrary to all expectations,
had stood their ground throughout the fight. The inebriated Boïndil was still
draped over the back of one of them, snoring.
"Listen
to that racket," said Bavragor. "He's making more noise than a
lumberjack in a forest."
"I
can't wait to see his expression when he hears he missed a battle," said Boëndal
with a wicked grin. "I bet he'll never want to drink again."
The
humans and dwarves strung out in a line as they made their way up to the
plateau that overlooked Mifurdania and its surrounds. Thick banks of smoke hung
over the settlement and a swarm of tiny black dots surged back and forth around
the walls. Nothing they saw gave them any reason to believe that the Mifurdanians
would prevail against Nôd’onn's troops. Even the otherwise ebullient Rodario
was distressed by the sight. Narmora stood impassively at the edge of the
platform, peering down at the forest, while Furgas and the dwarves crouched by
the waterfall and washed the blood from their hands.
"Where
to now?" he asked, noticing that the track went no farther.
"Back
down to the bottom, just as soon as we've loaded the ponies," Tungdil told
him. "We stopped here on our way to Mifurdania and left our gifts for the
firstlings in a cave."
"Can I give
you a hand?"
"There's
no need," said Tungdil, not wanting to reveal the existence of the
underground network. "You should probably get some sleep. We'll need
someone to sit watch for us later." He took his leave with a quick nod and
edged behind the waterfall with Goïmgar, Bavragor, and Boëndal.
Shifting
the ingots was every bit as onerous as Tungdil had expected. At last, after
hours of hard work, the bars of gold, silver, palandium, vraccasium, and
tionium were stacked safely at the top of the stairs. The sun was setting by
the time the dwarves collapsed wearily on the floor, worn out from all the
fetching and carrying, not to mention their earlier run-in with the bögnilim.
They
were almost asleep when an embarrassed Boïndil emerged from his drunken
slumber, mortified at getting sloshed on five tankards—which in his estimation
was not nearly enough. Bavragor took particular pleasure in informing him that
he couldn't hold his drink.
Later,
Boïndil was introduced to the players, whom he viewed with suspicion. He made a
point of ignoring them, preferring to treat them coolly until they earned his
respect. Not having witnessed the battle, he hadn't seen their fighting spirit
and refused to be swayed by his companions' reports. Rodario could be as
obliging as he liked: Boïndil was impervious to his charm.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Late Autumn,
6234th Solar Cycle
Soon
your kingdom will be ours," a voice warned Gundrabur. The älf was almost
invisible in the darkness of the chamber. He stepped closer to the bed.
"You'll lose your kingdom, as the fifthlings lost theirs."
"Nothing
you can do will stop us," said a second älf, emerging from the shadows
and stooping over the bed. Black runes were tattooed across his face, making
his pale skin appear translucent and lending him a menacing air. "You're
dying, Gundrabur. Vraccas will gather you to his eternal smithy, where you can
weep and wail all you like."
"No
one will remember you," a third älf told him, stepping noiselessly out of
the darkness and stopping at the foot of his bed. "You're old and weak, a
high king who waited until his dying cycle to do something worthwhile and
failed in all his endeavors." He broke off, raising his violet eyes to the
ceiling and listening intently. "Do you hear that?" A chisel was
tapping away at the rock. "The secondlings are expunging your name from
their annals. You failed them, Gundrabur." Even as he spoke, the tapping
and hammering intensified so that Gundrabur could hear a thousand chisels
working in unison, chipping away at his skull. "Nothing will remain of
your works. Yours will be the Nameless Era that brought humiliation and defeat
on the dwarves. You are to blame for their destruction, Gundrabur. You are to—"
"Gundrabur! Gundrabur!"
The älfar
whirled round and turned to face the door. Light flooded into the chamber.
"We'll
be back," they told him, melting into a darkness so complete that not even
Gundrabur's dwarven eyes could fathom it.
"Gundrabur!"
The
high king woke with a start. His heart was pounding and it took a moment for
him to find his bearings. He covered his face with his hands and groaned.
Balendilín
was sitting on the edge of the royal bed, mopping the sweat from his
sovereign's brow. He wrung the cloth into a bowl that was resting on
Gundrabur's chest and wobbling slightly as it rose and fell. "Your
Majesty was having a nightmare," he said, pressing his hand.
"They're
waiting for me," whispered Gundrabur. He looked even older than usual, a
time-wizened dwarf so frail and ancient that he was in danger of being swamped
by the sheets. He gave Balendilín a short, breathless account of his dream.
"They were right," he sighed. "I'm not going to leave this bed
alive. I wanted to die fighting Nôd’onn, or at the very least to cleave one
more orcish skull." He tried to laugh, but it came out as a choke.
"If it weren't for this confounded weakness..."
Balendilín
was in no doubt as to what had prompted Gundrabur's decline. He himself had
been sick for three orbits following their interview with Bislipur. The beer
that had been brought to them after the fourthling's departure had given Balendilín
an upset stomach and a temperature, but his constitution was sturdy enough to
withstand the shock. The elderly king was unlikely to recover.
It
had come to light that the attendant who had served the refreshments had
collided with Bislipur on his way to the hall. There was no doubt that Bislipur
had a koboldlike talent for skulduggery, but Balendilín couldn't accuse him of
anything without proof.
He won't get away with it this time. Poisoning Gundrabur's
beer is murder—murder and high treason. As soon as evidence came to
light of Bislipur's wrongdoings, Balendilín was determined to put him on trial
and execute him for his crimes. And if the fourthling didn't trip up of his own
accord, the counselor intended to help him fall.
"I
have no other heir but you, Balendilín. Be a strong leader to our folk. Serve
them better than I did."
Balendilín
dabbed at the beads of sweat on his brow. "You served the secondlings
well," he told him. "You were a good king and you still are."
Tears
welled in Gundrabur's eyes. "I should like to go to the High Pass, where I
fought my proudest battles."
"Your
Majesty, that's not wise. An excursion like that could kill you."
"If
I die, it is Vraccas's will and you shall take my place." He lifted the
bowl from his chest and sat up. "Fetch me my ax and armor," he
ordered, becoming the dwarves' stately ruler as he donned his battle dress:
leather jerkin, leather breeches, a light knee-length tunic of mail, and a
bejeweled aventail, then helmet, gloves, and armored boots. Gathering his ax,
the haft of which was as long as his legs, he hobbled to the door.
His
counselor pleaded with him to reconsider, but Gundrabur had made up his mind
and was as obstinate as any dwarf.
Together
they marched through the passageways of the stronghold, Balendilín guiding the
high king and steadying him during the frequent pauses after every flight of
steps. At length they reached the defenses built by their ancestors to keep out
the waves of invading orcs and other beasts and made their way to the highest
parapet.
Groaning
with effort, Gundrabur sat down on a ledge between two merlons. His hands and
arms were trembling and his face was covered in a sheen of perspiration, but he
was content. A light southerly wind blew in, ruffling his almost transparent
white hair, and he closed his eyes.
"I
expect you think Bislipur put something in my beer," he said. "You're
probably right. He'll go to any lengths to achieve his goals, but you'll never
defeat him by responding in kind. Don't play him at his own game, Balendilín,
or he'll drag you down to his level."
Balendilín
drew closer and looked the monarch in the eye. "What would you have me do?
Is it wrong to fight fire with fire?"
"Bislipur's
mask will slip, and when it does, you must be there to expose his duplicity.
When the truth is out, even his closest friends will turn against him, but
until then you must bide your time. If you speak too soon, the fourthlings will
accuse you of troublemaking and slander. Fires are best fought with water: It
puts out the flames without adding to the blaze." Gundrabur's cloudy eyes
settled on his heir. "Be like water, Balendilín, not for me, but for the
sake of our folks." He gazed down at the trench, surveying the bleached
bones of the countless creatures who had died there. "Not a single orc
entered our stronghold during my reign," he murmured, not without a hint
of pride. "We defended Girdlegard against Tion's minions, and now you must
protect it from the threat within."
There
was a short silence as he took in the splendor of the stronghold's defenses;
then he sniffed the air quizzically.
"Is
this your doing, my loyal friend?" he whispered gratefully. "Am I to
die in battle after all?"
At
that moment the guards on the battlements spotted the advancing beasts and
sounded the alarm. The gates of the stronghold flew open as the echoing blare
of the bugles called the dwarves to arms. Warriors left their stations at the
foot of the ramparts and streamed up the stairways to the battlements.
Balendilín
stared at the high king's countenance. He looked visibly younger. The foul
stench of the approaching orcs was fanning the flames of his inner furnace,
steadying his hands and sharpening his sight.
"Lower
the bridge," came the order from Gundrabur. He sprang to his feet. Moments
earlier, his legs had trembled under the weight of his mail, but now they bore
him with ease, and he seemed to have gained a few finger lengths in height.
"Let's see whether the orcs have learned anything about fighting over all
these cycles. I'll warrant they can't scare this old dwarf."
The
portcullis lifted, pillars rose from the base of the trench, and the first
slabs of stone were lowered to form a bridge across the trench. Already five
hundred dwarves had formed a guard around their king.
Balendilín
tried one last time to dissuade him. "I'm begging you, Gundrabur, you'll
be killed—"
The
elderly monarch patted his shoulder reassuringly, then took his hand and
gripped it firmly. "My loyal friend, I would rather die like this than
have the spirit sucked out of me by poison. Bislipur shan't have the
satisfaction of ending my life." He clasped Balendilín to him. "I
will die a glorious death, a death befitting a secondling king. History will
remember me kindly." He stepped back and looked solemnly at his counselor
and friend. "The first ten orcs that fall by my ax will be vengeance for
your arm. Farewell, Balendilín. We'll meet again in Vraccas's smithy."
With a smile, he turned and faced his troops. "Warriors of Beroïn,"
he cried, his voice traveling through the stronghold and echoing against the
rock, "let us fight together and defend our kingdom. For Ogre's Death and
Girdlegard!"
A cheer went up among the
secondling warriors who knew nothing of their monarch's illness and rejoiced to
see him fighting at their side.
We'll meet again. Balendilín felt a lump in his throat as he watched his friend stride majestically through the gates and across the bridge, shielded by the secondlings' arrows and catapults until he and his warriors were close enough to engage their orcish foes.
Balendilín didn't have long to wait
until a cry went up among the horrified warriors that Gundrabur had fallen. It
was then that he decided to ignore the late king's advice and see to it that
Bislipur died. Dwarves are no friends of water, he
thought grimly. Fire is our element.
On the fifth orbit after the high
king's passing, the taverns, quarries, and workshops of the secondling kingdom
were still closed. Thousands of dwarves from the seventeen clans of Beroïn’s
folk had gathered in the funeral hall whose vast pillars towered so high and
dwindled into the distance.
The
focal point was a stone sarcophagus, hewn by the secondlings' finest masons
and decorated with wondrous carvings commemorating Gundrabur's glorious deeds,
not least his last battle at the High Pass where the orcs had been routed.
Carved
into the lid of the coffin was a perfect likeness of the monarch in his younger
years. The marble Gundrabur was dressed in his finest armor, his right hand
clasping the haft of his ax.
Even
those at the back of the hall could see the sculpted body resting on the dais,
high above the heads of the crowd. Slender rays of sunshine slanted through
chinks in the ceiling, converging on the coffin from all points of the compass
and bathing the effigy in iridescent light.
The moment of parting has come. Balendilín ascended
the steps and stopped at the high king's feet. Kneeling down, he lowered his
head and paid his respects to the fallen monarch. Then he got up and surveyed
the secondlings for a final time before he was appointed king.
"Gundrabur
sensed the invaders before they were spotted from the watchtowers. He was
always the first to detect our enemies and preserve us from harm." As he
spoke, he found himself looking at Bislipur, who was standing with the
fourthling delegates at the edge of the crowd. Not even Gandogar's scheming
adviser could excuse himself from an occasion such as this. "Our king was
called to Vraccas before he could realize his dream of a united dwarven
assembly, but he took the first step toward creating a new and stronger union
of the folks. From this moment on, his goals will be mine, and I swear in the
name of Vraccas to complete his work before I die."
Banging
the hafts of their axes against the floor, the secondlings signaled their
approval. A low roll of thunder rumbled through the mountain.
Balendilín
was too choked with emotion to say anything further, so he walked to the head
of the coffin, kissed the brow of the marble king, bowed again, and left the
dais.
With
that, fifty dwarves hurried over and hooked long poles into the metal rings
subtly incorporated into the coffin's design. As soon as the order was given,
they lifted the coffin, carried it from the dais, and bore it silently past the
rows of dwarves, who bowed a final time as their dead monarch was taken to his
resting place in the crypt of kings.
Balendilín
walked behind the coffin. He would watch over Gundrabur's body during the long
hours of the night, ending his vigil in the morning, when he would leave the
crypt with the secondling crown. In time, he too would be laid to rest with the
rulers of his folk.
From
the corner of his eye he spotted Bislipur pushing his way to the front of the
crowd. The fourthling's gaze was fixed on him as if to read his thoughts and
divine the nature of the vengeance that Balendilín had in mind. You are right to fear me, Bislipur. Your crimes won't go
unpunished. Looking straight ahead, Balendilín didn't let on that he
had seen the brawny dwarf.
At
length the pallbearers entered the crypt of kings and placed the coffin on its
basalt stand. High above, an opening had been cut out of the mountain, allowing
the light of Girdlegard to shine on Gundrabur's marble face. The attendants
filed out of the vast crypt that housed the mortal remains of the secondling
kings, twenty-six in all.
Balendilín
walked to the far end of the vault, placed the haft of his ax on the floor, and
leaned on the ax head. His gaze fell on the sculpted countenance of his friend
and sovereign. Fare you well, Gundrabur. As the moments passed, he too became stone, insensible to the
passing of time. His eyes stared blankly at the coffin, while his mind
relinquished all thought and drifted on a sea of sorrow.
At
times it seemed to him that voices were speaking to him in ghostly whispers,
but he understood nothing of what they said.
According
to secondling legend, Vraccas would open the eternal smithy and release the
spirits of the dead kings, who would visit the prospective monarch and pass
judgment on his worth. In some cases, the heir to the throne entered the vault
and was never seen again.
Balendilín was spared such a fate.
The
next morning, tired, aching, and bleary-eyed, he left the crypt to find the
waiting dwarves exactly where he had left them many hours before. The
secondlings bowed and drummed their axes against the floor, hailing their new
king and offering him beer, bread, and ham to restore his strength.
Balendilín
took a few mouthfuls, washed them down, and ascended the dais where Gundrabur's
coffin had lain.
"I
did not seek this office," he said in a loud, clear voice. "It was my
hope that Gundrabur would reign for another hundred cycles so I could serve
him loyally, but Vraccas decided otherwise. Fourteen orcs died by Gundrabur's
ax and four arrows pierced his flesh before our king was gathered to the
eternal smithy." His gaze swept the hall. "He named me as his
successor, and so I ask you: Will you have me as your king?"
The
crowd chorused a resounding "aye," wooden hafts pounded the stone,
and Balendilín realized with a rush of emotion that the secondlings were
chanting his name.
"Beroïn’s
folk has chosen. Let us never forget Gundrabur or his dream of uniting our
kin. It is our shared duty, irrespective of clan or folk, to defend Girdlegard
against all harm." His eyes sought Bislipur and found him where he had
been standing before. "Join me," he said, extending his hand.
The
startled Bislipur limped up the steps to the dais and greeted the new monarch
with a nod. His cold brown eyes stared at him uncertainly.
"The
death of Gundrabur has robbed our folks of their high king. The succession will
not be decided until the fifth and final challenge is complete. As I'm sure you
know, Bislipur and I have not seen eye to eye, but I cannot allow a rift to
open between our folks. Friendship must not be turned to enmity, which is why I
solemnly swear to put aside our differences until one or the other of the
candidates has returned." He drew himself up to his full height.
"When dwarf fights dwarf, only our enemies stand to gain. The new high
king will set our course and we will obey his orders and submit to his
will." Balendilín held out his hand to Bislipur. "Let us shake on
it."
His
antagonist had no choice but to comply. To Balendilín's astonishment, he seemed
neither angry nor resentful.
"I
swear that neither of us will promote our separate causes until the new high
king has returned," he promised, choosing his words with care. "We
may disagree on certain matters, but we share a common enemy: evil in all its
forms. As dwarves, we are committed to wiping out evil wherever it occurs and
we shall not tire in our duty."
A
loud cheer went up as the pair shook hands and looked each other in the eye. No
one could tell that their gazes were locked in an oath of eternal enmity.
"As
a sign of my good faith, I should like to suggest that we begin our crusade
against evil this very moment," announced Bislipur. "Will we stand by
while orcs murder and pillage before the gates of this stronghold?" He
turned to the crowd and raised his voice to a rallying shout. "We must
clear Ogre's Death of this plague!"
On
hearing the cheers, he knew he had judged the mood right. "My messenger is
heading through the tunnels to the fourthling kingdom, as I speak. He will
return with five thousand of our finest warriors," he proclaimed to the
astonished Balendilín and the crowd. "Together the dwarves of Beroïn and Goïmdil
will chase the orcs from these gates. United our folks will prevail!" He
threw up his arms and brandished his double-bladed ax, dazzling the dwarves
with reflected light. "This is our chance to realize Gundrabur's dream of
a common dwarven army!"
The
cheering redoubled and the mountain shook with the drumming of axes.
Balendilín bore the
treachery smilingly and gazed intently into Bislipur's hard face.
You don't fool me, you devious bastard. Are the warriors meant for your
protection, or are you after the high king's throne? Would you stage a coup so
you can have your elven war?
Bislipur stared back, his cold eyes boring into him mercilessly. "May the hunt begin, King Balendilín," he said, descending from the dais. Balendilín was left to wonder who the quarry might be.
Enchanted Realm of Oremaira,
Girdlegard,
Late Autumn, 6234th Solar Cycle
The following morning, after a cold night
that heralded the coming of winter, they loaded the ingots onto the ponies and
headed west. The smoke had cleared above the deserted streets of Mifurdania and
tiny black dots lay unmoving at the foot of the settlement's walls. Every dot
was a corpse and they covered the area in a sea of black.
Tungdil hated Nôd’onn
and the orcs more violently than ever. First Goodwater, then Greenglade,
and now Mifurdania and all the other villages, hamlets, and farms: Half of
Girdlegard has been razed to the ground. He spotted a cloud of dust on the horizon: The army
of orcs was heading northwest. I'll do whatever it takes, he promised himself.
Much
to the dwarves' disgust, their provisions for the journey consisted almost
entirely of bread and dried fruit, which they were forced to eat for want of
anything else. In their haste to leave Mifurdania, they had forgotten to stock
up on victuals and no one was inclined to venture back. They were all the more
grateful when Goïmgar found a few wild mushrooms, even though they had to eat
them raw.
"Do
you really mean to take them with us?" asked Boïndil, casting a quick look
over his shoulder at Rodario and his companions, who were bringing up the rear.
"We'll
decide when we get to the tunnel," said Tungdil.
"It's
eighty miles to the next entrance, and if we can't find it, we'll continue on
foot."
"On
foot? Can't you buy us each a pony?" demanded Goïmgar.
Boïndil
harrumphed. "A bit of exercise might be just the thing for your puny
little legs. It's time you pulled yourself together and started acting like a
dwarf. Even the female long-un is tougher than you."
After
two orbits of marching in the pouring rain, they reached a low-lying area
bounded to the north by imposing mountains—the Sovereign Stones, as they were
labeled on the map. Nestled in the foothills was the human settlement of
Sovereignston, which Tungdil remembered was famous for its wealth. It was the
fashionable place for Weyurn's gentry to build their palatial villas and
stately homes. The attraction was not so much the mountain air, but the
prestige to be gained by living there—and of course, the social whirl.
"We'll
stay only long enough to buy some ponies," Tungdil told his companions on
approaching the gates. "It'll be cheaper and safer to look for provisions
and ponies in the poorer parts of town. We'll leave the rich folk and their
villas well alone."
"What
a terrible pity," said Rodario in an exaggeratedly aristocratic voice.
"It seems churlish not to visit our wealthy neighbors after living on
their doorstep all this time." He was relieved to see that the solid city
walls were lined with armed guards: The orcs would never be able to get hold of
them once they passed through the gates. He turned to his companions excitedly.
"Why don't we put on a play? Nothing long or complicated—just a short,
impromptu performance. We'd earn enough bronze coins to fill our bags with
victuals and keep the proverbial wolf from the door."
"Can't
you speak normally for a change?" growled Boïndil, scratching his stubbly
cheeks, which were long overdue for a shave.
"I
shall speak in whichever way I choose, master dwarf," the actor said
huffily. "Some people are blessed with communicative talents beyond the
level of primitive grunts, burps, and growls. I don't see why I should disguise
the magnificence of my education when you do nothing to hide the paucity of
yours."
"Fine,"
Boïndil muttered malevolently. "We'll see how far your fine words get you
when we meet a pack of orcs."
His
brother changed the subject by asking how the impresario had breathed fire at
the bögnilim.
Rodario
beamed. "You can thank Furgas for that. The trick is to fill a tube with
lycopodium spores, put on the dragon mask, and blow through the tube. The spores
pass over a burning wick at the mouth of the mask, and the monster spews
fire." He rolled up his sleeves. "I use a smaller version when I'm
playing the magus. The tube runs down my forearm, connecting a leather purse of
spores at my elbow with a miniature tinderbox just inside my cuff." He
held up his arm and gestured expansively to demonstrate the technique. "I
squeeze the purse like so, and the seeds shoot down the tube. Meanwhile, the
pressure on the pouch activates a cord that pulls the flint backward and
produces a spark. Presto, the seeds are ignited as they exit my sleeve!"
His hands mimicked the flight of a fireball. "So there you have it: a
magic trick for magic flames."
Boëndal,
who had been following the explanation carefully, shot Furgas an admiring
look. "An ingenious invention!" The prop master accepted the
compliment with a nod.
They
joined the back of a queue of wagons and carriages owned by Mifurdanians and
merchants who had fled the unfortunate city.
Sentries
were checking the vehicles, noting exactly what they were carrying, and
demanding a toll. No distinction was made between farmers, traders, and other
travelers, so the city of Sovereignston made a considerable profit from the
dwarves. Not only that, but as visitors to the kingdom of Weyurn, Tungdil and
the others were restricted to the poorest districts of the city and given the
address of a boarding-house in which they were required to stay.
Thus
constrained, they trudged up a narrow street and turned into a passageway that
was barely wide enough for single file. Both sides of the alley were crammed
with timber houses whose upper stories jutted out dangerously, almost meeting
overhead. The uneven cobblestones never saw daylight. All in all, it wasn't
dissimilar to an underground gallery, except for the stench of sewage and
detritus. Mounted on one of the bulging walls was a sign showing a prancing
pony; they had found their address.
With
a shudder of disgust, Rodario searched the pockets of his rain-drenched coat,
pulled out a handkerchief, and pressed it to his mouth and nose.
"With
all due respect," he said firmly, "nothing could induce me to sleep
in such a hovel." It was evident from their expressions that Furgas and
Narmora felt the same. "Fortunately, I have a solution to our dilemma. My
companions and I will spend the night in more salubrious accommodations, and
we'll meet you tomorrow morning at the gates. You'll have time to buy your
ponies and so forth, and we'll find a venue and put on a play. How does that
sound?"
The
suggestion was greeted enthusiastically by Boïndil, who was tired of the
actor's voice.
Rodario
didn't wait for further permission, but strode away at once, his vibrant robes
flapping around his legs. There was no denying that he looked like a nobleman,
but the duffel bag rather ruined the effect. Furgas and Narmora followed him
down the alleyway, boots squelching as they trudged through the foul-smelling
mud.
"To
be honest with you, I think they've got a point," ventured Goïmgar,
peering after them regretfully. "I don't much like the look of it
either."
"We
were told to stay here," Boëndal reminded him, steering the ponies into
the barn while the others made for the door. "I'll see to the ponies and
keep an eye on the ingots. They'll be safer in the stables, I'll warrant. I'll
sound my horn if I need you."
"Very
well. I'll order you some food," Tungdil promised. He pushed open the door
and stepped into an impenetrable fog of smoke. Quite apart from the cloud of
tobacco, it was evident that the chimney needed a thorough sweep. They made
their way through the crowd of drinkers, sat down at a table by the fire, and
stretched their soggy boots toward the flames.
"At
least we won't be sleeping outside again," said Goïmgar, softening.
"I can't stand the rain." The others nodded in silent agreement:
None of them were accustomed to coming into contact with water unless they
chose to—which was seldom enough. "If only it were a bit more homely..."
Tungdil
was happy to forgo all other comforts, provided that the roof didn't leak. The
heat from the fire was beginning to dry his leather garments, and he closed
his eyes with a contented sigh. Soon the conversation faded to an indistinct
hum as he gave into his tiredness and dozed. He woke when the publican arrived
with a tray of food and beer ordered by Bavragor. "Do you have a room for
us? We're not fussy, so long as it's warm and dry."
The
man nodded. "Come this way." The dwarves grabbed their packs, picked
up their plates and tankards, and filed out behind him. They weren't sorry to
be leaving the other drinkers, whose demeanor failed to inspire much trust.
The
chamber to which the publican led them was a garret room with a chimneybreast
at one end. The warmth exuding from the brickwork was enough to heat the whole
room. "Another beer for the gentleman?" Bavragor accepted with a nod.
They
hung their clothes to dry on a rope around the chimney, then Boïndil, wearing
nothing but chain mail and breeches, left the chamber to take his turn in the
stables.
Tungdil
waited until Boëndal had joined them, then took off his boots, stood them next
to the chimneybreast, and climbed into a little bed. "Time for an
afternoon nap," he told the others, pulling up the sheets. "I'll go
into town and ask about the firstlings later. It would be good to know what to
expect."
"It's
been such a long time since anyone heard from them," said Bavragor,
shaking his tankard and gazing at the swirling beer. "What if something's
happened to them?"
"I
expect they're just loners like you," Boëndal teased him. He stripped to
his chain mail and underwear and climbed into bed.
The
mason finished his beer, burped, and polished off the leftovers of Boëndal's
meal. "I'd really like to meet them," he admitted. "I've been
asking Vraccas to keep them safe." He fell silent and stuffed his pipe
with tobacco.
Tungdil
was staring at the beams overhead. The fine cracks in the paint reminded him of
the way the älf's face had fractured. "He knew my name."
"What's
that, scholar?" Boëndal asked drowsily.
"The
älf knew my name." He reached for the head scarf that Frala had given to
him. There was something soothing and reassuring about the cloth. "They
know more about me than I thought," he said uneasily.
"The
most powerful of Tion's creatures are frightened of a dwarf," observed
Bavragor with a low chuckle. He lit his pipe, filling the chamber with the
smell of tobacco spiced with a hint of brandy. It was surprisingly pleasant.
"That's the way we like it."
Goïmgar
glanced over at Tungdil. "I don't blame you for being concerned," he
said with feeling. "I wouldn't want to be chased by a band of älfar who
know exactly who I am."
"Yes,
but that's because you're a coward." The insult left Bavragor's lips before
he had time to consider.
"If
you haven't got anything useful to say, you may as well go to bed,"
Tungdil told him sharply. They won't give each other
a chance.
He
saw Goïmgar look at him, then pick up his sword and shield and take up position
on his bed, keeping a careful eye on the window and the door.
Tungdil couldn't be sure whether the artisan was sitting watch for himself or the others. He was still considering the matter when he fell asleep.
It was dark
outside when Tungdil opened his eyes.
His boots
and clothes were drier than they had been in ages. No one else was awake, not
even Goïmgar, who was snoring with his head lolling back against the wall. From
the nose down, there was nothing to be seen of him except for his shield.
It
seemed a good time to get on with procuring the ponies and provisions, so
Tungdil pulled on his warm clothes and dry boots, slipped into his mail tunic,
and jammed his ax into his belt. At the last moment he decided to leave the
sigurdaisy wood behind for safekeeping; then he left the chamber and went down
to the bar, stopping to tell the publican that he'd be back in a couple of
hours. He stepped outside.
The
rain was still falling in torrents. A cold, malodorous wind gusted through the
narrow streets. Nothing in his surroundings hinted at the opulence of the
dwellings that graced the city's upper slopes. It's
all very well for the rich folks in their mansions, high above the slums,
he thought to himself. Everyone down here is forced
to look up at them, not knowing whether to hate them or admire them for their
wealth.
He
had several run-ins with particularly persistent beggars and on one occasion he
was chased by a pair of aging harlots who demanded to know if certain parts of
his anatomy were as small and hairy as the rest.
Tungdil
ignored them because they offended his romantic sensibilities. His idea of love
was gleaned from fiction and from Frala and her husband. He stroked his lucky
scarf and tried to picture her in his mind. Knowing that he would never see her
or her children again was even harder to deal with than the death of Lot-Ionan.
He would have done everything in his power to be a good guardian to Sunja and
Ikana.
The
incessant rain, gray skies, and general squalor of Sovereignston did nothing
to improve his mood. He had to walk for what seemed like hours before he found
a dealer who sold ponies, and even then he was instructed to call back the next
morning. His next stop was a grocery store, where he bought provisions for the
journey and succumbed to the temptation of buying a cake. He hadn't felt hungry
until he saw it, but the mixture had risen perfectly to form a soft brown
crust. The cinnamon streusel topping had melted in places, and delectable
golden clumps nestled alongside rum-soaked raisins and sunken slices of fruit.
Tungdil took a deep breath and bought the whole cake to share with the others,
trusting to the baker to brighten his mood.
In
the dark he set off through the streets, carrying his well-wrapped cake and
other purchases. Mud and detritus clung to his boots, making them squelch
unpleasantly. Not all the streets were properly cobbled, and parts of the
waterlogged city were no better than mud slicks. Why
would anyone want to live in this godforsaken place?
It
was inevitable that he would fall over, and fall over he did. He stepped on a
soggy pile of horse dung, skidded on his right leg, and stumbled, reaching down
with one hand to save his clothes from the worst of the muck. Somehow or other
he managed not to drop the cake. Underground vaults
and strongholds are a thousand times better than this.
His
thoughts were cut short by a sudden gust of wind. Something whizzed to the left
of his head, grazing his ear. Whatever it was, it was painful, and he yelped in
surprise, reaching up to touch his neck. Warm blood trickled over his fingers.
Turning
sharply, he whipped out his ax. "If you think you can part me from my
money or my cake—" The threat was left unfinished. They've found us.
Waiting
at the other end of the alleyway was the älf from Mifurdania who had tried to
slit his throat. His cloak was fluttering in the stinking wind. He nocked a
second arrow to his imposing bow and drew back his hand to release it.
At
precisely that moment,' Tungdil was bowled over by something that charged
toward him from the side. All he saw was a flash of violet light and a mask of
gleaming silver before he was hit with such force that he soared through the
air and landed in the next passageway, skidding four paces and cutting a
channel through the mud.
What on... Head spinning, he rolled onto his back
and held his ax at the ready, bracing himself for the älf to find him and kill
him. Nothing happened. Groaning, he stumbled to his feet. Every link in his
mail shirt was oozing thick black mud. He looked dirtier than a pig that had
been rolling in the muck.
He
peered around the corner warily. His cake was lying where he had dropped it,
but the alley was deserted and his footprints had been washed away by the
driving rain. The only evidence of the disturbance was a black arrow and a
strange yellow fluid that formed a garish trail through the puddles and the
mud.
Tungdil's
earlobe was throbbing. Why didn't the älf kill me?
Did someone stop him? His body felt as if he'd collided with a wall. He
tried to recall what had happened. If I didn't know
better, I'd think Djerůn had...
He
gave up on the idea and bade a mournful farewell to the cake, then hurried
through the streets, keeping an eye out for any älfar who might be on his tail.
On reaching the tavern, he raced upstairs and burst into their chamber to find Boëndal
on the point of going out.
"Hello,
scholar. Is everything all right?"
"Not
exactly," said Tungdil, telling him quickly of the älf's ambush and his
miraculous escape.
"The
sooner we leave Sovereignston the better." Boëndal frowned in concern.
"What possessed you to go wandering through the city on your own? An ax
and a bit of learning aren't enough to protect you in a place like this."
He thought for a moment. "If you ask me, it's not just the sigurdaisy wood
they're after. Nôd’onn wants us dead because we know his secret." He woke
Bavragor and Goïmgar to tell them what had happened, then went to join his
brother in the stables. There would be no more sleep for any of them that
night.
What if it was Djerůn after all? Tungdil dismissed the idea. The armored giant and the maga were miles away in the Outer Lands.
At first light, the three players were
waiting at the gates as agreed. Narmora was wearing a leather cape and the red
head scarf that she never seemed to be without; and Furgas had put on a long coat
to keep himself as dry as possible while the downpour showed no sign of letting
up. The impresario seemed to have dressed in a hurry and was scanning the
crowds nervously.
The dwarves rolled up with their
ponies and provisions.
"What's
wrong?" Boïndil asked Rodario. "Are the älfar about?"
"It's
not älfar he's worried about," replied Furgas. His tone implied that he
had witnessed the scene before. "After last night's performance, he put on
a private showing for the innkeeper's daughter and his wife."
"Shush!
Do you want me hounded out of town?" hissed Rodario, glancing back and
forth on the lookout for angry faces. "They told me they were
separated!"
"There's
always an excuse," Narmora said cynically. "It's a pity their
cuckolded husbands won't believe you."
Boïndil whinnied with laughter. "The innkeeper's wife and his daughter?"
"Thirty-four
cycles the one, and sixteen the other: spring and summer in one bed, with me,
the king of seasons," he bragged.
Narmora
was unimpressed. "I'd say you're more of a wanton farmer who can't help
plowing foreign fields. For the most part, they accept your attentions because
they're neglected by their own farmers—or because they pity a man with such a
miniscule plowshare."
Rodario
stopped searching the crowd and focused on sparring with Narmora. "My
dear lady, I understand your fascination with my mighty apparatus, but I'm
most discerning about my choice of fields. Stony meadows give you bruises; they
may appeal to some laborers, but not to me." He flashed a smile at Furgas,
then remembered what Boïndil had asked him. "Älfar, did you say?" he
inquired with sudden seriousness. "Right here in Sovereignston? Why
didn't you—"
"That's
him!" the shout went up. "That's the scoundrel!" Rodario spotted
the approaching pitchfork and fled. In no time he was through the gates and
wending his way nimbly among the queuing carts. A moment later four men rushed
past in hot pursuit.
Bavragor
and Boïndil fell about laughing, Boëndal shook his head silently, and Goïmgar
clung to his shield, ready to take shelter in case the long-uns gave up on the
adulterer and took their anger out on him.
But
the cuckolded husbands and their friends were intent on apprehending Rodario,
who had successfully evaded them, leaving his pursuers searching furiously in
the rain.
The
rest of the company left Sovereignston in a more dignified fashion.
"Älfar?"
said Narmora, returning to the initial question. "Where?"
"Yesterday
in the city. I was attacked by one. You didn't see any, then?" Tungdil
couldn't help feeling a mild aversion toward the actress, perhaps because of
her elven looks. She's an ordinary woman, he
told himself. That's all.
She
shook her head. "They left us alone. At least we're forewarned." She
laid her right hand on Crescent.
About
a mile from Sovereignston they were reunited with the philandering impresario,
who was waiting under a fir tree and trying to shelter from the rain.
Bavragor
couldn't help laughing. "I hope they were worth it!"
"Indeed
they were." A look of delectation came over Rodario's face. "I
suspect I wasn't the first to enjoy their combined attentions, but they
certainly knew how to please." Realizing that the ponies were getting away
from him, he sped up to a jog. "That's all in the past now. Come, my loyal
companions, let's make haste to the firstling kingdom where unparalleled
wonders await us!" His stirring words were somewhat spoiled by the
squelching beneath his feet, but he still cut a dash as an adventurer.
Tungdil's
memories of Sovereignston weren't nearly as fond. He picked up the pace,
unmoved by the city's fluttering pennants and colorful panorama of tiled
roofs. Nothing could induce him to look back. Hurrying away from the pride of
Weyurn, he tried not to think of the älf's murderous eyes.
I hope my mysterious rescuer killed him.
III
Kingdom of Weyurn, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
As soon as the opportunity arose, the
travelers purchased a small cart for their baggage and a pair of horses—one for
Rodario and the other for Narmora and Furgas. From then on, the journey
westward proceeded considerably faster, not to mention more comfortably.
Rodario,
fearing the wrath of the cuckolded husbands, was especially keen to make
progress—although it didn't deter him from using his charm and eloquence to
make a string of conquests on the way.
A
fierce northerly brought with it the season's first snowstorm, the white
flakes settling on the frozen ground to form a thick icy layer. Winter seemed
to descend on the land and its inhabitants faster and more vigorously than usual.
Sleeping in the open was too dangerous, so the company camped out in places
where they would be sheltered from the elements, under trees or rocky
overhangs, or in derelict houses or ruined forts.
The
vast lakes that made up three-quarters of Weyurn's surface were covered in ice.
The sun and clouds played on the frozen water, creating glorious displays of
shadow and light, but the glittering spectacle could do nothing to win over the
twins, who were too afraid of the icy depths to go fishing with Rodario and
Furgas.
"Ice
is just as dangerous as water," Boïndil told them. He set about making a
fire in the ruined temple where they were camping for the night. "It looks
so pretty that you forget to be careful, and then whoa, you find yourself
sinking to the bottom, never to be seen again."
"It's
like marriage," observed Rodario. "Women tempt you into their arms
and before you know it, you're trapped for life. I'm more of the type
for—"
"Bedding
other people's wives. Not to mention being beaten by angry husbands and dying
of the clap," Narmora finished for him.
"Still
jealous, I see," he riposted, flashing her a dazzling smile as he hurried
after Furgas, who was heading for a nearby stream.
Boïndil
chuckled. "My old billy goat was a bit like Rodario. He mounted anything
that stayed still for two seconds."
"What became
of him?"
"The
old lecher jumped on a nanny goat and didn't notice that she was grazing near a
cliff. He plummeted to his death." He ran a razor over his cheeks to get
rid of the stubble that was drawing attention away from his magnificent beard.
"In
other words, Rodario will get his comeuppance by falling out of bed and
breaking his neck," said Tungdil, grinning.
"Who
said anything about a bed? It might be the window!" Boëndal pointed out.
His
brother hooted with laughter. "What a sight!" He scrambled along a
fallen column that was propped up amid the ruins and came to a halt at the top
end where he could see for miles around. He took a seat and lit his pipe. Boëndal
tossed him his share of the food. "It would serve the old prattler
right," chuckled Boïndil, turning his attention hungrily to the cheese.
Goïmgar,
wrapped in two blankets with his shield laid across him like a third, had said
nothing for some time. Eyes closed, he seemed to be asleep.
The
temple's moss-covered walls were alive with flickering shadows. Over the
cycles, the frescoes had faded and there were holes in the crumbling plaster.
Not that the dwarves would have recognized the painted deities anyway: To their
minds, there was only one god and that was Vraccas. The rest weren't worth the
time of day.
The
warmth from the blazing fire spread rapidly, casting a soft light throughout
the temple and making the timeworn sculptures seem strangely alive.
Tungdil
found himself thinking of the performance in the Curiosum. He still couldn't
decide how much of what he had seen had been acted by the players and how much
had unfolded in his mind. It all seemed so real.
Muttering
to himself, Bavragor returned from his tour of the ruins. "Not bad," was
his verdict on the masonry, "but not worthy of us dwarves."
Tungdil
offered him some bread and ham. "Do you mind if I ask you something?"
Bavragor accepted
the food. "Sounds ominous."
"It's
been playing on my mind. You know the business with your sister..."
"Smeralda."
Bavragor placed the sandwich on a stone to warm the bread and bring out the
flavor of the meat. He took a long slug of brandy before continuing and said
bitterly, "I can't forgive him for what he did."
Tungdil
didn't press him. He had a feeling that Bavragor was ready to open up to him,
and after a while the mason cleared his throat.
"She
was a slip of a thing, a lass of forty cycles, but as soon as he clapped eyes
on her, he wanted her for himself. She was as much of a warrior as he was, and
she trained like a demon because she wanted to be able to fight by his
side." He clenched his fists as the memories flooded back. "The rest
of us were worried about his fiery spirit, and we begged her to stay away.
Smeralda wouldn't listen, and everything went on as before. The two of them
were fighting a band of orcs when he..." He broke off, covering his good
eye with one hand and raising his pouch to his mouth with the other. "He
killed her, Tungdil. He was so far gone in bloodlust that he took her for an orc."
Tungdil pushed
back the lump in his throat and blinked.
"An
orc! Afterward they said it was a tragedy and a terrible accident and he
swears he can't remember a thing, but I couldn't care less: My sister died
because of him. I don't know if you could forgive him, but I don't intend
to."
Tungdil
knew there was nothing he could say. The story was unspeakably sad. He laid a
hand on Bavragor's arm. "I'm sorry I put you through it again," he
said simply.
Listening
to the mason had brought back the pain of losing Lot-Ionan and Frala, who had
been like a sister to him. I can almost understand
how he feels.
"So
now you know," sighed Bavragor, taking a deep breath and flushing away the
memories with a long draft of brandy. His ham sandwich lay untouched and
forgotten by the fire.
Tungdil
looked up and glanced at Boïndil, who was guarding the camp from his lookout
on the fallen pillar and puffing on his pipe. Blue smoke rings wafted into the
darkness, rising through the falling flakes, and Tungdil thought for a moment
that he could hear the hiss of hot tobacco on snow.
"The
fieriness of his inner furnace is a curse," Boëndal said sadly. "He
still can't remember what happened on the bridge. All he knows is that Smeralda
was lying dead at his feet and he thought the orcs had killed her. When
Bavragor and the others told him that she'd died by his axes..."
"Weren't you
with him?"
"I
wish I had been. I keep telling myself that if I hadn't been injured, I might
have stopped him before it was too late." He scratched at a rusty patch on
his chain mail and oiled the corroded links. "He calls out to her in his
sleep sometimes. Trust me, scholar, he suffers just as much as Bavragor, but
he'd never admit it."
Boëndal
filled his pipe and they took turns smoking, each pursuing his thoughts.
Tungdil looked out of the crumbling window and saw that the snow was falling
faster than before.
A
pair of snowmen appeared in the doorway: Furgas and Rodario were back from
fishing. The prop master had caught two fully grown carp, but the impresario
was clutching a single, insubstantial tench.
"A
god among plowmen, but a terrible fisherman," commented Bavragor, hoping
that a bit of banter would dispel his gloomy thoughts.
Rodario
didn't rise to the taunt. "What's the use of being a god when the mortals
forsake you?" He pointed to the crumbling, damp-ridden frescoes.
"Deities need lesser beings to adore them, or they fade and die. They lose
their purpose; there's no reason for them to exist."
"Vraccas
doesn't need a purpose," Boëndal told him firmly. "He created himself
because it suited him, not because of anyone else."
"I'm
familiar with the creation myths, thank you, and I certainly don't need any
sermons from you." The impresario turned his attention to filleting his
fish. "We used to perform them on stage—very successfully, I might tell
you. It's true what they say: Old stories are always the best, although in the
present circumstances our play about Nôd’onn seems to strike a chord."
That
was Tungdil's cue to ask him about the theatrical effects he had witnessed in the
Curiosum. Ever since the performance he had been longing to find out how they
made the illusions seem so real.
"You're
interested in how we did it?" Rodario pointed his scaly knife at Furgas.
"Ask the expert."
While
the impresario continued to hack away at the unfortunate tench, Furgas
finished gutting the first carp and started on the second. "I know a fair
bit about alchemy. That's how we make the smoke, for example. Thick smoke,
wispy smoke, red smoke, black smoke, whatever we need. The science of the
elements is fascinating."
Alchemy
was one of the subjects taught by Lot-Ionan at the school and Tungdil was
familiar with some of the chemicals, having fetched and carried them often
enough. "But how did you extinguish all the lamps at once?"
"Magic,"
Rodario whispered, trying to look enigmatic. "You thought Nôd’onn was the
only magus left in Girdlegard, didn't you?" He leaned over to Tungdil,
fiddled with his ear, and pulled out a gold coin. "What do you say to that?"
"Thank
you," said Tungdil, snatching up the coin. He tested it with his teeth and
knew at once that he'd been had. "Gold-plated lead," he reported.
"And not even good-quality gold." He tossed back the coin. "Your
magic's not up to much."
"He's
a conjurer, not a magus," laughed Boëndal, pointing at the impresario with
the stem of his pipe.
Rodario
wagged a finger at him. "But the audience falls for it, and that's what
counts. Why, even the ugly little bögnilim were tricked by my art, and that, my
friends, is what's known as success."
"So
it's all a case of conjuring, illusion, and alchemy," said Tungdil,
summing up.
Furgas
nodded. "And makeup," he added, glancing at his slender mistress.
"Makeup convinces the eye of what it otherwise only suspects. It turns
Narmora into an älf and sends the youngsters screaming to their parents."
He laughed. "That's when we know that we're doing something right."
"Just
be thankful it was Tungdil and not our lunatic ax man who visited your
theater," Bavragor said darkly. "He would have stormed the
stage."
"Poor
Narmora," Boëndal murmured unthinkingly. "Even without makeup she
looks remarkably like an elf. Nature can be cruel sometimes."
The
comment prompted smiles from Furgas and Rodario, but Narmora shot the startled
secondling a murderous look. Tungdil and Bavragor fell about laughing, thereby
waking Goïmgar, who peered nervously over his shield.
"Oh,"
said Boëndal, embarrassed. "That came out all wrong. I didn't mean it that
way," he apologized.
"Are
you sure I look like an elf, not an älf?" Narmora said threateningly. Her
eyes, so dark they were almost black, glowered at him angrily. "I hope
none of you get a nasty shock tonight..." She stood up, straightened her
head scarf, and left the ruined temple. Her silhouette melted into the
darkness.
"Ye
gods, she's a natural," Rodario gushed. "Doesn't she play the role to
perfection? Of course, I've no intention of telling her. She'd only demand a
raise." He looked excitedly at the others for confirmation, and the
dwarves concurred with mute nods. Boëndal was genuinely perturbed about what
might befall him when he fell asleep that night.
The
men finished filleting their catch and soon there was a smell of roasted fish.
They all tucked in hungrily.
"There's
one thing I don't understand," Tungdil said to Furgas. "How did you
make the set? Everything—the woods, the palace... It looked so real."
"Can you keep a secret?"
"Of
course!"
"Do I have
your word?"
"Absolutely!"
"Swear by
the blade of your ax."
Tungdil swore
himself to absolute secrecy.
"Magic," announced
Furgas with a mischievous grin. He smoothed his mustache.
"Uh-huh," sighed Tungdil, kicking himself for falling for the routine.
Boëndal sat up with a jolt and stifled
a scream. For all the shock of being woken, he was glad to have escaped the
visions that had plagued his sleep.
His
relief was short-lived. On reaching for his crow's beak, he was alarmed to
discover that the weapon was gone. Slender fingers encircled his wrist.
He
rolled over to find himself staring into the cruel, lean face of an älf. Clad
in full armor, she was crouched beside him, studying him with cold, dark eyes. I'm still dreaming, he told himself frantically. It can't be...
"Let
that be a lesson to you," he heard her hiss menacingly, just as his
eyelids grew impossibly heavy and he drifted off to sleep.
When
he woke for the second time, he leaped up, spluttering and gasping, and
whirled round to face the threat. This time his crow's beak was in its proper
place and he snatched it up hastily.
The
players were asleep: Narmora in Furgas's arms, and Rodario, head resting in a
pile of discarded fish skin, nestled beside the dying fire.
Boëndal
studied them carefully. It didn't look as
though they were playing a joke on him. Heart still pounding, he recovered some
of his composure and vowed never to offend the actress again.
It
occurred to him that Goïmgar was supposed to be keeping watch for them, but the
lookout post was empty and the sentry had vanished. The horses and ponies were
all safely tethered, but a trail of footprints led away from the door.
Surely he's not daft enough to run away in a snowstorm? Boëndal
took a few steps outside and was almost knocked over by a flurry of snowflakes
that seemed intent on laying him out. Suddenly he spotted a figure crumpled in
the snow.
"Goïmgar!"
Boëndal rushed over but the artisan didn't respond. Blood was trickling from a
narrow gash in his head. Boëndal carried him into the ruined temple, laid him
next to the fire, and threw on a couple of extra logs.
"I..."
Goïmgar teeth were chattering furiously. "I slipped."
Boëndal
covered him with two blankets. He can't even pee
without getting himself in a fix. Tactfully, he refrained from comment: Goïmgar
had humiliated himself sufficiently already. Why Tungdil had picked the
troublesome artisan was beyond him, especially with four perfectly acceptable
diamond cutters to choose from. Vraccas is bound to
have his reasons, he thought philosophically, as the bundle of misery
slowly began to thaw. His beard, hair, and eyebrows were streaming with icy
water.
Boëndal
leaned over to talk to him. "Were you trying to get yourself killed out
there?"
"No,"
came the eventual reply.
"Be
more careful in the future. We need you for our mission."
"You
mean the impostor needs me to help him steal
the throne," the shivering artisan muttered darkly.
Boëndal
didn't bother to reply: The fourthling still hadn't grasped that more was at
stake than the succession, despite Tungdil's
well-meaning attempts to set him straight. How can anyone be so obtuse?
Everything depends on the success of our mission, but he's too stubborn to see
it.
Goïmgar
stopped shivering and stared straight past him toward the rear of the temple,
where the marble gods were grouped. He gulped. "How many?" he
whispered.
"I beg your pardon?"
"How many
statues were here when we arrived?"
Boëndal
thought for a moment. "Seven. Four big ones and three small ones."
Goïmgar
closed his eyes. "There are eight of them," he hissed. "Five big
ones. What are we going to do?"
"Which
one wasn't there before?" Boëndal's fingers were already wrapped round the
haft of his crow's beak. He tensed his muscles.
"The third
from the right."
"Fine.
I'll go in for the attack and shout to wake the others. Meanwhile, you grab
your shield and back me up until Boïndil takes over."
"Me?"
"Who else am
I supposed to ask?"
Before
Goïmgar could protest, the crow's beak swung up in a half circle, its long tip
speeding toward the area just above the hips where there were no bones to slow
its path. The wound would be deep and deadly. Like a miniature pennant, Boëndal's
plait traced the weapon's movement in the air.
"For
Vraccas!" he bellowed.
The
statue shattered under the force of the blow, the crow's beak smashing through
the crumbling stone and dashing it to pieces. The damage to the deity, carved
lovingly by humans, was absolute and irrevocable.
"Sorry,"
Goïmgar said contritely, "I meant third from my
right." By then it was too late.
The
hitherto inanimate statue suddenly came to life. Its eyes glowed lilac beneath
its visor.
"Of
all the dumb mistakes..." Boëndal swore under his breath and made to
strike again.
His
titanic adversary had other ideas. Moving with a speed that belied its size,
the statue seized the dwarf's forearms in its enormous hands and lifted him
clean into the air. Boëndal found himself dangling two paces above the ground.
His weapon clattered to the cracked marble floor.
His
brother was on his feet already. "Let go of him!" Whipping out his
axes, he was about to launch himself on his colossal opponent when he was
blinded by a flash of light. The glare was so bright that he had to look away.
"That's
enough, Boïndil," commanded a distinctive female voice. The glare softened
to a weak glow, allowing them all to see.
The
speaker emerged from behind the remaining statues and joined the giant's side.
Her crimson cloak was streaked with melting snow and she was holding a glowing
sphere. "You can put Boëndal down now, Djerůn. I think they know who
we are."
"Andôkai!"
cried Tungdil in astonishment, lowering his ax. "You're back!"
She threw back her hood to show
them her face.
"Andôkai?
Andôkai the maga of Brandôkai? Andôkai the Tempestuous?" inquired Rodario.
He didn't seem to notice that his cheeks were covered in fish scales and that
he was scarcely looking his best. "Isn't she supposed to be dead?" He
stared at her brazenly. "Confound it, you're right!" He turned to
Furgas and Narmora. "Andôkai's alive. We'll have to rewrite the
play."
"What
play?" Slipping the globe inside her cloak, the maga strode to the fire
and warmed her hands. Djerůn lowered Boëndal to the floor. "What's he
talking about? Who is he, anyway?"
"An
impresario," Tungdil said apologetically. It took all his self-control not
to bombard her with questions.
"I
see. I've been immortalized in a play already, have I? I hope the actress is
suitably—"
Rodario
was about to launch into a flattering explanation when Boëndal rounded on the
maga.
"What
the blazes was your giant up to? How was I supposed to know he was spying on
us? I could have killed him!"
"He
wasn't spying; he was guarding your camp. And no, there was never any danger of
you killing him," she informed him in a condescending tone. She took off
her cloak to allow the warmth to penetrate her other clothes. Underneath she
was wearing full armor, thick winter garments, and a sword. She was
broad-shouldered by nature, and the layers only added to her bulk. "He was
here at my request to protect you from the älfar. They've been following you
since Mifurdania."
"I knew they were hunting us," wailed Goïmgar.
Boïndil
laughed. "I'd rather die in a fight with the älfar than be saved by a
beast. Leave the pointy-ears to me." He stroked the short hafts of his
axes.
"I
doubt you would have spotted them in time. They managed to follow you this far
without you seeing them," the maga said gravely. "Djerůn killed
a couple of them three miles from here, but two escaped. I sent Djerůn
ahead in case they tired of tracking you and decided to attack."
"So
it was him who rescued me in Sovereignston! I thought as much," said
Tungdil.
Andôkai nodded.
"I'm afraid your attacker got away."
"I
wouldn't have let the pointy-eared murderer escape with his life," growled
Boïndil. "My enemies never get the better of me, even if I have to chase
them down."
"I'm
assuming you've never been shot at by an älf archer." She gave the dwarf a
pitying look. "And anyway, warriors who run after their enemies should be
careful about being trapped."
"My
enemies never trap me," Boïndil said
mulishly. He took up his old position atop the fallen pillar.
The
extra height brought him level with the giant. He peered through the visor,
curious to see what lay among the shadows, but his eyes, despite being
accustomed to darkness, failed to penetrate the gloom. It was as if Djerůn's
helmet contained nothing but bottomless space.
The others sat down in a circle
around the fire.
By
this time the players were wide-awake. While Narmora returned her fantastical
weapons to her belt, Rodario whipped out his notepad and quill, only to
discover that the ink was frozen solid. Djerůn had already retreated to
the rear of the temple, where he transformed himself into a statue and waited
in the gloom.
Tungdil
waited for everyone to settle. "What changed your mind, maga?" he
asked at last. "How did you find us?"
" Your new companions can be trusted, I assume?"
"They helped
us get here. You can trust them."
Boïndil grunted
disapprovingly from his perch.
"You
can trust us with your lives," Rodario declared expansively, seizing the
opportunity to introduce the troupe in characteristically florid style.
"We know all about Keenfire, of course. In fact," he said, waving
his arms extravagantly, "we rescued these future heroes, these champions
of legends as yet unwritten, from a fate most foul by plucking them from the
claws and swords of a pack of vicious bögnilim. We're completely reliable, most
Estimable Maga."
Under
normal circumstances his smile had the power to melt the thickest ice and
soften the hardest stone, but this time it failed: Andôkai was unmoved.
"You made me come back," she said accusingly,
glaring at Tungdil. "It's your fault for hounding me about my duty.
Everything you said kept running through my head until I couldn't take it any
longer. My conscience wouldn't let me abandon Girdlegard and so I returned.
Besides, there are a thousand reasons why Nôd’onn deserves to die."
Her
face seemed less severe in the flickering light of the fire, her features
somehow softer, more feminine. Rodario couldn't take his eyes off her and was
hanging on her every word. He seemed to regard her forbidding charm and stern
manner as a challenge to his seductive powers.
"So
I went back to Ogre's Death and took another look at the passage that I hadn't
been able to make sense of. You remember, don't you? The only remaining
uncertainty in the plan..." Gazing into the flames, she motioned with her
hand, marshaling the sparks into the script of the common tongue. One by one
the words flared up and faded in an instant.
Rodario
read them aloud: "Keenfire must be forged by the undergroundlings, then
wielded by the undergroundlings' foe." He snatched up a piece of charred
wood. "I need to write it down before I forget. What use is a quill
without ink? I could kick myself for letting it freeze."
"You
write, and I'll kick," Bavragor said magnanimously.
"The
gods save me from your hulking boots," exclaimed Rodario, shooing him
away. "Wait and see, we'll have the best play ever performed in
Girdlegard!" His hand moved busily across the page. "They'll be
fighting to get through the door!" He was about to launch into another
effusive speech, but Furgas jabbed him in the ribs.
"The
undergroundlings' foe," murmured Tungdil, unable to mask his
disappointment. What could it mean?
Boëndal
couldn't make sense of it either. "We've got no shortage of foes. Ogres,
for example"—he cast a sideways glance at Djerůn—"not to mention
orcs, bögnilim, and all the other beasts created by Tion to plague the kingdoms
of men, elves, and dwarves. Come on, scholar, surely you can think of
something. A bit of book-learning might be exactly what we need."
Bavragor
took a swig of his brandy. "We could have a bit of fun with this. Why
don't we catch an orc and torture him until he agrees to clobber Nôd’onn? Or
maybe we could talk an ogre into taking a swipe at him with our ax."
"I
guess that's the end of the expedition, then," said Goïmgar, readily
accepting defeat. He suddenly paled. "Who's going to tell the others? King
Gandogar doesn't know!"
Tungdil
expelled his breath in a long sigh. "Are you absolutely sure of the
meaning?" he asked slowly.
The
maga nodded. "I'm afraid so. I read it over and over again."
"Do you have
any suggestions?" He glanced at Djerůn.
She
smiled. "Djerůn isn't your foe, if that's what you're thinking. He
can't do it."
Tungdil
scratched his beard, which had grown to something approaching its former length.
"Then we're facing a considerable obstacle." He looked into the faces
of his companions. "I don't know what to suggest." He lay down and
pulled up his blanket. "Maybe Vraccas will send me some inspiration in the
night. Get some rest; we're bound to need our strength for whatever lies
ahead."
They settled down
by the fire while Djerůn kept watch.
I
have to think of something. I'm in charge, thought Tungdil, tossing and turning restlessly.
If I don't come up with a solution to the riddle, Girdlegard will be doomed. It wasn't the sort
of thought that would lull anyone to sleep.
* * *
Tungdil still hadn't received divine
inspiration by the time they broke camp at first light. They decided to carry
on regardless: With a bit of luck, one of them would think of something on the
way, and if not, there was always a chance that the firstlings would be able to
help.
We'll get there in the end, Tungdil told himself
firmly, slipping his freshly oiled and rust-free mail shirt over his leather
jerkin.
Andôkai
rode with Rodario. The impresario had imagined himself sitting behind her on
the saddle, with his arms wrapped chivalrously around her waist, but she
insisted on riding bareback to give them both more space. Not only that, she
forced him to take his place in front of her while she held the reins—much to
Furgas's amusement.
More
snow had fallen overnight, adding to the existing coating by the length of a
forearm or so. The horses had to plow a path for the short-legged ponies to
follow, and so they proceeded in single file with Djerůn trudging behind
them. From a distance it looked as if one of the marble deities had left the
tedium of the temple and joined the procession instead.
The
going was tough for the unusual band of travelers. Winter slowed their progress
considerably, and Tungdil realized the advantage of traveling underground.
They needed to get to the Gray Range as fast as possible, and by foot, or even
on horseback, the journey would take too long. In a week, they advanced two
hundred miles, a distance that could be covered in one or two orbits on the
underground rail.
That
afternoon, while they rested their horses, he pestered Andôkai to tell him how
she had tracked the company down.
"It
was no great challenge," she said dryly. "I left the Outer Lands,
went back to Ogre's Death, and persuaded the secondlings to show me the
tunnels. We came up near Mifurdania, Djerůn found your tracks, and the
rest was easy. People tend to notice a group of traveling dwarves. It wouldn't
have been hard for the älfar to find you either."
Tungdil
glanced at Narmora, who was helping Furgas shovel snow into a pan and melt it
over the fire.
The
maga's gaze settled on Rodario. "These actors... How did you meet
them?" Tungdil recounted the story. "Aha," laughed the maga on
hearing how Narmora had got them out of Mifurdania by picking the locks,
"so she's a woman of many talents. Have you seen their play?'
"I certainly
have! The production was a sellout. It's called The Truth About
Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty and the Grisly Circumstances Leading to His
Reincarnation as Nôd’onn the Doublefold and Resulting in Girdlegard's
Demise.'"
"A snappy
title," she observed.
For
the first time Tungdil saw the corners of her mouth turn upward and it occurred
to him that smiling suited her better than her usual stern expression. Rodario
chose precisely that moment to look over his shoulder and naturally assumed
that the friendly smile was meant for him. He beamed back delightedly.
"And
that's the star of the show, the fabulous Rodario. According to the others, he
keeps a mistress in every town."
"I don't
doubt it. Who plays me?"
"I'm
afraid I left early, Estimable Maga. I had to chase a thief." He beckoned
to Rodario. "You'll have to ask him."
The
impresario bounded over to be cross-examined by the maga. "My players are
the most accomplished in all Girdlegard. Your role was played by the talented
Narmora, who alone could emulate your prowess with a sword." At her
request he embarked on an explanation of the plot, but she cut him short when
he was halfway through.
"The
rise of the Perished Land, Nôd’onn's visitation, his compact with evil—what
gave you the idea?"
"I
listened to the rumors, combined them with some ancient legends, and added a
dash of inspiration of my own." He looked at her brightly. "Does it
meet with your approval?"
"It's
incredibly accurate, at least as far as Nudin's transformation is
concerned."
"Really?"
Rodario seemed genuinely surprised. "But then, truth is at the heart of
all great art, wouldn't you say?"
"Thank
you, Rodario, you can go now," Andôkai told him briskly. "And don't
forget to rewrite my part in your play. I'm not dead yet."
"My
dear maga, you're positively blooming," he said, turning on the charm and
gazing seductively into her clear blue eyes. "No man could—"
"I'm
busy," she informed him, turning back to Tungdil.
Rodario's
magnificent smile was wiped off his face. His pointed beard seemed to droop in
dismay. "I respect your wishes," he said in a dignified tone.
"The
maga has sent the peacock packing," chuckled Bavragor, who had followed
the little scene. "Poor Rodario, his magnificent feathers are trailing on
the ground. I'd advise him to back off now while he's still in possession of
his plumage." He rummaged around for his drinking pouch and started
humming a ballad under his breath.
"No
chance," said Furgas. He lay back in the snow. "When Rodario's got
his eye on a woman, he never gives up. Her sternness will only encourage
him." He kissed Narmora and pulled her close. "One day he'll stop
playing the field and settle down."
"If
he doesn't get beaten to death by a pack of angry husbands," put in Boïndil,
guffawing. "He must be pretty good at running because he certainly can't
fight."
After
a short rest, it was time for the company to continue. Tungdil and Andôkai
broke off their conversation and Djerůn bent down on one knee, joining his
hands to create a chair for the maga. The crestfallen Rodario was consigned to
riding alone.
In
the orbits that followed they battled through Weyurn's snowdrifts, sometimes
struggling to find a safe path. Whenever the lead horse sank up to its belly,
they knew for certain that the ponies would never get through. Djerůn,
burdened with the weight of the maga, spent much of his time hip-deep in cold
snow.
On
several occasions they were forced to retrace their steps and seek another
route, but at last the Red Range was firmly in their sights. The mountains
towered before them, guiding them on their way, the red slopes blazing like
fire whenever the winter sun scored a hard-fought victory against the somber
clouds.
At last
they reached the mouth of a narrow gully that meandered toward a blood-red
peak. The entrance to the gully was sealed by a wall, as were each of its five
sweeping curves. The firstlings had taken extensive precautions to secure
their kingdom against unwanted guests.
"Well,
we made it," Tungdil said happily. He rubbed his beard, dislodging a
collection of tiny icicles that had formed beneath his nose. He was tired, his
feet were numb, he felt cold to the core, and he couldn't risk touching his
chain mail for fear that his hand would stick to the frozen steel. It's nothing a tankard of dwarven beer won't fix.
"Look," he told them, "there's the entrance."
The
twins followed his gaze, taking note of the six stone barriers in their path.
"It makes you wonder what all the fortifications are for," said Boëndal,
giving voice to their concern. His plaited hair was wrapped around his neck
like a scarf to protect him from the cold. "Anyone would think Tion's
hordes were approaching from this side and not the western pass."
"My
dear fellows, couldn't we save the discussion for another warmer time?" pleaded the shivering
impresario. "I'm in danger of losing my toes to frostbite." He too
was growing stalactites from his nose.
Bavragor
looked at him scornfully. "You're as bad as a girl—or as bad as
Shimmerbeard, which comes to the same thing."
"Take
another slug of brandy," Goïmgar hissed angrily. "With any luck,
you'll trip over and freeze to death. I've got a feeling you won't be much use
to us anyway. With your shaky hands, it'll be a miracle if the spurs ever
fit."
"I'm
surprised that someone as yellow-bellied as you can feel anything except the
warm sensation in your pants," Bavragor said scathingly, not bothering to
look round.
Following
Boëndal's advice, they fanned out in an arc formation, weapons at the ready,
and rode cautiously into the gully toward the first of the defenses, forty
paces away. The wall of weathered stone rose high into the wintry sky, the only
way past it through a metal door inscribed with runes. The bricks themselves
were just roughly hewn blocks of stone; the firstlings hadn't lavished much
attention on the masonry.
Tungdil
spelled out the runes, the metal glowed, and the door swung open, allowing them
to pass. "I wish everything were that easy. If it were all down to
metalwork and reading, Nôd’onn would soon be dead." The company set off
again.
"Reading
doesn't come naturally to everyone," said Boëndal from the back of the
procession. "It's just as well we've got a scholar with us. Without your—"
The links of his mail shirt tinkled softly and he stopped, eyes widening in
alarm. "W-what in the name of Vraccas..." he stammered, reaching
behind him.
A
black arrow was embedded in his back. Before he could alert the others, a
second missile sang toward him, passing through his hand, piercing his armor,
and tunneling into his back. By the time it came to a halt, the arrowhead had
passed right through him and was protruding from his chest. Boëndal groaned and
slid out of the saddle.
"Wait!"
the impresario shouted frantically, calling to his companions to stop. He
tugged on the reins and felt a rush of air near his throat. The arrow whizzed
past him and hit his horse in the neck. With a loud whinny, the animal crashed
to the ground, sending the impresario tumbling through the snow.
Djerůn
whipped round, only to be hit. The long arrow missed Andôkai and pierced Djerůn's
armor with a curious sound. Even now, the giant gave no audible sign of pain.
Without hesitating, he turned away from the archer, putting himself between the
maga and their foe.
Andôkai cursed volubly and invoked
a spell.
"What
is it?" cried Furgas, who was staring in confusion with the remainder of
the group.
"Over
there!" Narmora pointed to a tall, fair-haired figure at the mouth of the gully.
Even as they looked, the älf nocked a fifth arrow to his bow. It hurtled toward
them, this time heading straight for Tungdil.
Hurrying
to escape the feathered missile, he caught his foot in the stirrups and was
trapped. Suddenly he was out of time. The arrow was only a finger length away
when it stopped in midflight, suspended in the air. Its tip was pointed
directly at his heart. Tungdil shuddered.
"Quick,
get Boëndal out of here," the maga panted. "We need to ride on. I
can't maintain the charm for much longer."
Boïndil's
eyes flashed dangerously. "Accursed älfar!" he shrieked dementedly.
"Look, there's another one! Leave them to me!" He made to spur on his
pony.
"Stop!"
Tungdil peered at the mouth of the valley. Two älfar were standing side by side,
waiting for the spell to break. "They'll shoot you dead as soon as you
leave the maga's protection. Think of your brother, not revenge." He made
a grab for Boïndil's reins.
"Out
of my way!" raged Ireheart, staring at him without a glimmer of
recognition. He raised his arm to strike.
"No,
Boïndil!" shouted his brother, kneeling in the crimson snow. "You
can't let it happen again!" He tried to lever himself up with his crow's
beak, but one hand was still pinned to his back by the arrow. Eyes watering
with pain, he mumbled something and keeled over.
Boïndil
let out a terrible howl and leaped from the saddle. "Please, Vraccas, he
can't be dead. He just can't." He crouched beside him. "His heart's
still beating," he told them, breaking off the shafts of the arrows and
gathering his brother into his arms. "We need to get him to the
stronghold."
They
tied the unconscious Boëndal to his startled pony and dragged the pair of them
toward the next set of gates.
Tungdil
felt a knot of fear in his stomach when he saw the trail of blood in the fresh
white snow. Even warriors aren't safe on a mission
like this.
He
risked a glance over his shoulder. The fair-haired älf looked remarkably like
Sinthoras. Tungdil thought back to their last encounter in the desert village. Somehow, Sinthoras must have survived Djerůn's
attack. The tenacious älf had returned to avenge himself and his
mistress, whom the twins had slain in Greenglade.
Sinthoras
yanked something from his neck, wound it around an arrow, and took aim. There
were 250 paces between the archer and his target, but Tungdil didn't doubt for
a second that the deadly missile would cover the distance and more. The älf
released the string and a moment later a second shot followed from his
companion's bow.
"Look
out!" Tungdil yelled to the others, promptly losing sight of the arrows,
which were speeding toward them at an impossible rate.
The
air crackled as the first arrow hit Andôkai's protective shield, ripping
through the magic barrier and allowing the second arrow to embed itself in Djerůn's
back.
This
time a dull moan sounded from the visor as the arrow penetrated the giant's
armor and a jet of yellow fluid spurted from the wound. It was as if the tip
had lanced a festering blister.
Tungdil
had seen the substance once before in Sovereignston when Djerůn had saved
his life. He came to my aid and got hurt in the
process. The giant swayed, shook his head sluggishly, and walked on, his
pace considerably slowed. "We need to keep moving!" someone shouted.
They
hurried on, running or riding accordingly, toward the second set of gates.
Tungdil gave the command, they slipped through, and the door closed behind
them; they no longer felt quite so exposed.
"Hurry!"
shouted Boïndil, spurred on by the circle of blood spreading from his brother
and soaking the pony's coat.
Meanwhile,
the fluid seeping from Djerůn's wound was turning from yellow to dark gray
and his movements were increasingly labored.
They
scrambled down the gentle slope toward the third set of gates. Man, dwarf, or
pony, it made no difference; they were floundering to their waists in snow.
The
landscape reminded Tungdil of a hill near Lot-Ionan's vaults where he used to
go sledding with Frala and Sunja. He had an idea. Snatching the shield away
from Goïmgar, he turned it over and laid it flat. "Put Boëndal on top.
You'll get there faster like this."
They
placed the wounded dwarf on the shield, his brother squatted next to him, and
the pair of them swooped down the white slope, speeding toward the third door,
which opened mysteriously as they approached.
The
smooth underside of the shield raced over the snow, gathering speed all the
time, but Boïndil could neither steer nor brake. He looked up to find himself
heading straight for a group of sentries who had gathered in the gateway,
weapons at the ready.
Tungdil
cupped his hands to his mouth. "We're from the secondling kingdom,"
he bellowed, his warm breath hanging in the air. "In the name of Vraccas,
lower your axes!"
The
firstlings recognized that the intruders were dwarves and stepped aside just in
time. The strange craft hurtled past, spraying glistening snow in all
directions. Incredibly, no one was hurt.
Panting
and coughing, the rest of the company sprinted to the gates, only to be stopped
by the guards. Dressed from head to toe in armor and wrapped up warmly against
the cold, the firstlings looked at them suspiciously through a narrow chink in
their cladding of metal and fur. They leveled their spears, axes, and war
hammers at the ragged group.
"May
Vraccas our creator bless you and may the flames of your furnace never die. My
name is Tungdil Goldhand," he introduced himself, gasping for breath and
glancing back to check for älfar. "These are my friends and companions. We
were sent here by the dwarven assembly on a mission regarding the safety of
Girdlegard. I need to speak with your king."
The
thicket of metal parted to reveal a dwarf in chain mail, leather breeches, and
a particularly striking cloak of white fur. "Many cycles have passed since
we were visited by our cousins from the other ranges. Call me cynical, but
isn't it strange that a collection of dwarves and long-uns should enter our
kingdom just as Girdlegard is being threatened by the Perished Land?" The
voice was unusually high-pitched for that of a man.
"A
fine sort of welcome this is!" growled Bavragor. He took a step forward,
towering over the speaker by at least a head. "Look here, dwarf-with-no-name,
I'm Bavragor Hammerfist of the clan of the Hammer Fists, a child of the Smith,
a descendant of Beroïn, and your equal in merit and birth. Is this what the
firstlings' hospitality has come to?"
"Now,
that's what I call a proper dwarven voice," said the other. The scarf was
pulled away, unmasking the speaker's identity.
Tungdil
gasped in surprise. The face looked distinctly feminine. There was no beard,
the features were soft and delicate, and the cheeks were covered in soft down
that grew thicker and darker toward the hairline.
"My name is Balyndis Steelfinger of the clan of the Steel Fingers," she told them, not in the least bit intimidated. "I'm in charge of these gates, and I make no apology for vetting our visitors before I let them in."
Borengar's Folk, Firstling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
It's
a woman," said Bavragor, clearly nonplussed.
"Oh,
well spotted, Master Hammerfist," she teased smilingly. "What sharp
eyes, I mean, eye, you have!" Turning
to her guards, she gave orders for the injured Boëndal to be taken care of.
Four firstlings shouldered the shield and carried it like a stretcher to the
next set of gates. After waiting for Tungdil to nod his assent, Boïndil
hurried after them.
"The
rest of you come with me. Her Majesty will be waiting in the great hall."
The guardswoman looked Tungdil up and down curiously, then turned and led the
way. No sooner had Tungdil warned her about the älfar than she instructed a
group of warriors to take up position by the trebuchets and ballistae on the
third rampart.
"What
prompted you to build the defenses?" he asked.
"Many
cycles ago we had a problem with trolls. Tion tried to sneak them in through
the back entrance. Our forefathers built the walls to keep them at bay and
eventually the beasts were defeated." She glanced up at the sentry, who
gave the all clear. "Looks like the älfar have retreated. Why were they
following you?"
"That's
something I'll have to discuss with your queen," said Tungdil, lowering
his eyes to avoid her probing stare.
"A
dwarven queen!" exclaimed Rodario. "I wonder how the women came to
wear the breeches." He sighed. "If only my blasted ink hadn't frozen.
I'm never going to remember it all. Was it a female revolution?"
Balyndis
laughed. "A revolution? No, it's all very peaceable here. I thought men
and women always shared the work."
Djerůn
had stopped carrying Andôkai and was stumbling at the back of the group. On
reaching the final set of gates, he came to a halt and leaned against the wall.
He's badly hurt, thought Tungdil in alarm. In a
way, he felt responsible because the giant had sustained his original injury in
Sovereignston while fighting on his behalf.
"It's
not far now," the guardswoman reassured them. "I'll send for our
healers as soon as we're inside." It didn't seem to occur to her that Djerůn
was far taller than any ordinary man.
"That
won't be necessary," Andôkai said quickly. "You go ahead, and I'll
see to his injuries. He's too far gone for a physician; only my art can save
him." The giant slid down the wall and slumped into the snow. Andôkai
knelt beside him. She was exhausted from her confrontation with the älfar, but
she summoned the last of her strength. "We'll catch up with you," she
said sharply. "Just go!" Her companions complied.
So this is the firstling kingdom. Tungdil gazed up
at the mountain's red flanks. Hewn into the lower slopes was a stronghold with
nine giddy towers. The architectural style was different from that of Ogre's
Death, the lines more flowing and not as angular and severe, although the
building was similarly sturdy. Curiously, Borengar's masons had dispensed with
ornamentation altogether.
Abandoning
their ponies, they made their way onto a wooden platform at the base of a
tower. "Try to keep still. It'll probably feel a bit funny at first."
Balyndis threw back a lever and up they shot, racing toward the top of the
tower, past a narrow spiral staircase that led up to the battlements.
On
the way up, Tungdil heard the rattle of chains uncoiling and scraping over
metal. Some kind of pulley system, but for passengers,
not supplies. "You don't like stairs, then?"
The
guardswoman smiled, and Tungdil thought she looked awfully pretty. "It's
less effort like this," she said.
They
drew level with the top of the tallest tower and walked out onto a parapet that
led toward the main entrance via a single-span arch bridge.
On
either side of the walkway was a two-hundred-pace drop. Crows and jackdaws
circled overhead and the chill wind blew stronger than ever. Narmora kept a
hand on her head scarf to stop it from flying away.
The
vast gates, ten paces wide and fifteen paces high, remained closed as they
approached. Instead, Balyndis led them into the great hall via a separate door.
Bavragor
glanced around and smiled smugly. "Just as I thought..." He didn't
have to elaborate: His assessment of the masonry was sufficiently clear.
The
stronghold made little impression on the master mason, but Furgas, Narmora, and
Rodario were blown away.
"You
hear stories about vast halls hewn into the mountain, but I never thought they
were true," said Furgas, lowering his voice to a reverential whisper.
"We'll
have to build a new theater," the impresario told him. "A bigger
stage will give the audience a better sense of the splendor." He reached
out to touch the stone. "It's real, all right. I almost suspected it was
cardboard. Ye gods, it's incredible, nay,
miraculous/"
The
copper statues and bronze friezes proved popular, especially with the dwarves,
who delighted in their intricacy. The artwork commemorated battles against
Tion's minions, immortalizing great firstling warriors such as Borengar,
founding father of the kingdom, and other great heroes and heroines of his
folk.
"This
way," called their guide, hurrying ahead of the dawdling group toward the
next of the kingdom's wonders, a series of breathtaking bridges.
This
time Bavragor was forced to admit that in matters of engineering, the
firstlings were unsurpassed. There was insufficient rock to span the plummeting
chasms, so gleaming plates of metal had been added to straddle the gaps, the sides
secured with wrought-iron balustrades tipped with silver.
When
they came to the last of the bridges, their hobnailed boots rang out against
the metal, each plate creating a different tone. The notes echoed through the
cavernous passageway in a simple but pleasing tune.
"I
give in," said Rodario, overwhelmed by the magnificence of it all.
"We'll go back to performing idiotic farces and forget the whole idea. No
illusion in the world could do justice to this."
"Nonsense,"
Furgas said briskly. "We can do it, but it'll cost a bit of coin."
They
slowly began to thaw out, the snow and ice melting from their garments and
running down their mail, leaving them feeling immensely tired but warm.
At
length Balyndis came to a halt and knocked on a vast door. A shaft of gold
shone through the crack, heralding the glories within.
The
rectangular chamber was clad from top to bottom in beaten gold. Warm light
emanated from countless candles and lamps, reflecting off the burnished walls.
The statues were cast from gold, silver, vraccasium, and rare precious metals
quarried from the heart of the mountain. Each gleaming figure was draped with
trinkets that could be swapped around at will.
The
queen was seated twenty paces away on a throne of pure steel. Guards of both sexes,
all dressed in gold-plated mail, watched over her. The ceiling sparkled with
ornate mosaics made of beaten silver, gold, and vraccasium tiles.
"Did
I say a bit of coin?" Furgas whispered to Rodario. "I meant, a lot."
"Borengar's
folk welcomes you," the queen said benevolently, signaling for them to
approach.
They
filed into the hall, with Tungdil at the head of the procession. He bowed
courteously, then sank to one knee. The other dwarves followed, but the players
contented themselves with a bow. Tungdil introduced them, not forgetting Andôkai,
Djerůn, and the absent twins.
"As
for me," he concluded, hoping that his speech conformed to protocol,
"I'm Tungdil Goldhand of Goïmdil’s folk. A matter of grave importance
brings us to your court."
"Thank
you, Tungdil Goldhand. My name is Xamtys Stubbornstreak the Second of the clan
of the Stubborn Streaks, ruler of the Red Range for thirty-two cycles. Your
visit intrigues me. I have been without news of my royal cousins and their
kingdoms for a good long while." Her mail was made of golden rings and she
carried a four-pronged mace as a scepter. Her brown eyes regarded them keenly
but kindly.
They
were offered refreshments: beakers of piping-hot drink. Rodario sipped
contentedly, sighing as the warmth returned to his body for the first time in
orbits.
"You
say you were brought here by a matter of grave importance?"
"I'm
afraid it's bad news," said Tungdil, launching into an account of the
danger threatening Girdlegard, the deaths of the magi, the high king's frailty,
and the trouble surrounding the succession. At last he turned to the purpose
of their mission.
"Which
is why we're here, Your Majesty. We need you to lend us your most talented
smith, a smith who can forge the blade by which Nôd’onn will fall. Help us,
Queen Xamtys," he implored her. "Help us and save your folk."
The
firstling queen turned her brown eyes upon him and stroked the fair down on her
cheeks. Suddenly she stopped fiddling and sat up straight. "It seems from
your report that Girdlegard is in danger," she said thoughtfully. "We
haven't seen the other candidate, which makes me fear the worst. The älfar are
accomplished marksmen, and perhaps Gandogar's expedition wasn't blessed with
such protection..."
"Pardon
me, Your Majesty," Goïmgar broke in indignantly. "King Gandogar has
Vraccas's blessing. He's the high king's rightful heir!"
"It
isn't my place to judge," the queen said kindly before returning her
attention to Tungdil. "I shall be happy to help. What better time than now
to renew the bonds between our folks." She lowered her mace and pointed to
Balyndis. "This is your new companion. Not only is Balyndis the
firstlings' best warrior, she's also our finest smith."
"I
don't mean to speak out of turn," interrupted Rodario, "but I was
wondering if Her Majesty could tell us how she came to be queen. I thought the
line of succession was always male..."
"The
long-un has an inquisitive mind, I see. Very well, he shall have his
explanation. It all began with a quarrel. Boragil, my father, valued my
mother's advice, but considered her incapable of ruling the kingdom on her own.
That angered my mother, who demanded to be given the opportunity to try. After
much argument, it was decided that my mother should govern the firstlings'
destiny for a period of fourteen orbits. It was during this time that the
trolls attacked, but my mother had no intention of relinquishing the crown.
Instead she marched at the head of the army and defeated the enemy with a
combination of cunning and military skill. In so doing, she proved to be a more
proficient ruler than my father, and when the fourteen orbits were over she
reneged on their agreement and refused to step down. The clans stuck by her and
that was that." She rose. "My mother died thirty-two cycles ago, and
I ascended the throne."
"I
thank Her Majesty for indulging a humble dramatist's curiosity. I shall write
her a magnificent part in my play."
An
attendant entered the hall with news that Boëndal was seriously hurt. The maga
had rushed to his bedside and was doing her best to treat his wounds.
The three dwarves
were filled with dread.
"Someone
will show you to your quarters so you can get some rest. Our tailors will
provide you with warm clothes and fur coats to keep out the cold. I assume you
mean to continue your journey tomorrow?" She didn't wait for a response.
"In any event, I'll show you the way to the tunnels once you've recovered
your strength."
"You
know about the tunnels?" Tungdil said, surprised. He was so tired that he
could barely suppress his yawns. "Why haven't you used them?"
"My
mother wasn't sure what the other rulers would think about a dwarven queen. She
kept quiet for fear of conflict and I did the same."
"In
that case, Your Majesty, you must send a delegation to Ogre's Death,"
Tungdil said urgently. "In the name of the assembly, I invite you to join
the other rulers and chieftains in deciding our future. You spoke of renewing
the bonds between the folks; this is your chance."
"The
situation is every bit as serious as he says," Rodario seconded him.
"The Perished Land is a formidable foe. I've seen with my own eyes what
the orcs have done to Girdlegard, and without your kinsfolk, Nôd’onn will
prevail. Speak to the other folks and don't worry about what they might say.
This isn't a time for caution."
Tungdil
looked at him gratefully. Who would have thought it?
Xamtys tapped her scepter firmly against her throne. "As soon as you and your company have commenced your journey to the Gray Range, I shall lead a delegation of firstlings to Ogre's Death and the folks shall be reunited after many long cycles." She smiled at them munificently. "You are right: There is no time to lose."
I know you're only trying to
help," said Boëndal, gritting his teeth with pain, "but I don't want
your magic. The wounds will get better by themselves."
The
firstlings had laid him in a warm chamber, removed his mail, and exposed the
afflicted flesh. He had already bled through the first set of bandages and was
waiting for the next.
Andôkai,
her face as ashen as her patient's, was leaning over him, inspecting the damage.
His body was struggling to cope with the puncture wounds: Some of his internal
organs had been damaged and he was rapidly losing blood. "I know a great
deal about injuries, and quite frankly, I can't share your optimism," she
said candidly, her blue eyes clouded with concern. "Put aside your pride, Boëndal,
and think of the mission."
"Pride?
This isn't about pride!" protested his brother from across the bed. He was
determined to keep an eye on things and had refused all offers of refreshment,
barely stopping to take off his coat. "It's your sorcery that's the
problem. It's not right! Your wretched Samusin might conjure some devilry into
his soul."
"Don't be
ridiculous," she snapped.
Boëndal
closed his eyes, his breath coming in shallow gasps. "Leave...me...alone!"
"By
rights you should be dead," she said coolly. "If it weren't for your
dwarven constitution, you wouldn't have made it this far. Sheer
bloody-mindedness is keeping you going, but your life is in the balance. I need
to help while I still have the power. My magic is waning."
Boëndal
was in no state to answer. His brother nodded to the door. "Save your
hocus-pocus for your own patient, maga. We dwarves can take care of
ourselves."
Andôkai
got up, one hand resting lightly on the pommel of her sword, and walked
silently to the door.
"He
didn't mean to offend you," Boëndal whispered. "We appreciate your
offer, really we do, but Vraccas will see me through this."
Andôkai
flung her cloak over her shoulders. "I hope for your sake that he
does." The door slammed and silence descended on the chamber.
"Perhaps
she's right..." ventured Boëndal.
"That's
enough," Boïndil shushed him. "Vraccas has seen your plight and he'll
keep you alive for many more cycles. If either of us deserves to die, it won't
be you, so stop fussing and get some rest." He gave his brother another
sip of water and hurried to see why the physicians were taking so long with the
dressings.
His
armor seemed a thousand times heavier than usual and his legs were bowing
beneath the overwhelming weight. All he could think about was his brother.
"Vraccas be with him," he muttered, remembering Boëndal's deathly
pale face. His twin was languishing on the threshold of the eternal smithy and
what the maga had said about dwarven resilience and stubbornness was true: A
human would never have survived such injuries, and whether or not a dwarf could
withstand them, only time would tell.
On
his way down the corridor, he bumped into Tungdil, who was hurrying to visit
the wounded dwarf. "How is he?" Tungdil asked anxiously.
"Sleeping.
He needs new bandages. The first lot are drenched already," said the
warrior, visibly distressed. The crazed spark in his eyes had given way to
profound concern.
"What about Andôkai?
Can't she do anything for him?"
"We
don't want her sort of help," Boïndil shut him off. "I always said
magic was no good, but Samusin's magic is worse." He hurried away, calling
out to the physicians, who came running with bandages.
Tungdil
knew it was pointless to argue; the twins had made up their minds.
Determination was a virtue, whereas intransigence...Boëndal
would rather die than he healed by the maga.
He
tiptoed into the chamber and saw Boëndal lying waxen-faced in the bed,
seemingly dead but for the shallow rise and fall of his chest. The physicians
washed away the dried blood and carefully sewed the gaping flesh together, then
applied a compress of moss to ease the pain.
"We'll
have to go on without him," Tungdil said softly. "He won't last more
than a hundred paces in his present state."
"I'll
be fine, scholar," came a faint but determined whisper from the bed. Boëndal
looked at him pleadingly and readied for his hand. "Another few orbits,
and I'll be back on my feel. It's just a couple of scratches, that's all."
Tungdil
glanced at one of the physicians, who promptly shook his head. "It's out
of the question. The wounds are deeper than they look and there's the internal
damage to consider. Any movement will make things worse and he'll die in
agony. He's not fit to go anywhere."
"I'm
sorry, Boëndal," Tungdil told him, heavy-hearted, "but you have to
stay here and rest. You've done your bit for now; just be sure you're back with
us when it comes to the great battle against Nôd’onn."
"I'm
coming, like it or not," Boëndal threatened. "Boïndil and I stick
together! Forging Keenfire is the most important mission in dwarven history
and I won't—" He tried to sit up but had barely succeeded in moving when
he gave a low groan, his fresh dressings flushing crimson with blood. "I
suppose that settles it," he said through gritted teeth. He looked up at
his twin. "It's up to you now to protect Tungdil and the rest of the
company."
Boïndil
was standing stiffly by the bed, searching for the right thing to say.
"All our lives we've been together," he said thickly, "and now
I'm leaving you behind. It won't be the same fighting without you." He
squeezed Boëndal's hand. "The first hundred runts will be for you."
"You've
got great plans, then," said his brother, smiling weakly. "Don't
overreach yourself, Boïndil; I won't be there to watch your back." They
embraced, tears streaming down their bearded cheeks. Never before had they
faced a parting such as this.
"You'll
have to keep a better check on your temper when I'm not around. Promise you
won't let it run away with you?"
Boïndil
gave his solemn word. "Get some rest now, brother." He and Tungdil
left the chamber. "When do we leave?"
"As
soon as possible. Andôkai has done her best to patch up Djerůn with her
magic and he's fit to travel. He might be too big for the wagon, though."
"We'll
be cramped as it is. There's the three long-uns, Andôkai and her pet warrior,
Hammerfist and Shimmerbeard, not to mention the materials for Keenfire—we'll
need a couple of wagons at least."
"Don't
forget Balyndis," Tungdil reminded him.
"Who?"
"Our new
smith."
"A
woman?"
"You sound
as enthusiastic as Bavragor."
"I've
got nothing against women, don't get me wrong. I like a nice well-built lass
with plump cheeks and big bosoms, a real woman who you can hold on to and warm
yourself against, but—"
"Come
on, Boïndil, you know as well as I do that some of the secondling women are
excellent smiths. They can be handy on the battlefield as well. Smeralda could
fight like a—" He checked himself. Blast.
Boïndil
stiffened at the mention of his dead lover's name. "Fine, we'll take the
woman. If you'll excuse me, I'm tired." He disappeared along the
passageway in the direction of his chamber.
Tungdil
watched him go. That was stupid, he
remonstrated with himself. I need to watch what I
say.
"I'm
no stranger to the smithy, believe me," said a high-pitched voice behind
him. He whipped round in surprise. "Sorry, I didn't mean to startle
you." Balyndis was still dressed in her mail, and her long dark hair
framed her rounded face. "I wanted to tell you that it's an honor to be
chosen for your mission."
His
heart gave a little leap. He was so taken with the idea of traveling through
Girdlegard in the company of the female smith that he almost forgot his worries
about the twins. He gazed into her brown eyes, unable to say a single word.
"I can
handle an ax as well as a hammer, you know."
Tungdil
smiled weakly, still incapable of summoning his voice.
Balyndis
didn't know what to make of his silence. "If you don't believe me, I can
show you."
"Vraccas
forbid!" he cried, raising his arms hurriedly. "I believe you,
absolutely. I daresay that women are good at fighting too."
The
new smith seemed to take offense at his words. "In that case, Tungdil, I
insist," she said, reaching for her ax.
Tungdil's
eyes were drawn to the formidable muscles in her arms and chest.
"Honestly, Balyndis, I didn't mean it like that," he said, trying
desperately to repair the damage. "I was worried you might get hurt."
"I see. So
you think you can hurt me, do you?"
I wish she'd stop twisting everything I say!
"Of course not," he explained hurriedly while Balyndis hefted her ax
belligerently and took a few experimental swipes. "Not unless you weren't
paying attention. Really, Balyndis, there's no need to prove anything. I
believe you!"
"Well,
I don't!" boomed a baritone voice. Bavragor stepped up to the smith, his
war hammer at the ready. "It's bad enough that Goïmgar fights like a girl.
The firstling must prove that she won't be a burden."
She
squared her shoulders menacingly. "For that, mason, your one eye will soon
be seeing stars." Already the war hammer and the ax were hurtling toward
each other, and Tungdil barely succeeded in leaping clear.
The
weapons collided forcefully. It was clear from Bavragor's grunts that he was
impressed, but he soon got into difficulties, having failed to allow for
Balyndis's strength and speed. By lunging at him from his blind side, she kept
forcing him to turn his head. He was so intent on parrying her blade that he
didn't notice when she raised her ax suddenly and whacked him on the head. He
took a few dazed steps backward and slumped against the wall.
For a
moment he looked at the grinning Balyndis in astonishment, then slowly raised
his hand and felt his head. His shoulders shook slightly, rising and falling
with increasing rapidity until he was roaring with laughter, the passageways
echoing with his mirth.
"No
one could say I didn't deserve it," he said, still chuckling as he
clambered to his feet and extended a rough, calloused hand, which she gladly
shook. "You're a fine lass, all right. There's no messing with you."
"Thank
goodness we've cleared that up," Tungdil broke in, thankful to have been
spared the ordeal. He nodded to Balyndis. "I think everyone agrees that
you're an excellent fighter, so maybe we could go to bed and get some sleep
before our early start."
The
firstling smiled and was about to retire when Bavragor hauled her back.
"I've got a better idea. How about taking me to the Red Range's finest
tavern so I can taste a draft of your firstling beer? There'll be a song in it
for you," he promised. Balyndis didn't need further persuasion and the
two of them started down the corridor.
"Aren't
you coming, Tungdil?" she shouted as they rounded the corner.
"He's
our leader, remember! He's got maps to read, tunnels to check...Of course he's
not coming!" said Bavragor, only half joking.
"Don't
overdo it," Tungdil warned them. "Those tunnels have got lots of
sharp curves!" He saw them off with a wave and retired to his chamber to
ponder the events of the orbit. No matter how tempting it was, he knew it
wouldn't be wise to fall for Balyndis; the mission required his full attention.
Inside
his chamber, the light from the lone oil lamp steeped the polished walls in a
gentle glow. It was the perfect ambience for relaxing before the big journey.
"Tungdil?"
He
swung round to confront the voice behind him. Ax at the ready, he peered warily
into the shadows by the door. "Narmora? Is that you?"
The
actress was wearing her black leather armor and exuded a vague air of menace.
For some reason Tungdil found himself thinking of Sinthoras.
He
kept hold of his ax, his secret antipathy toward the woman growing all the
time. Don't be ridiculous, he told himself. She's an ordinary woman. "What can I do for
you?" he asked, trying to smile convincingly.
"Remember
what Andôkai said about wielding the ax," she said hesitantly.
"Keenfire
must be wielded by the undergroundlings' foe. Do you have a suggestion?" he said, perking up.
"What
about the älfar?" she said cautiously. "The älfar are your enemies,
right?"
"Real
älfar are our enemies," he corrected her. "Actresses won't do, but
it's kind of you all the same."
She
pulled off her head scarf, revealing two pointed ears.
Tungdil
took a step backward and tightened his grip on the ax. Long moments of
horrified silence passed. "But that's not... I mean, y-you can't be an älf..."
he stuttered. Then he laughed out loud in relief. "You almost had me going
there, but I know your eyes don't look black in the light!"
Narmora
stretched a hand toward the lamp, turned her palm to the ceiling, and muttered
unintelligible words. The flame dwindled until there was nothing but a
smoldering wick.
She must know some trick. Alchemy or... He stared
at the candle in amazement, then turned to Narmora and discovered she was
gone. "Narmora?"
Suddenly
she loomed behind him. "Half human, half älf," a voice whispered in
his ear. "I inherited my mother's gifts and her weapons. My father left me
little of value, but his eyes are a boon." The next moment her menacing
air was gone. She went over to the lamp and restored the flame by blowing on it
gently. "I'm sorry I scared you. Do you believe me now?"
Tungdil
composed himself. That explains why I've never
really taken to her. "I certainly do," he said with a vigorous
nod. "I think you've solved the dilemma as to who should wield
Keenfire." He looked at Narmora with new respect. "It can't have been
easy for you to tell me—but it's nothing compared to the challenge
ahead."
"I
can't see any other solution," she said simply, her savagery and
malevolence suddenly gone. "It's not as though we could ask an orc or a
real älf." She stroked the hafts of her weapons. "I've never really
fought with an ax. The magus won't have much to fear from Keenfire unless you
drill me in axmanship first."
"We'll have
to tell the others, you know."
Narmora
considered. "Yes, I suppose so—although I don't know how they'll
react." It was clear she was thinking primarily of Boïndil.
Tungdil
smiled encouragingly. "It's nothing to worry about, I promise."
She
smiled roguishly, and for a moment there was something älflike about her after
all.
On
receiving Tungdil's summons, the rest of the company hurried to his chamber,
where he told them of the turn of events. "Which means we'll be able to defeat
the magus after all," he finished, waiting anxiously for their reaction.
"Strictly
speaking, I ought to kill her," Ireheart said slowly. He showed no sign of
making good on the threat.
"Strictly
speaking," Tungdil corrected him, "you ought to kill half of her, but
which half would that be? Is the left side human and the right side älf, or the
other way round? What if it's top and bottom?" He sighed. "Seeing as
she's agreed to save Girdlegard, I think Vraccas will let us spare her. There's
no other way."
Furgas
was hugging the half älf and looked worried, which seemed natural to Tungdil,
who realized what a risk Narmora was taking in pitting herself against such a
formidable foe.
"Furgas
and Rodario will stay here in the firstling stronghold until we—"
"She's
not going without me," the prop master said flatly. "Besides, someone
with my technical ability would be an asset."
"And
you're bound to need a first-rate impresario," added Rodario. A moment
later, it occurred to him that the company had no obvious use for his talents,
so he settled for looking handsome and putting on a winning smile.
"He's
right, you know," said Boïndil unexpectedly. "The enemy won't be able
to concentrate with his incessant jawing."
The
other dwarves smiled, save for Goïmgar, who seethed quietly in the corner until
he finally erupted. "Gandogar is in the Gray Range already," he
hissed. "He'll be the one to forge Keenfire, just wait and see! You'll
never be made high king." He looked scornfully at Narmora. "I don't
know what you're relying on her for. She's only half an älf." He flounced to the door
and stormed out.
"Fine,"
said Bavragor, breaking the strained silence. "Narmora can half kill Nôd’onn,
and we'll do the rest." Whipping out a tankard that he had smuggled from
the tavern, he took a long sip.
The tension dissolved and they laughed in relief.
The following morning Queen Xamtys and
her entourage of chieftains and elders accompanied Tungdil and the others over
the shimmering bridges and deep into the stronghold's passageways and galleries
that reminded the secondlings of home.
Bavragor
kept stopping to inspect the masonry, tapping on the walls, running his fingers
over the stone, and stamping critically on the floor. "It's certainly not superior," he said with unusual diplomacy,
"but it's still very good."
At
length they came to a vast steel door inlaid with runes of glittering gold. The
queen recited the formula and they entered a chamber whose every detail Tungdil
recognized from its counterpart in Ogre's Death. At the center of the room were
eight rails, and around them a jumble of vats, pulleys, and gears. The
engineers soon got the machinery going, and the air filled with hissing,
steaming, and rattling, not to mention a smell of hot metal and grease.
"You've
taken good care of the equipment," observed Furgas. "No rust, no
dust. You could have been out of here in minutes, whenever you decided to
go."
"I
should have done this cycles ago," Xamtys said regretfully. She gave
instructions for two convoys to be made ready for departure—the first for her
own delegation, and the other for Tungdil and his friends.
Djerůn
had made a full recovery and was allocated a carriage of his own. The firstlings
had repaired his armor over-night and it looked almost as good as new.
Owing to his great height, they decided to remove the seats from the wagon so he
could lie down on the floor. That way he wouldn't run the risk of beheading himself if the height of the tunnel changed.
The rest of the company were spread over two wagons:
the five dwarves and the ingots in one,
and Andôkai, the players, and the gems in the other.
She looks tired, thought Tungdil. He went up to
the maga. "How are you feeling? You said yesterday that you nearing the
end of your strength."
Andôkai tied her blond hair with a strip of leather
to stop it from blowing in her eyes during the blustery ride. "Are you prepared for the truth?"
"You don't have to lie to
me."
She sat down on the side of one of the wagons and watched the bustle. "My magic will soon be exhausted. Unless we pass through a force field, I won't be able to replenish my stores."
"Is that why wizards like to keep to their realms?"
Her eyes settled on Tungdil's
bearded face. "Yes it's our secret weakness. As you've seen, we can still
use our magic outside the enchanted realms, but we can't store it effectively. Straying
from the force fields turns us into leaky pouches that lose their contents even
when they're not in use. It takes only a powerful charm or two, and our energy
is spent" She glanced at Djerůn. "I don't like the idea of being
defenseless when my magic runs out. That's why I learned to fight and why I
always keep Djerůn with me."
Tungdil thought for a moment. "Maybe we could see to it that
Nôd’onn runs out of magic too."
She shook her
head. "The spirit inside him has lent him extraordinary
powers. I'm sure it
won't work."
The dwarf caught
sight of Narmora and remembered her trick with the lamp. "Narmora can use
magic, can’t she?"
"Not
exactly. I don't know much about the älfar, but they don't use real magic. It's
more a case of innate abilities: the power to conjure up darkness, extinguish
fire, influence dreams—small things that strike fear into human hearts and add
to the älfar's aura of power."
"But
things have changed, haven't they? Sinthoras broke through your magic
shield."
"That
was cunning, not magic. Remember how the älfar in the desert warded off my
magic with amulets? The amulets were a present from Nôd’onn to protect them
from the magi. Sinthoras tied his to an arrow and broke my spell." Andôkai
rose. "We may as well get going." Their vehicles were ready, and the
queen's wagon had been lowered onto its rail. "You mustn't rely on my
intervention, Tungdil. I need to conserve my strength."
"I'll tell the
others," he promised. Don't you worry, Keenfire will be
forged, with or without your magic, he added silently to himself.
They
joined Xamtys at the top of the ramps. The queen was studying a map. "I
can't wait to find out what it's like in the tunnels," she said excitedly,
stroking her downy cheeks. "Just think of the looks on their faces when I
arrive; those menfolk won't know what's hit them." She jumped into the
wagon and released the brakes. "Fashion Keenfire and make haste for the
secondling kingdom. We'll be waiting for you." The wagon rolled away and
vanished through the mouth of the tunnel. "May Vraccas be with you!"
"And
with you!" Tungdil called after her. He climbed up the next ramp and took
his seat in the wagon. The map of the tunnels, given to him by the queen, was
tucked safely beneath his chain mail. Boïndil took his place next to him, while
Bavragor and Balyndis sat together, laughing and joking, on the bench behind.
"Keep
it down, can't you?" Boïndil said crossly. Leaving without his brother
made him irritable and uneasy, and he felt thoroughly out of sorts.
Rodario
made a few scribbled notes, then replaced the cork on his inkwell. He took
particular care to seal the bottle tightly so as not to spill its recently
thawed contents all over his clothes. "My, my," he said excitedly,
"what an adventure! We should build a contraption like this for our
theater. The audience could experience for themselves the thrill of traveling
through a tunnel like the heroes of our piece."
"It's
not an adventure and it won't be thrilling," Goïmgar contradicted him.
"Just wait: Your stomach will turn somersaults, your beard will blow in
your face, and you'll want to be sick."
"It
can't be that bad," the player said blithely. He fastened the safety rope
around his waist. "I'm not as soft as you think."
The
wagon reached the end of the ramp and plummeted almost vertically into the
tunnel. At that moment Rodario emitted a terrified scream, closing his mouth
only when he felt an uncontrollable urge to vomit. For the first time in ages, Goïmgar
looked genuinely pleased.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
Balendilín was in his chamber, ax in
hand. He raised it tentatively and took a few practice swipes to check if he
could swing it one-handed.
"There's
more of them coming, Your Majesty," came an anxious shout from outside.
"You ought to see for yourself."
Anyone would think Bislipur's warmongering had lured them
to our gates, he thought darkly, leaving his chamber and striding past
row upon row of grim-faced warriors until he reached the highest battlements of
Ogre's Death and surveyed the land below.
The
enemy was everywhere. Black figures, some larger than others, were milling
about on the ground, and the air reeked of rancid fat. An unwholesome stench of
orcs wafted over from their encampment a mile from the gates where they were
preparing to attack. The muffled sound of their shouts reached the battlements.
In
the distance, gigantic wooden siege engines, each forty or more paces in
height, were rolling toward the stronghold. They'll
be over the first rampart in no time with the help of those things.
To
the dwarf's eyes, the contraptions looked crooked and ungainly, but the beasts
cared nothing for the engines' durability or elegance, provided that they
fulfilled their purpose, which was to breach the outer defenses so the real
invasion could begin. The timber towers had been draped with human skin to
protect against firebombs, and the orcs intended to keep them watered for the
duration of the assault.
"I
didn't expect them to attack so soon," said Bislipur, joining him on the
battlements and looking down at the hordes. Dressed in full armor, he looked
every bit the dwarven warrior. "There must be ten thousand of them at
least. What a blessing I'd already sent word to my kingdom and summoned our
troops." He waited for a word of praise, but none came.
"Orcs,
bögnilim, a handful of ogres, some trolls, and a contingent of älfar,"
enumerated Balendilín, surveying the enemy ranks. "Nôd’onn is determined
to annihilate us, just as Tungdil said." He watched the combined force of
secondlings and fourthlings take up position behind the first rampart and
prepare for the attack. The magus would never send
an army of such proportions without securing the human kingdoms first. There's
something not right about this. "If the
ramparts fall, we'll retreat inside the mountain," he decided.
"Then
what?"
"They'll
be lost if they follow us. We know the territory and they don't."
"Are
you saying we might not hold the ramparts?" Bislipur asked, surprised.
"With two armies of five thousand warriors apiece, we should be able to
defend the stronghold for as long as it takes."
"In
these dark times nothing is certain. I'm saying we shouldn't count on it."
He sent some of his finest warriors to buttress the troops at the entrance to
the underground network. Just in case, he
thought bleakly.
On
ascending the parapet, he obtained his first full view of the invading hordes,
a motley collection of beasts, vile products of Tion's creation, poised to
massacre the dwarves and open the High Pass to their foul kinsfolk in the Outer
Lands.
The orcs and bögnilim are wearing armor stolen from
Umilante's men. Her soldiers could do nothing to halt their advance. Balendilín
watched as the enemy troopers marshaled themselves into disorderly groups,
ready to launch their assault and test the dwarves' defenses. "We need two
thousand soldiers behind the main gates," he commanded firmly. "Be
ready to fight!"
He
waited until the snarling, grunting orcs had almost reached the rampart; then
he signaled for the gates to be opened, and his warriors sallied forth.
To
his satisfaction, the dwarven axes wrought havoc among the brutes who were
caught off guard by the counterattack and tried to flee, only to be rounded up and
driven back into battle by the trolls.
By
then, the dwarves were safely behind the solid walls of Ogre's Death. Three
dozen of their number had suffered minor injuries, while several hundred beasts
lay dead or dying on the dry earth before the gates. There was great rejoicing
among the united armies of Beroïn and Goïmdil.
"See
what a formidable force we are when we fight side by side!" Balendilín
shouted down to them proudly. He glanced around to see if Bislipur had anything
to say.
The fourthling
was nowhere in sight.
Underground Network, Kingdom of
Weyurn, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
The
wagons shot through the tunnels, tearing cobwebs from the walls and ceilings
and stirring up clouds of centuries-old dust. Every now and then a shadow took flight
from the rattling, rumbling carriages and scampered out of the torchlight into
the darkness of a side shaft. What life there was beneath the surface of
Girdlegard was of a harmless, nervous variety that left the travelers well
alone.
Tungdil
and company were approaching the fifthling kingdom from the west. He kept
count of the markers on the walls, calculating that they had traveled 250 miles
by the end of the first orbit.
He
shared the good news when they stopped for a while and lit a fire. "At this
rate, we'll be there in four orbits. We're making excellent progress."
They
were in a large chamber that served as a junction between two rails. The
ceiling of the cavern was supported by naturally formed pillars and carefully
hewn arches engraved with runes that testified to their dwarven origins. The
wood now spluttering merrily in the flames had come from a leftover stockpile
of moldering timber.
"We'll
never be able to outwit the dragon," Goïmgar said dismally. "She'll
burn us to cinders with her fire."
"We
could always shove a long-un down her throat; that should do the trick,"
retorted Boïndil through a mouthful. "This is delicious, Balyndis. You
firstlings certainly know a thing or two about salting and smoking meat."
He plucked dried herbs from the rind of the ham and tasted them experimentally.
Bavragor
gave Tungdil a nudge. "Isn't she lovely? I've never seen a more handsome—I
mean, beautiful—smith." His chestnut eye gleamed contentedly. "And
look at her chain mail! She's a master with a hammer."
"Since
when do you know anything about smiths?" teased Tungdil, although he too
had been admiring the metalwork. He grinned. "You've changed your tune,
haven't you?"
"That
was before our duel," Bavragor chuckled. "I took a blow to the
heart."
Apparently so. The pair had bonded from the moment
Balyndis had conquered the mason with her ax and they seemed to be getting
closer all the time. Tungdil couldn't begrudge the one-eyed dwarf his
happiness. "I thought she whacked you on the head, not the chest."
"Don't
talk so fast," Rodario scolded. "I can barely keep up." Sprawled
next to the fire, the impresario had been eavesdropping on their whispered
exchange and was frantically transcribing every word. "I want the script
to be as authentic as possible."
Meanwhile,
Furgas had got up to examine the rail and Narmora was beside him, keeping
watch. Djerůn was sitting a few paces away from the others, his weapons
laid out around him. As usual, he kept completely still.
"I
wish she'd thumped him a bit harder," muttered Goïmgar in a voice so low
that only Tungdil could hear. "Oh, Gandogar, if you weren't my beloved
sovereign, I'd hate you for lumbering me with such insufferable
companions." Like most nights, he was the first to pull up his blankets
and settle down to sleep.
The
impresario had brought his bag of costumes with him. Bavragor was amused to see
that he refused to be parted with them. "Couldn't you have left them with
the firstlings?"
Rodario
gave him a disapproving look. "Absolutely not! There's no telling when I
might need them, and besides, do you know how much they're worth?"
He
was interrupted by a sudden bang. It sounded like a single rap of a hammer on
stone. The echo rumbled through the tunnels, then faded.
They
turned to look at Furgas, who was bent over the rail. "It wasn't me,"
he said quickly. "It came from the next stretch of tunnel."
Goïmgar
sat up. "I know that noise." He reached nervously for his shield.
"The spirits of the dead masons are haunting us," he whispered,
cowering behind his steel screen. "Vraccas protect us from their
ghosts!"
The
sound was familiar to Tungdil too. "We heard the exact same noise just
before our wagon was derailed near Mifurdania," he said softly. I wonder if it's a signal. But what would it be
conveying? And to whom?
"Quiet,
everyone." Boïndil's warlike instincts had been stirred. He got up and
jogged to the mouth of one of the tunnels, while Narmora stood guard by the
other. Sticking his head into the darkness, he listened intently. They held
their breath for what seemed like an eternity.
Only Andôkai
looked untroubled, rummaging casually for her pipe. She filled it and lit it
with a burning splint. Balyndis smiled broadly and followed suit, picking up a
smoldering ember with her gloved hand and holding it to the tobacco. The two
women, who couldn't have been more different in appearance, disappeared in
clouds of smoke.
At
length Boïndil returned to the fire. "Nothing," he reported. "No
noises, no smell."
"We
don't want any more accidents," Tungdil told them. "We'll have to be
careful." He settled down to get some sleep.
Furgas
and the half älf took their places beside him. "I think we're not the only
ones on the move down here," Furgas confided in a whisper. "There's
not a speck of rust on the rail ahead."
"So
the tunnel is being used on a regular basis," Tungdil conjectured.
"I thought
you should know."
"Thank you, Furgas. I'd
rather you didn't tell the others. We don't want Goïmgar dying of fright."
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
What can I do for you, Bislipur?"
asked one of the two sentries politely as the fourthling approached the door
to the underground network.
"Die,"
he said smilingly. "Die nice and quietly." His ax whipped up and
swooped diagonally toward the sentry's unprotected throat.
There
was no time to escape the double-handed blow and the guardsman succumbed with
nothing but a muffled groan.
His
companion managed to reach the bugle with his left hand and the hilt of his
club with the other, but already the bloodied ax was slicing through the flesh
beneath his chin. The blade jerked upward, cleaving his skull.
Well, that wasn't too hard. Bislipur wiped the
blood from his face and gave a short whistle, whereupon two hundred of his most
loyal soldiers appeared in the corridor.
"You know what to
do," he said tersely before reciting the runes that opened the door to the
tunnels. "Show Gandogar's enemies no mercy: They will show none to
you."
Underground Network, Kingdom of
Weyurn, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
Just as they reached the
three-hundred-mile marker, disaster struck. Moments earlier they had exited the
tunnel and turned onto a narrow bridge. As far as they could tell, there was
nothing but thin air and darkness beneath them.
The
first carriage was traveling at full speed when the dwarves felt a sudden
judder and the wheels were thrown from the track, tilting the wagon to the
side. Sparks flew everywhere as they skidded along on two wheels, trying to
right the wagon before it tipped too far. The next moment, they hit the ground
and flipped over.
There
was a screech of brakes as the second wagon stopped just paces from the
scattered bodies.
Tungdil,
Balyndis, and Boïndil were in luck: They landed on the bridge, tumbled over,
rolled for a bit, and slowed to a halt. Their gloves and armor saved their skin
from serious cuts and grazes.
Tungdil
discovered to his embarrassment that he was lying on top of Balyndis. His
cheeks reddened. She gazed up at him and seemed about to say something, but
swallowed her words and just stared.
The
spell was broken by the sound of Goïmgar frantic screams. "Sorry,"
Tungdil said awkwardly, picking himself up to see what was wrong.
The
little dwarf was dangling from the side of the bridge. His hands clung
desperately to the stone coping, but his knapsack and his armor were exerting
an inexorable downward pull. "Somebody do something!" he whimpered
desperately. "I'm falling!" Tungdil broke into a sprint.
Bavragor
was lying near the edge of the bridge, a few paces from the stricken artisan.
He got up, muttering, groaning, and clutching his head. "I think an ogre
just kicked me." Suddenly he noticed the plight of his companion and
threw himself forward to grab his arm.
It was too late.
Goïmgar
panicked face vanished from view, his shrill scream fading rapidly.
"Vraccas
forfend," stuttered the mason. Boïndil, Tungdil, and Balyndis reached the
spot a moment later, only to watch helplessly as the shrinking figure was
swallowed by the darkness.
"Move!"
Andôkai sped past them, bounded onto the coping, and pushed off forcefully,
arms outstretched like a diver.
Her
scarlet cloak billowed behind her like a flag; then she too was gone.
The
dwarves could hear the swoosh of her cloak but were powerless to intervene.
Rodario lit his torch and dangled it into the gloom, but the light was too weak
to cut through the blackness.
Long
moments passed and at last they saw a faint blue glow in the murkiness below.
"Do
you think she hit the bottom and died?" asked Boïndil. "It might be
her soul."
Tungdil
shot a quick glance at Djerůn, who was immobile as ever. He didn't seem
overly concerned about his mistress's safety, which gave Tungdil grounds for
hope. I'm sure she knows what she's doing.
"It's
getting closer," Balyndis shouted excitedly. "It's flying up."
A
fierce gust blew toward them, propelling two figures out of the chasm below.
The current of air carried the maga and her passenger to the bridge, set them
down gently, and died away.
Andôkai's
long blond hair was tousled, and the artisan's shimmering beard seemed to have been
ransacked by mice. His face was ashen but he wasn't in the least bit hurt.
"That
was incredible, Estimable Maga!" exclaimed Rodario. "Absolutely
incredible! How selfless and courageous of you. To think that you risked your
own precious life to save the dwarf!" He turned to Goïmgar apologetically.
"Not that your life is any less precious, of course."
Andôkai
seemed determined not to dwell on the incident. "Have you checked the
wagon?" she asked Furgas. She gave her cloak a tug and set about plaiting
her hair. "Can you fix it?"
The
prop master walked over to the vehicle and shook his head. "The wheels
have buckled. We won't get them back on the rail." He bent down.
"Someone's been busy," he said. "We're lucky that the other
wagons didn't meet the same fate."
"The
gold and tionium," cried Boïndil, who had crawled round to the other side
of the wagon to check the cargo. "They're gone."
Bavragor
gazed gloomily into the chasm. "It's not hard to guess where they are: on
a never-ending journey to the bottom of the world." He looked at the maga
hopefully.
"No,"
she said, dismissing his unspoken request. "We'll have to think of
something else."
They
fell silent. Two key components of the magic weapon had been wrenched from
their grasp.
"I
knew we'd never make it," whined Goïmgar, unable to hide his glee.
"A
fat lot of use you are," Boïndil growled. "I say we throw him back
down again. We've lost half the ingots, so we may as well get rid of the pesky
artisan as well."
"So
what if we've lost a few ingots?" said Tungdil, determined to raise their
spirits. "We're on our way to a dwarven kingdom, remember! We're bound to
find enough gold and tionium to make a solitary ax."
"Problem
solved." Andôkai nodded, giving her leather armor a final tug.
"Excellent.
If we've all recovered sufficiently, we may as well get going. Divide
yourselves up between the wagons," ordered Tungdil, who was beginning to
warm to being in command. "We'll take turns pushing until we reach a downward
pitch."
"Don't worry about that," said the maga. She motioned to Djerůn. "Leave it to him."
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
This time Nôd’onn's army attacked from the sides.
Dwarven
missiles sped toward the approaching siege engines, passing through the moist
cladding of human skin, punching holes in the timber and shattering the joists.
The sheer scale of the invasion ensured that some of the engines approached
unscathed.
At
length three wooden towers drew alongside the parapets. As the ramps clapped
down, hordes of screeching orcs spewed forth, but the ferocious dwarves stood
firm.
Balendilín
proved himself an able commander, defending the stronghold so successfully
that not a single assailant made it through the dwarven lines.
"Pour
oil on the wood," he shouted as soon as the first wave of invaders had
been repelled. Already the next wave of beasts was streaming into the towers.
The
plan worked. In no time the siege engines disappeared in a blaze of yellow
flames. The wood burned like cinder, the flammable sap fueled the fire, the
ropes ignited, and the towers collapsed, raining debris to the ground. The
enemy retreated, yelping with fear.
Victory
came at a price. Fourteen dwarves were slain by an älf who concealed himself on
the ramp of the third tower and bombarded them with arrows, showing no regard
for the hungry flames. At last his cloak caught alight, but the onslaught
continued, ending only when his bowstring was consumed in the blaze.
In
spite of the casualties, the mood was upbeat. There was no reason to believe
that Ogre's Death would fall.
"You
fought bravely and well," Balendilín praised his troops. "Our fallen
brothers will live on in our memories and their names shall be etched in gold
in the kingdom's great hall." His eyes roamed over the rows of defenders.
Their bearded faces gazed back at him, sweaty but smiling; there was plenty of
fight in them yet. "Vraccas gave us—"
"Orcs!"
The shout came from a sentry who had turned his back to the gates and was
listening to the king. "They've got into the stronghold!"
There
were hundreds of them. The snarling, roiling brutes were demolishing anything
and anyone in their path. In no time they had seized the inner rampart. They
held up their swords, axes, lances, and shields triumphantly, taunting the
assembled dwarven army.
The tunnels. They must have come up through the tunnels'. "The
High Pass must not be breached! Children of the Smith, I call on you to destroy
the invaders!" cried Balendilín, rousing his soldiers from their shock.
"Every beast must die!"
The
dwarves jolted into action, storming up the mountainside to fight their
ancient foe. Among them was their one-armed king whose courage and tenacity
were an inspiration to them all.
At that moment an ogre emerged from the underground hall, lips pressed to an enormous bugle. His piercing call drew cheers and roars from the troops outside the stronghold. The second assault on the ramparts began.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
They
shouldn't have got this far. Why weren't they stopped by the guards? Balendilín
had no time to consider what had happened to the warriors who were guarding
the entrance to the tunnels: He and his army were battling a seemingly endless
onslaught of ogres, orcs, and bögnilim. For every beast he felled, two more
appeared before him, and he could always be sure of hewing flesh.
At
last Balendilín's guards managed to turn the tide of the surprise attack and
drive the invaders back to the tunnels. The battle was bloody and cost many
dwarven lives, but the king's troops finally reached the threshold of the hall
where the underground network began. They could advance no farther.
How many more? Balendilín's heart sank as he
surveyed the waiting beasts. They were trapped in the hall, but by no means
defeated, and their numbers were swelling as the tunnels disgorged more orcs.
A
messenger pushed his way through the dwarven ranks, bringing more bad tidings
for Balendilín. "The beasts have outmaneuvered us," he gasped.
"They've attacked from the rear. The gates of Ogre's Death are open and
the first two ramparts have been taken."
By
now Balendilín was beginning to suspect that the dwarves had been betrayed.
"Flood the ramparts with boiling oil," he ordered. "That
will—"
"We can't.
They've destroyed the vats."
Destroyed? A moment ago, he had been confident that
the enemy would be defeated; now his faith seemed misplaced. To destroy the vats they'd have to know where to find them,
in which case... "Give the order to retreat. We'll defend the
stronghold from within. Close the gates and abandon the ramparts." He
clapped him on the shoulder. "Hurry!"
The messenger
nodded and sped away.
Balendilín
was certain that the secondlings' predicament had nothing to do with bad luck.
Not only had they been attacked through tunnels whose existence had been secret
for hundreds of cycles, but their defenses had been sabotaged by enemies who
seemed to know the stronghold inside out, and now they were in danger of being
outmaneuvered.
Someone
with intimate knowledge of Ogre's Death had helped them to plan the invasion. What kind of dwarf would do such a thing? Balendilín
could think of no one who would stoop so low as to ally themselves with orcs. Nôd’onn must have used his sorcery to draw out our
secrets. There was no time to hesitate: He had to act fast.
"I
need two hundred warriors. The rest of you stay here and hold back the
orcs," he commanded, turning and marching away.
He was on course for the High Pass, where he intended to destroy the bridge before the orcs got hold of it and allowed fresh hordes to flood into the stronghold from the Outer Lands. His fury and hatred of Nôd’onn grew stronger with every step.
Underground Network, Kingdom of Weyurn, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
Surely he must be tired by now,"
said Rodario, puzzled. "I'd be exhausted if I had to push both
wagons."
"Unlike
some people, Djerůn is no stranger to hard work," the maga said
sternly.
The
impresario gave her an injured look and stuck out his chin. "Perhaps the
Estimable Maga could tell me what I've done to be treated with such
contempt?"
She
turned her back on him. "Climb in, Djerůn; there's another downward
pitch."
The
armored giant squeezed into the rear wagon, trying to make himself as small as
possible so as not to injure the others or crack his head on any low archways.
"Very
well," said Rodario, refusing to give in. "You can ignore me if you
like, but prepare for the consequences. I happen to be writing a drama in which
you play a leading role. You'll have only yourself to blame if you make a bad
impression."
The
maga's eyes bored into his. "Perhaps Djerůn should attend the first
performance. You'll know from his reaction whether I like your play. If he
raises his ax, you should run." The impresario held her gaze, but she
refused to back down. "It isn't because of anything you've done, Rodario. Quite
frankly, I don't like your manner. It's foppish."
Rodario
frowned, his mood completely spoiled. "Why don't you come straight out and
tell me that I'm not a real man? In your opinion, a man must have muscles, know
how to wield a sword, and command the mystic arts."
"You
understand me better than I thought," she said scathingly. "Since you
fail on all three counts, you should stop your tiresome flirting. It's getting
on everyone's nerves."
The
maga's put-down was delivered in her usual strident voice. Rodario went a deep
shade of red and was about to retaliate when the wagon plunged and picked up
speed. Ink spilled out of the open bottle, washing over the parchment and onto
his clothes. He fell into a wounded silence.
With
one hand resting on the brake, Tungdil peered ahead, hoping to spot any
potential obstacles before it was too late. Of course, if the rail was broken,
nothing would save them. Boïndil was sitting beside him, eyes straining into
the darkness too.
There
was a generous gap between the two wagons and soon they were traveling at top
speed. Suddenly the temperature seemed to rise, and the warm wind buffeting
their faces acquired the sulfurous odor of rotten eggs.
"There's
light ahead," shouted Boïndil. "It looks orange."
Shooting
out of the tunnel, they raced toward another bridge whose basalt pillars
spanned a vast lake, the surface of which was incandescent with light. Lava
twisted and snaked its way along the bottom, causing the crystal-clear water to
bubble and boil. The rising vapors warmed the air and made the atmosphere so
humid that sweat started streaming from their pores. Breathing was difficult,
not least because of the stench.
The
molten lava lit up the cavern, a vast irregular hollow of two or more miles
across, with a ceiling some five hundred paces above the water.
Their
wagons trundled over the long bridge. Tungdil glanced over the side. A spectacular place, but I'll be glad to get out of here.
At that moment
they heard hammering again.
It
began with a single rap, a piercing tone that rose above the gentle bubbling of
the water.
Goïmgar's
head whipped back and forth as he strove to locate its source. "It's the
ghosts of our forefathers," he whispered. "My great-grandmother told
me stories about bad dwarves who trespassed against the laws of Vraccas. They
were barred from the eternal smithy and condemned to roam the underground
passageways. They avenge themselves on any mortal who crosses their path."
"I
suppose you believe the stories about man-eating orcs as well," said
Bavragor with a scornful laugh.
"Oh,
those stories are true," Boïndil growled from the front. "I can vouch
for that. His great-grandmother was probably right." Goïmgar shrank down
farther into the wagon until only his eyes were visible over the side.
"That's
enough, Boïndil," Tungdil said sharply. Even as he spoke, a second rap
echoed through the grotto, reverberating against the glowing stone walls.
This time it
didn't stop.
The
raps grew louder and the intervals briefer until the hammering swelled to a
deafening staccato that shook the rock, dislodging loose stones from the
ceiling. Small fragments rained down on them, missing the bridge by a matter
of paces and splashing into the bubbling lake.
"Look!"
shrieked Goïmgar, beside himself with fear. "Vraccas have mercy on us! The
spirits are coming to drag us to our deaths."
They
looked up to where he was pointing. Figures detached themselves from the rock
and stared down at them. Tungdil counted at least three hundred before he gave
up.
Still
they kept coming. There was no denying that they looked like dwarves: Some were
wearing armor, some dressed in normal garb, others clad in little more than a
leather apron. Male, female, warriors, smiths, and masons, their pale faces
stared accusingly at them and the hammering increased. Suddenly their arms
flew up in unison and pointed in the direction the travelers had come.
"They want us to
leave," whispered Goïmgar. "Turn back, I beg you. Let's walk across
Girdlegard; I'll fight the orcs, I promise."
Spirits. Tungdil's blood
ran cold at the sight of their empty stares. The molten lava stained their
ashen faces with its blood-red glow. He had read about ghosts in Lot-Ionan's
books and now he'd seen the living proof. I'm not
going to let you ruin our mission.
They
swept into the next tunnel, away from the cavern, the lake, and the spirits.
After a while the hammering faded too.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
It was just as Balendilín had
feared.
On
reaching the High Pass, he and his warriors found dead dwarves strewn across
the ramparts, blood trickling across the stone. They hadn't had time to draw
their weapons and defend themselves, which seemed to suggest that the murderer
had been a friend. A friend bewitched by Nôd’onn and
turned traitor. Confound the wizard and his magic!
The
air was foul with the stench of orc and they could hear the rattle of cogs and
the clatter of stone as the bridge unfolded, slab by slab. The traitor had
beaten them to it.
"Run!"
shouted Balendilín. There was no need to say more; everyone knew what had to be
done if disaster was to be averted.
Tearing
up the steps, they made for the chamber that housed the mechanism operating the
bridge. On the other side of the chasm, the beasts were braying and cheering in
excitement as the gangway unfurled. The dwarves tried not to listen to their
shouts.
Suddenly
they found themselves confronted by a guard of one hundred orcs, tall, powerful
specimens, bristling with weaponry. Balendilín and his warriors would have to
fight tooth and nail to get through.
Both
sides threw themselves into the battle with ferocity, each more determined than
ever to wipe their enemies from the face of the earth. Green blood mingled with
red, limbs were severed, teeth sent flying, and the bloodcurdling noise of the
fighting competed with shouts and jeers from the hordes across the chasm whose
rapacious hunger could barely be contained.
Balendilín's
arm grew heavier with every blow. His muscles were tiring from the strain of
wielding his ax, but stubbornness kept him from flagging. "Show no
mercy!" he cried. "The bridge must be destroyed before it's too
late."
"It's
too late already, Balendilín," said Bislipur. The words echoed through the
stone stairway, but of the speaker there was no sign. He didn't sound
particularly troubled by the secondlings' plight. "The dwarves of Beroïn
and Goïmdil will meet their doom together. It was easy enough to arrange, once
the orcs were acquainted with the tunnels."
"You
told them?" The king's ax slashed the vile visage of an ore. There was a
sound of shattering bone and the beast toppled over, his skull a bloodied
wreck. The path was clear and the dwarves surged into the chamber to attack the
last dozen foes who were prepared to die rather than lose control of the bridge.
Gasping for breath, Balendilín stopped for a moment. "Why?"
"This
isn't what I wanted, but you thwarted my plans with your ridiculous challenge
to the succession. Thanks to you and the high king, I had to improvise a
little, but I'm not one to mourn what might have been. I wanted a war against
the elves, but orcs will do the job just as well—if not better."
Balendilín
tried to see where the voice was coming from, but the echo was deceptive.
"I'll kill you for your treachery," he vowed, full of loathing.
His
words were met with mocking laughter. "Others have threatened the same,
but they've never made good on their promise. You won't either, King Balendilín,
not now that I've deprived you of your subjects and your stronghold."
Balendilín
lingered no longer, rushing instead to join the surviving warriors in the
battle for the chamber. At last he risked a glance through an embrasure.
Two-thirds
of the bridge had been lowered already and a few of the beasts, unable to
restrain themselves, were jumping the gap. Some fell to their deaths, others
caught hold of the edge and dangled for a moment before plummeting into the
chasm below.
We have to stop them. Balendilín let out a
ferocious battle cry and threw himself against the last remaining orc, driving
his ax with all his might into the creature's side. The blade ate its way
through the grease-smeared armor, releasing a jet of dark green blood. He
pulled out his weapon, parried his antagonist's sword, and struck where he had
hit before. After a third blow, the beast staggered and died.
It
was only then that Balendilín caught sight of the twisted levers and broken
handles that served to operate the bridge.
"The
bridge is down," one of his soldiers reported. "The beasts are
storming the kingdom, Your Majesty."
Frozen
in horror, Balendilín stared at the mangled machinery. He grabbed the lever on
which the future of his kinsfolk, the future of all Girdlegard, depended, but
it was jammed.
"Don't
forsake your children, Vraccas," he cried in desperation, leaning against
it with all his force. Changing his tactics, he tore out the lever, rammed his
blade into the slot, and pulled down on the shaft. He looked out.
It
was working! The columns retracted and the walkway dropped a few paces, sagging
dangerously in the middle. Balendilín heard the vast stone slabs snapping and
cracking; then the noise was drowned out by screams of terror as the invading
beasts realized that nothing could stop them from plunging to their deaths. At
that moment the bridge gave way, pulling the creatures with it. The assembled
hordes on the far side of the chasm howled in disappointment.
"Your
Majesty, you're wounded," said one of his warriors in concern. Balendilín
looked down to see blood seeping from the left side of his torso. There was a
huge slit in his chain mail where an orcish sword had struck.
"It's
nothing," he mumbled, wrenching his ax from the slot. "We'll finish
off the creatures who made it over the bridge, then go back to help the others.
We'll deal with the traitor later."
As
they battled their way back to the tunnels, it became apparent that the Blue
Range was riddled with enemy troops. Every corridor, every passageway, every
chamber brought forth more orcs and bögnilim patrolling the territory in small
groups or big gangs.
How
much longer will we be able to hold them back? Balendilín prayed to Vraccas for help.
On
approaching the entrance to the tunnels, they heard the bestial cries of dying
orcs. From the sound of it, the enemy troops were being massacred.
"I
gave the warriors strict instructions not to attack! A pitched battle would be
fatal. We'll be outnumbered!" The king and his company hurried to the aid
of their comrades, but were greeted by an entirely unexpected—and
inexplicable—sight.
Advancing
in the opposite direction was a battalion of dwarves who had popped up behind
the orcs and taken them by surprise. While the battalion cut its way through
the beasts from the rear, Balendilín's own troops had seized the initiative
and launched an offensive, thereby squeezing the enemy between two fronts.
Balendilín
ordered his company to attack, and they joined the fray. At length the two
dwarven armies met in the middle, their gleaming axes making quick work of the
last orcish troopers.
"I
don't like to be late for a battle," declared a warrior in beautifully
fashioned mail. The voice was a little high-pitched, the beard on the thin
side, and the armor revealed two large bulges that seemed distinctly unmanly.
The dwarf was clutching a golden mace, now stained with orcish blood.
"I
am Xamtys II of the clan of the Stubborn Streaks, queen of Borengar's folk and
commander of the firstlings." She turned one of the corpses over with her
foot. "I came here for a meeting of the assembly, and what do I find?
Orcs! I suppose it's one way of letting off steam between debates."
Balendilín
quickly recovered from the surprise. "Queen Xamtys, you are most welcome
here. Thank you for coming to the aid of your cousins in their hour of need.
My name is Balendilín Onearm of the clan of the Firm Fingers, king of the
secondlings. Was it Tungdil or Gandogar who asked you to come?" He prayed
silently that it was Tungdil.
"It
was Tungdil. He convinced me to put an end to the cycles of silence." She
held out her hand and he shook it. "What's going on here?"
He
described in as few words as possible the fate that had befallen Ogre's Death
and the betrayal of the dwarves by their own. He was interrupted by a messenger
bearing news that the main gates were about to fall to the besiegers.
"Leave
the range," Xamtys advised him. "If you've been betrayed, they'll
know every passageway and every cavern." She placed a hand on his
shoulder. "Come to my kingdom and shelter with the firstlings until Nôd’onn
has been defeated and the beasts thrown out of your lands."
"I can't,"
he said quickly.
"King
Balendilín, this is no time for stubbornness," she said gently. "You
and your folk will be overwhelmed by the enemy, and for what gain? My warriors
will have their work cut out saving Girdlegard without you. I propose that we
take the tunnel back to my kingdom and send messages to Tungdil and Gandogar to
inform them of the change of plan." She studied Balendilín's face and saw
with relief that he knew she was right.
"Get
the womenfolk and children out of here," he instructed his guards.
"Squeeze as many of them as possible into the wagons. Anyone left behind
will have to wait for our return; lone dwarves will have no trouble concealing
them-selves in the mines and quarries. Destroy the key bridges. The orcs will
be hard-pressed to track them down."
Withdrawing
the troops and abandoning the kingdom amounted to a defeat, but Balendilín had
no choice if his folk were to survive. We wouldn't
be in this position if it weren't for Bislipur, he thought bitterly.
He
put his mind to organizing the retreat and dispatched volunteers to convey the
news to the far reaches of the kingdom and warn the clans that the army had
withdrawn. "Tell them it won't be for long," he commanded. "I
give my word that I'll be back in a few weeks to kill the orcs."
He
hurried away to the great hall, anxious to save the ceremonial hammer from
desecration by the beasts. There was no need to worry about the secondlings'
hoard: The treasures were protected by a runic password known only to the king.
Balendilín
picked up the hammer from its place beside the abandoned throne and listened to
the battering rams thudding against the main gates. The pounding noise went
straight through him, heralding the doom of Ogre's Death as clearly as if Tion
himself were thumping on the door.
He
took a last melancholy look at the throne, the stone pews, the tablets
inscribed with Vraccas's laws, the lofty columns, and the beautifully sculpted
bas-reliefs. Golden sunshine sloped through the chinks in the ceiling, bathing
the hall in warm light. How much of this will be
left when I return?
"Surely the
king isn't abandoning his realm?"
"Bislipur!"
Balendilín whipped round toward the marble tablets. The traitor stepped out
from behind one of them, the stone trinkets in his beard tinkling softly as he
walked.
"I
was hoping to meet you alone without any of your slavish attendants. It was
tiresome of you to destroy the bridge. I was sorry to see it go." He
raised his ax and drove it into one of the sacred tablets, cracking the stone
and breaking it apart. "But patience is a virtue. The orcs will destroy
your kingdom, just as I will put pay to your laws."
The
king descended from the dais. "You can shatter the tablets, but the words
will be carved again. You shan't destroy us, Bislipur. The children of the
Smith stand united. Haven't you heard? The firstlings have come to our aid, and
many of your allies have been slain by their axes."
"They're
not allies; they work on my behalf. The orcs are only instruments of my
revenge," Bislipur said calmly. He demolished the remains of the tablet.
"Enjoy your little victory while you can. You'll never defeat Nôd’onn:
He's dangerous in his insanity, and he's far too powerful for you." The
second tablet shattered, splinters of polished stone striking the flagstones
and scattering across the floor.
"Enough!"
Balendilín was at the foot of the dais and nearly upon the traitor. Without
stopping he dropped the hammer and drew his ax from his belt. The fourthling
was stronger, he knew, but his lameness made him slow and clumsy. "Tell me
why."
"A
fine duel this will be," laughed Bislipur. "Two cripples locked in
combat."
"This isn't
a battle of words," the king said grimly.
Bislipur
smiled. "I guess the dwarves of Beroïn will have to find a new
leader." His ax hurtled out of nowhere, but Balendilín ducked, flinging
out his arm and using his momentum to strike.
Cursing,
Bislipur leaped back, but the metal spike on Balendilín’s ax head caught his
unarmored calf, ripping through leather and fabric. Blood oozed from the wound.
"Why
are you doing this?" Balendilín demanded. "Is it because your
favorite wasn't elected high king? Are you so obsessed with waging war on the
elves that you betrayed your own kin? Is that it?"
Bislipur
rushed forward and launched a series of feint attacks, but Balendilín saw
through them and drew back, steeling himself for the real assault. They had
crossed the breadth of the vast hall and were battling along a passageway that
led to a bridge. The ground was twenty or more paces beneath them.
"The
succession never interested me," spat Bislipur. "My only desire was
for war. The elves would have destroyed you."
He
dealt the blow so forcefully that it was impossible to parry. At the last
moment Balendilín managed to deflect it, but he almost lost his ax.
"It
makes no sense, Bislipur. Has Nôd’onn bewitched you? Why would you betray your
folk?"
"My
folk? The fourthlings aren't my folk! You were closer to the truth than you
realized." His ax whistled through the air. Balendilín blocked it, but the
force of the blow numbed his hand.
"I'm
too strong, too warlike to be a puny son of Goïmdil. Remember, you said so
yourself." He struck again and this time the ax flew out of Balendilín's
fingers and clattered to the bridge. "I'm a child of Lorimbur, and I will
go down in history as the thirdling who brought misery on the other dwarven
folks," he said darkly. "I have succeeded where all others
failed."
Balendilín
grabbed his arm and stopped the next blow, but the traitor head-butted him with
his helmet. The king staggered backward, his vision starry and bloodied.
Bislipur's cocky laughter rang in his ears.
"What
a blow to you that Tungdil is a thirdling or he could have succeeded you on the
throne. Oh, he'll weep when he sees the ruins of Ogre's Death. I've a good mind
to stick around and ambush him. Killing him and his miserable company would
give me pleasure."
"A
thirdling? Never." It was all Balendilín could do not to fall from the
bridge.
"I
know my kind when I see them. It's an instinct we've got. Trust me: Your protégé
is a thirdling, a dwarf killer. You may as well get used to the idea—before I
kill you and feed your entrails to the orcs."
"You
lie!" The king leaned back against the parapet, his legs giving way.
Smiling malevolently, Bislipur
raised his ax. "What if I do? You're going to die anyway."
The blade swooped down but Balendilín saw only a fleeting
shadow.
Underground Network, Kingdom of
Tabaîn, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234tb
Solar Cycle
The sound of falling rock gave Tungdil
just enough warning to pull on the brake. Even so, the force of the collision
sufficed to throw the wagon from the rail and give its passengers a thorough
shaking.
"The
spirits need to work on their timing," said Bavragor, wiping the dust from
his brow. He turned to Balyndis, who let him wipe her face. "I bet the
ceiling was meant to collapse on us." He reached for his drinking pouch
and took a sip of brandy.
"It's
nothing to worry about." Rodario scowled, springing from the wagon.
"Our industrious giant will clear away the debris and we'll soon be on our
way." He glanced at Andôkai. "Unless, of course, the Estimable Maga
would prefer to blast through the tunnel with one of her gusts." His tone
was deliberately sniffy: He was still cross with the maga for spurning his
advances in front of the group.
Goïmgar,
pale with fear, kept his eyes suspiciously on the ceiling and refused to leave
the safety of his seat. Meanwhile, Andôkai was already inspecting the blocked
tunnel and giving instructions for the rubble to be cleared. It soon became
apparent that the task was too much even for Djerůn.
"By
the look of things, the ceiling has gone entirely," said Bavragor, who was
clambering over the fallen rock and studying the walls. "I'd say someone
went to a lot of trouble to organize this."
Furgas
hurried to take a closer look. He ran his hands over the rock, then nodded.
"You're right. The roof of the tunnel is riddled with holes. Whoever it
was wanted to make certain that the ceiling would collapse once the struts were
knocked away."
"Ghosts,"
whispered Goïmgar tremulously. "We should have listened to their warning.
They're trying to get us killed."
Boïndil
turned on him fiercely. "I never thought I'd say this, but Hammerfist's
drunken singing is a thousand times more bearable than your complaining."
His inner furnace had been burning high for some time, and he needed to let off
steam.
"Keep
a check on yourself, Boïndil," Tungdil pleaded. "I know it's hard and
it's been a long while, but you mustn't let your temper get the better of
you." He rummaged through his knapsack and brought out Xamtys's map.
"We have to turn back. There's an exit about a mile from here." He
turned to Goïmgar. "The spirits have answered your prayers: We're going
back to the surface."
"Whereabouts
are we?" asked Andôkai.
"According
to my calculations, we're in the southeastern corner of the kingdom of Tabaîn.
It shouldn't be too much of a problem to find the next entrance. Tabaîn is dead
flat; it's just one vast plain."
"It's
not fair," Bavragor grumbled moodily. "Why should cowardly little
Shimmerbeard get his way? All that blasted riding was bad enough. I'm not built
for traipsing around overland, and I can't say I'm fond of the sun."
"You'll
get used to it soon enough," snapped Boïndil. "If you'd taken your
turn at the High Pass with the rest of us, you'd know that sunshine can be
pleasantly warming."
"It
wasn't worth the risk," Bavragor snapped back. "I didn't want to end
up like my sister."
Balyndis
stiffened. Sensing the sudden tension, she stepped in front of Bavragor to stop
things from getting out of hand. He grabbed her arm and pushed her away.
"Be
careful," he warned her. "Don't turn your back on him when he's
angry. His ax moves faster than his mind."
The
warrior's muscles tensed, his hands gripping the hafts of his axes. "Is
that right?" he growled, lowering his head belligerently.
"Stop
it, both of you!" commanded Tungdil. "The two of you can carry the
ingots until you've used up your excess energy. Djerůn will take over when
you're tired." They reluctantly obeyed.
Tungdil
fell into step with Balyndis and briefly recounted the history of the feud.
"Neither will give an inch. One of them is overburdened by grief, the
other by anger."
"It's
sad," she said, her plump face full of compassion. "Sad for both of
them."
He
dropped his voice, stopped walking, and leaned toward her. "Maybe we'll
run into a pack of orcs so Boïndil can work off his anger. I'd rather we didn't
have to, but it might be for the best." Her scent filled his nostrils: She
smelled as delectable as fresh oil or polished steel.
"What
are you waiting for, Tungdil?" shouted Goïmgar, who had finally left the
wagon and was hurrying after the others. "Maybe I'm mistaken, but I
thought leaders were supposed to lead..."
"You're
absolutely right." He hurried past him and joined Boïndil and Bavragor,
who were carrying their burdens in silence. Neither wanted to appear weaker
than the other by handing their ingots to Djerůn and admitting defeat.
Suddenly
they heard a loud rattling ahead. The next instant, a wagon sped down the rail
toward them. In the nick of time they leaped aside.
Djerůn
whipped out his ax and brought it down in one fluid movement. The wagon flipped
off the rail and flew into the wall. At once the giant was beside it. He turned
it upside down to check for passengers. There were none.
"That's
funny. I suppose someone must have left it in a side passage, and now it's
worked its way free," said Rodario. "Luckily I've got the reflexes of
a panther; otherwise I'd be dead." Furgas responded with an incredulous
look.
"The
ghosts," whimpered Goïmgar. "They're trying to kill us."
"Don't
be ridiculous," Boïndil said witheringly. He set down the ingots, went up
to the wagon, and sniffed at it. "Well, it certainly hasn't been near any
orcs. I'd be able to smell the fat on their armor." He crawled into the
wagon and emerged only when he had something to show for his efforts. "A
shoe buckle," he announced, lifting it up for the others to see.
"Silver alloy. It's not especially old, but it looks quite worn, judging
by the dirt and scratches." He pocketed it.
I've seen that buckle somewhere before, thought
Tungdil to himself. "We can't do anything about it now," he told the
others. "Let's carry on."
Boïndil
scooped up his ingots and the company marched off.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
Balendilín flung himself to the ground.
The blade whistled over his head and crashed into the side of the bridge. He
kicked up at Bislipur, driving his foot into his groin, then drew his dagger
and rammed it into his boot. In an instant, the traitor's groan became a
bellow.
At
last Balendilín's vision cleared and he could see his antagonist above
him—just in time to avoid the furious blow rushing his way. He rolled to the
side and the ax hit the bridge.
This
time Bislipur was prepared and the weapon rose again, swinging up toward Balendilín.
The blade sliced through his chain mail, penetrating his wounded chest. The
spike on top of the ax head embedded itself in the metal rings.
"Fly
away, you one-armed cripple," laughed Bislipur. He gripped the ax with
both hands and pulled his enemy toward him, only to hurl him against the
balustrade. Balendilín slid to the edge of the bridge and saw the chasm beneath
him. "That's if you can fly with one hand."
"Let's
see if you do any better," cried the king, reaching out to stab him with
his dagger. The blade entered the traitor's forearm just as Balendilín rolled
over the side.
Hanging
on to the dagger with all his might, he pulled the screaming Bislipur with him. I'm taking the traitor with me, he vowed.
To
his great surprise, his flight ended after only two paces as he slammed onto a
ledge that was all that remained of an ancient archway erected beneath the
bridge. The dagger tore through his enemy's arm.
Bislipur
shot past him, letting go of the ax to make a grab for the protruding stone. He
succeeded in stopping his fall, but dangled by one hand; the dagger had slit
his other arm from the wrist to the elbow.
"It
isn't over yet," he gasped, choking with pain and exertion as he dragged
himself onto the ledge. His eyes blazed with hatred. "I only need one hand
to strangle you, Balendilín." He crawled across the stone toward him.
With
a terrible shriek, the king seized the ax embedded in his chain mail and tore
it out of his chest. "Oh, it's over, all right," he shouted, smashing
the blade against the traitor's helmet. There was a cracking and splintering
noise as the metal crashed into his skull. Blood streamed down Bislipur's face.
"I promised to kill you, and I've kept my word."
He
let go of the haft, thrust his foot into the traitor's face, and pushed him
over the edge. The bleeding body plunged down, hitting the ground twenty paces
below with a muffled thud and splattering over the stone.
May your soul smolder forever in Vraccas's flames. Balendilín
closed his eyes and lay down on the ledge. The next moment he blacked out with
pain.
They
found him barely conscious and dangerously close to falling from the narrow
shelf. He was carried to the tunnels, where his wagon was the last to leave.
Kingdom of Tabaîn, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
The snow sparkled for the last time
that afternoon as the sun dropped below the flat horizon. Thousands of
glittering diamonds studded the immense white plain as daylight faded to dusk.
Suddenly,
in the middle of the untouched snow, a boulder began to stir. Cracks opened in
its white cladding; then it rolled to one side and a woman struggled out of the
ground beneath it. She stood up and took a few paces, cutting a channel
through the immaculate blanket of flakes.
"Samusin
protect us," gasped Andôkai as she surveyed the perfectly flat land. In
the far distance, dark splodges marked the site of settlements, and each was
topped with a column of smoke. She knelt down to make herself less visible and
pulled her cloak tighter to keep out the biting cold. "The orcs are here
already. They must have invaded from the north." The winter air, fresh and
frosty, filled her lungs and made her cough.
Looking
around, she saw black flecks moving across the horizon on their way to a town,
village, or hamlet, wherever was next on their mission of destruction.
Andôkai
closed her eyes and focused her mind. Almost immediately she sensed the weak
force field running through the earth beneath her, its energy harnessed by Nôd’onn
for his black art.
"We're
in what's left of Turguria," she said slowly. "The enchanted realm
was rich in magic energy, but there's almost nothing left." All the same,
she took the opportunity to replenish her powers, her face contorting with pain
as she siphoned the magic from the land.
A
helmet popped out of the hole in the snow, followed by a pair of keen brown
eyes that flicked to and fro. "The sooner we get out of here, the
better," Boïndil said surlily. He emerged into the open, while the others
hurried up the last few steps. "Now I know why I've been feeling so
peculiar. It's this magical malarkey; it never did anyone any good." He
gave himself a shake and pushed the boulder back over the hole, thereby
concealing the entrance to the underground network. "Let's go."
"Wait."
Tungdil had followed Andôkai's gaze. He shivered. His breath left plump white
clouds in the air and his beard was already frozen solid. "You're right,
maga. The orcs must have crossed over from the Perished Land. The hordes from
Toboribor could never have got here this quickly."
"That
makes it worse," commented Goïmgar in his customary whine. "I—"
"If
you don't shut up, I'll make you," Boïndil threatened. "Can't you see
we're trying to think?"
"You're
trying to think? You're not even capable of—"
Ireheart
whirled around and threw himself on the artisan with a wild shriek. Goïmgar
ducked behind his shield and cried for help.
"Stop
that, Boïndil!" The warrior paid no attention. He'll
tear him limb from limb. Tungdil launched himself on Boïndil, and
Bavragor followed suit. The three dwarves disappeared in a cloud of snow from
which loud curses, the sound of punches, and a great deal of coughing could be
heard.
With Djerůn's
help they succeeded in pulling Boïndil away. By some miracle, he had refrained
from using his axes, thus sparing the others more serious injuries. Their
bloody noses and bruised faces were proof enough of his formidable strength.
"I'm
sorry," panted Boïndil. "It's my fiery spirit." He scrabbled in
the snow for his helmet and tried to come up with an appropriate excuse.
"He provoked me and then I..."
"Let's
forget about it." The right half of Tungdil's face was throbbing painfully
and he wasn't in the mood for delivering a lecture. "You're welcome to
slaughter the next lot of orcs by yourself."
Balyndis
took care of their wounds by clumping snow together and pressing it against
their bruised and battered limbs. They set off in silence on a northeasterly
bearing.
Andôkai
drew alongside Tungdil. "There's no smoke ahead," she said. "Nôd’onn
must have ordered the orcs to quell any resistance in Turguria and the other
enchanted realms before taking on the human kingdoms." She pointed to the
east. "There's a fortified city in Tabaîn, just across the border from
here. I vote we find ourselves a room. We're not dressed for sleeping in the
open, especially not when it's freezing outside. Besides, the citizens will be
glad of a few extra swords."
Tungdil
nodded his agreement. It was nighttime when the company reached the gates of a
city marked on the map as Roodacre.
Beroïn’s Folk, Secondling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
No
sooner were the wagons rolling along the rail than Balendilín and Xamtys
encountered the next setback. Nôd’onn's troops had already started to occupy
the tunnels and barricade the tracks.
They
managed to speed past the first band of waiting orcs, but a little farther
along the tunnel they were pelted with stones by ogres and trolls while the
second band of orcs charged onto the rail.
The
ambush cost them four wagons, but the remaining carriages turned off at a
junction, only now they were heading north and not west.
Before
they reached the next corner, Xamtys signaled for them to halt. She made her
way to the king's wagon to confer with Balendilín. "They've blocked the
rail to my kingdom," she said, clenching her jaw in frustration.
"It's too dangerous for us to use the tunnels. For all we know, the orcs
have sabotaged the tracks and we'll plunge straight into a chasm."
"Bislipur must
have told them about the tunnels some time ago," said Balendilín. His
attendants saw their chance and redressed his wound. It doesn't
bear thinking about. The dwarves built these tunnels for the protection of
Girdlegard and now Tion's creatures are using them to conquer our kingdoms.
"We
can't go overland, Balendilín." Xamtys inspected his wound and shook her
head. "It's winter and we won't find anything to eat on the way. None of
us are equipped to trudge through snow and ice. We'd be lucky if half of us survived
without freezing or starving." She took off her helmet and two plaits
unfurled, draping themselves over her shoulders. "We'll have to come up
with another idea. The Red Range—"
"No,
Xamtys." He stopped short, gasping with pain. His strong hand gripped the
side of the wagon while the dressing was removed. "The Red Range is out of
the question." He pulled out a map and placed his finger over a dot at the
heart of Girdlegard. "This is where we'll go. It's a somber place, I know,
and a curse hangs over its history, but it's our only safe bet."
She
ran a hand over her face as if to wipe away the dark thoughts and tiredness.
"What makes you so sure?"
"It's
not connected to the tunnels and there's no other way in. We'll have to cover a
few miles overland, but once we're there, the women and children will be out of
danger. The surrounding area is flat and easy to survey. We'll be safe until
Tungdil or Gandogar finds us." He cursed Bislipur silently; he could
barely move because of the wound in his chest, and he felt dangerously weak.
"Girdlegard
is a big place. We can't count on sending messengers." Xamtys studied the
section of map beneath Balendilín’s hovering finger. "I've never heard of
the place."
"We
won't need messengers. Provided we make sure everyone knows where we're going,
our two friends will find us in the normal course of events. They're bound to
realize that the orcs have seized the tunnels and they'll start making
inquiries."
"Hmm."
The queen didn't seem entirely convinced. "But then the beasts will be
able to find us too. Is that what we want?"
"Absolutely."
He nodded vigorously, his brown eyes gazing earnestly. "That's exactly my
intention. I want Nôd’onn to lead his army to us."
Xamtys
looked at him as if he were out of his mind. "He'll never show up in
person, and if he does, we'll be dead. If you want a swift end, Balendilín, you
should have stayed in the Blue Range. We needn't have bothered to escape."
"No,
Nôd’onn must come to us. He's been scouring Girdlegard for the books and relics.
If he thinks we've got them, he'll gather his hordes and attack us in
person."
"But
why would we want him to attack us?" She
leaned over the side of the wagon and looked at him imploringly. "Balendilín,
I need to know why I should lead my warriors to certain death."
He
met her worried gaze. "We need to draw Nôd’onn close to us so Gandogar and
Tungdil can find him. Otherwise he'll barricade himself somewhere in the depths
of Girdlegard and we won't get a chance to use Keenfire against him."
At
last the queen saw the logic of the plan. "So we'll act as bait. Of
course, the only drawback is that no one knows when Gandogar or Tungdil will
arrive."
"Or
if they'll make it at all," he admitted frankly, closing his eyes. The
loss of blood was sapping his strength, making him dizzy. "But it's our
only hope."
"Very
well." Xamtys let go of the wagon. "But I must warn my subjects
first."
"It's
too late for that. The orcs know all about the tunnels; they'll be there
already. It's the obvious thing to do." He gripped her hand. "Your
Majesty, we must resign ourselves to being the last dwarven army in these
lands. The task of destroying Nôd’onn falls to us alone."
She
took a deep breath and stared at his chapped hand. "To think that they're
butchering my folk and I can't even stop them." A tear trickled down her
soft cheek. "We must avenge ourselves a thousand times over, Balendilín.
The fields of Girdlegard will be awash with orcish blood, and I shall pursue
our enemies tirelessly, stopping only when my royal mace shatters on an ogre's
skull." Balendilín could see from a glance that her weapon would never
break. Suddenly Xamtys looked concerned. "But what if Nôd’onn defeats us
before either expedition returns?"
He
smiled at her, trying to look more confident than he felt. "We won't let
him," he said firmly.
Xamtys
held her head high, her brown eyes scanning the rows of anxious, determined
faces in the wagons. Some of the children were crying, their wails rising above
the clunking armor and weaponry as the other passengers fidgeted in their
seats. The air smelled stuffy and old.
"As you wish, Balendilín.
I will follow your lead." She shook his hand and returned to her wagon.
The news of their destination spread like wildfire through
the carriages. The secondlings had left their kingdom with misgivings, but on
hearing where Balendilín was taking them, they reacted with disbelief, horror,
and, in a few cases, unmitigated fear.
Roodacre, Kingdom of Tabaîn,
Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
Once again the company passed the
sentries' muster without anyone remarking on Djerůn's great size.
Roodacre
was a vast place. The population was listed as seventy thousand in one of
Lot-Ionan's books, but the study had been written some time ago and the city
was still expanding.
"I
don't blame the orcs for not touching it," commented Boïndil. "I'll
wager that Roodacre could rally thirty thousand trained defenders, not to
mention the rest."
"It
won't take long for the orcs to gather an army to rival them," said Andôkai.
"Either that, or the älfar will capture the city by stealth."
Mifurdania had taught them that nowhere was safe from Tion's hordes. "If
all else fails, Nôd’onn will send one of his famuli to tear down the walls and
let the orcs in. Once they're inside the settlement, Roodacre will be lost.
Humans are no match for orcs." She pointed to a tavern where a light was
still burning in the bar. "Shall we go in?"
"I
wouldn't want to live in a place as flat as this," Bavragor said to
Balyndis. "How are you supposed to hide from the sun when there isn't any
shade? It must be baking in the summer."
"I've
nothing against warmth, provided it comes from my forge," said the smith,
ushering him in front of her.
"Yes,
there's nothing better than smiting red-hot iron on the anvil and letting the
hammer sing." Tungdil sighed. "I miss my smithy."
"Your
smithy?" echoed Balyndis, surprised. "I thought you were a
fourthling. Aren't Goïmdil’s dwarves supposed to be gem cutters?"
"Exactly,"
said Goïmgar in an I-told-you-so tone of voice. "Gem cutters and diamond
polishers. But he's not one of—"
"I'm
a fourthling, all right, but I've always felt more of an affinity for a craft
beloved of all our folks," Tungdil cut in.
"He's
not one of us," Goïmgar continued dismissively. "He's just a
foundling. He lived with the long-uns until someone talked him into thinking
he was a fourthling, and then he took it upon himself to steal the crown."
"Oh,"
she said in confusion, "but if you were raised by men, who taught you to
love the smithy?"
"I've
always loved metalwork," he confided. "Even with sweat pouring into
my eyes, arms as heavy as lead, and sparks singeing my beard, there's nowhere
I'd rather be than at the anvil."
Her
eyes lit up as she laughed. "I know what you mean." She rolled up her
mail shirt to show him the scar on her right arm. "Look, that's what
Vraccas did to me when I tried to forge a sword. He doesn't approve of dwarves
fashioning anything but axes and maces. He sent a message through the anvil,
and I've never been tempted to make another one since."
Tungdil
pulled off his glove enthusiastically and held out his left palm, which was
marked by a deep red scar. "It was a horseshoe. I knocked it off the anvil
and put my hand out to catch it before it landed in the dirt. It was my
best-ever horseshoe, and I wasn't about to see it ruined."
Balyndis
was swept away by Tungdil's hitherto unsuspected passion for the forge. Soon
they were deep in conversation about the particulars of metalwork and had quite
forgotten their companions.
Andôkai
called them to order by clearing her throat. "There'll be plenty of time
for talking later. First we need to find somewhere to stay."
Tungdil
glanced around for the first time and saw that they were in a large room of
staring humans. Djerůn towered above them like a statue. The enormous
warrior would have looked more at home on a plinth outside the town hall than
in the front room of a tavern.
The
innkeeper lodged them in a dormitory usually used by traveling merchants.
Because of the threat facing Girdlegard, trade between towns had practically
ceased, and so Tungdil and his friends had the place to themselves at no extra
cost. None of them felt like talking to the locals, so they ordered their meal
to be brought to their room.
Feeling
sidelined by Balyndis's and Tungdil's enthusiasm for the smithy, Bavragor tried
to interest Balyndis in the art of masonry, with only moderate success.
He
was a few notes into a traditional song of the Hammer Fists when Tungdil delved
into his knapsack and brought out the sigurdaisy wood. Balyndis saw him
inspecting it and leaned over to get a closer look. The melody stopped
abruptly, ending in an unintelligible grunt.
"Is
it metal?" The firstling frowned as she stared in fascination at the
surface. "I've never seen anything like it. We don't have it in our
kingdom."
Tungdil
gave her a brief account of the wood and its purpose and handed her the relic.
"The trees were all chopped down, so this is the last piece in
Girdlegard—except Gandogar's, of course. Without it, we'd never be able to
make Keenfire."
She
ran her hands over it reverently, trying to feel the details with her fingers.
Bavragor looked on jealously.
"Ha,
look at him stare!" cackled Goïmgar, hiccuping with glee. "His one
eye is falling out of its socket! Don't you get it?" he jeered.
"She's not interested in you anymore. You're a stone splitter, not a fancy
smith! It's too bad you've got the wrong gift." He stopped to fill his
pipe, then jabbed the stem toward Tungdil. "Charlatans are in the habit of
taking what doesn't belong to them."
Tungdil's
cheeks reddened with anger and shame. "That's enough from you, Goïmgar,"
he said harshly. "Don't you see that spitefulness doesn't do you any
favors?"
"Oh,
I'm fine, thanks for asking," he hissed back. "How would you feel
with everyone picking on you all the time?"
"Why
can't you see that this isn't about Gandogar or the succession? We're here to
stop Nôd’onn because—" Tungdil was about to launch into yet another
explanation, but opted instead for the truth. "But you know that, don't
you? You don't want
to understand. You like being the one with a grievance!"
"What
I think is my business, not yours! Anyhow, I
was forced to join this expedition against my will and I don't see why I should
suffer in silence. It wasn't my idea to come on this mission, and I'm going to
keep reminding you of that."
"Actually,
Goïmgar, you're not. No more insults, no more snide comments, no more cussed
remarks, or I'll solder your lips together with red-hot metal. Do you
understand? We need your hands and your craftsmanship, not your poisonous
tongue." Eyes flashing, he turned to Bavragor and Boïndil. "As for
you two, you're to leave him in peace. The teasing stops now."
Goïmgar
puffed furiously on his pipe, sending clouds of blue smoke shooting toward the
ceiling. He got up and walked to the door. "Don't worry, I'm not running
away," he said scornfully when he saw the alarmed expression on Tungdil's
face. "I'm going outside so I can walk up and down and be as insulting,
snide, and cussed as I like—and you'd better not get in my way!"
He marched out,
letting the door slam behind him.
Rodario
was the first to break the silence. "Would anyone like the last of this
delectable sausage?" he inquired. "I'm still a little hungry, but
good manners dictate that..." He broke off when no one showed any sign of
responding, and decided that the lack of interest entitled him to help himself.
Having finished the sausage with gusto, he dipped his hands in the tub of warm
water provided by the publican and lathered the soap in preparation for a wash.
He
was watched by Boïndil, who sighed incredulously to communicate his opinion of
washing and water in general. The secondling stared up at Djerůn, who had
taken his place on the floor while Andôkai stood at the window and drew the
rudimentary curtains. She had taken off her cloak. "Well, long-un,"
he said to the giant, "you and I are both dying to slay a dozen runts, but
don't forget: If we come across a pack of them, the first ten belong to
me."
Djerůn
maintained his customary silence.
Boïndil
shrugged, went to the window, and climbed out onto the roof. He soon spotted Goïmgar.
"You should see this," he called out to the others. "The artisan
is marching up and down the street."
"Tell
him to come back in," said Tungdil, who was poring over the map. The city
walls did nothing to assure him of their safety.
We've had proof enough that the älfar can slip past sentries with ease.
If their enemies had spies anywhere near the city, they would know by now that
the odd-looking group had found its way to Roodacre.
They'll come for us and they won't give in until they've seen their mission
through.
"He
says he won't," Boïndil bellowed through the window.
"Pretend
you've seen an älf," suggested Bavragor, offering a morsel of genuine
dwarven cheese to Balyndis. "That should do the trick." Andôkai
wrinkled her nose in disgust at the smell, but said nothing.
Sure
enough, a few moments later they heard the rush of footsteps on the stairs;
then the artisan burst into the dormitory, banging the door behind him and
dropping the heavy oak panel into the latch.
Boïndil
abandoned his post and climbed back inside, his chain mail clinking softly.
"You were lucky," he said gravely. He curled his long plait into a
pillow and lay down. "The älf was right behind you."
Goïmgar turned a deathly shade of pale.
Roodacre, Kingdom of Tabaîn,
Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
Tungdil was woken by the sound of
scraping metal. He opened his eyes.
Djerůn
had got to his feet and drawn his mighty sword. He was holding the weapon
outstretched in his right hand, blade angled toward the door. Andôkai, still in
bed, was wide-awake too. She signaled to Tungdil, instructing him to keep quiet
and lie still.
They
watched as a thin strip of wood slipped through the doorframe and rose toward
the latch, pushing the oak beam noiselessly out of the catch. Little by little
the door came open. Faint light sloped into the dormitory from the corridor,
illuminating the outline of a stocky figure.
The
intruder was roughly the size of a dwarf. He was wearing a helmet and, judging
from his silhouette, was blessed with an exceptionally bushy beard. In his left
hand he was clutching a sack. The sight of Djerůn stopped him in his
tracks. Andôkai gave the command.
The
giant shot forward to seize the intruder, but his phenomenal speed was not
enough. Ducking away, the little fellow surprised them all by darting in
instead of out.
"Stop
right there!" Tungdil sprang out of bed and barred his path. He made to
grab him, but the dwarf proved astonishingly agile, leaving the startled
Tungdil with a clump of whiskers in his hand.
The
intruder leaped nimbly onto the windowsill, hurled his sack at his pursuers,
and fled across the roof. The bag smacked Tungdil in the chest, spilling its
contents across the roughly hewn tiles.
The
clattering and jangling woke the others. Boïndil was up like a shot, running
around the room, brandishing his axes and bellowing for the orcs to fight him
if they dared. The rest of the company reached for their weapons.
Balyndis,
dressed only in her undergarments, had taken up position on her bed and was
gripping her ax with both hands. A shaft of moonlight slanted through the
curtains, exposing her curves. It occurred to Tungdil that she probably didn't
realize how much she was revealing, but he couldn't bring himself to look away.
"Where
did they go?" demanded Boïndil, spoiling for a fight.
"We
had an uninvited guest," said Andôkai, leaning out of the window to see
where the fellow had got to. "A dwarf. There must have been something
funny about him because he didn't respond to my spell. And now he's gone."
"Gold,"
exclaimed Tungdil in surprise, finally noticing the shiny coins on the floor.
He bent down and scooped them up. Some of them were stuck together and left
damp traces on his hands.
"And
a dagger," observed Goïmgar, who was cowering in a corner.
Boïndil
picked it up and eyed it carefully. "Forged on a dwarven anvil," he
said slowly, handing it to Balyndis. "You're the expert. What do you
reckon?"
Booted
feet thundered up the stairs and across the landing to their room. The next
moment, armored guards burst inside, halberds pointing menacingly toward them.
"Light,
I need more light!" shouted someone, and in an instant lamps were passed
forward and more guards thronged inside.
The coins and the knife! Tungdil was about to throw
the gold out of the window and tell Boïndil to put away the dagger, but already
the room was bathed in light, revealing telltale red smudges on his fingers: The
coins and the dagger were covered in blood.
"By
Palandiell," exclaimed the captain of the guards, a strong man of some
forty cycles with a small scar on the left side of his face. "I've never
seen such brazen criminals. Just look at the ruffians! Sitting here calmly,
dividing their loot." His eyes shifted to the dagger in Boïndil's hand.
"He's even holding the murder weapon!" He waved his men forward.
"Arrest the lot of them, the men as well as the little fellows. We'll soon
find out which of them were embroiled in this dastardly business."
"What
business would that be, oh worthy guardian of our municipal safety?"
inquired Rodario in his most amiable and gracious tone. He could easily have
been inquiring about the weather. He adjusted his undergarments with
aristocratic elegance. "Perhaps you would care to enlighten us?"
"Sir
Darolan was murdered at knifepoint not three streets from here." He glared
at Boïndil. "The game's up. You were seen and followed." He turned to
one of his men. "There's a whole band of them. Professionals, I'll
warrant."
"I'm
afraid there's been a terrible misunderstanding," chimed in Tungdil. He
outlined what had happened before the arrival of the guards, holding up the
lock of beard as evidence. On closer inspection, it turned out to be a snippet
of fleece.
The
captain laughed in his face. "A likely story, groundling. I've never
heard such nonsense."
"I know it
sounds strange, but—"
"Strange?
It's preposterous! I'm arresting you and your accomplices in the name of King
Nate. One of you will sign a confession soon enough. We've solved every murder
in this city by putting the suspects on the rack."
"As
I was saying," Rodario resumed smoothly, "the dwarves are nothing to
do with us." He winked furtively at Tungdil. "In fact, my companions
and I were accompanying the lady when—"
"Save
your stories for the interrogator," the captain interrupted him harshly.
Just then his dour face brightened and he looked at them with sudden kindness.
"Although, I must say, the evidence in your favor is quite
compelling..." He took the strand of fake beard from Tungdil and gestured
to the door. "We've been wasting our time," he told his guards.
"The real murderer led us here on false pretenses. We need to get after
him before the trail goes cold."
"But,
Captain!" one of his subordinates protested vigorously. "We saw the
dwarf run into the tavern—"
"Get
a move on," the captain ordered. "Outside on the double! We'll never
find him at this rate." Realizing that he was not to be dissuaded, the
baffled guardsmen followed his instructions and exited the room. Soon afterward
their clunking armor could be heard through the open window.
"That
was close. Thank goodness he changed his mind." Rodario breathed a deep
sigh of relief. "Can we go to bed now?"
Andôkai
was already packing her things. "He'll come to his senses before too long.
The sooner we leave, the better. The spell won't last forever."
"What
do you mean, come to his senses? He's always
like that," objected Boïndil, scratching his beard in confusion.
"She
means the captain, not Rodario," explained Tungdil with a grin. It dawned
on him why no one ever challenged Djerůn; the maga could obviously control
people's thoughts. "She put a spell on him. Why else would he let us
go?" He stared pensively at a tuft of fleece that had stuck to his fingers. The whole thing was a setup and it almost succeeded. "Someone
was trying to get us into trouble."
"And
it nearly worked! The villain disguised himself as a dwarf," said Boïndil,
scandalized. He started to pack. "Just wait until I get my hands on him.
He'll wish he'd never been born."
"Children
can't move that fast," mused Balyndis, gathering her things. "It must
have been a gnome or a kobold or..."
Tungdil
raised his hands to his head in sudden understanding. "Of course!
Bislipur's gnome!" They hurried out of the room and down the stairs.
"Sverd must have followed us and waited for the opportunity to land us in
real trouble. Bislipur's behind it all!"
"You
can't fault the gnome's persistence," said Bavragor admiringly, tugging on
the straps of his pack. "To think he followed us all this way."
"It
would have been easy enough to track us," argued Boïndil. He peered into
the front room of the tavern before waving the others on.
"Not
necessarily," countered Balyndis, impressed by Sverd's tenacity. "He
must have snuck into the firstling kingdom and found his way into the tunnels.
That takes some doing."
"Remember
the buckle we found in the runaway wagon?" Tungdil tiptoed to the door and
scanned the street. "I knew I recognized it from somewhere." He
slipped out of the tavern with Boïndil at his side. "We're safe," he
said. "They're searching another street."
"You
mustn't run," Boïndil told Goïmgar. "Running in the middle of the
night only attracts attention. They'll assume you're a criminal."
The
travelers proceeded at a leisurely pace, chatting and smiling as if they were
out for a nighttime stroll. Nothing in their behavior suggested they were
engaged in illicit activity or fleeing a murder scene. Djerůn stayed in
the shadows, trying to keep a low profile.
Before
they could reach the gates, a group of guards approached on a routine patrol.
"Remember,
Goïmgar: Just stay calm," whispered Boïndil.
"Shush,"
hissed Balyndis with one eye on the trembling artisan. "You're only making
things worse!"
The
guards were getting closer and had almost drawn level when a thin voice piped
up. "Arrest the villains! Those are the culprits! Arrest them, guards!
They're getting away!"
"That
blasted gnome. I'll wring his scrawny neck," growled Ireheart, whipping
out his axes to defend himself. The bewildered guardsmen looked to their
leader for direction.
Just
then the captain of the first patrol burst onto the street, shouting orders for
their arrest. Candles blazed in the windows, shutters were opened, and the city
awoke from its slumber.
"We
don't have time for explanations," said Andôkai, drawing her sword.
"They won't believe us and we'll rot in their dungeons."
"So
what do we do?" demanded Bavragor, gripping the haft of his hammer, ready
to fight his way out of the gates.
"It's
probably best if I slip away now," said Rodario, shouldering his precious
bag of costumes and hastily taking his leave. "I'll see you outside the
city. I don't want to get in your way." He hurried into a side street
before the guards could surround them.
"Never
trust an actor." Narmora grinned and pulled out her weapons.
Tungdil held up his ax, poll first. "Don't kill unless you have to," he instructed them. "We're leaving Roodacre—whether they like it or not."
Tungdil couldn't help noticing that
their opponents were woefully underprepared. More accustomed to chasing purse
snatchers and incarcerating drunks, the guards had little experience with
combat and stood no chance of restraining four staunch dwarves, a maga, a half älf,
and a giant.
Furgas
wasn't much of a warrior, but he held his ground valiantly and cleared enough
space for Narmora to swing her weapons unimpeded. Goïmgar was tasked with
guarding the rest of the ingots.
After
the shortest of skirmishes, they hurried to the gates, where Rodario was
conversing with a guard. The whole company descended on the distracted sentry
before he could sound the alarm. When he eventually noticed the maga, it was
already too late.
"You
will let us through," she intoned. "You will let us through and tell
no one that we passed this way." Even as she spoke, the sentry's eyes
glazed over and he raised the portcullis without a word.
"Didn't
I do well?" the impresario said to Andôkai. "I bewitched his senses
with my silvery speech, thus enabling the Estimable Maga to cast her spell.
Magic certainly has its uses. I don't suppose you'd consider a spot of
backstage conjuring? Together we could put on a spectacle of such—"
Furgas
shook his head despairingly. "For pity's sake, Rodario!"
"There's
no harm in asking. We need to earn a living somehow when our amazing adventure
is at an end."
Bavragor laughed.
"Assuming you survive that long."
Buffeted
by the wind, the rising portcullis made enough of a racket to wake the other
sentries, whom Boïndil attacked with enthusiasm. He stuck to using his poll as
instructed, but Tungdil detected the sound of splintering bone.
He's desperate to finish them off. He looked in
consternation at the bloodied and oddly misshapen face of a sentry. The man
keeled over as Ireheart landed a follow-up blow. With at least one dead, the
company would be wanted for multiple murder as well as theft.
Meanwhile,
the portcullis was still rising slowly, but Sverd had followed them and was
hiding in an alleyway, preparing to alert the guards a second time.
"They're escaping! The murderers are escaping through the gates!"
Even
the last determined sleepers in the city were torn from their slumber by his
shouts. Everyone with two legs and a weapon found their way onto the street,
including the first courageous members of the militia, who came running out of
their houses, having barely stopped to dress.
"Do
something, Andôkai," shouted Tungdil, terrified of what would happen to
the citizens of Roodacre if the battle-crazed Boïndil was to rampage through
the city. "We won't be able to hold them off."
This
time she didn't turn to sorcery. "Djerůn," she barked, and
issued an unintelligible order.
The
giant stepped forward. The torches of the assembled crowd bathed his armor in
flickering light, bringing the threatening visor to life. At that moment the
helmet produced a noise unlike anything Tungdil had heard in his life. It was a
cross between a reptilian hiss and the dull, ponderous rumble of an earthquake,
a sound so full of aggression and menace that anyone in earshot knew instantly
not to approach. Tungdil felt the hairs on his neck stand on end. He took a
nervous step back.
Inside
the helmet, the violet glow intensified, streaming out of the eyeholes and
outshining the torches. The horrified faces of the transfixed crowd were
steeped in a purple light that was painful to behold.
The
second roar was even louder and more terrifying than the first. This time
everyone, including the guardsmen, turned in panic and fled, running back
through the streets and alley-ways to safety.
The
portcullis was almost fully raised. "Let's g-go," stuttered Tungdil,
still shaken by the sound of Djerůn's voice. Assuming
it was his voice...
They
ran into the night, glancing over their shoulders as they hurried down the
snowy road. No one followed. The giant's performance had made enough of an
impression to dissuade the townspeople from hunting them down.
As
for Tungdil, he was more curious than ever about the armored warrior, although
he suspected the truth would be less than reassuring. It's not a human, at any rate, he decided.
The
company jogged in silence through the snow. After a while, Bavragor, who had
fallen in line behind Goïmgar, pointed to the artisan's back. "Where are
the ingots?" he panted breathlessly, listening in vain for a response.
"Hey, I asked you a question!"
Goïmgar
sped up, intent on getting far enough ahead before he dared to answer. "I
lost them," he said plaintively. "A guardsman knocked the bag from my
hand and I couldn't reach it in the scrum. I'm sorry, I honestly didn't mean
to—"
"Didn't
mean to...? I'll give you didn't-mean to, you worthless little—" Bavragor lunged at him but
was rest rained by Tungdil from behind.
"It's all
right, Bavragor."
The
mason was beside himself. His chestnut eye glinted angrily. "All right?
We've lost every single one of the ingots! We can't exactly fetch them
now!"
"We'll
be in the fifthling kingdom before you know it; we're bound to find something
there," said Tungdil in a firm, confident voice that reminded everyone
that he was the leader. To his mind, the matter was closed.
"But
you said we shouldn't rely on finding materials on the way," Bavragor
objected stubbornly. "So why—"
"What's
done is done," Tungdil said sharply. "We'll have to make the best of
things." He loosened his hold on Bavragor and clapped him on the back.
"No matter what happens, we're not going to let it stop us. We can't! No
one else is going to forge the ax and save Girdlegard. It's up to us."
"It
would be a darned sight easier without Goïmgar," grumbled Bavragor.
"He only drags us down."
"Vraccas
must have made him part of this mission for a reason." Tungdil noticed that
the mason was wheezing. "Steady on, Bavragor, you'd better stop talking
before you get a stitch. Goïmgar's fitter than you."
"Cowards
always make good runners." Even as he spoke, there was a jangling noise
and he stiffened. Before he could take another step, his legs buckled and he
toppled over, raising a cloud of glistening snow. When the flakes settled, he
was buried beneath a layer of white crystals. Sticking out of his neck was a
bolt fired from a crossbow.
The
others, with the exception of Djerůn, threw themselves to the ground so
as not to fall victim to the archer.
Once
again, Andôkai barked an unintelligible command, whereupon the giant scanned
their surroundings and set off at a sprint.
It definitely wasn't an älf, thought Tungdil.
Unlike Djerůn, he could see no sign of their hidden assailant. Guardsmen? But guardsmen carry torches...
The
maga crawled through the snow to examine the mason's wound. Balyndis wriggled
over to join her.
"The
tip stopped just short of his spine," said Andôkai, after a cursory
inspection. "If it weren't for his cloak and the metal-plated nape of his
helmet, it would have penetrated farther." She gripped the shaft of the
bolt resolutely and pulled it from his flesh. With her right hand she stemmed
the blood from the wound. "I hope he'll forgive me for using my dastardly
magic to save his life." She closed her eyes in concentration. "I
can't say I've had much experience in healing dwarves. I hope I can do
it."
So do I. Something whirred past Tungdil, just
missing his head; then a third missile rebounded off Goïmgar's shield. They
heard a high-pitched scream, which stopped abruptly as Djerůn seized his
prey.
He
cast their tormentor into the snow beside them. A yellowy-green circle sullied
the pristine snow around the diminutive corpse. A head with two long pointed
ears plumped beside it.
Goïmgar
shrank back in horror. "Sverd!" The dead cross- bowman was Bislipur's
former slave. The artisan looked at the mangled gnome and shuddered, then
stared at the dent in his shield where the third bolt had struck. "But why
would he..." He broke off, not wishing to draw attention to the matter,
but Tungdil finished the question for him.
"Why
would Sverd be aiming at you?" He stared into the gnome's unseeing eyes,
but Djerůn's ruthless solution to the problem had ruled out all hope of an answer.
"You were traveling with the wrong party, I suppose."
He
bent down to pick up the now-redundant choker. Sverd was free at last, but not
in the way he had hoped. Pensively, he pocketed the collar, intending to
confront Bislipur with the evidence when they next met. As he looked down, he
noticed a shiny lump of butter-yellow metal. Gold!
There could be no further doubt that the gnome was responsible for the mishaps
that had befallen them on their journey.
Boïndil
got straight to the point. "Bislipur is the most contemptible dwarf that
ever lived." He wiped the snow furiously from his thick cloak and beard.
"Setting his lackey on us and trying to have us killed! Dwarves don't assassinate
their kinsfolk; it's the most dastardly crime a child of Vraccas could
commit!"
"The
gnome did all his dirty work," commented Tungdil, his mind still whirring.
"Bislipur wasn't going to kill us himself. He would have washed his hands
of all responsibility."
"Just
wait until I get hold of his wretched king," threatened Boïndil, praying
to Vraccas to hasten their encounter. "I'm going to beat him
black-and-blue."
Still
struggling to digest what had happened, Goïmgar shook his head slowly.
"No, Gandogar would never have agreed to it; he's not a murderer, whatever
you think. Bislipur must have taken it upon himself to..." The artisan
lapsed into a helpless silence, no longer sure what to believe.
"Hang
on a minute; you want Gandogar to be high king, don't you?" Boïndil
accused him suspiciously.
"Of
course I do! I said so from the start. But to murder a dwarf because of
it..." He shuddered. "Bislipur must be mad," he murmured,
staring at Bavragor's motionless form. "He must be so desperate for
Gandogar to be crowned that he doesn't know what he's doing. He's insane."
Balyndis
took Bavragor's hand to comfort him. Slowly the open wound in his neck
shriveled until only a small scar was left. Exhausted, Andôkai sank down and
cooled her face on the snow.
"I've
healed the wound," she said faintly. "In a moment he'll..."
"Magic," Bavragor muttered sleepily. "I've been thinking; maybe it's not so useless after all." Groggily, but with a profoundly serious expression, he nodded to the exhausted maga. There was no need for him to thank her in any other way.
A question
if I may, glorious captain of our troupe." The sun was just rising when
Rodario, shivering with cold but gripping his duffel bag with grim
determination, drew alongside Tungdil. The impresario pointed furtively at Djerůn.
The events of the previous night had reminded him and the others that the
giant was unlikely to be an unusually tall man. "What kind of creature is
he?" The question was barely audible through the layers of scarf wrapped
around his head.
"I
have no idea," Tungdil said frankly without slowing his pace.
Rodario
displayed his customary persistence. "No idea? But I thought the lot of
you had been traveling together for a while..."
"She
told us that he isn't a monster." Tungdil suddenly remembered the night in
the desert when he had caught a glimpse of what lay behind the terrifying
visor. A shiver ran down his spine.
The
impresario blew on his frozen fingers. "Not a monster, eh? Then what in
the name of Palandiell is he? I've never known a human to light up a darkened
street with the power of his eyes. If it's a trick, I'd give anything to know
the secret; the audience would love it."
Hoping
that Rodario would give up and go away, Tungdil said nothing and trudged
energetically through the snow, glancing at the map to get his bearings.
"Very
well. I'll have to assume that he's a creature of Tion." Looking pretty
pleased with himself, Rodario stuck his hands into the pockets of his fur coat.
"It adds a bit of drama to the plot. Ye gods, the play will be brilliant.
The whole of Girdlegard will flock to see it." He stopped and cursed.
"I wish my blasted ink would stop freezing. At this rate, I'll have forgotten
the best bits before I get a chance to write them down."
"You
should carry the inkwell next to your skin," Tungdil advised him.
"That way the ink will be nice and warm and you can scribble as much as
you like."
Rodario
gave him a friendly pat on the back. "There's a sharp mind hiding under
all that hair, my little friend. I was thinking the same thing, but thank you
nonetheless."
Not a
single footprint marred the snowy road ahead. The wintry weather and marauding
orcs had convinced the people of Tabaîn to stay by their hearths and barricade
their doors.
The
terrain was so flat that raiding parties could be spotted well in advance. In
clear weather the watchtowers commanded views of over a hundred miles, but no
amount of warning could save the settlements from the orcs. The northern
hordes could be stopped only by good swordsmen, and Tabaîn had precious few of
those.
Tungdil
checked their position against the map. They were closer than ever to the
southernmost reaches of the Perished Land.
Who knows how far the pestilence has spread? There's no way of telling with the
landscape blanketed in snow.
"Orcs,"
came Boïndil's warning from the front of the procession. "Twenty miles to
the west. They're...Hang on, they're turning east," he reported,
surprised. "They're moving fast. You don't think they're looking for us,
do you?"
Bavragor
pointed to a hamlet situated in the direction that the beasts had been heading
originally. The superior vision in his remaining eye enabled him to see what
the others could not. "That would have been their next stop, but they've
abandoned their quarry." He wiped the sweat from his forehead. A red glow
had settled over his face.
"Are
you sure you're all right?" Balyndis asked. "You look a bit
feverish."
"What
if it's gangrene?" said Boïndil. "Maybe the hocus-pocus hasn't worked
as well as it should."
The
allegation spurred Andôkai into action. She asked the mason to lean forward so
she could inspect the wound on his neck. Boïndil was beside her in a flash.
They came to the same conclusion.
"The
wound has healed nicely," he admitted. "I can't argue with
that."
"I've
lost a bit of blood, that's all," said Bavragor, trying to allay the
others' fears. He was obviously uncomfortable at being the center of attention,
but Balyndis persevered. She pulled off her left glove and laid her hand on his
forehead.
"For
the love of Vraccas, I could forge a horseshoe on there," she said in
alarm.
"With
a skull as thick as his, I don't suppose it would do much harm," Tungdil
joked. "He's a tough customer, our Hammerfist."
"I'm
serious, Tungdil, he's feverish. Either that, or he's got a nasty cold. We need
to get him inside before he loses consciousness or worse."
"Don't
be ridiculous," objected Bavragor. "I'm perfectly—" He doubled
up in a coughing fit that went on and on until he was shaking so violently that
his legs caved in. Tungdil pulled him upright and steadied him.
"I'd
say it's a cold." Balyndis scanned the horizon. "He needs a warm bed
for the night."
Tungdil
nodded. "We'll stop at the next hamlet. Sorry, old fellow, but a dead
mason won't be any good to us."
"A
cold!" Goïmgar chuckled maliciously. "So who's the weakling now? I
might not be big, but at least I'm hardy." He was practically glowing with
satisfaction at not being the underdog anymore. Head held high, he strode past
the ailing mason with a smug smile that prompted Furgas to throw a snowball in
his face.
Tungdil
soon realized that their efforts to find a bed were destined to fail; there
wasn't a single farmhouse, let alone a hamlet, between them and the Gray Range.
Since Bavragor refused to make a detour, they walked without stopping in order
to reach the entrance to the tunnels as soon as they could.
A
nasty surprise awaited them when they finally reached the spot. The mouth of
the shaft had transformed itself into a frozen pond.
"We'll
have to walk, then," said Bavragor cheerily, doing his best to downplay
his illness and seem sprightly despite his fragile state. His bright red face
and the beads of perspiration forming beneath his frozen helmet told a
different story. "I can see the range from here."
"The
range has been in sight since the moment we entered Tabaîn," moaned Goïmgar,
dreading the prospect of another long march in the cold. "Are you trying
to get us all snow-blind or something?"
Grumpily,
he set off through the snow, the others following in his wake. Toward evening
they came to a deserted barn filled with bales of hay.
They
lit a fire in spite of their qualms and made themselves comfortable, then
cleared a spot for Bavragor to lie beside the flames, swaddling him in three
blankets so he sweated out the cold. Rodario curled up in the warmth, while Djerůn
stood guard by the door, leaving the others free to look after the invalid.
They clustered around him.
"It's
nothing, honestly." Just then he choked and spat out a large clot of
blood. He was gasping for air, groaning rather than breathing, and he seemed to
be losing strength. The warmth was making things worse. "If you give me a
sip of brandy, I'll be fighting fit."
"It
can't be a cold," Boïndil said firmly. He got up. "It's gangrene, I
know it. Sometimes it spreads beneath the skin, even after the wound has
healed."
"No,
Boïndil," snapped Andôkai, "I cleaned the flesh thoroughly."
A
terrible thought occurred to Tungdil. He got up, went over to Goïmgar, and
picked up his shield to examine the dent. Where the bolt had hit, the metal was
discolored and there were traces of a clear frozen liquid that neither he nor
the artisan had noticed before. His spirits sank. The bolt had been dipped in
something that had stuck to the shield.
Vraccas, give him strength. "Do you have a
spell against poison?" he asked Andôkai hoarsely. "By the look of
things, Sverd wasn't relying purely on his aim."
"Poison?"
Bavragor swallowed his cough and grinned. As his lips parted, his companions
saw the blood leaking from his gums and coloring his teeth. His mouth was full
of blood. "I knew it! Did you hear that, Goïmgar? What's the betting you'd
be dead already? I've drunk enough brandy and beer in my lifetime to toughen me
up. Ha, a cold!"
The
maga closed her eyes. "I can't do anything against poison. My art is...
I'm afraid, it's not my kind of magic," she said in a soft, apologetic
tone. "Healing the wound drained a lot of my energy. My strength is all
but exhausted."
A
terrible silence settled over the group. There was no mistaking what Andôkai's
words meant for the mason. Balyndis reached for his calloused hand and squeezed
it encouragingly. She was too choked to speak.
"I
know what you're thinking," croaked Bavragor at length. "Things don't
look good for the merry minstrel. It's all right; I wasn't intending to return
from the mission anyway." He looked up at Tungdil. "Still, I'd give
anything to see the fifthling kingdom and fashion Keenfire's spurs. I wanted to
go out with a bang, not in a dingy barn miles away from my beloved
mountains."
Blood
was seeping through his pores, the droplets merging into rivulets and soaking
his straw mattress. In no time his garments were drenched with red.
"You're
not going to die," Tungdil told him shakily. His smile, which he hoped
would be encouraging, looked more like a grimace. "We can't fashion
Keenfire without you! You're Beroïn’s best mason."
Bavragor
had to swallow a mouthful of blood before he could reply. "In that case,
you'll have to take me with you. We'll make the ax to kill Nôd’onn, you'll
see." He nodded to the door. "Carry me to the Perished Land. I'll
fulfill my mission after my death."
"But...but
you'll be a revenant," stuttered Boïndil,
horrified. "Your soul—"
"I'll
do my bit for Keenfire and confound the rest!" The outburst ended in
another coughing fit.
"What
if you turn against us? The other dead souls tried to kill us and eat us!"
Boïndil glanced at the others for support. Some were struggling with their
emotions, the remainder looked embarrassed.
"Chain
my hands together, if you're worried," the mason told them. "My will
is stronger than the drive to do evil. Dwarves are too stubborn to be conquered
by darkness." He closed his eyes. "You'll have to hurry," he
gasped. He coughed again and blood spewed from his mouth, trickling into his
well-kempt beard.
"Djerůn!"
At Andôkai's bidding, the giant stooped to lift the dwarf. Cradling Bavragor
gently in his arms like a mother would carry her child, he left the barn and
stomped through the snow.
His long tireless limbs bore the mason toward the north, where the Perished Land had established its dominion, awakening anything that died to hideous life.
The rest of the company packed their
things and followed the giant as fast as the sparkling snow and the dwarves'
stumpy legs would allow.
Tungdil
looked up at the stars and wept silent tears for the mason who was sacrificing
his soul for the sake of the ax on which Girdlegard's future depended. For all
Bavragor's eccentricities and occasional-crotchetiness, he was a good dwarf
whom Tungdil regarded as a friend.
He
heard a sniff beside him and turned to the tearful Balyndis. Her eyes were red
with crying, but she smiled and squeezed his hand. Suddenly his courage, which
had all but deserted him in the barn, came flooding back.
So
much had happened since they had left the secondling kingdom—too much, in fact.
Their adventure had turned into something far bigger and more perilous than
they'd ever imagined. Even Rodario, renowned for his pompous comments, had
fallen silent and was brooding over the mason's death.
"I
hope Girdlegard is worth it, Vraccas," murmured Tungdil, gazing up at the
sparkling firmament. "When all this is over, I shall see to it that our
folks don't barricade themselves back in their mountains. From now on, we'll
work together."
Balyndis
gave his hand another squeeze, but he pulled away and hurried to join Boïndil
at the head of the procession. It was the wrong time to be thinking of
anything except Keenfire.
"You
like her, don't you?" the secondling said immediately, without glancing
round.
"Don't
start," Tungdil told him. "It's the last thing I want to talk
about."
"I
can't say I blame you. She's an attractive lass, and to someone like you, with
no experience of the fairer sex, she must look as pretty as Vraccas's own
daughter."
"I've
decided not to think about it until Nôd’onn has been defeated. My duty is to
Girdlegard."
"Trust
a scholar to want to think about it." Boïndil
took care not to meet his eye: For all intents and purposes, he was addressing Djerůn's
snowy footprints. "Think about it if you must, but remember: If something
is worth pursuing, you shouldn't waste time. Situations change faster than you
can split an orcish skull, and a moment's hesitation could cost you your
chance."
"What makes
you say that?"
"No
reason." He peered into the distance. "They're up ahead." He
whipped out his axes. "Let's hope the drunkard can defy the bidding of the
Perished Land." It was evident from his hefted weapons that he was
prepared to take decisive action.
The
maga called out to Djerůn, who raised his armored hand and beckoned them
over. At his side was Bavragor, arms dangling limply and gaze fixed blankly on
the Gray Range.
"Bavragor?"
Tungdil said gently, searching the pale face for a trace of recognition. His
features had aged terribly; he looked waxen and corpselike.
"I
feel... nothing," came the ponderous response. It seemed to cost him a
great deal of effort to open his mouth and form the words. "I can't feel
my body. My mind is... empty." The soulless eyes roved over the group and
settled on Tungdil. "It feels bad; everything feels bad. Things I loved, I
hate. Things I hated..." He stared past Tungdil and fixed his gaze on Boïndil.
"I want to slaughter the things I hated—tear them apart and devour them.
Tie my hands together; I don't know how much longer I can resist. The evil is
inside me."
"Very
well," said Tungdil, unthreading the leather strap from Goïmgar shield. He
bound Bavragor's hands behind his back.
"Tighter,"
growled the mason. "You don't have to worry about my blood flow: My heart
stopped beating when I died." He seemed tense and agitated, but once the
bonds had been tightened to his satisfaction, he relaxed a little and turned to
Tungdil. "I want you to behead me as soon as my work is done. I don't want
to serve the Perished Land for eternity and patrol the abandoned fifthling
galleries, massacring innocents and spreading the pestilence."
"No dwarf will ever serve
the Perished Land," Tungdil promised. "You have my word."
"As for you," the mason snapped at Boïndil,
"take my advice and stay away. I want nothing better than to sink my teeth
into your gullet and tear you to shreds." He squared his shoulders and his
chestnut eye glimmered cruelly before he looked down and stared at the snow. He
took a first step, then another. "Hurry, I don't want to be a soulless
corpse for a moment longer than necessary."
On a signal from the maga, Djerůn assumed the role of Bavragor's keeper, walking close behind him so the others were shielded from his jaws by a solid metal frame.
Time wore on, orbit after orbit, as
they trudged across the never-ending flats of Tabaîn. The Breadbasket, as the
fertile fields were nicknamed in summer, was so inhospitably cold that it was
essential to keep moving in order not to freeze.
Tungdil
had read somewhere that light reflected by the snow could harm the eyes and
cause permanent damage. To protect his companions from blindness, he ordered
them to bind cloth around their faces and look out through tiny slits.
Their
journey was slow and laborious. The only members of the company who didn't seem
to mind the march were Djerůn and the undead mason, who plowed their way
impassively through the snow. Since their provisions were frozen solid, they
had the onerous task of thawing their food by the fire every evening before
they could eat. Without the warm garments given to them by Xamtys, they would
surely have perished in the cold.
At
length Boïndil became more restless, his fighting instincts ever harder to
repress, while Bavragor had been stripped of the very things that made him who
he was; he didn't drink, didn't sing, didn't laugh, just stared into the
distance. On one occasion he took the edge off his hunger with a mountain hare.
Ripping it from a metal trap, he ate it alive, leaving nothing but bones and
fur. The sound of his frenzied eating and the cracking of bones made Goïmgar,
whose hand rested permanently on his sword, more nervous than ever.
The
Gray Range edged closer and closer. Its peaks seemed almost in touching
distance, yet still they struggled through the snowdrifts of Tabaîn, finally
crossing the border into Gauragar and, after an exhausting march of many
orbits, reaching the slate-gray foothills of the range.
On
their way they encountered neither orcs nor any other beasts, although they
occasionally saw their tracks. Great armies were advancing southward, but
fortunately for the company, their paths never crossed.
At
last they neared the stronghold's outermost defenses. Even from a distance they
could see that no one had been posted to defend the ramparts against intruders
from Girdlegard's interior.
The
beasts from the north had torn stone from stone, destroying walls and toppling
towers until nothing remained of the stronghold's former splendor. Their work
had been done so thoroughly that Tungdil and the others were hard-pressed to
imagine how the kingdom had looked during Giselbert Ironeye's era. Fragments of
stonework testified to the fifthling masons' skill, but the glorious ramparts
were nothing but ruins. It was a harrowing sight for the dwarves.
Although
the defenses seemed deserted, the company approached the gates with caution.
"Stay
here and don't make a sound," Boïndil told them as they struggled to the
top of a steep pathway. "Narmora and I will check for sentries."
The
pair slipped away, darting between the gray rocks and hiding behind sections of
masonry that loomed out of the snow. Their goal was an open gateway, as tall as
a house, leading straight inside the mountain.
Tungdil
scanned their surroundings and listened intently. A chill wind whistled through
the cracked ramparts, producing high-pitched notes that rolled together in a
tune. Icicles hung like glassy stalactites from the mountain ledges, and fifty
paces to their left, a waterfall had stopped midstream in a frozen sculpture of
ice.
No orcs, no
ogres, no älfar, nothing.
"Did
you hear what he said?" Goïmgar smiled bitterly. "He told us to be
quiet! If only he could hear himself."
"He's
not exactly graceful," agreed the impresario, "although the
comparison with the delightful Narmora certainly doesn't help."
Tungdil
watched as they stole forward, Boïndil relying on his diminutive size, while
the half älf sprang between the rocks with the elegance of a dancer. There were
no telltale noises from the snow beneath her feet; she seemed barely to land at
all, skimming across the ground as light as a feather. Boïndil's chain mail, by
contrast, made a terrible racket, even through his thick fur coat.
Narmora
was the first to reach the gates. She pressed herself against the wall,
listening intently to the darkness before slipping inside. Her silhouette
melted into the gloom and she disappeared from sight.
Furgas
fiddled determinedly with his gloves. "Sometimes I wish she wasn't so
daring," he whispered.
"Don't
worry, old chap," Rodario soothed him. "Narmora is a woman who knows
her talents and isn't afraid to use them. You know the sort of thing she got up
to before the three of us were a troupe. This is child's play by
comparison."
"I'd
rather not talk about Narmora," Goïmgar chipped in hurriedly. "She's
scary enough as it is."
Boïndil
had also reached the gates to the fifthling kingdom, conquered over a thousand
cycles earlier by the Perished Land. He stopped, apparently undecided, and
looked about, but the coast was clear.
At
that moment, Narmora emerged from the enormous tunnel. The black shadows stuck
to her like cobwebs, wrapping themselves around her lovingly, reluctant to set
her free. She waved to them, her relaxed manner signaling that there was
nothing to fear.
"How
did she do that?" Goïmgar whispered nervously. "It was like she was
covered in ink."
"Half
magic," came the maga's answer. "It's something she was born with. Älfar
are children of darkness."
"She'll
swap sides as soon as we meet any of her kind," Goïmgar predicted darkly.
"Blood is thicker than water."
"And
love is stronger than both," Furgas countered firmly. "Narmora would
rather die than betray me, and I'd give my life to protect her from harm."
The
puny dwarf grumbled unintelligibly and followed the others to the gateway. He
held his shield in front of him, ready to ward off an attack.
"All
clear," said Narmora, not bothering to lower her voice. "They seem to
have contented themselves with knocking down the defenses and vandalizing the
gates to the point where they can't be closed."
"So
where are all the runts?" demanded Boïndil, whirling his axes over his
head.
"At
the Stone Gateway, I expect—and for our sake, I hope they stay there,"
said Tungdil, who remembered the strong hold's layout from a book he'd once
read. He turned to the archway. "Time to relight the great furnace of
Dragon Fire!"
It
was with reverence, apprehension, and a good deal of emotion that he took his
first careful step into the tunnel, knowing that no dwarf had set foot in the
stronghold since the fifthlings' defeat.
Life
flooded back to the kingdom as Rodario and Furgas lit their lamps. The walls
reflected the light so radiantly that they hastily damped the flames.
At
last they could see that they were standing in a passageway whose walls were
clad with polished palandium. A thousand cycles of neglect had done nothing to
subdue the metal's white sheen. The likeness of dwarven kings had been etched
into the polished panels and a row of bearded rulers gazed benevolently at the
visitors, their shiny red axes of cast vraccasium raised in greeting.
"Such
majesty," murmured Rodario.
Filled
with wonderment, the dwarves sank to their knees and prayed to Vraccas. Even
the soulless Bavragor was awed by his surroundings, but every word of his prayer
was uttered with immense concentration as the evil within him strove to break
his will and seize control of his thoughts and beliefs. It hadn't reckoned with
his resolve and the legendary stubbornness of the dwarven mind.
Andôkai, Djerůn,
and the players waited patiently.
At
length Tungdil rose and breathed deeply. The passageway smelled old, dusty,
and venerable; it had retained its character in spite of the invasion of orcs
and other beasts. "We'll have to do some exploring if we're going to find
Flamemere." He set off with Boïndil at his side.
Their
boots raised clouds of dust, and from time to time a small creature scurried to
safety. The ground was littered with fragments of bone, shields, and mail.
They
proceeded in silence until they reached a second archway. The door had been
ripped from its hinges, allowing them to enter the many-columned hall. Leading
out from the vast pentagonal chamber were fifteen passageways. The stone
signposts had been smashed to smithereens.
"There's
such a thing as too much choice,"
Rodario said glumly. "Especially when we haven't got all day to scamper
around like mice until we find the right tunnel."
"We
could pick the one with the least footprints," proposed Tungdil. "I
can't imagine orcs are frequent visitors to Flamemere. There's no reason for
them to go there."
"Good
idea," agreed Boïndil, making a beeline for one of the passageways.
Narmora, Djerůn, and Andôkai set about inspecting the others, while the
rest of the company found a less exposed corner of the hall to sit and rest.
Rodario
scribbled a few thoughts, then shared a meal with Furgas, while Bavragor stayed
standing and stared emptily ahead. Goïmgar took shelter behind his shield,
chewing nervously on a strip of cured meat and scanning the room for threats.
The thought of fifteen passageways converging on his resting place did nothing
to help him relax.
"He
must be wondering what's happened to Gandogar," Balyndis said softly to
Tungdil.
"He's
not the only one. We've come all this way and no one's said anything about
another group of dwarves. Your folk hadn't seen him either. I hope nothing
dreadful's happened," he said, concerned. He closed his eyes, only to
open them suddenly and unbutton his fur coat. It was much warmer in the hall
than outside and the heat was making him tired.
"Get
some sleep," Balyndis told him. "I'll keep watch and wake you as soon
as there's anything to report."
"I'm your
leader; I'm not supposed to sleep."
"Tired
leaders make mistakes," she said firmly, pushing on his shoulders until he
capitulated and lay down. "There, that's much better. Now you can dream of
rescuing our kingdoms." Smiling, she pushed a wayward lock of hair behind
her ear and turned to get a better view of the hall.
Sitting next to him like that, her gaze watchful and one hand resting confidently on her ax, she looked every inch the warrior.
It's definitely this way." To
nobody's great surprise, Boïndil, his mind made up, had no intention of
listening to anyone else.
"Fine,"
said Tungdil, signaling for them to start moving, "we'll start with this
one and if it doesn't work out, we'll try Andôkai's next."
They
had snatched a few moments' sleep to recover their strength in preparation for
facing the dragon, but now it was time to move on.
"Argamas
is the mate of Branbausíl," Tungdil explained to Balyndis. "Branbausíl
lived in the Gray Range until Giselbert's folk stole his fire, killed him, and
plundered his lair. Argamas fled to Flamemere..."
"...
never to be seen again," Goïmgar finished gladly. "Let's hope the
fire-breather stays there. I can't say I'm particularly convinced by our
strategy. Dragon scales are as hard as steel."
"We
don't need to kill her, only to steal her fire," said Andôkai,
unconcerned. "I thought you'd be happy about that."
"Happy?"
chimed in Boïndil. "It's a waste! Why do we have to let her live? Argamas is
the biggest beast in Girdlegard, or thereabouts, and I'm not allowed to kill
her!" From the injured look on his face, it was obvious that the warrior
felt cruelly misunderstood. He tried again. "Name me one other place where
I can find a real dragon! It would be scandalous to pass up an opportunity
like this!"
"I'm afraid
the Estimable Maga is right," said Rodario.
"That's
exactly the kind of reaction I'd expect from a coward like you," Boïndil
told him dismissively. "Balyndis, what do you say the two of us—"
"Quiet,"
cautioned Tungdil. There was a smell of sulfur in the air and the temperature
was rising. Their route had taken them down countless flights of stairs and
through endless shafts, and now at last they were closing in. "Not another
word until we know what's out there. We don't want Argamas leaving her lava bath
until we're absolutely ready."
Goïmgar
shrank behind his shield. "Maybe we should ask her to help. Dragons aren't
stupid, you know, and she might be quite reasonable."
"You
can't ask the dragon to give us her
fire," Boïndil blazed up angrily. "Are you determined to ruin
everything? You've got to take it! Take it, do you hear?"
"Goïmgar,
Argamas's mate was killed by dwarves. I hardly think she'll be willing to help
us," said Tungdil, shaking his head. "Our priority is to stay alive,
so we'll settle for stealing her fire." He patted the stash of torches on
his belt. "We need to bait her, nothing more."
"Unbelievable,"
grumbled Boïndil. "Why does everyone have to spoil my fun?"
They
stepped out of the passageway and were bathed in an intense yellow glare. There
was a pervading smell of rotten eggs and it was difficult to breathe, but the
view made up for the other unpleasantness.
A
wave of heat rose toward them as they approached the seething lake. The molten
lava was alive with bubbles, some swelling and showering incandescent droplets
as they burst, others collapsing meekly, while new pockets formed on the
surface in a boiling, churning mass.
Tungdil
couldn't be sure of the lake's exact proportions, but the expanse of simmering
lava measured at least four thousand paces across. Islands of solid rock rose
above the surface and strange basalt columns hung from the cavern's ceiling,
where cycle after cycle of spitting magma had cooled. Everything was suffused
with the lake's yellow glow.
"Is
that where the dragon lives?" asked Goïmgar, who was staring with the
others in amazement. "Thank goodness we're not going to fight her. Any
creature tough enough to survive in that inferno won't be slain by our
blades."
Djerůn
raised his sword to direct his mistress's attention to something a thousand
paces farther along the shore. "You can stop worrying about Argamas,"
said Andôkai. "Take a look over there."
To their horror they saw a gigantic skeleton, which, judging by its size and shape, was all that was left of Branbausíl's mate.
Giselbert's Folk, Fifthling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
Boïndil prodded the enormous skeleton with
his boot.
Broken
arrow shafts, lances, spears, and smaller bones lay in and around the dragon's
remains. "Orcs. From the look of the bones, they killed her a good few
cycles ago." He appraised the fossil critically and a look of distant
longing passed over his face. "What a fight it must have been."
Goïmgar
snorted and shrugged. "We're wasting our time here. We may as well go
home. I don't know about you, but I'd like to be in my own kingdom with my own
clansfolk when Nôd’onn comes banging on the gates."
"A
fat lot of use you'd be," Boïndil said scornfully. "You can't even
fight!" He gave one of the ribs an experimental kick. The bone stood firm.
"I
didn't say anything about fighting," Goïmgar corrected him. "If we're
all going to die, I'd rather be back in my kingdom, that's all. I don't want
to meet my end in the company of an ax-happy lunatic, an impostor, and an
undead drunk." He glanced at the smith. "No offense, Balyndis, I've
got nothing against you."
"Couldn't
we light the furnace with ordinary fire?" asked Furgas.
Tungdil
looked out across the lava. "We may as well give it a shot. It's better
than giving up and doing nothing while Nôd’onn lays waste to Girdlegard. We
don't stand a chance of stopping him otherwise." He wiped the sweat from
his eyes and peered at the tongues of fire licking across the lake. He had seen
flames of all kinds and colors in his smithy, but these looked somehow
different. "Is it my imagination," he said to Balyndis, who was
similarly knowledgeable when it came to fire, "or are those flames
unusually bright?"
"They're
unusually bright," she said, guessing his thoughts. She pulled out a torch
and held the end above the twisting flames. The wood flared up with incredible
intensity.
"Perhaps
you could put it out for us, Narmora," said the maga.
The half
älf nodded and focused her mind. Her eyes closed and opened again a moment
later, but the torch was still alight. "I can't do it," she said,
surprised. "Normally it's no—"
"Precisely."
The maga laughed in relief. "There's your proof, Tungdil. Argamas left her
fiery legacy in the lake."
The
excitement was too much for Balyndis, who planted an exuberant kiss on
Tungdil's cheek. He smiled shyly. "In that case we've got what we came
for," he declared. "We'll light the torches and get going. The
fifthlings' furnace is waiting to be kindled back to life." With that he
set off toward the mouth of the tunnel.
"Bravo,
bravo," gushed Rodario. "Thank goodness it's so warm down here. My
ink has never flown so freely. Such emotion! Such excitement! The scene is
positively begging to be recorded in my notes!" He was still scribbling
furiously as he walked. "Furgas, my dear friend and worthy associate, the
sheer scale of this adventure will soon exceed the limits of any conventional
play. We could open our doors in the morning," he suggested. "Hire
some extras, double the ticket price. What do you think?"
Furgas
took one last look at Flamemere before commencing the ascent through the
passageway. "We should probably leave out the lava," he ruled.
"We won't be able to afford enough coal to simulate the heat."
"Good
thinking. We need to be careful with the costs. Besides, we can't have our
valued spectators vomiting because of the smell."
"They'll
vomit anyway if they have to put up with your acting," said Boïndil,
handing him a torch. "Take this. Since you won't be fighting, you may as
well make yourself useful. And woe betide you if you let it go out!"
"I
swear by all four winds and every conceivable divinity, even the evil ones,
that if, in spite of my best efforts and the intervention of all the relevant
weather systems and supernatural powers, I was to suffer such a mishap, then I
would, no matter what the circumstances or the extent of my guilt, lay the
blame, fair and square, at your door."
Boïndil, who had been nodding in satisfaction, stopped short. "Very funny," he growled as Rodario and Goïmgar fell about laughing. "I'll wipe the smiles from your faces."
Bavragor's
behavior had become increasingly erratic.
Since
entering the fifthling kingdom, he hadn't said a word, his one eye rolling
wildly as he walked. Every now and then he growled or groaned for no apparent
reason and the leather strap around his wrists tightened with a menacing snap. Djerůn
maintained a safe distance between him and the others.
Meanwhile,
Boïndil was unhappy about the light from the torches, which he said drew
attention to their presence and played into the enemies' hands—but no one could
think of a workable alternative.
He
was right, though. The fierce flames lit up the passage ways, the panels of
vraccasium, palandium, gold, and silver gleaming with light, rendering even the
smallest details visible from a distance of twenty paces and making the
company equally easy to spot.
Tungdil
ran a hand over the panels. They must have known
we'd be in need of precious metals. At the risk of angering the dead
fifthlings, he decided to break off sections of the portraits for use in making
the ax. Djerůn snapped the metal with ease and soon they had enough of
each material for the inlay. All that was missing was the iron for the blade.
He glanced at the ax that Lot-Ionan had given to him. I could smelt it, I suppose.
The
company had been marching through the lost kingdom for some time when Boïndil
signaled for them to stop. "There's something ahead," he said,
tensing in anticipation. "Beasts of some kind, but not orcs."
Tungdil
sniffed the air and detected the odor too. "They're in front of us."
He turned to Narmora, who nodded briefly and set off to investigate.
"Come
here, you cowards," thundered a deep voice from somewhere along the
passageway. "It takes more than that to scare a dwarf!" A moment later,
blades crashed against shields and high-pitched squeals rent the air. "I
may be the last one standing, but I'll slay at least four dozen of you before
you cut me down. Vraccas is with me!"
I know that voice, thought Tungdil. He was still
trying to place it when someone got there first.
"King
Gandogar!" shouted a jubilant Goïmgar. "Stand firm, Your Majesty, I'm
on my way!" Discarding his heavy cloak, he grabbed his shield, whipped his
sword from its sheath, and stormed forth.
"Such
courage!" exclaimed Rodario. "What's got into old Shimmerbeard? I
never thought he had it in him."
"Me
neither," said Boïndil. "All the same, we shouldn't let him fight
alone." The prospect of clashing blades with Tion's beasts filled him with
visible euphoria. "As for you," he threatened, nodding at Djerůn,
"you know the rules. Keep an eye on our undead mason. I don't want him
stabbing me in the back." He threw off his cumbersome cloak and looked
expectantly at Tungdil.
The
company's leader hefted his ax, having already decided that the fourthling monarch
deserved their aid. "Stand by our rivals like true children of the
Smith," he told them, preparing to charge. "Death to our
enemies!"
They
barreled along the corridor and found themselves in a small, dimly lit hall
filled with hairy, hunchbacked bögnilim. Clad in armor several sizes too big
for them and wielding maces and notched swords, the squawking creatures were
shoving their way up a stone staircase at the top of which towered a statue of
Vraccas cast in gold.
Blocking
their path was Gandogar, as godlike in his heavy armor as the sculpture he was
protecting. Gripping his double-bladed ax with both hands, he mowed down the
first wave of aggressors with a single swipe. His diamond-studded helmet
showered the walls and pillars with dappled light, adding to his heavenly aura.
At
the bottom of the steps lay dead or dying beasts that had fallen from a height
of ten paces. The stairs dripped with slimy olive and bottle-green blood, which
further hindered the bögnilim’s attack.
Yet
the enemy showed no sign of retreating. Pushing and shoving, the beasts fought
their way to the front, only to be cut down by Gandogar's swooping blade.
Boïndil
raced ahead of his companions, sounding his bugle to herald their advance.
"Here's
another dwarf who's not afraid of Tion's beasts!" Laughing maniacally he
threw himself into the battle, becoming Ireheart the Furious from whom there
was no escape. His axes seemed to seek out his enemies instinctively, zeroing
in on unprotected flesh and damaged mail. At the end of his first sally, six bögnilim
lay twitching on the floor.
Ireheart
powered on, channeling a path through the hordes, with Tungdil and the others
following in his wake. Even the usually timorous Goïmgar launched himself into
the battle. For the first time he was prepared to fight and even die.
During
the commotion Bavragor succeeded in tearing off his leather manacles. Not
possessing any weapons, he tore the creatures apart with his hands, thrusting
his blood-smeared muscular fingers deep into their flesh to inflict the fatal
wound. The bögnilim fought back with their swords, but the revenant continued
undeterred, stopping only to seize two maces and swing them with terrible
strength.
Stooping
low, Djerůn swiped at the knee-high creatures with his club. They crashed
down amid their comrades, squashing some of them with their weight.
"To
the stairs!" bellowed Tungdil on seeing that Gandogar was overextended.
The king seemed to be the only survivor among his group; none of the others
were visible amid the mass of heaving bodies.
The
company closed ranks to thrash their way forward. Djerůn stayed at the
foot of the steps and repelled the advancing bögnilim with murderous force,
while the others worked their way up, engaging their enemy from behind until
the last beast on the stairs had fallen. The ruler of the fourthling kingdom
stood before them on the steps.
Gandogar
looked dreadful, his face pale, haggard, and drawn. A mighty weapon had left
two deep gashes in his bloodied chain mail.
"My
king!" Goïmgar said joyfully. Not even the present danger could prevent
him from sinking to one knee.
Tungdil gave him
a brief nod. "Where are the others?"
"Dead,"
he said, struggling to regain his composure. "We need to get out of here
before—"
Five
figures, broader, uglier, and nastier than orcs, appeared at the far end of the
hall. They were four paces tall and looked incredibly strong.
"Ogres!"
Boïndil clapped excitedly. "This is where it gets really fun! Hey,
Armor-Face, I'm leaving the tiddlers to you." He knocked the butts of his
axes together and licked his lips. "This is more like it."
The smaller
beasts drew back without a murmur, allowing the ogres to pass.
"The
rest of you run," commanded Andôkai. "Djerůn and I will keep
them busy. We'll see how far my remaining magic gets us. Go!"
Even
as she lowered her sword and began the incantation, a thunderous rumble filled
the hall and a giant tore itself out of the flesh of the mountain, taking shape
beside the statue. Cavernous eyes stared at the maga from a long stony face,
and a fist sped down toward her.
Andôkai
spotted the danger just in time and diverted her magic toward the unexpected
foe. She managed to stop the blow, but was brought to her knees by the effort.
"A golem," she coughed. "There must be a wizard controlling it.
Find him and kill him before my strength deserts me. I can't hold off the
creature for long."
A
great cry went up among the surviving bögnilim when they saw their apparently
invincible enemies struggling to repel the new threat. The squawking and
shouting grew louder until the creatures resolved to try their luck again,
advancing in a wave of arms, legs, teeth, and whirling weapons.
The
onslaught of bögnilim drove Djerůn slowly up the stairway until he stopped
and opened his visor, steeping his assailants in a beam of purple light. The
hall echoed with his terrible, menacing roar and the whimpering bögnilim fled
from the armored giant. Djerůn followed them, lashing out with his sword
and mace to regain the lost ground.
"He's
over there!" Narmora pointed to a man-sized figure in the malachite robes
of Nôd’onn's school. He was standing a hundred paces away, flanked by a mob of
muscular orcs who served as his bodyguards. It was clear from his gestures that
he was responsible for steering the golem's attack.
"They're
determined not to let us near the furnace," said Tungdil. Nôd’onn
doesn't want us to forge Keenfire. We're on the right track.
Gandogar
looked at the swelling ranks of beasts that were piling into the hall.
"It's hopeless. The door to the furnace is on the far side of the
adjoining hall. It's sealed with dwarven runes so the beasts can't get in. We
were almost inside when they ambushed us. They must have known we were coming."
Tungdil's
mind whirred feverishly. "Everyone with a role to play in forging Keenfire
needs to make it through that door. You or I will go with them. Since I never
intended to be crowned high king, I cede my place to you, King Gandogar. My
only concern is the safety of Girdlegard and our kinsfolk." He looked his
rival in the eye. "Narmora will explain her role in this later, but I need
you to promise you'll do everything you can to help her slay the magus."
Gandogar
bowed his head. "I swear in the name of Vraccas our Creator and by the
memory of Giselbert Ironeye, founding father of this kingdom, that I shall
fight the magus to the end." They shook hands. "Which doesn't mean to
say you won't be there too," he added.
They
turned to face the enemy and raised their weapons. Tungdil placed the bugle to
his lips and sounded the attack.
Giselbert's Folk, Fifthling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
Djerůn led the advance, flanked by
the dwarves, with Rodario, torches in both hands, following close behind,
shielded by Furgas, who was doing his best to fend off the bögnilim and protect
the precious flames.
Back
on the steps, Andôkai was still under siege from the golem. All her efforts
were focused on defending herself, leaving her no time to deal with the
famulus and stop the attack at its source. "Hurry!" she shouted
hoarsely. "Another couple of charms and my magic will be spent."
"Leave
it to me," volunteered Narmora. Launching herself into the air, she
alighted on Djerůn's shoulders and pushed off again, soaring another five
paces to land on a bögnil's head. In no time she was away again, using the
heads and shoulders of the bewildered beasts as stepping stones. She had almost
reached the famulus when a dagger nicked her calf. She missed her step and fell
among the howling brutes.
"Narmora!"
cried Furgas, so overcome with horror that he neglected his duty as Rodario's
guard. In a flash the beasts surged forward and closed in on the impresario.
"Shoo!"
he shouted, thrusting the torches in their direction. Squealing, the bögnilim
backed away from the tongues of fire, only to be struck by flying sparks. In an
instant they were reeling backward, consumed by flames. The dragon fire burned
them to ashes before they had time to retreat.
Rodario's
strategy guaranteed his own safety, but at the cost of the torches, whose light
was ebbing after numerous brushes with the bögnilim’s swords. At length he was
left with a single torch. "Furgas," he shouted, trying to alert his
companion to his plight. "Furgas, I need your help!"
But
Furgas was still staring anxiously at the spot where Narmora had fallen.
"For
the love of Vraccas, wake up!" Balyndis scolded him. She fought her way
through the fray and thrust herself between the bögnilim and the impresario.
All
of a sudden Narmora appeared out of nowhere, looming up behind the famulus's
bodyguards and hewing the first orc’s head with a mighty blow. She dispatched
the other beasts before they had time to respond.
"Very
impressive," the famulus said furiously, pointing his staff in her
direction, "but not as effective as this."
A
thick bolt of light shot toward Narmora, who darted nimbly aside. The bolt
latched on to her movement.
Just
as it seemed certain that Narmora would be hit, the bolt struck an invisible
obstacle and dissipated harmlessly. It was instantly followed by a powerful
flash of lightning that arced toward the famulus from the direction of the
statue. There was a terrible crackle as it seared through his flesh, the flames
subsiding only when nothing remained but a pile of reeking cinders. The next
moment, the golem collapsed. Huge chunks of rock rained down on the enemy
troops, squashing dozens of bögnilim and flattening three of the ogres who
were too ponderous to escape.
The
two remaining ogres stopped in their tracks and stared fearfully at the
triumphant maga before retreating into the adjoining hall and vanishing from
sight.
Narmora
gave Andôkai a wave and the maga returned the greeting, then drew her sword in
a single fluid movement. It was the only defense she had left.
"Excellent,
excellent, so Narmora's still alive. Unless there's another lead actor you'd
rather work with, you might want to lend me a hand," the impresario said
to Furgas. "At this rate, the fabulous Rodario will die a heroic
death."
Andôkai
abandoned the statue and stormed down the staircase, her blade wreaking havoc
among the enemy troops.
"She
always ruins everything," Boïndil said testily. "I was looking
forward to those ogres." He threw himself with added fury on the fleeing bögnilim.
"At least I can have some fun with you."
Disregarding
Tungdil's warnings, Boïndil chased after his victims, slicing into their necks
from behind and shooing them along as if he were herding pigs. On reaching the
doorway to the adjacent hall, he came to a sudden halt.
"What's
wrong? Don't tell me your brain's caught up with you," Goïmgar said
spitefully, hurrying with the others to join him. They stopped and froze as
well.
"I
say we leave this scene out of the play," Rodario whispered hoarsely.
"I have a feeling we won't enjoy it."
The
hall was at least three thousand paces long and two thousand paces wide. It was
obvious what purpose the chamber had once served, for among the disused blast
furnaces, ramps, and rope pulleys lay abandoned slag heaps and scattered mounds
of pig iron and coal.
Now a
thousand orcs, bögnilim, and trolls occupied the fifthlings' smelting works,
sealing the entry to the Dragon Fire furnace.
The
defeated ogres and bögnilim had already reached the foremost line of beasts and
were hastily relaying what had happened in the adjoining hall. An angry murmur
swept through the chamber as the beasts drew their weapons, growling in
readiness for the fight.
"It's..."
Boïndil was lost for words. He lowered his axes in an admission of defeat. The
vast army was more than just another of the big challenges that he was so fond
of. Even he could see that the odds were stacked overwhelmingly against the
plucky band.
"Do
you think you could fly to the other side and take us with you like you did for
Goïmgar?" Tungdil whispered to the maga.
"The
battle with the golem and his master drained my last reserves of magic. There's
nothing left." Andôkai's eyes scanned the crowds bitterly. "Had I
known what awaited us, I would have held back, but even then..."
"Let's
go home," Goïmgar implored them. He turned to Gandogar. "Your
Majesty—"
He
stopped short, silenced by a look from Tungdil. "We can't go home
now," he said. "We'll get to the furnace or die trying." He
squared his shoulders stubbornly. "We're Girdlegard's last line of
resistance. No one else is going to make it past this hall."
"Then
it's decided." To Goïmgar's horror, Gandogar gave his assent. "We'll
stay and fight together." He raised his double-bladed ax.
"We're
dwarves!" thundered Ireheart, who had finally found his voice. Tucking in
his head, he squared his shoulders and took a deep breath. "We never give
in," he bellowed at the beasts, beating his axes together until the
smelting works echoed with the noise. "Do you hear that, you worthless
scoundrels? It's the sound of your deaths!"
Tungdil
offered a silent prayer to Vraccas. "There's nothing for it but to fight
our way through." He looked into the faces of his companions.
"There's a good chance that not all of us will make it. What matters is
that the right ones survive." He glanced at Balyndis. "I'm
expendable. I'll gladly give my life if it means Girdlegard and its peoples
have a future."
Furgas's
eyes filled with tears as he kissed Narmora passionately: She was among those
who had to survive at all costs. She stroked his cheek tenderly.
"One to a hundred," was Boïndil's assessment of their respective numbers. "It could be worse." This time he blew the bugle, sounding the ancient dwarven call to war. It was answered by hostile shouts. Boïndil glanced at his companions. "Race you to the other side."
After five hundred paces, they had
fought themselves into an impasse, unable to advance or retreat.
Surrounded
on all sides by the foulest of creatures, the company stood shoulder to
shoulder and faced the prospect of fighting until their arms were too heavy to
deflect the deadly blows.
Worse
still, they had lost Rodario in the first ten paces. He had been swallowed
among the mass of orcish bodies and by the time Tungdil noticed his absence,
the impresario was nowhere to be seen.
With
Rodario, they lost the dragon fire with which the furnace was to be lit.
We're so close now, Vraccas. "We need to go
back," he shouted over his shoulder. "We've lost Rodario and the only
torch."
Andôkai
was about to reply when roaring flames shot toward the ceiling.
"Get
back," a voice rasped imperiously from the door. "Let me deal with
them."
The
noise stopped instantly. In a flash, a path opened through the rabble, the
beasts drawing away to let their master pass. A corpulent figure in malachite
robes strode toward them, extinguishing the last spark of hope that Tungdil had
been kindling with dwarven obstinacy.
"Nôd’onn."
An awed whisper swept through the ranks of beasts, who were staring at the
magus in fascination, some bowing or falling to their knees.
"I
thought I would find the villains here," he rasped, his voice giving way
to a cough. A bright red globule of saliva spattered onto the face of a bögnil
whose tongue shot out hungrily and licked it away. "I sent my servants
here to ambush you. I wanted to have the pleasure of destroying you
myself."
An orc
leaped forward, whipping out his sword. "Let me do it for you,
Master," he said slavishly.
"Silence,
ingrate!" The magus stretched a hand. There was a flash of light and
flames shot out of his fingers, setting the orc ablaze. The beast staggered
backward, stumbling in agony until at last he lay still. "Out of my
way," commanded Nôd’onn. "If you crowd me, I can't destroy them
without destroying you." His pale face was almost entirely obscured by a
cowl, with only a chink of white skin visible through the folds of cloth.
"I'll
do what I can," Andôkai whispered to Tungdil. "The rest of you
run." She pushed her fair hair back from her severe visage, seized her
sword, and prepared to strike. All of a sudden she stopped.
Tungdil sensed
her hesitation. "What's wrong?"
She
seemed puzzled. "I can't see his staff. Nôd’onn would never be parted with
it, no more than I would go anywhere without my sword. It must be an
illusion."
"Ye
gods! It's Rodario!" hissed Furgas, trying not to blow his friend's cover
by looking too relieved.
Tungdil
stared in disbelief. The impresario's transformation was as complete as it had
been on the stage, but now he was playing to an audience who would kill him and
eat him if his performance was anything less than faultless. How does he do it?
"As
for you," the sham magus rasped at the company, "you shall suffer.
But first I shall be merciful: You may advance to the forge and touch the
hallowed door. Only then will my servants rip you to pieces. Is that not
exquisitely cruel?" The beasts cheered excitedly.
This
time the crowd parted on the other side of the company, allowing them to
proceed through a narrow corridor toward the locked door. The sham magus
followed behind them, swaying, coughing, and whipping his followers into a
frenzy as he threatened the company with increasingly diabolical fates.
They
were ten paces from the door when the impresario swayed more vigorously than
usual and stumbled.
"Stop!"
Tungdil grabbed Narmora and Furgas before they could rush to his aid.
"You'll give the game away for all of us."
The
costumed Rodario struggled upright. A helmet rolled out from beneath his robes
and his left leg seemed suddenly a good deal shorter. Without the makeshift
stilt that had allowed him to tower majestically at the real magus's height,
the fakery was obvious. It took the beasts a few moments to fathom the
situation.
"That's
not Nôd’onn!" An orc rushed toward him, brandishing his sword, as the
company closed ranks around the hobbling Rodario and the battle recommenced.
"What
have you done with the torch?" demanded Tungdil.
Clutching
his side, the impresario coughed up another mouthful of blood; this time he was
wounded and not just relying on his props. Even so, he managed a smile as he
held up a small lantern. The wick was burning brightly. "No self-
respecting magus would dream of carrying a torch."
Their
courage restored, they fought their way more determinedly than ever toward the
door, while the orcs pushed aside their smaller colleagues and attacked with
full force. They were determined to put an end to the indefatigable men and
dwarves.
Every
member of the company was struck by an ax, sword, or mace. Some of the wounds
were more serious than others, but the dwarves stood their ground. Tungdil
focused on deciphering the runic password that would gain them entry to the
forge. For once his knowledge failed him.
"I
can't read the runes," he cried despairingly to Andôkai. "It must be
a riddle."
"How
awfully inconvenient," gasped Rodario. He clutched the door, trying to
hold himself up as his legs gave way. "I don't expect my death to trouble
you greatly, but remember this: Girdlegard has lost a luminary of the
stage." He closed his eyes and slumped to the ground, suffocating the
lantern as he fell. The flame flickered dangerously.
"No!"
murmured Gandogar, who had been watching the dying actor out of the corner of
his eye. "We can't let the flame go out!" As he turned to save the
lantern, an enormous orc seized his chance and waded in. With a terrible shout
he thrust his notched sword toward the king's back.
"Your
Majesty!" Goïmgar realized midshout that the warning would come too late.
Without thinking, he threw himself—shield first and head ducked—into the path
of the blade.
With
a high-pitched ring the sword struck the edge of the shield, forcing it down.
The dwarf's head and neck appeared above the rim.
The
orc bared its teeth, expelling a foul rush of breath, which swept through Goïmgar's
beard. The beast's long blade settled on the shield, using its contours to draw
a perfect line from right to left.
Goïmgar
thrust his blade forward, but it was no match for the orcish sword. His stumpy
weapon shattered, shards of metal jangling to the floor, and the sword
continued, cleaving through skin, flesh, sinew, and bone.
As
the artisan's head fell to the right, his twitching body toppled left, brushing
against Balyndis, who let out a furious howl and swung her ax with fresh
savagery.
Gandogar
turned in time to see Goïmgar die in his stead. Even as the head hit the floor,
the flame died, a thin wisp of smoke snaking its way to the ceiling. "May
Tion take you!" Gandogar raised his ax and split the murderer from skull
to chest.
With
two of their number dead and the dragon fire extinguished, the company
struggled against the heaviness in their arms. Their resistance was weakening.
"Did
you get us this far in order to destroy us, Vraccas?"
Tungdil shouted accusingly as
he drove his ax between the jaws of an ore.
At that moment there was a welcome grinding noise and the right-hand panel of the door swung open.
The deep tones of a bugle rang out,
echoing the melody that Boïndil had sounded at the beginning of their attack.
Stocky figures streamed through the doors and threw themselves on the beasts.
Their axes and hammers raged mercilessly among the hordes.
It
took Tungdil a good few moments to realize that their rescuers were dwarves.
One
of their number, a warrior whose polished armor outshone everything save the
diamonds on his belt, nodded toward the open door.
"Hurry,
we can't hold them back for long," he bellowed, his deep voice sending
shivers down Tungdil's spine.
He
was more used to seeing the warrior's features cast in vraccasium and gold, but
he had encountered the visage often enough during their long march through the
fifthling kingdom to know exactly who he was: Giselbert Ironeye, father of
Giselbert's folk.
"I thought
you were..."
"We'll
talk later," the ancient dwarf told him. "Just get your company
inside."
Tungdil
gave the order, Furgas hoisted Rodario to his shoulders, and Gandogar carried Goïmgar's
corpse. As soon as the group was safely in the forge, Giselbert's dwarves
abandoned their attack and slammed the door behind them. A moment later there
was a furious hammering and pounding, but blind rage alone was not enough to
breach the door.
"Welcome,"
Giselbert said solemnly. "Whoever you may be, I hope your coming is a good
omen."
There
were ten of them in all: ashen-faced dwarves with absent eyes that made them
seem vaguely trancelike. Each was clad in lavishly splendid mail and their
beards reached to their belts. Determination, a Vraccas-given trait of their
race, was stamped on every face.
"My
warriors and I have been fighting Tion's minions since the fall of my kingdom
eleven hundred cycles ago," said Giselbert, who seemed the most venerable,
the most majestic of them all. "We are the last of the fifthlings, killed
by the älfar and resurrected by the Perished Land. As you can see, we chose not
to serve it."
Tungdil
shot a quick glance at Bavragor, who was covered from head to toe in every
imaginable shade of green. Orc and bögnil blood was dripping from his hands and
splashing to the floor.
"It
takes a lot to kill an undead dwarf, but most of our companions were eventually
slain. The rest of us retreated to the furnace, our folk's most treasured
relic." He held Tungdil's gaze.
"And
you're sure you don't hate other dwarves and want to murder every living
creature?"
Giselbert
shook his head. "We taught ourselves not to. In eleven hundred cycles you
can learn to stifle the pestilent hatred." His eyes shifted to the door.
"The creatures used to content themselves with guarding the entrance, but
during the last few orbits they've laid siege to the doors. I daresay the
change has something to do with you."
"Very
likely." Tungdil ran through the introductions and gave a hasty account of
the threat facing Girdlegard and the reason for their coming. "But it's
all been in vain. We were supposed to light the furnace with dragon fire, but
the flame went out while we were fighting by the door."
Giselbert
clapped a hand on his shoulder and a kindly smile spread across the creases and
wrinkles of his ancient face. "You are wrong to give up hope. The fire is
burning as fiercely as ever." He stopped and listened. "The furnace
has always been under our protection. Vraccas must have known we would need it
one day." He and his companions stepped aside to reveal the rest of the
chamber.
The
hall, fifty paces long by thirty wide, boasted twenty abandoned hearths, lined
up in two rows, and four times as many anvils, arranged around an enormous
furnace ablaze with fierce white flames.
Countless
pillars supported the ceiling eighty paces above and the walls were filled with
neat rows of tools: hammers, tongs, chisels, files, and all manner of
implements needed for the blacksmith's craft. Fine sand covered the floor and
the upper reaches of the chamber were coated in a thick layer of soot. A stone
stairway led to the flue.
The
bellows and grindstones were attached to metal chains that ran through a system
of rollers and pulleys to the ceiling, where they looped through the rock.
Tungdil was instantly reminded of the lifting apparatus in the underground
network.
He
found himself imagining the smithy in its heyday when Girdlegard's finest
weapons and most splendid armor had been forged by Giselbert's dwarves. He
breathed out in relief and prayed to Vraccas to excuse his lack of faith.
"That's the best news we've had since Ogre's Death," he said
cheerfully. We're nearly there. And to think I'd
resigned myself to failure...
"He's
alive!" exclaimed Furgas. "His heart is beating! Rodario's
alive!"
"Let
me take a look at him." Andôkai swept back her hair, knelt beside the
wounded impresario, and inspected his wound. "He's had a blow to the head
and a slight gouge to the side. It's nothing too serious," she announced,
cleaning the afflicted area with Bavragor's brandy to stave off infection.
The
impresario's eyes fluttered open. "Thank you, Estimable Maga," he
gasped, gritting his teeth as the alcohol stung his raw flesh. "Had I
known, I would have begged the orc to strike me on the mouth so you could kiss
me back to life."
"If
you were a warrior, things might have been different between us," she
said, responding remarkably favorably to the flirtation.
"A good
actor can be many things, even a warrior."
"But it's
only an act."
"I'm a
warrior in spirit. Isn't that enough?"
"Maybe,"
she said, "but your weapon has fought for so many causes in every kingdom
that I couldn't rely on you not to swap sides." Her blue eyes looked at
him smilingly as she patted his cheek. "Save your charm for the women who
adore you."
Giselbert
pointed to a quiet corner of the smithy. "Lie down and get some rest. The
doors won't fall; we'll see to it that they don't. It's important that you
recover your strength before we get going with Keenfire. There are some matters
we need to attend to before we can forge the blade."
"Such
as...?"
The
ancient monarch chuckled when he saw the look of alarm on Tungdil's face.
"It can wait until you're rested. I'm sorry we can't offer you any
sustenance, but you'll be safe here, at least."
The
travelers were too tired to do anything but follow his advice; even Boïndil was
so spent that he forgot to be suspicious of their undead hosts. In any case, no
one could claim that the revenants weren't putting their lives to good use.
Tungdil
went to join Gandogar, who was sitting in silence beside Goïmgar's corpse. The
fourthling king had removed his battered helmet, his brown hair resting on his
mighty shoulders. "He died trying to save me," he said somberly.
"He threw himself in front of that orc, even though he must have known the
brute would kill him." He glanced at Tungdil. "I didn't think he had
it in him. I was pleased when you picked Goïmgar because he seemed too much the
artisan and too little the dwarf. I misjudged him. He was a dwarf, all
right."
Tungdil
placed the pouch of diamonds in Gandogar's hands. "You're our diamond
cutter now. You must finish his task for him."
"Gladly,
although I can't promise to emulate his skill. Goïmgar was a far better artisan
than I am."
Tungdil
paused before broaching a rather delicate subject. "There's something I
need to tell you, Gandogar." He quickly told him of Gundrabur's plan and
Bislipur's trickery, and finished by producing Sverd's collar as proof.
The
king recognized the choker at once. "By the beard of Goïmdil, I wish these
accusations were unfounded, but the loathsome collar speaks for itself. Sverd
was in thrall to his master; he could never have acted alone." He shook
his head incredulously. "How could Bislipur be so blind? How could I be so
blind?"
"So you
don't want to wage war on the elves?"
"Absolutely
not! Isn't Girdlegard in enough trouble already?" He took a deep breath.
"Honestly, Tungdil, nothing could be farther from my thoughts. Gundrabur
was right after all. We've been through so much since the start of this mission
that the thought of another war...No, an alliance is what we need." He
stopped and frowned. "I'm not saying we have to be best friends with the
elves or anything. The way they betrayed the fifthlings was—"
"We
weren't betrayed by elves," interrupted a fifthling who had approached in
time to hear the end of their exchange. His thick black beard hung in
decorative cords that reached to his chest.
"Your
folk was betrayed by the pointy-ears," the king insisted. "I saw the
evidence myself."
"Evidence
provided by Bislipur," Tungdil reminded him.
The
stranger gave them a wan smile. "My name is Glandallin Hammerstrike of
the clan of the Striking Hammers." He turned to Gandogar. "I
witnessed the terrible demise of our kingdom, and I saw the traitor who opened
our gates."
"Yes,"
Gandogar said stubbornly. "A backstabbing elf."
"It
was a dwarf." He paused as the others, including Balyndis, who had joined
them, stared in disbelief. "Glamdolin Strongarm was the traitor who spoke
the incantation and opened our gates."
"But
why?"
"It
was the opportunity he had been waiting for. That dreadful morning he pretended
to succumb to the fever that the älfar had spread among our folk. The battle
was fierce and no one gave him a second thought. He skulked down to the gates
and cleared the way for Tion's hordes. It was his doing that the älfar found
their way into our underground halls and took us by surprise."
"But I don't
see..."
"He
was a thirdling," Glandallin said flatly. "A child of Lorimbur, a
dwarf killer, who inveigled himself into our folk and masked his true
intentions so cunningly that we suspected nothing. He waited until we were
fatally weakened, then struck the final blow. He died by my ax but was raised
by the Perished Land to incant the secret runes. After our deaths we captured
him and questioned him. Glamdolin was beheaded, never to rise again."
"I
hope you're writing this down for me," Rodario whispered to Furgas.
"We'll make our fortunes with this play!"
"So
the elves had nothing to do with it!" said Tungdil, delighted that the path
was clear for an alliance. Bislipur's treacherous
scheme has come to naught.
They buried Goïmgar body in a corner of
the forge, erected a pile of stones to mark the grave, and dedicated his soul
to Vraccas. As soon as they felt sufficiently rested, they began their
preparations for forging the mighty ax. "'The blade must be made of the
purest, hardest steel, with diamonds encrusting the bit and an alloy of every
known precious metal filling the inlay and the runes. The spurs should be hewn
from stone and the grip sculpted from wood of the sigurdaisy tree,'"
recited Tungdil, reading from the manuscript that would serve as their guide.
They
stacked the gold, silver, palandium, and vraccasium neatly on the table along
with the pouch of diamonds and the sigurdaisy wood for the haft. The fifthlings
furnished them with iron ore for the blade and stone for the spurs.
Tungdil
realized with alarm what it was they were missing. "We didn't bring any
tionium," he said, scolding himself for his laxness. "You don't have
any, I suppose?"
There
was a short silence. "Not in the forge," said Glandallin. "We
were never especially fond of Tion's metal, so there wasn't much call for
it."
Narmora
unhooked an amulet from her neck and laid it on the table. "It's pure
tionium. My mother gave it to me to ward off the forces of good. Since I've
allied myself with them, there's not much point in wearing it. I just hope
there's enough for you to use."
Tungdil
gave her a grateful look. His doubts and reservations about the half älf had
been canceled out by her deeds. "Girdlegard is in your debt twice over. No
matter how expertly we fashion the weapon, Keenfire would be powerless without
tionium—or without the undergroundlings' foe."
"It's
the least I can do, given the amount of suffering my mother's race has
caused," she demurred.
He glanced at the
glowing furnace. "Shall we begin?"
"I'm
afraid it's not that simple," said Giselbert. "The furnace is
alight, but the temperature isn't high enough. Usually, we'd use the bellows to
breathe life into Dragon Fire, but the equipment has rusted and we haven't been
able to get it to work."
"Thank
goodness for that!" Furgas leaped to his feet. "What with Narmora
being the savior of Girdlegard, I was beginning to think I was just a
hanger-on." He chuckled good-humoredly and the others joined in. "I
hope you're ready for a demonstration of my expertise."
He
was rewarded with a kiss from Narmora, who picked up her ax to practice wards,
attacks, and strikes with Boïndil. Andôkai sat watching them, while Djerůn,
motionless as usual, crouched beside her. For some reason Tungdil was half
expecting the helmet to give off a purple glow.
"You're
wondering what's behind the visor, aren't you?" said Narmora, recovering
her breath. She pressed the canteen of water thirstily to her lips.
He turned to her.
"Is there something I should know?"
Narmora
leaned against the wall of polished rock, still panting with exertion. Boïndil
was a hard taskmaster and the combat sessions left her exhausted. "When I
was little, my mother told me stories about a terrifying being, the king among
Tion's and Samusin's creatures, the predator of predators, the hunter who
hunted his own kind, destroying the weak and fighting the strong to make them
stronger—or to kill them if their ascendancy was undeserved." Narmora
dabbed the sweat from her brow. "She said that his eyes shone with violet
light and that weaker beings fled for their lives at the sight of him. All the
beasts are terrified of Samusin's son. She used to scare the living daylights
out of me with those stories." She grinned, then averted her gaze, careful
not to glance in the giant's direction. "And back then I didn't know that
they were true."
The
explanation didn't take Tungdil entirely by surprise. Samusin was Andôkai's
chosen deity, and she would doubtless feel honored to be traveling with a
creature who was said to be his son. Whether or not Djerůn was more than
just a servant to the maga was a question that Tungdil was reluctant to
ponder. "No wonder the bögnilim bolted."
"Most
creatures would run away from him, beasts of Tion or not." Narmora got up
to resume her drills.
He
watched as Balyndis kindled one of the hearths with ordinary flames. After
stripping off her mail and leather jerkin, she donned a leather apron that
covered her chest and her midriff, although her undergarments left a good deal
of flesh on show. He made his way over to see what she was doing. "What
are you up to?"
"Making
steel," she said, signaling for him to tie her apron at the back. Standing
behind her, he caught his first proper glimpse of female skin. It was pink and
covered in wispy down. There hadn't been much opportunity for washing of late,
so she had a strong smell about her, but it wasn't unpleasant—not clean,
exactly, but still quite arousing. "The blast furnaces are on the other
side of the door, so I'm having to smelt the metal by other means. It's a trick
of the trade."
Balyndis's
apron strings were safely knotted, but Tungdil found himself clasping her
sturdy hips. Her skin felt smooth and warm. He stroked the fine hairs.
"Come
here so you can see what I'm doing." He did as he was told. "First we
have to get rid of the impurities, which is why I'm placing the ore in a
shallow pan. The heat will burn them off. Unfortunately, it means we can
produce only small quantities of steel at a time, but it should be enough for a
blade." She stood there, waiting patiently for the temperature to rise
and the iron to melt. "Surely you've done this before?"
"No,"
he said regretfully. "I was only a blacksmith."
"How many
strikes for a horseshoe nail?"
"Seven, if I
concentrate. Nine, if I don't."
"Not
bad," she said with a smile that made his cheeks flush redder than the
molten ore. "It takes me seven strikes too."
"How many
for an ax?"
"Seven,
if I concentrate; nine, if I don't. Orbits, that is, not strikes. Since time is
of the essence right now, I'll work straight through and it should be done in
five orbits, without the quality suffering at all." She drew his attention
to Giselbert, who was waving at them from the doors. "I think he wants to
show you something."
Tungdil
raised his hand to indicate that he was coming. "It's hard to believe that
he and the others are older than anything we've ever encountered, save the
mountains themselves."
"And
to think that they're revenants as well. It's so sad that their souls were
stolen by the Perished Land. I wish there was something we could do to get them
back."
"Only
Vraccas can restore their souls, but you're right, it must be awful for
them." He hurried over to the anxious Giselbert.
"The beasts
are preparing to attack."
Tungdil
studied the heavy metal doors. They were reinforced with steel bindings and
protected with Vraccas's runes. "I thought you said the forge was
safe?"
"It
was—until you gave them a reason to breach the doors. They know you're here and
they know you're forging a weapon that will bring about their doom. Their
priorities have changed." He pointed to a peephole and Tungdil peered
through.
In
the course of a single orbit the ragged hordes had become an orderly army under
the älfar's command.
A
short distance from the doors was a growing pile of pillars and stalactites,
torn down and stacked by a unit of ogres. Beyond that, further divisions of
beasts were putting the finishing touches on what looked like hoists.
"You're
right; it looks serious. I'll have to warn the others. What do we have in the
way of defenses?"
Giselbert raised
his ax.
"Is that
all?"
The
fifthling raised another ax and gave a wry smile. "It's not enough, I
know. We—"
He was
interrupted by muffled shrieks and jangling armor; ogres bellowed, orcs snarled
anxiously, bögnilim yelped in terror.
What's going on out there? Tungdil pressed his face
to the peephole just as the fires went out in the encampment. Dwarf-sized
warriors with pale faces poured out of the darkness, swarming among the beasts
and cleaving through their ranks. They seemed to be deliberately beheading
their opponents so that none could be raised from the dead.
The
attack was over in moments. The flames were rekindled and the invaders
disappeared without a trace.
The spirits of the dead dwarves'. He thought back
to the pale figures and their mysterious warning. Tion's hordes had colonized
their realm against their wishes, and the vengeful ghosts had made them pay.
"What do you know about dwarven ghosts?"
"Ghosts?
Nothing...but I'm glad they've decided to help."
Tungdil
hurried to tell the others of the imminent attack. Everyone not involved in
forging Keenfire was put to work hewing boulders to barricade the doors.
All that mattered for the moment was keeping the beasts at bay. Later they would have to figure out a way of getting themselves and the weapon out of the forge.
The company's faith in Furgas proved
well founded. It took him less than an orbit to get to grips with the bellows.
According to him, the pulley system worked in much the same way as a stage
curtain, a parallel that he found especially apt.
Having
located the damage, he repaired it, improvising a solution with the presence of
mind and ingenuity befitting a prop master who had rescued plenty of
performances from mechanical disaster. He even got the grindstone turning
again.
Meanwhile,
the others continued their efforts to barricade the doors. The beasts had
already launched an initial offensive, which failed because the stalactites
shattered against the doors.
When
the second orbit dawned, Gandogar began work on the diamonds. The environment
could scarcely have been less conducive to his task, but he was fortunate to
have use of Goïmgar's tools. Bavragor sat at a table and fashioned the spurs,
his hands moving with the mechanical jerkiness of a puppet on strings.
Giselbert
prepared the casts for the precious metals, while Balyndis threw herself into
forging the blade and its shaft, which itself was the length of a forearm.
She
set up her workshop in the middle of the chamber near Dragon Fire. With every
sigh of the machine-driven bellows, the coals hissed and crackled, sometimes
spitting white flames.
Her
work was spread between three anvils of different sizes and shapes. Time after
time she reached confidently for the appropriate tool among the rows of rivet
tongs, wolf jaw tongs, duck bill tongs, and six dozen or so similar implements,
extracted the red hot steel from the fire, hammered it approximately into
shape, and replaced it in its fiery bed of coals as soon as the metal cooled.
Tungdil
had never seen such a magnificent forge. Whereas he was accustomed to four
types of hammer, there was a choice of fifty and all with different heads, not
to mention the chisels, files, saws, and other tools that Balyndis employed
with obvious skill.
"I
could use your help," she said suddenly, handing him some tongs.
"Draw out the steel to the thickness of a knife blade, halve the metal
with your ax, and lay the sections on top of each other."
Tungdil
did as instructed, reaching into the furnace with his long-handled tongs. White
flames licked the coals, emitting a phenomenal warmth.
The
steel was white-hot when he placed it on the anvil. He drew it out quickly and
returned it to the flames, waiting for it to glow before transferring it to the
anvil, dividing it in half, and hammering the two sections vigorously into a
single strip.
It
had been so long since he had last stood at the anvil that he felt a rush of
elation as he brought down the hammer and tapped out a rhythm. This was the
wizardry of the dwarves, their ability to induce metal to perform wondrous
miracles that a magus or famulus would never understand.
He
glanced at Balyndis happily; without realizing, they were hammering in unison.
At
length he laid down his tools. "I ought to go back to shifting boulders
before the others start accusing me of ruining the blade. How many layers will
it have when it's finished?"
"About
three hundred," she replied, still hammering. "It's good steel so it
can take it. Thanks for the help."
Tungdil
gave her a wave and joined the working party at the doors. The fifthlings
hurried back and forth tirelessly, their undead bodies able to function without
rest, but Tungdil and Boïndil were only too aware of the importance of
conserving their strength. Most of their provisions had been eaten already and
the rest would have to be rationed until they left the forge.
"Vraccas
must be really farsighted," said Boïndil after a time. "To think that
he brought us all together like this!'
"What
do you mean?" asked Tungdil, surprised to hear the warrior pondering such
matters.
Boïndil,
his skin bronzed from orbits in the sun, turned his bearded face toward him.
"Each one of us has a vital role to play. We needed you to come up with
the plan in the first place, Balyndis and the others to make the blade, the
impresario to save us from the runts, Furgas to repair the bellows, and the
pointy-eared actress to strike the magus down." He sat down on a rock.
"There couldn't be a better team..."
"What about Goïmgar?"
"Er... Well,
we needed Goïmgar to save Gandogar."
"Aren't
you forgetting the warrior twins? You and your brother wiped out anyone who
stood in our way and kept fighting when others would have lost their nerve. We
wouldn't have got this far if it weren't for you." He gave him a hearty
thump on the back.
Boïndil
grinned. "More incredibly, we turned our scholar into a proper,
respectable dwarf. Living with the long-uns sent your instincts to sleep, but
we've woken them up for you, Tungdil." He made to strike him with his ax.
"Truth be told, you're pretty handy with a weapon. You must have been born
a warrior."
Born a warrior. Tungdil was painfully reminded that
he still knew nothing of his birth.
For
once Boïndil picked up on his mood. "Cheer up, Tungdil! If the
fourthlings won't have you, you can always live with us," he promised
breezily. "I'll swear by the beard of Beroïn that you're the illegitimate
cousin of my estranged aunt thirty-four times removed." They both laughed.
Giselbert,
who had been peering through the peephole at regular intervals, headed over
from the door. His expression was grave. "They've fashioned new battering
rams. This time they might actually work."
"Is
there any other way out?" asked Tungdil. "Rodario's act won't fool
them again." He looked up at the chimney towering above the furnace.
"Would that do the trick?"
"Our
scholar is full of inspiration," Boïndil said admiringly.
"It might,
but the stairs are pretty steep."
"We'll
manage," Tungdil assured him. "Nothing can stop us from saving
Girdlegard, especially not now that the ax is almost finished."
Just
then, an almighty crash shook the walls as if the mountain were collapsing
around them.
The doors shuddered, fragments of rock rained all around them, and the metal panels strained and groaned. The attack had begun in earnest.
Giselbert's Folk, Fiftbling
Kingdom, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
For three whole orbits the forge echoed
with continual pounding and thudding against the doors and the beasts'
persistence began to pay off. The solid iron panels were already bulging in the
middle, and the metal showed signs of cracking under the force of the brutal
assault.
Tungdil
had requisitioned one of the anvils and was frantically forging bars to add to
the barricade, but it was obvious that the beasts would eventually force their
way in.
Balyndis
had almost finished the blade and was about to begin the fine-tuning. The task
of engraving the metal was entrusted to Giselbert, who marked the warm steel
with runes and patterns for the inlay. Gandogar had cut the diamonds to size
and left them on his makeshift workbench. Each gem had been sharpened to a
deadly point that would slit the magus open. The spurs, carved by Bavragor from
black granite, were as long as a human index finger and were waiting to be
attached.
Tungdil,
under directions from Narmora, sculpted the grip using a hacksaw, a file, and a
grindstone to shape the metallike sigurdaisy wood to fit her hand. He left the
sanding to her and went back to reinforcing the doors. On the fourth orbit the
heated blade was edged with diamonds and the spurs were put in place.
Balyndis
worked with utmost concentration. The metal was unforgiving, and every strike
of the hammer was vital: The slightest mistake could cost her the blade, and
there wasn't enough time to reforge it. The constant gonglike pounding on the
doors was a distraction that they could all have done without.
Giselbert
was almost ready to combine the precious metals and create a single alloy, a
process made possible by the incredible heat of the dragon fire. The others
looked on in fascination as he heated the metals in individual pans: rich
gold, shimmering silver, orange vraccasium, white palandium, and a coin-sized
lump of black tionium.
One
by one he emptied the molten contents into a bell- shaped vessel lined with
glass. When it came to pouring the tionium, the black liquid hissed with
Tion-like malice, angry at being united with an element as pure as palandium.
Another
loud boom shook the hall, followed immediately by a cracking and snapping of
metal. A battering ram smashed into the reinforced door, opening a gap half a
pace across. In no time a bögnil had squeezed through and was staring wide-eyed
at his surroundings. He squealed in excitement.
"Come
here, you ugly piglet!" bellowed Ireheart, whooping exuberantly as he
charged. At last he could allow his fury to run riot. "So you think you're
brave, do you? Let's see if my axes change your mind!"
"Narmora,
you stay here," ordered Tungdil. "Everyone else, after him!"
Balyndis, Giselbert, Andôkai, and Djerůn rushed to help Boïndil, who
shouted at them to go away.
The
pounding on the doors became faster and more violent. With victory in sight,
the beasts redoubled their efforts. At last the opening was wide enough for an
orc to storm through. Arrows ripped through the gap, but inflicted no damage,
save the occasional scratch.
Tungdil
knew that the breach could not be allowed to open further if he and the others
were to stem the attack. We'll drive them back with
dragon fire. He ran to the furnace, heaped on some coals, and pumped the
bellows until the fire roared with bright white flames.
Hurriedly
he shoveled a few loads onto a wheeled anvil and rolled it to the doors.
Without wasting a second he filled his spade and hurled its contents over the
heads and shoulders of the invaders.
Red-hot
coals showered over the beasts, covering them in sparks and coal dust that
singed their faces, danced down their collars, and penetrated their chain mail.
Loud screams rent the air, increasing in volume when the second fiery hail
descended. There was an overwhelming stench of charred flesh, smoldering hair,
and scorched leather. The orcs raised their shields above their heads in panic,
allowing Tungdil and his companions to plunge their axes and hammers into their
unprotected chests.
Furgas
kept them supplied with hot coals until the enemy retreated. The orcs went back
to bombarding the forge with arrows.
"Sooner
or later they're going to force their way in," predicted Andôkai.
"They'll form a shield wall and we won't be able to stop them. It's time
we left."
They
made a concerted effort to close the doors, but the beasts had been cunning
enough to jam them open with wedges.
She's right; we need to get out of here as soon as we can.
Tungdil returned to the furnace. "How much longer until the inlay
is ready?" he asked Giselbert.
"The
tionium and the palandium need to simmer for half an orbit. Once they've melded,
the others will follow. After that I'll be able to pour the alloy into the
grooves, but then there's the cooling time. Will the doors hold?"
"They'll
have to," growled Tungdil, nodding resolutely. "We'll see to it that
they do."
From
then on, Nôd’onn's servants gave them no respite. The assault on the doors was
unrelenting and the beasts proceeded as the maga had predicted: Shields raised
above their heads, they advanced in formation, protected from the glowing
coals.
Two of the fifthlings were beheaded, never to rise again. Their loss was a serious blow to the defenders, and already the next battering ram was pounding against the doors. The destructive will of the Perished Land was bent on assailing the forge.
It is time." The long and wearying
wait ended as Giselbert lifted the vessel containing the mountain's precious
metals and poured them into the indented runes and symbols. The alloy's color
was strangely indeterminate: somewhere between orange and yellow with a
peculiar shimmer and swirling black pinpoints. It streamed through the grooves
with the assurance of a river that was familiar with its course, filling the
channels without a drop to spare.
"Done,"
announced Giselbert, heaving a sigh of relief. "In another half an orbit,
when the inlay has cooled, we can set the blade on the haft and—"
A
battering ram exploded through the ravaged metal doors. The protruding end of
the pillar withdrew quickly, only to reappear just above the existing hole. The
beasts had decided to fashion their own entrance.
Tungdil
took a deep breath. His arms were about to drop off, he had never felt hungrier
in his life, and he was tired enough to sleep for an orbit. Instead he raised
his ax. "We need to keep them at bay until the inlay has cooled."
He
paid no attention to the pain in his back and shoulders, determined not to
flag. He was leader of the company, after all, and Gandogar deferred to him
without a murmur, never questioning his authority. His selfless cooperation
made Tungdil respect him all the more.
Already
the invaders were squeezing through the breach. In a flash, Ireheart had thrown
himself on the beasts, his enthusiasm for combat apparently undiminished. He
hacked at the orcs so savagely that his axes were barely visible amid the
scraps of flying armor and bloodied flesh.
But
even Ireheart's fury could do nothing to stem the attack. As time wore on, the
battle swung steadily in favor of the beasts. With a third of the doorway
smashed open, it was only thanks to Djerůn and the indomitable fifthlings
that the company hadn't been defeated already. Time was against them.
Giselbert
fought his way to Tungdil's side. "You should go. The alloy has cooled
enough for you to take Keenfire." He raised his ax. "We'll hold the
beasts back until you're safely inside the flue; then we'll shut the vents and
destroy the mechanism. Without it, they won't be able to get into the chimney.
You'll be miles away by the time they force their way inside."
Tungdil
nodded gratefully and signaled for his company to retreat.
The
finished blade was lying on the central anvil, shimmering enigmatically in the
bright light of Dragon Fire. The diamonds twinkled, the inlay glistened, and
the runes shone with the fierce glow of the furnace, brought to life by the
roaring flames.
"To
think that Vraccas gave us the means to accomplish this." Tungdil gazed in
awe at the result of their joint labor. "Balyndis," he said solemnly,
"attach the blade." She picked up the grip and inserted it into the
long metal shaft of the blade. Her face paled.
"Vraccas
forfend, it doesn't fit," she said hoarsely. "See how loose it is?
The blade will fly off as soon as Narmora swings the ax. But how could we have
made the grip too narrow? I'm sure it—"
One
by one the runes lit up. The shaft glowed, then the wood seemed to swell.
Crackling and straining, it expanded to fill the gap, until the grip and the
shaft were one.
Tungdil
took it as a sign that Vraccas was happy with their work. He ran his fingers
over the blade, cherishing the feel of the metal. Deep down, he wished he could
wield the ax himself, and he held on to it for a moment before handing it to
Narmora.
Giselbert
stepped forward. "May I?" he asked tremulously.
"Of
course. If it weren't for you and the others, it would never have been
forged."
The
ancient king grasped the ax, gazing at it reverently before trying a few
swings. He entrusted it ceremoniously to the half älf.
"So
this is it," he said, his voice choked with emotion. "The agony of
the undead, all those cycles of waiting, of fighting... There was a reason for
it all." He shook hands with each of the company in turn, lingering when
he came to Tungdil. "Don't abandon my kingdom to the creatures of Tion.
Free Girdlegard and drive out the pestilence, then come back and rebuild my
kingdom for the dwarves. Will you promise me that, Tungdil Goldhand?" He
fixed him with a piercing stare.
Tungdil
could do nothing but nod, rendered speechless by the zeal in the fifthling's
eyes.
Giselbert
unfastened his diamond-studded weapons belt and laid it around Tungdil's waist.
"Wear this in memory of my folk and let it be known that we defended our
kingdom to the last, in death as well as life."
Tungdil
swallowed. "Your gift is too generous."
"From
what I have come to know of you, it is no less than you deserve." They
embraced as friends; then it was time for the company to leave.
"Let's
get going," said Tungdil, looking up at the narrow staircase leading into
the gloomy chimney. He glanced back at the doors, where the last of the
fifthlings were locked in bitter combat with the orcs.
"But
what will become of you?" Boïndil asked the fifthling king.
Giselbert
stood tall, eyes fixed on the doors. "My warriors will hold them back
while you get yourselves out of here. We'll fight until they chop off our heads
and put an end to our undead existence," he said proudly. "Now go!
The steps are shallower in the upper reaches of the chimney. Djerůn will
have to take care."
It
was decided that Narmora, as the nimblest among them, should lead the way and
test the stairs. The humans and dwarves lined up behind her, with the giant at
the rear. Bavragor stayed by the furnace, a new war hammer in his hand.
"Aren't you
coming with us?" Tungdil asked cautiously.
He
shook his head. "I said from the beginning that I'd never go home. I set
out to die a glorious death and so I shall. This is what I wanted." A
profound calm had descended on him, allowing his mind, which had been battling
against his undead state, to find peace. He turned his one eye toward Tungdil.
"Thank you for bringing me here and for letting me be part of this."
"I gave you
my word."
"You
could have gone back on it. No one would have blamed you. They warned you about
the merry minstrel, but you honored your promise." He took a step forward
and looked him in the eye. "I shall die in the knowledge that my hands
carved the most important bit of masonry in the history of the dwarves. No
mason will trump it—not unless Girdlegard needs another Keenfire, which I
sincerely hope it never will."
"Is there
anything I can say to persuade you?"
The
mason chuckled, and something about his laughter reminded Tungdil of the
cheerful ballad singer and joker of old. "Persuade me? Tungdil, I'm a
dwarf! I made my decision orbits ago." He nodded toward the door.
"They need my help and I shall fight alongside them. There could be no
greater honor than to die side by side with the founding dwarves of the
fifthling kingdom, the most ancient and venerable of our kin." His
calloused fingers gripped Tungdil's hand. "You're a good dwarf and that's
what matters, not your lineage. Be sure to remember me—and old Shimmerbeard as
well."
They
embraced, and Tungdil let the tears course down his cheeks. Another friend was
being taken from him, and he wasn't afraid to show his grief.
"As
if I could ever forget you, Bavragor Hammerfist! I shall remember you
always." He turned to look at Goïmgar's grave. "I'll never forget
either of you."
Smiling,
Bavragor hurried to join the fifthlings in the battle against the hordes.
After a couple of paces he stopped and looked across at Boïndil. "Tell him
that I forgive him for what he did," he said softly.
Tungdil
stared at him in amazement. "I can't tell him that," he protested.
"He'd think I was making it up to make him feel better about
himself."
"Then
tell him I knew he loved my sister as much as I did, but I couldn't stand
losing her. I was filled with hatred, and I couldn't hate death for taking her,
so I hated the one who swung the blade. Hatred helped to silence the pain and
the sorrow, and it was easier to live that way. Deep down I knew he loved her
and he never meant to kill her." He chuckled gently. "Death has made
me wiser, Tungdil. May Vraccas protect Boïndil and the others, but especially
you."
He
turned and, belting out a rousing melody, hurled himself into the unequal
battle. His hammer smashed into an orcish knee, then crushed a beast's skull,
and still he kept singing.
Tungdil
swallowed and hurried after his companions, who were rushing up the steps.
Narmora had already reached the entrance to the flue.
As
they ascended, Bavragor's voice accompanied them through the darkness until
Giselbert set the machinery in motion to close the vents. There was a whirr,
then a rattling of metal as chains unfurled and tumbled to the floor. The
mechanism had been destroyed.
When
the noise settled, Bavragor's singing could still be heard, softer and more
muffled, but still audible.
There
was no talking among them as they listened to his songs of dwarven heroism and
glorious victories over the orcs. He was mocking the vast army, provoking his
antagonists, luring them to their deaths.
Then everything was quiet.
There's no one here," Narmora called
down to the others. "Just me and the mountains." Tungdil looked up at
her slim black form silhouetted against the pale sky. She disappeared from
view.
One
by one they clambered to the surface. The flue terminated in a crater large
enough to swallow a fair-sized house.
Tungdil
ascended the final paces with weary, leaden legs. At three thousand steps he
had stopped counting the soot-stained stairs that wound their way up the
chimney's walls. There had been no moments of panic, no tripping, stumbling, or
teetering on the edge, and the ascent had passed without incident, even for Djerůn
in his cumbersome mail.
We made it. Tungdil emerged from the shelter of the
rock to find himself on a snow-capped mountain at the heart of the Gray Range.
An icy wind whipped about them, whistling through his beard and making him
shiver with cold.
Looking
down, he was filled with wonderment at the mighty valleys and gorges below. All
around them were mountains: the towering summit of the Great Blade, the great
pinnacle of the legendary Dragon's Tongue, and the sheer sides of Goldscarp.
Clad in snow and buffeted by wind, the peaks rose majestically toward the
clouds, enduring and eternal. Few had seen the range from such a privileged
vantage point, and Tungdil was loath to tear himself away.
He
sent the half älf ahead as their scout. The decision caused him considerable
heartache: On the one hand, he wanted to protect Narmora because of her role in
the mission; on the other, he knew that she stood the best chance of leading
the company to safety. Furgas was sick with worry on her behalf, but she struck
out confidently through the snow, allowing the others to tread in her
footsteps.
Their
path took them over shimmering bridges of ice, through sheer-sided chasms, and
past deep gulleys. From time to time they clambered over snow-covered scree and
through stone archways that seemed liable to collapse.
They
walked in silence, their tongues stayed by tiredness and all that had gone
before. It was enough to focus on putting one foot in front of the other
without tripping.
Tungdil's
thoughts drifted back to Giselbert and Bavragor. He could imagine them
defending the gates against the enemy hordes, and if he closed his eyes for a
second, he could almost hear the mason singing. The
merry minstrel, he thought sadly.
Later,
as daylight faded and the wind picked up, they sheltered inside a cave,
huddling around the torchlight. Boïndil didn't seem to mind the cold, but Andôkai
brushed the snow from her cloak, pulled it close, and leaned back wearily
against the bare rock. She lowered her blue eyes and cursed.
"I
need to find a force field," she said, putting an end to the silence.
"The sooner we're back on charmed land, the better. My powers are
exhausted. I never thought this would happen and it's not an experience I'd
choose to repeat."
"Quite
apart from that, we're bound to need your magic before too long." The
shivering Tungdil produced his map of the underground network. "I get the
feeling that Nôd’onn knows about the underground network. He'll guess we're
heading for Ogre's Death, and he'll probably be lying in wait." He scanned
the map attentively, his eyes coming to rest at a point two hundred miles from
their present location. He'll never think of looking
there! "We'll go to Âlandur."
"To
Âlandur?" blustered Boïndil, who was carefully plucking ice from his
beard. "Whatever for?"
"There's
a shaft leading down to the network," he told him, pointing to the map.
"There's a good chance that this part of the kingdom won't have fallen to
the älfar. We'll ask the elves to join us and take up the fight against Nôd’onn,
just as the high king proposed. Unless you've got a better suggestion, of
course."
"Er,
no..." the secondling conceded. "But I can't help... I mean, it takes
a while to get used to the idea. Elves are our enemies, our sworn rivals."
"I
can't imagine it either," admitted Balyndis, nodding in agreement. She
stretched her hands to the burning torch.
"How
extraordinarily easy it is for one to dislike something," said Rodario
philosophically. He clutched his stomach just as it growled in protest. Like
the others, he was ravenously hungry. Desperation drove him to break off an
icicle and pop it in his mouth.
"The
gods made us too dissimilar. Sitalia created the elves to love the skies and forests.
Vraccas gave us our caverns and underground halls." Balyndis hugged her
knees to her chest. "They look down on us for not being beautiful like
them. They despise us."
"Consequently,
you despise them," the impresario divined. "Well, if one of you could
see fit to stop despising the other, neither side would have reason to continue
the feud. A whole history of hostility, resolved just like that." He
laughed, then gripped his injured side. "Blasted orcs! Do you happen to
have any other enmities that I can put to rights?"
"There's
always Lorimbur's folk," Boïndil said slowly. "You heard what
Glandallin said about the thirdlings. But it's no good trying to reconcile me
with them." He clenched his fists. "To think that they betrayed the
fifthlings!"
Rodario
propped himself upright against the wall. "What was the origin of the
quarrel? We humans know shamefully little about dwarves." He took up his
quill. "Keep it short, if you will. My ink is running low."
Balyndis grinned.
"We hate each other." His pen froze. "That was a little too short, worthy metalworker of
Borengar." He flashed her a winning smile.
"I was afraid you'd say that." Without further ado, she launched into the tale.
The
five founders of the dwarven folks were created by Vraccas, who gave each of
them a name. The father of the thirdlings cast off his Vraccas-given name and
called himself Lorimbur, which is how he has always been known.
The other dwarves each received a particular talent for
their folks, and so the smiths, the masons, the gem cutters, and the goldsmiths
were born. But when it was Lorimbur's turn, Vraccas told him: "You chose
your own name, so you must choose your own talent. Teach yourself a trade, for
you can expect nothing from me."
Lorimbur tried to teach himself a trade and apprenticed
himself to each of his brothers in turn, but his efforts went unrewarded. The
iron cracked, the stone split, the gems shattered, and the gold burned.
And so it
was that Lorimbur came to envy his brothers and his spiteful heart was filled
with eternal hatred for all dwarves.
Determined to excel at something, he applied himself
secretly to the art of combat. His aim was not merely to defeat his enemies,
but to kill every dwarf in Girdlegard so that none of his kin could overshadow
him again.
Rodario was hurriedly taking notes. "This is wonderful,"
he murmured. "Enough to keep me going for a hundred cycles or more."
Balyndis
cleared her throat. "Do you see why we're afraid of Lorimbur's folk?
They're not to be trusted."
Andôkai
changed position, trying to get comfortable on the rocky floor. "The
thirdlings aren't the ones we should be worrying about. How are we going to
convince the elves of our intentions? Lord Liútasil is known for his reluctance
to forge new friendships. I hardly think he'll rush to the aid of a company of
dwarves."
Tungdil
watched the shadows cast by the torch and smiled. "I've learned from this
journey that nearly everything is possible, even against the odds. I'm sure
the elves will come round."
At
Balyndis's request, Narmora handed over Keenfire, and the smith took to
removing the excess inlay with a file. Tungdil looked on in fascination while
she polished the metal. All of a sudden she put down her tools.
"It's the cold,"
she said apologetically. "My fingers are really numb."
He glanced
at Furgas and Narmora, who were snuggled under a blanket. His mouth went dry.
"You can sit a bit closer, if you like," he offered nervously.
She sidled over and nestled
against him. "Like sitting by a furnace," she said with a sigh of contentment.
Tentatively he laid an arm
across her shoulders. There was something indescribably wonderful about having
Balyndis by his side.
Kingdom of Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
They walked quickly, speeding up to a march as soon as the terrain
permitted and descending the southern slopes as fast as they could. Soon the
mighty peaks of the Gray Range were behind them and they found themselves among
Gauragar's hills.
They were all so exhausted that they didn't have much time
to talk. After a while, Tungdil took Boïndil aside and told him of Bavragor's
last words. The secondling pressed his lips together tightly and said nothing,
but his eyes welled with tears.
Where
possible, they avoided settlements, although on one occasion Furgas and Rodario
were sent to buy provisions from a farm. Had the decision been left to the
impresario, the pair would have posed as impoverished noblemen, but Tungdil,
conscious of the need to keep a low profile, insisted that they pass themselves
off as cobblers instead.
The
food tasted dreadful. The coming of the Perished Land had spoiled the winter
crops and shriveled the apples, and even the bread was so heavy that it sat in
their stomachs like lead. Still, it contained enough energy to restore a little
of their strength. Since the groundwater was unpalatable, they melted snow to
quench their thirst.
At
length Djerůn hunted down a scrawny doe, which they roasted briefly over
the flames and wolfed down hungrily, trying not to notice the slightly moldy
taste.
They
hadn't been troubled by orcs since their escape from the fifthling kingdom, but
after seven orbits the company's relief turned to puzzlement: The Perished Land
had seized Gauragar, but there was no sign of runts or bögnilim.
By rights the roads should be crawling with beasts.
Unable to make sense of it, Tungdil sent Furgas and Rodario to find out what
was happening from the inhabitants of a nearby town.
They returned
with alarming news.
"The
orcs were called away," said the impresario, waving his arms to convey the
drama of his report. "They've abandoned their encampments. A while ago,
thousands of the beasts descended on the human kingdoms to rout the race of
men, but now they're marching south on Nôd’onn's orders. The townsfolk said
something about besieging a stronghold in a mountain." He frowned in
concentration. "I'll remember the name in a moment."
"Ogre's
Death," Boïndil shrieked excitedly. "It's got to be Ogre's Death. Ha,
they need thousands of orcs to attack the dwarves of Beroïn, do they? I always
said the runts were worse than useless. Oh, what I'd give to fight beside my
clansmen!"
To
the others' astonishment, Rodario shook his head. "That's not it," he
said. "Dark... no, brown... no! I've always learned my lines perfectly and
now I can't remember a simple thing like this. It was something to do with
leather." His hands gesticulated frantically in the air. "With
leather and riding..."
"Reins,"
suggested Balyndis.
Tungdil
made the leap. "The Blacksaddle! They're besieging the Blacksaddle!"
Andôkai
searched her memory. "The name means nothing to me. What is it?"
"A
flat-topped mountain. The thirdlings built a stronghold inside it and tried to
wage war on the other folks. It's right in the middle of Girdlegard."
Tungdil pictured the Blacksaddle's abandoned chambers and galleries. So why all the orcs?
"Do
you think someone important might be sheltering there?" asked Narmora.
"You know, someone Nôd’onn is intent on getting his hands on, like one of
the human kings."
Tungdil
remembered telling Gundrabur and Balendilín about the stronghold, but he
couldn't see why either of them would ensconce themselves in such a dark,
benighted place. "We should probably go there. The Blacksaddle is
practically en route."
They resumed their journey.
Twelve orbits after leaving the
fifthling kingdom they sighted Âlandur. There was no need for Tungdil to
consult his map; nature was their guide.
They
were trudging through a snow-filled valley when they first spotted a lush forest
of beeches, oaks, and maples in the distance, surrounded by a protective fence
of pines. The vibrant colors and thriving trees were proof enough that,
contrary to rumor, the last elven kingdom hadn't fallen to Nôd’onn's hordes.
This part of Girdlegard was free from the pestilence.
"I
never thought I'd live to see the day when I'd welcome the sight of
greenery," muttered Boïndil, whose spirits were suffering from the long
march through the Perished Land. His eyes swept the thick line of trees that
formed a natural palisade against intruders. He reached for his axes.
"Looks like we'll have to chop our way through."
"And
give the elves every reason to wage war on your kingdom?" said Andôkai
sharply. "No, we'll have no need of weapons in the woods. Besides, they'll
spot us soon enough." She stared at the forest. "What did I tell you?
They've seen us already." Four tall figures detached themselves from the
trees. Their longbows were raised, ready to shoot. "Who's going to talk to
them?"
"I
will," Tungdil said quickly. He took a step forward, laid his ax on the
ground for the elves to see, and walked toward them with measured steps.
"The
woods of Âlandur have seen a great deal," called the voice of one of the
archers, "but never a groundling. Stay where you are and state your
purpose."
Tungdil
looked at the four forest-dwellers. They were clad in white leather armor, with
swords hanging from their belts. Each wore a white fur cloak, and their fair
hair hung loose about their shoulders. As far as Tungdil could tell, their perfectly
formed faces were identical. He didn't like them.
"My
name is Tungdil Goldhand of the fourthling kingdom. My companions and I left
our homes to forge Keenfire and destroy Nôd’onn the Doublefold," he
declared firmly. "Good friends of ours have died that we might accomplish
our goal. If you will permit it, we should like to enter your kingdom."
"There's no
need. You won't find Nôd’onn here."
"No,
but we'd like to access a tunnel built by our ancestors. The entrance is
within your borders. We intend to journey underground to the
Blacksaddle," he explained briefly. "We heard the magus is
there."
"You're
going to kill him with this Keenfire, are you? You and a handful of
warriors?" The elf stared at him incredulously. "I bet Nôd’onn sent
you here!"
"More
than likely," Tungdil said crossly. He felt like boxing the elf's pointy
ears. "What a fabulous plan that would be! Sending a bunch of dwarves to
talk their way into an elven kingdom. He must have known how pleased you'd be
to see us. You'd welcome us into your forests, we'd deliver you up to the
magus—and you'd never suspect a thing!"
"Nôd’onn's
a traitor, not an idiot," muttered Balyndis not quite softly enough.
Tungdil
couldn't help grinning, and a fleeting smile crossed the elf's slender face. It
wasn't enough to change the dwarf's opinion of him. "How can we convince
you that we mean no harm?"
The
elves conferred in their own tongue. "You can't. Wait here," came the
unfriendly reply. "Set foot on our land and we'll kill you." With
that they disappeared among the mighty trees.
"Ha,
we've got them worried." Boïndil grinned and crossed his arms in front of
his powerful chest. "That's something."
They
made a virtue of necessity and tried to get some rest. There were enough fallen
branches to make a roaring fire and so the time passed. The sun was already
sinking behind the forest when the sentries reappeared, this time accompanied
by twenty archers and a warrior clad in shimmering palandium, which marked him
out as an elf of rank.
"So
these are the travelers." He was handsome, so handsome that he could
never look anything but arrogant. Long red hair framed his face, setting off
his dark blue eyes. "A strange group claiming an even stranger purpose.
Let me find out the truth."
He
raised his arms, his hands tracing symbols in the air. Andôkai responded
immediately with a countercharm.
On
seeing the maga, the elf broke off in surprise. "It seems you can use
magic. Few among the race of men are capable of that. We heard Nôd’onn had
killed them all." He studied her intently. "In appearance you
resemble the woman once known as Andôkai."
"I
am Andôkai the Tempestuous." She gave the most cursory of curtsies.
"I am weak from our journey, Liútasil, and my magic is no match for
yours." She tapped the hilt of her sword. "But I have a certain
reputation as a swordswoman and if you care to cross blades with me, I shall
prove I am no impostor."
Tungdil's
eyebrows rose in surprise. Liútasil wasn't any old warrior; he was lord of Âlandur.
The
elf laughed—a kind, gentle laugh, but still somehow superior. "Ah, the
tempestuous maga. Very well, Andôkai, I believe you, but I need to reassure
myself. The älfar have played too many tricks on us of late."
His
fingers moved gracefully through the air, conjuring a golden haze that settled
over the group. In an instant the tired ness that had been eating into every
fiber of Tungdil's body lifted and even his hunger disappeared. Beside him
Narmora was gasping with pain and the air was rent by the same terrible noise
that Djerůn had made at the gates of Roodacre. The elves nocked their
arrows, spanning their bows, and took aim at the pair. Liútasil lowered his
arms. "Andôkai, it can't have escaped your attention that two of your
traveling companions will never be granted entry to our glades," he said
carefully.
"They're
with us," Tungdil said quickly. "They may be descended from Tion and
Samusin, but we can't defeat Nôd’onn without them." He pointed to the half
älf. "Narmora must wield Keenfire, and Djerůn is almost as accomplished
a warrior as Boïndil here." He hoped the dwarf would appreciate the
flattery. "Orcs and bögnilim flee at the sight of him."
Liútasil
pondered the matter while one of the elves advised him in an urgent whisper.
"An
unusual company indeed," the elven lord began. Tungdil could tell from
his tone that he had conquered his doubts and decided in their favor. "Too
unusual to be anything but genuine. You may enter Âlandur and proceed through
your tunnel." He turned to leave.
Tungdil
felt sufficiently encouraged to make his next request. "I beg your pardon,
Lord Liútasil, but there is something else we should like to ask. We know the älfar
are laying siege to Âlandur and that your kingdom is under threat. You won't
be able to defend your lands alone. Join us in our fight against Nôd’onn and we
will destroy the Perished Land. Afterward you can reclaim your kingdom with our
assistance."
The
elf gazed at him earnestly. "Your generosity does you credit, but it will
take more than a few axes to reclaim our lands."
"He
speaks on behalf of the dwarven assembly," explained Gandogar. "The
assistance he promises would come from my folk, the dwarves of the fourthling
kingdom, of which I am king. And I know the secondlings would gladly rid your forests
of the älfar."
"We've
done it before, you know," Boïndil hastened to assure him. "We kicked
them out of Greenglade."
Liútasil
could no longer disguise his astonishment. "A dwarven king? It gets more
and more intriguing." He beckoned for them to approach. "Come, you
shall explain to me why the dwarves are willing to help their oldest enemies
and save Âlandur from destruction."
He
led the way, and the company followed, escorted on all sides by elven archers.
"Well
spoken," Tungdil said to Gandogar.
The
fourthling king smiled. "It was our only hope. Personally, I set no store
by my status, but perhaps it will convince the pointy-ears to give us the loan
of their army."
They
walked on, squeezing their way through the palisade of trees. Djerůn
struggled at first, encumbered by his armor, but Liútasil gave an order and the
boughs swung back, allowing him to pass.
Once
they had crossed the buffer of pine trees, they entered the forest proper. Even
in winter, the oaks, beeches, and maples kept their foliage, and the branches
showed no signs of bowing or snapping beneath the heavy snow. The towering
trees reminded Tungdil and Boïndil of the splendor of Greenglade before it had
succumbed to the northern pestilence and vented its hatred on every living
thing.
The
sheer size of the trunks took the travelers by surprise; even ten grown men
with outstretched arms could not have spanned their girth.
Such
was the peacefulness and serenity of the forest that the pain of what they had
seen on their journey melted away from them, and they found an inner calm that
deepened with every step.
Dusk
was falling by the time they reached a building that was roughly equivalent to
a dwarven hall. There were no stone columns, of course, only trees whose crowns
formed a canopy two hundred paces above the forest floor, keeping out the rain
and snow. A profusion of glowworms bathed the interior in welcoming light.
The
elves' elegant architecture was the perfect complement to the beauty of the
woods. Tungdil had experienced the same feeling in Greenglade, where the carved
arches, elven inscriptions, and smooth wooden beams had seemed so at one with
the trees.
This
corner of Âlandur, as yet unconquered by the Perished Land, was the very
essence of harmony. Tiny squares of gold and palandium, each no thicker than
gossamer, dangled from the boughs, forming shimmering mosaics that sparkled in
the starlight. As the company progressed through the living hall of trees,
they passed a hanging mosaic of elven runes so dazzlingly beautiful that they
gasped in admiration.
"I'm
not saying that I like the pointy-ears,"
whispered Balyndis, sneaking a sideways glance at the tiles, "but their
artwork's pretty good."
"Houses
made of trees." Boïndil shook his head doubtfully. "I wouldn't feel
comfortable. I'd rather have good solid rock above me. It protects you from the
elements and it doesn't burn."
"What about
volcanoes?" Rodario asked
"Volcanoes
don't burn; lava does," Tungdil corrected him.
"What
do you think lava is..." The impresario dried up under Narmora's fierce
glare. "There's no point arguing with a dwarf," he finished.
The
appearance of the company drew stares from the elves in the hall. It was the
first time that a child of the Smith had visited their kingdom, and most of them
had never seen a dwarf before.
"They
all look the same to me," said Boïndil, voicing his thoughts as freely as
ever. Luckily he chose to speak in dwarfish. "Long faces, cheeks as smooth
as babies', and so conceited you wouldn't believe. I bet they think Girdlegard
should be thankful that they live here at all." He gave his head a little
shake and his black plait bounced on his shoulders. "I know it's not their
fault that the fifthlings were conquered, but I'm not ready to trust them
yet." The smith nodded in agreement.
Tungdil
sighed and stuck his thumbs in Giselbert's belt. He was glad that Lot-Ionan had
raised him: Unlike his companions, he was able to surmount his antipathy to
the elves.
Liútasil
sat down on a wooden throne, the back and arms of which were decorated with
rich intarsia of palandium and gold. Amber and semiprecious gems added to the
opulence. Stools were brought for the guests, but Djerůn had to stand.
Rodario's
quill moved tirelessly across the page as he took notes, made sketches, and complimented
the elves effusively. Furgas stared reverently at his surroundings, while
Narmora's älf ancestry made it hard for her to relax. Her lips were pressed
together in a thin line and she clung to her stool, appearing agitated and
unwell.
Liútasil
gave an order, and his attendants brought out bread, water, and other
offerings, which they served with visible reluctance to Tungdil and friends.
The dwarves, whose presence in Âlandur had obviously caused an upset, weren't familiar with most of
the victuals, but felt obliged to eat. Boïndil was the first to take a wary
bite.
"I
don't care what it tastes like; you'd better not complain or spit it out,"
Tungdil warned him sharply.
The
look of disgust that was beginning to take shape on the warrior's face mutated
into a wonky smile. Boïndil forced down his mouthful, swallowed noisily, and
reached for some water to wash away the taste. "Don't touch the yellow
stuff," was his whispered advice to Balyndis, after which he restricted
himself to bread.
More
elves arrived in the course of the meal and took their places on carved chairs
to either side of their monarch. They eyed the dwarves with interest.
Rodario
added a little water to his last remaining drops of ink. "That should do
the trick," he said, smiling.
"Perhaps
we could speak of the purpose of your visit," began the elven lord.
"I shan't be able to reach a decision until you've told me all that has
gone before. Speak only the truth; we will know if you try to deceive us."
It's my job to convince them. Tungdil glanced at
the others and rose to his feet. He looked into the waiting faces of the
elves. Until recently, Liútasil and his kind had been under suspicion of the
most heinous betrayal, but the fifthlings' story had cleared the way for a new
beginning. It was up to Tungdil to forge the alliance that the high king had
dreamed of. Speak with a scholar's wisdom and
authority, he told himself. More nervous than ever, he took a sip of
water, stuck his hands in Giselbert's belt, and commenced his account of their
journey.
As he
talked and talked he saw the stars wander above the glittering mosaics and
watched as the dark sky turned a deep shade of blue, the moon paling as the
horizon glowed red. Finally, as the sun rose above Girdlegard, sending its rays
through the banks of snow-laden cloud, he concluded his report.
Liútasil's
blue eyes had not left him for an instant: He had listened to every word.
"I see," he said slowly. "So it started as a contest for the
succession and became a mission of far greater consequence. I can see from your
faces that the journey has been testing."
"Indeed it has, Lord Liútasil. The dangers were many, but we survived, and now we're here." Andôkai rose, eyes flashing impatiently, her stormy temperament unwilling to tolerate further delay. "We're running out of time. You've heard what we have to say; make your decision while we still have the choice. Girdlegard will be lost if we don't act soon." She took a step forward, knowing full well how imposing she looked. "What have you decided, Liútasil?" Her eyes searched his handsome face. "What have the elves decided?"
Underground Network, Elven
Kingdom of Âlandur, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
Unbelievable!" Boïndil had no
intention of letting the matter go. He sat down heavily in a wagon. "How
can they need more time? Time to think about what? I've never heard anything so
ridiculous! They'll be sorry when Nôd’onn rules Girdlegard and the älfar chop
down their forest to make a bonfire! They won't need time for thinking then!"
He thumped the handrail angrily. "I'd like to slice four of those elv—er,
orcs—in two!"
What a blow for Gundrabur, thought Tungdil
disappointedly. He took a seat beside the warrior. "I know how you
feel," he confessed. "I thought Liútasil would overrule the doubters,
but obviously I was wrong."
Furgas,
who had been examining the track, took a few steps into the tunnel to assess
the condition of the rail. "It looks pretty solid. There's a bit of rust,
but nothing serious. It's almost as good as new." Satisfied, he returned
to the wagon and sat down beside Narmora. "Let the journey begin."
The
company had stayed the night in the forest while the elves were conferring. Âlandur's
beds were the softest in Girdlegard, which suited the humans very well. The dwarves,
unaccustomed to such luxury, had slept badly and woken up with sore backs.
After a simple breakfast, they had packed their things and set out in search of
the tunnel. The trapdoor, built into a boulder and camouflaged by a thicket of
ferns, had opened without a hitch. Once inside, they had discovered four empty
wagons and a ramp.
"Finished,"
said Rodario, putting away his quill. "You'll be pleased to know that the
elves play a none-too-courageous role in this epic." He beamed at them.
"Girdlegard will hear how the warriors of Âlandur declined to come to its
rescue."
"At
least we found the entrance to the tunnel," Balyndis said brightly, trying
to lift the mood.
Boïndil
ran his finger experimentally along his blades. "I suppose that's
something. The question is, will we reach our destination, or end up being
ambushed and eaten by a war band of orcs?" A menacing smile crept over his
face. "Don't worry, my axes will take care of them. I'm longing to slit
their runty throats." As always on such occasions, he glanced sharply at Djerůn
to remind him not to interfere.
Tungdil
turned to Narmora, who seemed calmer now that they were leaving. "How are
you feeling?"
She
smiled. "Better. It was hard for me in the forest, surrounded by so much
elvishness. I've got my mother to blame for that."
He cleared his
throat. "Are you nervous?"
"About
the showdown with Nôd’onn?" She squeezed Furgas's hand. "No, not
really—although once the magus is standing in front of me it will be a
different story. Still, I've rehearsed what to do, so it should be all
right."
"Of
course it will be all right!" roared Boïndil. "We'll pop up behind
the army and plow through the ranks. Before the runts know what's hit them,
you'll whip out Keenfire and strike the magus in the back. He'll die, and
Girdlegard will be saved!"
Narmora
smiled. "A fine plan, but I'd like to try something a little more daring.
How about I pretend to be an älf? I can play the part to perfection. I'll be
able to get past Nôd’onn's guards and apprentices without arousing
suspicion."
"I
don't mean to be rude," Andôkai said doubtfully, "but why would Nôd’onn
be interested in an ordinary älf? You'll never get close enough."
Narmora
rearranged her head scarf. "I'll think of something."
Of course! Tungdil broke into a grin. He had just
remembered a story from one of Lot-Ionan's books. The heroes had used a simple
but effective trick that could work for them as well. "He'll be
interested, all right, when you deliver the hostages that he's been waiting
for."
"What
kind of hostages?" asked Boïndil. Then it dawned on him. "What? You
want us to give ourselves up?" he protested. "No, we'll fight our
way through like I said!"
"My
dear fellow," Rodario interrupted sweetly, "I don't wish to reawaken
painful memories, but remember what happened in the fifthling kingdom? Your
axes made little impression on the hordes of baying beasts."
"Precisely
my point." Tungdil nodded. "We'll be outnumbered. That's why
Rodario, Furgas, and Andôkai will pretend to be mercenaries who helped Narmora
to capture us. Djerůn will have to stay here; his presence would give us
away."
"It's
a risky strategy, but it might just work," Andôkai said earnestly.
"I'm in favor."
Rodario
tapped his lip pensively. "Haven't I read something like that
before?"
"Do
you mean The Death of Herengard? In the story
the heroes need to kill the evil monarch. They use the same tactic and it
works," explained Tungdil, owning up to his source.
"You mean you borrowed it
from a book?" Boïndil protested, aghast. "But you can't—"
"Remember what I told you when we met? Reading is
important!" Tungdil clapped the warrior on the back. "Maybe you'll
believe me now. Let's have a show of hands."
The
motion was passed with only one objection. Offended at not being listened to, Boïndil
sulked in silence, not even cheering and whooping when the wagon plunged
downhill.
Tungdil chose not to mention the end of the story: King Herengard's valiant killers had been slain by his guards. It was a good strategy nonetheless.
Once again their journey took them deep
below the surface of Girdlegard. They were headed for the Blacksaddle, where Nôd’onn
was mustering his army of orcs and other vile beasts.
Little
did they know that the tunnel was preparing to surprise them again.
On
rounding a corner, they saw upturned wagons and mounds of orcish corpses piled
on both sides of the rail. There must have been at least two hundred bodies in
all. They couldn't stop because of the momentum, so they leaned out of the
wagon to get a better look.
"By
my beard, this is the work of axes if ever I saw it," growled Boïndil.
"You can bet they were slaughtered by dwarves. Our kinsfolk must be doing
better than we thought."
"It
seems funny to be fighting in the tunnels when there's a perfectly good
stronghold in the Blacksaddle. Why haven't they ensconced themselves
there?" Tungdil dangled over the side to inspect the corpses, which were
stacked neatly away from the rail. Someone wanted to
make sure that nothing and no one got in our way.
He was instantly reminded of the spirits whom they had encountered twice
before. "The ghosts! They helped us in the fifthling kingdom,
remember?"
Balyndis
pointed to a niche in the tunnel, where a small figure lay contorted on the
floor. An orcish spear protruded from its side. "That's not a ghost!"
she said. "Ghosts don't have corpses."
"I
wonder if there's such a thing as tunnel-dwelling dwarves," speculated
Furgas. "It struck me a while ago that the rail looked nice and shiny.
Someone's been using it regularly, I'd say."
Tunnel-dwelling dwarves? The network had been
abandoned for such a long time that a band of dwarves could easily have settled
in the tunnels. Tungdil could only guess at an explanation. They must have been banished by the ancient folks.
He
was gripped by excitement. It was entirely plausible that outcasts from the
various clans and folks had learned of the tunnels and founded their own
community many cycles ago. Perhaps they didn't want
to go back to their kingdoms?
"Quick,
lend me your quill, Rodario!" he said, grabbing the ink and parchment and
scribbling a hurried thank-you letter. His handwriting was almost illegible
because of the juddering wagon. They sped past a stalagmite, and he pinned the
note on top.
"Can spirits
read?" inquired Andôkai.
"They're
not spirits," he answered. "If my suspicions are correct, they're
dwarves—outcasts from the five kingdoms who claimed the tunnels for themselves.
We've been trespassing on their territory." He gave a quick explanation.
"Remember how they kept warning us? The hammering, the collapse of the tunnel,
the faces in the cavern. They were trying to make us leave."
"Fascinating,
fascinating," said Rodario. "And when the orcs turned up, they
decided to help their kinsfolk instead of scaring them away. Blood is thicker
than water, I suppose." Rodario snatched back his quill. "I'll add it
to my notes."
"We've
seen so many new things—good as well as bad," murmured Balyndis. "I
hope the good outweighs the bad when it's over."
"It will," Tungdil said confidently. As they rattled around the next corner, he took a last look at the stalagmite. Unless he was much mistaken, a small figure was clutching his note.
Their arrival in the former realm of
Lios Nudin gave Andôkai an opportunity to replenish her powers. She closed her
eyes and waited. Almost immediately the walls of the tunnel began to glow,
revealing the veins and pockmarks in the rock. Andôkai's breathing quickened;
the light became brighter and intensified to a dazzling glare, then faded
abruptly.
Slowly
the maga opened her eyes, turned to the right, and vomited over the side of the
wagon.
"What's
the matter?" Tungdil was about to pull on the brake, but she stopped him
with a wave.
"It's
nothing; just keep going. Nôd’onn corrupted the force fields." She leaned
back, and Balyndis handed her a pouch of water. "I channeled some of the
energy, but it would probably kill me if I took any more." Her mouth
snapped shut as she struggled to contain the next wave of nausea.
After
traveling for two orbits they reached a set of points and continued alongside
another rail. Suddenly a second wagon rolled up and drew level with theirs. Its
passengers, a dozen or so orcs, seemed just as surprised as they were.
Ireheart
was the first to recover from the shock. He reacted true to type.
"Oink,
oink! Come here, you runts," he screeched excitedly, whipping out his
axes. He glared at the others. "Leave them to me."
Before
anyone could stop him, he had launched himself out of the wagon and landed
ax-first among the startled beasts. In his battle-crazed fury, he accidentally killed
the driver, leaving no one in charge of the brakes. The wagon hurtled through
the tunnel while the scuffle continued inside.
Ireheart
spotted a row of stalactites ahead and used them to his advantage. Maneuvering
skillfully, he tricked a careless ore into dodging his ax and colliding
face-first with the hanging calcite. There was an explosion of gore and a peal
of maniacal laughter; then the dwarf pushed the headless creature over the
side.
The
runts struggled to defend themselves as Ireheart slashed through their ranks;
the suddenness of the attack and the cramped circumstances worked in his favor,
and his frenzied cackles, along with the shrieks and howls of his victims,
vied with the noise of the wagons. Soon he reached the last of the orcs, a muscular
beast whose armor was superior to his companions'.
"Stop!
Don't kill their leader!" shouted Tungdil. "I want to interrogate
him."
But
the warrior was in the grip of his fiery spirit. Brandishing his axes, he
charged toward the orc, who didn't stand a chance of deflecting both blades at
once.
Andôkai
barked an order, and Djerůn seized the doomed beast by the scruff of his
neck. Like the boom of a crane, the giant's metal-plated arm swung toward the
company's wagon and deposited the creature at the rear. The orc stopped struggling
as soon as he felt the giant's sword against his throat.
"Hey!
That's cheating!" Undaunted, Boïndil leaped back into their wagon, still
intent on hacking the orc to pieces, but Andôkai barred the way.
"Don't
be foolish, Boïndil," she warned him coldly. "I've replenished my
powers, remember. Stop of your own accord, or I'll make you. Tungdil's right;
we need to find out what we're up against."
Reason
and fury struggled for mastery of the warrior's mind. Panting for breath, he
returned to his seat: Good sense had triumphed. "Question him if you must.
I'll kill the other runts when we get to the mountain."
Tungdil
turned to the orc and looked at him keenly. "What's Nôd’onn doing at the
Blacksaddle?" he asked in orcish.
"I'm not telling
you anything, groundling."
"Maybe
you'd prefer to tell my friend." He reached toward the seated giant and
flipped back his visor. Violet light bathed the hideous features of the
prisoner, who looked away in horror and fear. Tungdil took care not to look at
Djerůn; what he had glimpsed in the desert village would haunt him
forever. "Or do you want him to bite off your arms?"
The
orc squealed something that Tungdil couldn't understand, then said more
clearly, "No, don't let him touch me!"
"What are you
doing at the Blacksaddle?"
"We're
besieging the groundlings," the orc answered, his voice cracking with
fear. "They tried to hide from us, but Nôd’onn wants them dead."
"Why?"
"How should
I know?"
"Is he
there?"
The orc fell
silent but kept a wary eye on Djerůn.
Tungdil
could practically smell his fear. "Is the magus at the Blacksaddle?"
he repeated. When nothing happened, the giant seized the initiative. His head
sped forward, and they heard a loud crunch.
Screaming,
the orc stared at the mangled stump where his arm had once been. "You're
right, you're right," he cried, howling with pain. "The magus is at
the Blacksaddle!"
"When is he
going to attack?" Tungdil asked pitilessly.
"I
don't know. I was ordered to be there in four orbits." The beast groaned,
trying to stop the gushing blood with his other hand. Green gore spurted
through his fingers. "That's all I—"
Djerůn
hadn't eaten for ages, and the sight of a fresh meal was too tempting to
resist. Without consulting Andôkai or Tungdil, he seized the orc, killed it,
and devoured its twitching corpse. His back was turned, so none of the dwarves
could see his face.
At
the sound of the maga's voice, he dropped the body like a shot, closed his
visor, and sat back down. Drops of green blood trickled from his helmet and
there was a sickening smell of orc guts.
"Throw
the rest away," Andôkai ordered. Djerůn dropped the remains of the
beast over the side of the carriage.
"By
the hammer of Vraccas, if we didn't need the giant for our mission..."
Ireheart broke off his threat. "He's a monster—a tame one, but a monster
all the same." He glanced at the maga. "I hope your god doesn't get
tired of you and turn the brute against us." His axes disappeared back
into his belt. "I'm here if you need me; just say the word."
Andôkai declined
to comment.
So Samusin's son devours his father's creatures.
Tungdil stared in fascination at the demonic visor. Djerůn's helmet was
still glowing violet as if an eternal fire were blazing inside his head.
Tungdil caught Narmora's eye. "The orcs were supposed to be there in four
orbits. We've got a new deadline." He turned to face the front and felt a
rush of air that cleared his nostrils of the smell of dead orc. Girdlegard will soon be free of evil—or forever in its
thrall.
Underground Network, Kingdom of
Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
Later on they came across another fifty
orcs whose bodies had been stacked to the side of the track. Their mysterious
protectors had been at work again, although they continued to hide themselves
from view.
The
rest of their journey was uneventful, and they surfaced in the former kingdom
of Gauragar, not far from the Blacksaddle.
Tungdil
recognized the area straightaway. "It's this way," he told them,
leading them to the hill from which he had first seen the Blacksaddle.
Crouching low, they scrambled to the top, hoping not to be spotted by sentries.
They weren't ready to don their disguises yet.
"Vraccas
almighty, we're not a moment too soon," he whispered.
The
murky forest of conifers was gone, replaced by a ring of wooden structures
whose platforms were crawling with miniature figures that looked like orcs.
The towers were already dizzyingly high, but the beasts were adding extra
stories in the hope of storming the stronghold from the summit or the upper
slopes. They must have tired of banging their heads against the solid base of
the Blacksaddle or perhaps the growling mountain had shaken them from its
flanks.
It looks more sinister than ever without the trees.
Every
now and then black torrents cascaded from the hidden stronghold, forcing the
besiegers to flee the steaming liquid or perish in its flow. Elsewhere, fiery
projectiles rained down on the army from chinks in the rock, landing among the
beasts and dousing them in oil. Countless troopers were incinerated in the
blaze.
They've resurrected the old
defenses.
But
despite their losses, Nôd’onn's soldiers continued undeterred. The beasts were
swarming like ants around the base of the Blacksaddle, scouring the flat ground
for anything that could be used in their assault on the flanks.
A
detachment of ogres had been put to work splitting tree trunks and building
siege engines. The defenders focused on toppling the towers or setting light to
them before the orcs could climb high enough to pose a threat; but it did
nothing to discourage the ogres, who collected the debris and started again.
Their smaller comrades milled about impatiently, desperate for the attack to
begin.
"It's
strange, isn't it?" said Tungdil to his dwarven companions. He kept his
eyes fixed on the mountain ahead. "The thirdlings built the stronghold to
wipe out the other dwarves, but now it's the only thing protecting us from Nôd’onn."
He suddenly remembered the runes that he had found on his first visit to the
mountain. Roused by the thirdlings / Against the
will of the thirdlings. / Drenched again / In blood, / The blood/ Of all their
/ Line. He wondered what it could mean.
"I've
never seen so many of them," said Balyndis, staring wide-eyed at the
beasts below.
The
enemy had pitched their tents in a circle around the mountain about a mile from
its base. Their shelters barely looked sturdy enough to withstand the snow and
winter winds. Here and there black puffs of smoke rose skyward.
"Eighty
thousand at a guess," Boïndil said evenly. He thumped Tungdil on the back.
"I'm not saying you were right about books, but I'd need more than my axes
to deal with a rabble like that. Your plan will work better after all."
Rodario
pointed west. "Do you think those are Nôd’onn's quarters?" He
indicated a stately tent, far larger than the others and draped in
malachite-colored cloth. "I'd certainly want a tent like that if I were
the magus. Canvas is all very well for the riffraff, but a man of authority
deserves something better."
Furgas
sighed. "Thank goodness you weren't born a nobleman. Your subjects would
have strung you up cycles ago."
"Not
if you were around to invent a slower way of killing me." They smiled at
each other companionably.
"Speaking
of inventions." Furgas gestured away from the main battleground and
pointed to a band of ogres who were constructing a rolling siege engine. It towered
two hundred paces above the ground and looked far more robust than its
foregoers. "That should do the trick for them. They've used tiles on the
outside to make it less flammable."
Hundreds
of orcs descended on the contraption, swarming over its many platforms, arming
it with crossbows and catapults, and stocking the slings with missiles and
spears. The ogres finished the building work and bent down to push the tower
toward the mountain. Bugles were sounded, heralding an all-out attack.
"It's
time we did something," ruled Tungdil. "Narmora, bring the prisoners
to Nôd’onn."
She nodded resolutely and donned
her disguise.
A few
moments later they were faced with one of the deadliest creatures in Tion's
creation. The transformation went deeper than the change of clothes; with each
piece of älf armor, Narmora looked crueler and more menacing, her face
hardening and paling. As she straightened up, her voice sounded oddly sinister.
"And now for the most important part..." The whites of her eyes
darkened, leaving nothing but fathomless blackness, the distinguishing feature
of the älfar by day.
If I didn't know better...To Tungdil, she looked
exactly like a real älf, which was precisely what they needed for their plan to
succeed. "Perfect," he praised her.
Andôkai
got out the dark blue amulet that belonged to the dead älf in the desert and
hung it around Narmora's neck. "The crystal will ward off Nôd’onn's
magic," she said. "I want you to wear it in case we get separated and
you find yourself fighting on your own."
Narmora
smiled at her. "Wait here. I'll fetch the armor for my mercenaries."
She slipped away noiselessly and disappeared.
Tungdil
noticed that Balyndis had reached for her ax. "She's... she's
changed," the dwarf said defensively. "She's all sinister and
threatening, just like a real älf."
"What
if her dark side takes over?" asked Boïndil, who didn't mind voicing his
doubts. "She'll have Keenfire and we can't kill Nôd’onn without it. The
maga won't be able to hurt her because of the amulet. How are we supposed to
stop her if she turns against us?"
Furgas
rushed to his mistress's defense. "She's still Narmora, you know,"
he said fiercely. "Don't forget that she's an actress. No matter what she
says or does, you mustn't doubt her. She's had plenty of opportunity to—"
Narmora returned with an armful of bloodied armor belonging to some careless sentries. She threw the garments into the snow. "You'll have to wipe them clean," was all she said.
Once Rodario had taken some
"special precautions," as he mysteriously referred to them, the
company began the most perilous phase of their journey yet.
Tungdil,
Gandogar, Balyndis, and Boïndil took their places at the heart of the group,
surrounded by their captors, whose faces were hidden by their foul-smelling
helmets. Narmora had swaddled Keenfire in rags and was carrying the weapon on
her back. Djerůn stayed behind, poised to charge down the hillside and cut
down the enemy if his mistress should signal for help.
Boïndil
found it especially difficult to be separated from his beloved axes. Worse
still, his hands were bound, a circumstance he tolerated only because they
couldn't get to Nôd’onn by any other means. A worrying thought occurred to him.
"Tell me again how the story ended."
Rodario
opened his mouth to enlighten him, but Tungdil cut him off.
"Happily," he said firmly. He locked gazes with the impresario,
pleading with him to let the falsehood stand. Rodario rolled his eyes, but
refrained from comment.
"Just
as well," growled Boïndil, who luckily wasn't interested in specifics.
Furgas
had stowed the dwarves' axes in a sack and was ready to return them to their
owners at the first sign of trouble. The captives were bound with leather
manacles that would rip at the jerk of a wrist. All that mattered was that they looked like prisoners.
The
afternoon shadows were growing long when they finally entered the enemy
encampment.
Narmora
glared menacingly at the sentries, three orcs and four bögnilim, and demanded
to be allowed to deliver her prisoners to Nôd’onn in person. The company was
allowed to pass.
One
of the bögnilim rushed ahead to announce the arrival of the heroic älf. The
company strode purposefully between the tents, heading in the direction that
the bögnil had taken.
"So
I was right," came a muffled voice from Rodario's helmet. "I knew it
had to be Nôd’onn's tent."
"Silence,"
commanded Narmora in her sinister älf's voice, and the impresario refrained
from further comment.
By
now they had a clear view of the dark green cloth that was housing the source
of Girdlegard's ills. They were only twenty paces away when the tent opened and
an old acquaintance emerged: pointy ears, handsome features, and long fair
hair. "Sinthoras," gasped Tungdil in horror.
Boïndil leaned
over. "Was he in the story too?"
The älf
was smiling maliciously. He was wearing a tionium breastplate and a long
tionium mail shirt that reached as far as his knees. He was prepared for
battle. "It's always a pleasure to see you," he said to Tungdil with
a bow. Then he turned to Narmora. "Congratulations on capturing the prisoners,
Miss...?"
"Morana,"
she said, furnishing herself with an älf name.
"Morana,"
he repeated. "Tion must prize you highly. Caphalor and I hunted the
groundlings across the length and breadth of Girdlegard with no success."
His cruel eyes roved coldly over the little band. It was impossible to tell
exactly who he was looking at. "We inflicted some casualties, it
seems."
"And
yet they evaded you," she said scornfully. She decided not to be
intimidated and to play the part of the arrogant stranger.
"Yes,
they evaded us." Sinthoras sighed with feigned regret. "But we have
them now. I'll take them to Nôd’onn. You may go."
Narmora
stood her ground. "I captured them. Why should I let you steal my
reward?"
Sinthoras
circled her menacingly. "You've got courage, young älf. It's strange that
I've never heard your name."
"Dsôn Balsur
is a big place. I don't believe we've met."
"You're
from Dsôn Balsur? I know every inch of our kingdom; I founded it." He
stopped in front of her. "What of your mother and father? Where do you
live, Morana?"
"That
needn't concern you," she retorted, unmoved. "Hurry up and tell Nôd’onn
I'm here to see him—or get out of my way."
"The magus
is asleep."
"Then wake
him."
Tungdil
was still reeling from the shock of meeting Sinthoras. What are
we to do? Should we walk past him? If it comes to a fight, some of us will die. He glanced at Nôd’onn's
tent, which was tantalizingly close. If we wait too long, we'll
only attract an audience, which is the last thing Narmora needs. He couldn't see that
they had a choice.
"Come
and listen to this, Caphalor." Sinthoras threw back his head and laughed.
"I've got a young älf here who isn't afraid of her elders. It could be the
death of her one day."
"She
ought to be taught some respect," someone said behind them.
Rodario
was caught off guard by the voice and whipped round, almost taking Balyndis's
head off with his lance. His armor, which was slightly too big for him, clunked
noisily.
Behind
them was an älf with long dark hair. Tungdil recognized him immediately as the
sinister bowman who had shot at him in Goodwater and tracked the company
through the Red Range. He knew they had to do something, but he couldn't for
the life of him think what.
"I
knew a Morana once, but she didn't look like you. Besides, the Morana I'm
thinking of is dead." Caphalor's fathomless eyes settled on Narmora. He
was wearing tionium-plated leather armor that seemed to swallow the sunlight.
"You're not from Dsôn Balsur, are you?" He laid his slender fingers
on the hilt of his sword. "Why did you lie to us? Tell us where you're
from."
By now
Boïndil was becoming restless. His eyes darted back and forth and he glanced at
Tungdil, waiting for his command.
Should we attack? If we do, they're bound to overpower us.
Tungdil didn't know what to do. The älfar's ambush was entirely unexpected and
it looked as though neither Sinthoras nor Caphalor had any intention of
allowing Narmora to deliver her prisoners to Nôd’onn.
"I've
had enough of your games," she said, her voice trembling slightly. For
all her acting experience, she couldn't control her fear. "If you won't
take me to him, I'll call him myself." She shouted out to Nôd’onn.
The älfar
laughed.
"That's
too bad," Sinthoras said spitefully. "You're not the only one who's
been lying. The magus is mustering his troops by the tower. We're just about to
join him. My spear is looking forward to whetting itself on dwarfish
blood."
"The
tower?" She glanced at the mercenaries and the dwarves. "Then that's
where I'll take them." She was about to push past Sinthoras when he
whipped out his sword. Before the blade reached her neck, she parried the blow.
"Another trick like that and I'll kill you," she said menacingly.
A
knife whistled over the dwarves' heads, its sharp point embedding itself in the
half älf's armpit. She cried out in pain.
"My
Morana sounded different as well," Caphalor said grimly.
Furgas
couldn't contain himself any longer and lunged at the aggressor. The älf
stepped nimbly out of the way of his spear, drew his sword, and feigned a swipe
at his head. Furgas fell for the ruse and readied himself to parry the blow.
The dark-haired älf rammed his sword into Furgas's belly. The prop master sank
to his knees, groaning.
"Quick," Tungdil shouted to Rodario, who was rooted with shock. The impresario grabbed the sack and tossed the weapons to the dwarves. Throwing off their leather manacles, they seized their axes and hurled themselves on their hated foes.
As Rodario backed away from the smiling
Sinthoras, Ireheart leaped into the breach, his axes twirling ferociously.
"So
you want to dunk your toothpick in some dwarf blood, do you, hollow eyes?"
He slashed at the älf's hips, forcing him away from Rodario. The impresario
seized his chance and fled. Ireheart took another step toward his opponent.
"You'd better be quick because my axes are hungry for älf flesh."
They fell on each other, and Balyndis and Gandogar threw themselves into the
mix, ignoring Boïndil's indignant shouts.
Andôkai
and Tungdil were left to deal with Caphalor, while the injured Narmora went to
Furgas's aid.
The half
älf's wound was relatively minor. The knife had missed the vein, nicking the
flesh and drawing blood, but Furgas was in a critical state. By the time
Narmora got to him, he was breathing shallowly, fumbling with his visor, and
struggling for air.
"Furgas,
my love," she said soothingly, pressing on his abdomen to stem the
bleeding. The color returned to her eyes as she tended to him anxiously. Blood
continued to gush from the wound. With a wild curse, she jumped to her feet,
pushed Andôkai away from Caphalor, and harried the älf with a series of blows.
"I'll take care of him. You see to Furgas," she ordered. "He'll
die if you don't." Her eyes darkened to hollows.
Andôkai retreated
with a nod.
"How
moving," Caphalor said scornfully. "I shouldn't worry, though. You'll
be united in death." He dodged her weapon and kicked Tungdil elegantly in
the chest. The dwarf fell backward and sat down with a thud. Caphalor smiled at
Narmora. "Let's have some fun before I kill you."
He
parried her next blow and punched her in the face. Struggling to keep her
balance, she managed to duck beneath his sword, but his knee powered into her
nose and she straightened up, placing herself unknowingly within reach of his
blade.
Without
stopping to think, Tungdil hurled his only ax at the älf. Boïndil would have
disapproved of the tactic, but he didn't know what else to do.
The
blade whistled as it arced through the air, alerting Caphalor to the danger.
In a
movement so swift that Tungdil scarcely saw it happen, Caphalor caught the
weapon by the haft and tossed it back. The älf used the momentum to whirl like
a spinning top toward Narmora and knock her sideways. He raised his sword to
kill her as she fell.
Tungdil
had no time to dodge the flying ax, which hit him poll-first in the chest. His
ribs cracked audibly and the pain was terrible, but it could have been far
worse.
"Leave
her to me, Caphalor," a hoarse voice commanded. The älf froze and turned
to see Nôd’onn, who had appeared out of nowhere.
"But,
Master, you..."
His
confusion lasted long enough for Narmora to sit up and thrust her blade into
the crouching älf's neck. The blow almost parted his head from his shoulders,
but Caphalor took one last lunge at her, slashing at her throat, then toppling
over and burying her beneath him.
Sinthoras
let out a terrible howl. He realized that his friend was dead and that the
distraction was the work of an impostor. Glancing at his opponents, he decided
that the odds were against him. He had sacrificed his amulet already and was no
match for the maga on his own. "We'll meet again," he promised.
"Sinthoras will be your death." With that he disappeared into the
tent.
Tungdil
and his companions chased after him but found the magus's quarters deserted. Damn that älf! He's tricked us again.
Rodario,
still posing as the magus, had stayed outside to disperse the crowd of startled
beasts. He instructed them to return to the battle and kill any of their
comrades who weren't fighting savagely enough. "I'll take care of the
treacherous sorceress myself." He stabbed a finger at Andôkai and muttered
a few unintelligible words. "Take that!" The maga sank obligingly to
the ground. Impressed by the magus's power, the orcs and bögnilim backed away,
bowing respectfully.
"An
unsophisticated audience is a gift from above," he murmured gratefully
into his malachite cowl. His heart had been in his throat throughout the scene.
He checked that the coast was clear and beckoned to Andôkai. "No one's
looking. Come quickly, Estimable Maga! Narmora needs your help!"
The
maga crouched over the half älf and began a healing incantation to close the
wound, while Rodario stood in front of them, spreading out his voluminous robes
to hide them from view. "Incidentally, you'd make a wonderful actress.
I've never seen anyone die with such conviction."
"This
is no time for flattery," she rebuked him, concentrating on her charm.
As
quickly and discreetly as possible they carried the dead älf and their two
wounded companions into the tent and held a whispered conference. Boïndil
peered out of the flap and kept watch.
"Sinthoras
is bound to tell the magus about us," said Tungdil. He glanced down at
Furgas's motionless form. Andôkai had induced a deep healing sleep in the hope
that he would recover. Narmora was stroking his hand comfortingly, but she herself
was shaking all over and her throat was smeared with blood.
"Nôd’onn
will be expecting us," said Andôkai, glancing around the tent. "It
won't make things any easier, but at least we've got another älf outfit."
She stripped the dead Caphalor unceremoniously of his mail and strapped it to
her body. It was tight in some places and loose in others, but with her visor
down and in the company of Narmora she looked reasonably convincing.
"With any luck, Nôd’onn won't notice the difference until it's too late."
"How
do you feel about posing as the magus again, Rodario? Do you think you'd be
able to get us as far as Nôd’onn?" Tungdil was already working on a new
plan.
"With
pleasure." He tugged on the straps that looped beneath his improvised
stilts. He was standing on a pair of helmets. "I get quite a kick out of
being a notorious wizard." Grinning, he made a final check of his
flamethrower and rearranged the air-filled leather pouches that inflated his
girth. "Let the show begin! Our beastly spectators are waiting."
"Don't
lay it on too thick or they'll tear you to pieces before we can stop
them," warned Tungdil. "All right, here's the story." He pointed
to Balyndis, Boïndil, Gandogar, and himself. "The four of us are
defectors. We're under your spell, and we're showing you how to infiltrate the
stronghold."
Andôkai
picked up Furgas's helmet and placed it on her head. It didn't look right with
the elaborate älf armor, but at least it hid her face.
"Blasted
ogres," gasped Boïndil, peering through the tent flap. "They've
pushed the tower right up against the mountain. They're going to do it this
time." He screwed his eyes up in concentration. "I think I can see
the magus. He's on the middle platform and he's—" He stopped short, too
anxious to continue.
The
others rushed to the door to see for themselves what was happening.
The
Blacksaddle was quaking under the force of Nôd’onn's attack. Black bolts sped
from his staff and zigzagged over the slopes. The noise of crackling,
spluttering lightning carried as far as the tent.
The
stubborn mountain stood firm, resisting the assault. Just then a mighty bolt
slammed into its flank, forcing it apart.
A
mass of fractured rock thundered down the slopes, raising vast clouds of dust.
Ledges and overhangs collapsed, laying open the passageways that led into the
stronghold.
The
troops on the tower prepared to disembark. Each platform was equipped with
hastily constructed gangplanks, which the beasts angled toward the pitted
surface of the once-sheer slope. The first orcs were halfway across before the
planks had touched down. They stormed into the stronghold, to be met by
dwarven axes.
Nôd’onn
made certain that enough troopers were inside, then stepped onto a gangplank
and followed them unhurriedly into the stronghold.
At least we know where he is. Tungdil took a deep
breath. "We'll have to leave Furgas here," he decided. "It's
safer than taking him with us. Are you ready?"
Narmora and
Rodario nodded.
As they strode past rows of kneeling beasts who were too dim-witted to see through their disguise, Boïndil had a sudden feeling that they had forgotten something important, and he couldn't think what.
They remained on guard, knowing that
Sinthoras was still at large and could ambush them at any moment. Mercifully,
the crowds were too thick for him to take aim at them with his bow, so he would
be forced to attack at close range. He hadn't shown himself yet.
No
one challenged them as they headed for the tower. Farther away, four smaller
siege engines had started attacking the stronghold. They ascended the broad
steps that led up to the platforms and strode over the gangplank that Nôd’onn
had used.
To
their intense relief, they survived the defenders' hail of stones and arrows
and made it safely into the Blacksaddle. Orcish shrieks echoed through the
passageway, accompanied by the peal of colliding swords, axes, and maces. A
battle was raging deep within the stronghold.
"I'll
see to it that we don't have to worry about enemy reinforcements," said Andôkai.
She turned and focused on the besiegers' main tower. Ogres were scaling its
sides, hoping to use the uppermost platform as a stepping-stone. Unable to
squeeze through the tunnels, they were intent on assailing the defenders from
the mountain's flat summit.
"You
mustn't exhaust yourself," warned Tungdil, scanning the area for orcs.
"We're bound to need your magic when it comes to tackling Nôd’onn."
"Don't
worry; I know how to deal with them." The fair- haired maga conjured
luminous blue runes that coalesced into a sphere. Hissing furiously, the ball
of energy swooped toward the base of the tower and exploded on Andôkai's
command.
The
air crackled with the sound of an oncoming storm, and a gale blew up, blasting
through the tower's solid timber and blowing away the tethers. The lower platforms
folded like cardboard, causing the tower to wobble and tilt dangerously to the
side.
The
walls blew out, and the ogres were thrown backward, arms and legs thrashing
frantically like upturned beetles. They fell to earth amid the milling mass of
orcs, bögnilim, and beasts. A moment later, the tower collapsed entirely,
burying several hundred more creatures under its weight. The shrill screams of
terror sounded sweeter than the sweetest music to Tungdil's ears. The wreckage
of the tower lay directly below the entrance to the stronghold, so the debris
would have to be cleared before any of the smaller siege engines could be
wheeled into place.
"That
should keep them busy for a while," said Andôkai, eyeing her work with
satisfaction.
"Now
for the traitor. We'll have to fight our way through to him, I'm afraid."
Tungdil gave up all pretense of being enslaved to the counterfeit magus.
"Enough of the act, Rodario. If our kinsfolk mistake you for the real Nôd’onn,
they'll rip you limb from limb."
Rodario
stepped down from his makeshift stilts and took off his robe to reveal his
armor. He stowed the props hastily in his bag.
Balyndis
was still scanning the besieging troops. A cloud of dust had appeared on the
horizon. "We need to hurry," she said in alarm. "There are more
of them. Where the deuce are they coming from?"
Tungdil
didn't care where they were coming from, provided that he and the others could
beat them back. How are we ever going to defeat
them? Even if we kill the magus, we'll never get rid of them on our own.
It would take a combined army of dwarves, elves, and men to see off the threat.
He drew closer to Balyndis and took her hand, drawing strength and courage from
her touch. "We'll deal with Nôd’onn; then we'll worry about his
troops."
They
raised their weapons and prepared to charge into the tunnels and overwhelm
their enemies from behind. Boïndil was in his element.
"This
is the way it should be," he whispered, eyes glinting as his fiery inner
furnace took control. "A narrow tunnel, more enemies than we can count...The
first ten are for my brother, but Vraccas can have the rest."
"Narmora
is our priority," Tungdil reminded them. "She's the only one who can
kill Nôd’onn, but the rest of us must protect her as best we can."
Gandogar
patted his double-headed ax. "No one will touch her while I'm alive to
stop them. Destroying Nôd’onn is all that counts."
Rodario
was happy to settle for a less heroic role and stood back politely to let the
others pass. While they stormed down the tunnel, he took a last look outside.
"Come
back, everyone, it's..." He stared at the fluttering banners of an army
approaching from the east. "Aren't those the colors of Ido? Surely Prince
Mallen wouldn't ally himself with Nôd’onn?" His eyes roved over the other
banners flying above the rows of troops. The crests
of all the human kingdoms!
The
first wave of warriors flowed into the back of a unit hurrying to lend Nôd’onn
their support. Rodario watched in astonishment as the new arrivals mowed down
the startled beasts.
Not
having reckoned with enemy troops, Nôd’onn's soldiers took a while to realize
that they were under attack. A moment later, the sky darkened and a hailstorm
of arrows ripped through the air. The iron-tipped missiles glittered in the
light as they sped toward the beasts. The magus's warriors forgot about the
humans and tried to locate their other mysterious foes. Firebombs were already
whining toward them, crashing down and engulfing them in flames. Panic broke
out.
"Bravo
for the elves!" cheered Rodario, relaying the news to his friends.
Gandogar
grinned. "So the pointy-ears have found their courage, have they?"
"What
are we waiting for?" demanded Ireheart, fired up by the prospect of orc
blood. "Do you want to kill Nôd’onn or not?"
They charged into the tunnel, their confidence buoyed.
As it turned out, they had nothing to
fear from the orcs. Not expecting to be attacked from the rear, the runts put
up almost no resistance, and the first forty died without knowing what had hit
them. The company found themselves at a junction with no sign of beasts or
dwarves.
"That
was brilliant fun! Where to now?" Ireheart panted eagerly. "You know
your way around here. Which direction will Nôd’onn have taken?"
"He's
probably helping his troops at a spot where he can't get any farther by brute
force alone," Tungdil said, wishing fervently that the walls of the
stronghold would speak to him as they had once before. Nothing happened.
"The trouble is, I can't think where." There was a hint of
desperation in his voice. "It's..."
A dull
rumble shook the ground beneath their feet, and a fierce red light radiated
from the passageway to their left. Flames licked the walls in the distance;
then the glow faded and was gone.
Tungdil
didn't need to give the order: He and the others were already sprinting toward
the blaze. The smell of charred flesh hung thick in the air, the black fatty
smoke stinging their eyes and burning their lungs.
They
stormed out of the passageway and entered the first of three halls. The
chambers were divided by roughly fashioned walls, but vast archways, each nine
paces or more in height, allowed them to see through to the final hall.
A
fierce battle was raging between the dwarves and the beasts. They seemed to be
fighting for control of a wide door at the far end of the third hall, where the
clatter of blades was at its most deafening. Bright pennants fluttered above
the warriors of Borengar, Beroïn, and Goïmdil.
Poorly
fashioned pillars supported the ceiling, fifty paces above. Crumbling
staircases without kerb or rail wound up the columns, which were connected by
bridges that ran the length of the halls. The fighting had spread to the
walkways too.
"Come
on, we're bound to find him here," Tungdil said firmly.
At
first the company passed undetected through the turmoil, but their fortunes
changed in the final hall when they spotted Nôd’onn pacing along a bridge. He
was watching the dwarven warriors struggling to defend the door against his
troops.
"Look!
I bet he's going to help them with his wizardry." Boïndil ran ahead,
speeding toward the staircase that would take them to the magus's walkway. The
rest of the company made to follow, but fate had ordained that they should
fight a different battle.
A
dark arrow sang toward them from the right. Tungdil felt a searing pain in his
leg and looked down to see an arrow embedded in his thigh.
"Sinthoras
will be your death," hissed the älf. He was leading a band of fifty orcs
and a second arrow was notched on his bow. "I will take your life and the
land will take your soul."
Not mine, you won't, Tungdil thought stubbornly. He
saw Sinthoras release the bowstring and managed to raise his shield to ward off
the feathered shaft of death.
Cursing,
the älf bounded toward them and ordered the orcs to attack.
"Quick, Narmora and Boïndil, you take the steps," instructed Tungdil. "Kill Nôd’onn before he sees us. We'll watch your backs." With a muffled groan he reached down and snapped the arrow shaft in two. Stand by us, Vraccas. Bracing himself, he raised his ax to strike an orcish knee.
The stone staircase crumbled as they
ran. The thirdlings had chosen their material badly and over the course of time
it had chipped and fractured. Narmora and Boïndil were risking their lives with
every step.
They
swept up the spiral stairs, winding their way to the top and never once
glancing at the fighting below. All their thoughts were focused on the bloated
man in malachite robes who was standing on the walkway. With every turn of the
staircase he flashed in and out of sight. The air was getting warmer, and there
was an overpowering stench of blood and orc guts.
Only
a few steps remained. Narmora rounded the final corner, only to be confronted
by a famulus who was standing guard behind the pillar.
"Who
said you could come up here?" he asked rudely, mistaking her for one of Nôd’onn's
älfar. "You're supposed to be commanding the orcs, not—"
Boïndil
charged past Narmora and rammed his left ax into the famulus's crotch. The next
ax sliced into the man's right shoulder, and he staggered against the pillar and
collapsed.
"Ha,
I guess wizards aren't always in favor of surprises." The dwarf grinned.
He peered round the corner. "There's no one else in sight. I'll wait here,
or Nôd’onn will get suspicious. Just call if you need me." He looked at
her keenly. In the darkness of the underground hall, Narmora's eyes looked like
hollows once more. "Are you sure you can do this?"
Narmora
tossed the rags to the floor and practiced reaching for Keenfire. "You're
worried that my dark side will make a traitor of me."
He nodded.
"Yes."
"Well,
Boïndil Doubleblade, at least you're honest." She bent down and laid a
hand on his shoulder. "Don't you think it's a little too late to doubt my
loyalty?" Her expression was as hard and cruel as an älf's and she looked
more terrifying than ever.
He
tapped his axes together nervously. Her words and gestures were making him
jumpy. "Just do something so I know what's what," he said grumpily.
She smiled and left the shelter of the pillar. "Very well. I'll do something." Her face remained an inscrutable mask.
Nôd’onn was standing halfway along the
walkway. He raised his right arm and traced a symbol in the air, conjuring the
first runes of a devastating spell that would put pay to the defenders'
determined resistance. In his bloated left hand he held his onyx-tipped staff
of white maple. The black jewel was glimmering malevolently.
Narmora
could tell that it was no use sneaking up on him and that an all-out assault
would be equally doomed. She would have to rely on cunning and dissimulation to
get within striking distance of Girdlegard's most dangerous and powerful
wizard.
She
held her hand to her bloodied neck, pressing on her wound. All her efforts were
focused on appearing injured, and she made her performance as authentic as
possible, swaying and stumbling along the bridge.
"Master,"
she groaned, "they've destroyed the tower... It was Andôkai..."
He
froze and turned sharply. His waxy skin wobbled as if it were filled with
rippling water. "Andôkai?" he rasped. "Where is she?"
"Outside,
Master. She's using her magic against our troops." She took a few
faltering steps toward him. Only ten paces remained, an impossibly long
distance. "How can we stop her?"
Nôd’onn
shuffled round to face her. She saw his huge girth, the puffed-up face that
bore no resemblance to Nudin's, the blood seeping from his pores and running in
red trickles across his skin and soaking his robes. Dark patches, some still
glistening moistly, stained the green cloth that was caked with blood and
grime. The smell was enough to make anyone retch.
"She's
too powerful for you," he said, his voice cracking as if two people were
speaking at once. "You won't be able to stop her. Show me where you last
saw her and I'll take care of her myself. Lead the way."
Five paces.
I need to get closer to him. Narmora stumbled and
sank to her knees. "Master, I'm hurt. Have pity on me and heal my wounds
so I can serve you better."
"Later,"
he told her sharply. "Get up and..." His gaze had fallen on a
particularly ferocious skirmish at the center of which was Tungdil, still
locked in combat with Sinthoras and his orcs. "Lot-Ionan's groundling? But
that's not...I mean, I thought the artifacts were..." He fell silent and
collected his thoughts. "Well, things have got a good deal easier."
The
magus closed his eyes. Narmora saw her opportunity and decided to act.
Slowly
and silently so as not to attract attention, she rose from her knees and took a
nervous step toward him, then another.
Four
paces, three paces, two paces. She reached for Keenfire. One more pace.
"Master,
look out!" someone shouted across the hall.
Narmora drew the ax and brought it down with all her might. Nôd’onn turned away from Tungdil and directed the curse at her.
Narmora felt as if she were staring
into the sun. The dazzling light seared into her eyes, and before she knew it,
she was flying backward through the air. She thudded down, landing heavily on
the walkway, still blinded, but with Keenfire gripped tightly in her hand.
She
couldn't see Nôd’onn, but it was obvious that he'd evaded her blow. Why am I still alive, then? She ran her hands over
her body and felt the smooth surface of the amulet given to her by Andôkai. That must be it.
"Finish
her off, and bring the ax to me," she heard the magus order. The clicking
of his wooden staff against the flagstones receded into the distance.
Little
by little her eyes cleared and she caught a hazy glimpse of the malachite robe
disappearing down the staircase. Gasping with pain, she struggled up, intent
on running after the traitor and cutting him down. The amulet would protect
her.
She
was almost on her feet when a shadow hurtled out of nowhere. Whooshing over her
head, the dark figure landed lightly on the walkway in front of her. Two short
swords pointed menacingly at her chest.
"You
should have known that the Perished Land would allow me to avenge myself,"
said Caphalor.
Narmora
stared at the deep wound where her blade had gashed his throat. "If I
thought you were a danger, I would have beheaded you," she said coldly.
"You're no threat to us." She held the ax on high, knowing that
Caphalor would kill her if he sensed she was afraid.
The älf
lunged at her, snarling, and Narmora realized that she would never keep pace
with his attack. She retaliated with an offensive of her own and laid open the
undead warrior's shoulder. The ax cut into his flesh, but Caphalor was
undaunted.
"I'll
cut you to ribbons, eat your flesh, and paint a portrait of your ravaged body
with your blood," he spat, raising his weapons again. Harrying her with
his swords, he maneuvered her closer and closer to the edge of the walkway.
Belatedly she noticed that she was only a hand span away from plummeting to
her death.
Caphalor
dropped down suddenly and swiped at her calves. She leaped over him, whirled
around, and swung her ax to finish his undead existence.
But
the älf had thrown himself to the floor and rolled over, ready to thrust his
swords toward her as she delivered the final blow.
The
ax head scraped along the stone floor, sparks flying everywhere, then sliced sideways
into the älf's neck, settling the matter forever. Caphalor's eyes widened.
But his final
maneuver had not been in vain.
His
swords had pierced Narmora's armor and embedded themselves beneath her
collarbone. The half älf found herself skewered above his corpse, unable to
think or move. Through the haze of her consciousness she saw the amulet fall
from her neck, hit Caphalor, and bounce off the walkway. The leather band,
sliced in two by the älf, unraveled onto his chest.
I still haven't... She tried to call to the others,
but her gored chest and her ebbing strength turned her shout to a whisper. She
could feel herself slipping out of consciousness and there was nothing she
could do.
Her
legs gave way and she slumped over Caphalor, her chest still propped up by his
swords. Suddenly she felt unbearably cold. Incapable of even the smallest
movement, she dangled above her foe.
Furgas... She had nothing left to give. Her fingers opened against her will, and Keenfire fell from her grip. Clattering to the walkway, the ax bounced against the flagstones and flew over the edge.
X
Blacksaddle, Kingdom of
Gauragar, Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th Solar Cycle
Tungdil
glanced up and saw Narmora on the walkway.
The
sight of her impaled on Caphalor's swords filled him with helpless rage.
Meanwhile, Nôd’onn was
descending the final steps of the staircase only paces away from Tungdil and
the others. They were running out of time. We'll
be lost without Keenfire.
"I'll
get the ax," he shouted to Balyndis. "Keep the orcs busy and watch
out for Nôd’onn. Andôkai will have to take care of him until I get back."
The firstling
nodded grimly and felled a beast that was about to lunge at Tungdil.
"Hurry!"
Tungdil detached
himself from the scrum and blew his horn to summon the warriors of the three
dwarven folks who were fighting in the other halls. His call was answered by
blaring bugles and the sound of dwarven axes on orcish mail. He hoped that the
upsurge in fighting would preoccupy the enemy and allow him to slip past
unnoticed.
"Vraccas,
your name will be worshipped forever if you help me now." He finished his
quick prayer, took a deep breath, and charged into the jumble of stinking armor
and legs.
No
matter how tempting it was to clear a path with his ax, he knew that his safety
depended on stealth. Crouching low, he tried to scurry past the beasts without
brushing against them. It would have been easy for a scrawny gnome like Sverd,
but Tungdil was considerably broader.
Every
now and then he was spotted by an orc, but he kept moving to avoid being
caught. Twice he was seized by a clawed hand and had to use his ax to slice his
way free.
At
last he reached the place where Keenfire had fallen to the ground. He scanned
the flagstones, but the ax had vanished.
"Tungdil,
I've got something for you. Over here!" He turned in time to see the back
of a dwarven warrior disappear from view. Keenfire's ax head glittered in his
hands. "Come and get it."
This is no time for silly games. Tungdil set off in
pursuit, dragging his wounded leg across the floor. He left the muddle of
orcish shins and made for the shelter of a pillar. The beasts rushed on, too
focused on defeating the dwarven army to notice what was unfolding behind them.
To
his surprise, the dwarf turned and held out Keenfire toward him. Tungdil stared
at him in bewilderment. "You?"
"Looking
for this?" asked Bislipur. His body was twisted out of shape, his face a
mass of shattered bone. Judging by his fractured skull, he had fallen from a
great height. Tungdil could barely stand to look at him.
"I
see you've been punished for your plotting, then," he said grimly,
gripping his ax in readiness. He must he a revenant.
"I told King Gandogar—"
"I don't
give a damn about Gandogar."
"You
lowered yourself to all kinds of trickery to have him crowned and now he means
nothing to you?"
"All
I ever cared about was having a high king who would do my bidding, a high king
whom I could control." He swung the ax playfully. "A war against the
elves—that's what I wanted. I even murdered Gandogar's father and brother so I
could blame the elves and stoke his fury. How was I to know that I wouldn't
need the pointy-ears? It's turned out better than I expected." He pointed
to the dwarves locked in combat around them and laughed. "Don't you get
it, Tungdil?" he said, noticing the other's uncomprehending stare.
"I'm a thirdling—and so are you."
"No,"
whispered Tungdil. The shouts, screams, and ringing metal seemed to fade into
nothingness as he stared into Bislipur's knowing eyes. He tried not to remember
how he had initially felt drawn to him. "A thirdling? But I can't be. I'm
a fourthling, a dwarf of Goïmdil."
"Like
me, you mean?" Bislipur laughed in his face. "Tungdil, our destiny
is revenge. Lorimbur was scorned by his brothers. They wouldn't share their
talents and they mocked the thirdlings because they thought they were better.
The gifts they received from Vraccas made them arrogant like the elves. Don't
you see how they treated you?" He took a step forward. "Noble
Gundrabur and his loyal counselor, Balendilín, used you to suit their purpose.
Why else do you think they were interested in you? If Lot-Ionan's letter had
arrived at any other time, they would never have bothered fetching you from the
long-uns. That's how much they care! They're worthless, every last one of them.
They all deserve to die."
Tungdil
felt the words cut into his heart and found himself succumbing to Bislipur's
hypnotic stare. "No," he said hesitantly. "Balyndis..."
Bislipur
laughed spitefully. "So you've fallen for someone, have you? And how do
you think she'll react when she finds out you're a dwarf killer and a traitor?
Your future is with the thirdlings, not here. You'll die with the others if you
stay."
"A
traitor?" Tungdil stared at the battle in sudden understanding. At last
he grasped the full meaning of Bislipur's words. "It was you! You betrayed
us to Nôd’onn!"
"Nôd’onn
is a great ally, the greatest. I promised him that the thirdlings would do
nothing to stop him, provided that the other kingdoms were destroyed. It was
the perfect opportunity."
Tungdil
swallowed and tightened his grip on his ax. "You're crazy. You delivered
up Girdlegard just because—"
"No!"
the thirdling screeched suddenly. "Not just
because of anything! This is our destiny! For thousands of cycles we've been waiting
for a moment like this. No deed could be more glorious, Tungdil. Our folk, the
dwarves of Lorimbur, will rule all five ranges of Girdlegard once the others
are dead!"
"I
don't want anything to do with you or your folk! I came here to stop Nôd’onn
and save the dwarves. I don't belong to Lorimbur!"
"You're
one of us," Bislipur told him fiercely. "I knew it from the moment I
saw you. Look inside your heart and embrace your hatred. You're a thirdling,
believe me."
"Believe you? Why should I believe a traitor?" Tungdil
glared at him scornfully and took a deep breath. "Now give me
Keenfire."
Bislipur stared
at him suspiciously. "Why?"
"So
Nôd’onn can be killed. As for your punishment, I'll leave that to Gandogar and
the others to decide."
"It's
like that, is it?" He thumped the ax regretfully. "I'm afraid I'll
have to kill you, Tungdil. You risked everything for Keenfire, and now the
weapon will be your death. It seems a shame to—"
Tungdil
raised his ax without warning, but Bislipur countered his blow. From then on,
both dwarves fought mercilessly, but neither could win the upper hand.
"So
you still think you're not a thirdling, do you?" the traitor asked
mockingly. "How else would you have learned to fight so well in such a
short space of time? You were born a warrior."
"No!"
thundered Tungdil, slashing at him furiously. "I'll never be a thirdling."
The
two axes collided, and Keenfire shattered Tungdil's weapon. The ax head spun
into the air and struck Tungdil's nose guard with enough force to make him see stars.
Bislipur
didn't wait for him to recover, but moved in fast. Tungdil tried to step out of
the way and stumbled. At the last moment he pulled Bislipur with him, and they
wrestled each other to the ground.
The
battle continued on the floor, the two dwarves hacking at each other until
Keenfire fell from Bislipur's grasp. He whipped out a dagger and rammed it into
Tungdil's arm. Gasping, Tungdil grabbed his knife and plunged it into Bislipur's
throat.
"You're
wasting your time," Bislipur said derisively. "See what Balendilín
did to me? He couldn't kill me; the Perished Land wouldn't let him." He
landed a punch that knocked off Tungdil's helmet, then seized his chance to
scramble to safety. A well-aimed kick sent Tungdil's knife flying out of his
hand. "It's not a fair fight, Tungdil, and you're about to lose."
His
fingers wound their way into Tungdil's hair and hauled him up. "I'll give
you one last chance because you're a thirdling," he snarled. "Do you
want to die with the other scum, or come back with me and celebrate our
victory?"
Tungdil
had run out of weapons and had only one option. Fumbling in his pouch, he
pulled out Sverd's collar and looped it around the startled Bislipur's neck.
"The
gnome's choker? What good will that do? I'm dead already! I don't need
air!"
"Sure,
but you can't do without your head." Tungdil shoved him backward. The
maneuver cost him a clump of hair, but allowed him to reach for the magic wire
on Bislipur's belt. "And it's your head that I'm after."
A
sudden jerk, and the noose closed around Bislipur's neck. The collar tightened,
cutting into Bislipur's throat. At last the thirdling realized what Tungdil was
intending to do.
Grunting
inarticulately because of the pressure on his throat, he jabbed his dagger
toward Tungdil, who tugged on the wire. The choker passed through Bislipur's
neck, slicing through his spinal cord. The wire ran through its clasp, the
noose sprang open, and the traitor's head rolled across the floor. The hateful
collar fell apart, its evil charm broken.
There
was no time for Tungdil to savor his victory. Gathering up Keenfire, he ran as
fast as his injuries would permit him, determined to stand by his friends in
the fight against the magus.
The ax was back in their possession. Now all they needed was an enemy of the dwarves who could wield it against Nôd’onn.
The orcs drew back to let the magus
through. Suddenly everyone stopped fighting.
"Hello,
Andôkai," rasped Nôd’onn, inclining his head toward her. "You should
have allied yourself with me from the beginning, instead of squandering your
strength in futile resistance. I'll need your power to fight the peril from the
west."
"The
peril is here already. It lives within you, confusing your thoughts and
steering your deeds." She focused her energy on maintaining her protective
shield. "The demon is using you, Nudin."
"He's
my friend, a loyal friend of Girdlegard." He shook his head despairingly.
"You don't understand. No one understands."
"You're
right, Nudin; we don't understand. How many men, elves, and dwarves must die so
you can protect our kingdoms? It seems a high price to pay, especially when the
supposed peril is a figment of your poisoned mind."
"My
name is Nôd’onn/" His voice became a shrill,
nasal shout. "When you see what's coming from the west, you'll be grateful
that my friend and I protected you. Lay down your weapons, and I'll spare
you." There was an urgency to his doublefold voice; he seemed fully
convinced of everything he said. "I did what I did because you gave me no
choice. If you'd relinquished your power, it would never have come to
this."
Andôkai's
sword flashed as she raised her arm defiantly. "How I am supposed to
believe you after all the suffering you've caused?"
He
looked at her sadly. "In that case, we'll have to finish things properly.
You've had your chance." With a wave of his hand, he shattered her
protective spell.
Sinthoras
heard the shield collapse and lunged at the maga. She batted away his spear,
only to find herself under attack from three orcs who crowded round her,
cutting her off from her companions.
Suddenly
the älf was beside her and this time his spear was headed straight for her
chest. It collided with a shimmering shield.
Sinthoras
was sheathed in violet light. A terrible roar shook the hall, then Djerůn's
sword swooped down. The älf barely had time to raise his weapon.
No
wood in the world, not even sigurdaisy wood, could have withstood such a blow.
The giant's sword sliced through the spear and sped on. A wide sweeping blow
parted the disbelieving älf's head from his shoulders, and Sinthoras's headless
body slumped to the ground, never to rise again.
Grunting
in terror, the orcs shrank back from the king of the beasts as he straightened
up, howling, and opened his visor. His face was invisible in the blinding
light, but the orcs were rooted with fear, allowing the company to regroup.
Tungdil,
still clutching Keenfire, limped toward the maga. "I've got the
weapon." He pointed to Djerůn. "Is he an enemy of the
dwarves?" he asked, panting for breath.
"I don't
know. Are you prepared to give him Keenfire?"
"We
don't have a choice." He tossed the weapon to the giant.
Without
hesitating, Djerůn discarded his sword by ramming it through two orcs and
reached out to catch the ax.
Let's get this over with. Tungdil raised his horn
and sounded a long, powerful call. The dwarves of Beroïn, Borengar, and Goïmdil
answered with cheers and blaring bugles. "For Vraccas and
Girdlegard!" he shouted, leading the charge against the magus. Balyndis
and Gandogar were already at his side; the others stormed after them.
They
hewed down the orcs and bögnilim in their way, cutting a path of gory
destruction that brought Djerůn within striking distance of their foe. Andôkai
conjured a bolt of lightning, whose purpose was to dazzle the magus, then gave
the command for Djerůn to strike.
Before
Nôd’onn had time to compose himself, the mailed giant brought down the ax. It
hit the magus's unprotected back, sliced through his body, and sped out of his
chest. Stinking black fluid spurted everywhere, showering the transfixed
onlookers.
Nôd’onn
let out a terrible howl. The hall was still echoing with his screams when the
wound began to heal.
"No,"
whispered Tungdil in horror. "It's not possible. Keenfire was supposed
to..."
Nôd’onn
hurled bolts of black lightning at the giant, who fell backward and lay still
among the orcs. "I told you that nothing can hurt me," thundered the
magus. He bore no sign of injury, save for the gash in his robes.
We can't let it end this way! Filled with desperate
fury, Tungdil went on the offensive. While his friends tried to preoccupy the
magus by engaging him in an increasingly hopeless battle, he set off a second
time in search of the ax.
He
found Keenfire in Djerůn's stiff metal grasp. Prizing away the giant's
fingers, he picked up the ax and felt a strange sensation in his hand. What...?
Light
pulsed through the intarsia, and the diamonds came to life, shining and
sparkling like a thousand miniature suns. At first he thought Nôd’onn had
worked a spell on it, but then he saw that the ax itself had wrought the
change. Keenfire was readying itself to fight the demon.
By Vraccas, Bislipur was right: I'm a thirdling. No
sooner had he grasped the significance of what was happening than he decided to
turn his heritage to the good.
He
tightened his grip on Keenfire, squared his shoulders, and charged. Orcs tried
to block his path but perished in a blaze of white fire as he swung the
shimmering ax. A trail of smoke followed the swinging Keenfire, and Tungdil
could feel the heat from its blade. It burned with the fierce ardor of the
fifthlings' furnace.
Nôd’onn
recognized the danger before it was upon him. His self-assurance vanished,
replaced by pure terror. His magic could do nothing against the charging dwarf;
Tungdil was protected from harm by Keenfire's runes.
"Kill
me, and Girdlegard will be doomed," the magus prophesied. "Terrible
forces are gathering in the west and you won't be able to stop them." He
thrust his staff at Tungdil, who deflected the blow and lunged closer. "You'll be to blame for Girdlegard's destruction.
You must let me live!"
Tungdil
slashed at the magus's onyx-tipped staff. The black jewel shattered in a shower
of dark crystals.
"No,
Nôd’onn, evil will never triumph over Girdlegard. We'll protect our kingdoms,
just as we protected them from you." Tungdil swung his ax again. For Lot-Ionan, Frala, and her daughters.
The corpulent magus tried in vain to sidestep the blow. Even his final incantation failed to halt the blade, his hastily conjured runes flickering briefly as Keenfire smashed through them. The diamond-studded ax head buried itself in Nôd’onn's waist.
Like an overripe fruit, the magus
burst, spilling a foul mess of flesh, blood, and entrails. A finger-length
splinter of malachite shot out and was swept away in the reeking cascade.
Slowly,
a shimmering wisp of mist detached itself from the wreckage. It expanded
rapidly, coursing with black, silver, and crimson flashes and looming five paces
in the air. Fist-sized orbs burned red within its cavernous eyes as it stared
with hatred and malice at Tungdil. Then it shifted its gaze to the maga.
It needs a new victim.
The
swirling mist reached out toward Andôkai, who took a step backward. She raised
her sword, but the blade slid straight through it. The mist shrank, sprouting
thin transparent arms and imprisoning the maga in its grasp.
Groaning,
Andôkai staggered and fell to her knees as fingers of mist prized themselves
experimentally between her jaws. The being was determined to find a new home,
with or without her permission.
Tungdil
leaped toward her, bringing down his ax just as the flickering column of mist
readied itself to glide down her throat.
Keenfire's
runes sparkled as it hewed the mist in two. There was a loud hiss as the mist
drew back like a wounded beast. Tungdil closed in, swinging his ax and slashing
at the mist. Thin wisps floated through the hall and dispersed into
nothingness, but the demon was still alive and seemed intent on escaping to the
ceiling.
In that case I'll have to try another tactic.
Tungdil climbed onto an upturned pillar. Pain shot through his wounded arm and
leg as he sprinted forward, casting himself into the air and brandishing
Keenfire. "For Vraccas!"
He
had timed the leap well. Soaring into the middle of the mist, his blade found
its target. Runes blazing, the ax head left a cometlike trail of light. The
diamonds sparkled fiercely.
For
the span of a heartbeat Tungdil hovered at the heart of the demon. At first it
seemed as if the mist had stopped his fall; then there was a tearing noise and
a terrible groan.
Tungdil
plunged through the mist, skidded across the floor, and was saved by his chain
mail from serious cuts and grazes. Looking round, he saw he had punched a hole
through the flickering demon. Slowly the being sank to the ground, turning
first gray, then black, then disappearing altogether. In the end there was
nothing left.
No
one moved. Dwarves and beasts alike had witnessed the death of the magus and
the destruction of the demon. It was deathly still.
One
of the älf, who moments earlier had been spurring the hordes against the
dwarves, reached to his neck, screaming with pain. Suddenly his amulet burst
apart, tearing him to pieces. Soon the other älfar and a number of orcish
chieftains were dead or dying, slain by the magus's gifts.
A
bugle sounded the attack, and the dwarves of the three kingdoms fell upon their
foes.
The bögnilim
were the first to flee, followed by the orcs, but the children of the Smith
showed no pity or mercy, funneling them into the narrow passageways where the
battle continued. In the vast halls, the ceilings echoed with the clatter and
ringing of furious axes.
Slowly
Tungdil picked himself up from the floor. Balyndis was beside him, helping him
to his feet. "You did it!" She leaned forward and gave him a
lingering kiss on the lips.
It
was a moment he had dreamed of, but the truth about his lineage spoiled it.
"Only because I'm a thirdling," he said bitterly. A dwarf killer, he added silently.
She
nodded. "Praise be to Vraccas! Nôd’onn would still be alive if you
weren't!" She smiled. "You're a true dwarf, Tungdil. I don't care
which folk you belong to. I know in my heart that I can trust you, and that's
what counts."
He gave her hand a
grateful squeeze. Let's hope the others are as understanding.
Meanwhile,
Andôkai and a unit of dwarves had stormed the walkway and were attending to the
wounded Narmora. Boïndil had been cut down by Caphalor and needed the maga's
attentions as well. Djerůn was back on his feet again, his visor firmly
closed and his face still a mystery.
Dwarven
healers hurried over with water, balms, and dressings. Now that the duel with
the demon was over, Tungdil was acutely aware of his injuries and allowed himself
to be salved and bandaged. He found a worthy place for Keenfire in Giselbert
Ironeye's belt.
He
didn't have much opportunity to relax. Already Rodario was hurrying toward him.
"My
apologies for bothering Girdlegard's valiant hero, but I think we should check
on Furgas," he said anxiously. "Who knows what..."
"Valiant
hero?" Tungdil grinned. Not bad for a scholar.
I hope Frala and Lot-Ionan can see me now. He straightened up and
checked his bandages. "In that case, I'll have to rejoin the battle. In books
the hero always keeps fighting to the end."
"Blasted
älfar, they always creep up on you. I didn't hear him coming. He loomed up like
a shadow and attacked me from behind." Boïndil, his chest swathed in
bandages, hobbled down the stairs. "That's right, scholar, just like in a
book. My brother would be proud of you."
"Boïndil!"
Smiling with relief, Tungdil thumped him gently on the back: The thought of
losing another friend had been too much to bear. "Let's check on
Furgas."
Tungdil,
Rodario, Balyndis, Boïndil, and Djerůn hurried away. Andôkai caught up
with them after a few paces: They had started the journey as strangers and
wanted to end it as friends.
Blacksaddle, Kingdom of Gauragar,
Girdlegard,
Winter, 6234th
Solar Cycle
A chill
wind was buffeting the flat summit of the Blacksaddle, but shafts of sunlight
shone through the clouds and warmed the earth, heralding the coming of spring.
"For
many cycles this mountain was known as a place of foreboding, a dreaded
stronghold where a plot was hatched to destroy the dwarven race. Today's events
have changed all that. From this day forth, the Blacksaddle will be seen as a
symbol of hope, a symbol of a better future in which elves, men, and dwarves
will work together for the good of Girdlegard." Gandogar paused for a
moment and surveyed the assortment of leaders and warriors gathered on top of
the Blacksaddle.
Half
a cycle ago he would have ridiculed the idea of elven, human, and dwarven
rulers uniting on the accursed peak to celebrate a battle fought as allies, not
foes.
His
eyes traveled over the faces before him. Prince Mallen of Ido was sitting
beside Lord Liútasil of
Âlandur. Next came King Balendilín Onearm of the clan of the Firm
Fingers and Queen Xamtys II of the clan of the Stubborn Streaks, and behind
them were Nate, Bruron, and the other human sovereigns, not forgetting Andôkai,
of course.
After that, there was a short gap to the first row
of commoners, made up of Girdlegard's most distinguished warriors—dwarves,
elves, and men. They were straining to hear what their leaders were discussing.
Gandogar could see Tungdil and Balyndis among them, with Djerůn towering
like a pinnacle at their side.
"Together
we defeated the monstrous issue of Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty's alliance with a
demon from the north. Nôd’onn is dead, the Perished Land has been banished from
Girdlegard, and nature is returning to her ancient ways. Together we achieved
all this, and our kingdoms were saved, saved
because we buried old grudges, overcame our mutual distrust, and joined forces
in Girdlegard's hour of need." He raised his arms. "We prevailed! Is
this not reason enough to forget our past quarrels?"
He
waited for a moment, allowing his words to take effect.
"You,
Prince Mallen of Ido, rallied the human warriors after their defeat at Porista
and led the united army to the Blacksaddle in a courageous stand against Nôd’onn."
He smiled solemnly at Idoslane's ruler, then turned to face the elven leader.
"And you, Lord Liútasil of Âlandur, welcomed us into your kingdom when we
asked for your help. Your heart must have counseled you against it, but you
came to our aid." He looked at Balendilín and Xamtys. "And you,
worthy children of the Smith, you reforged the bonds between our kingdoms and
honored the duty entrusted to us by Vraccas." He raised his voice
triumphantly. "Friends, together we
rescued Girdlegard!"
The
warriors of the assembled races thumped their shields and banged their weapons
together.
"We
must rid our hearts of hatred. Our past battles are just that: They belong in
the past and are best forgotten. This orbit marks the start of a new age: one
of peace, cooperation, and friendship." He held his ax aloft, and the
other monarchs rose to their feet to pledge a new era of friendship.
This
time his speech was met with deafening cheers. Swept away by the excitement,
Balyndis planted another kiss on Tungdil's lips. Even in the last moments of
the battle she hadn't known whether or not they would succeed, and now she was
overcome with gladness and relief. "You must be really proud," she
said.
"Proud
of what? Being a thirdling?" he retorted, only half joking. His voice was edged
with resentment.
"Proud
of being the only thirdling to save the dwarven folks instead of trying to
destroy them." She smiled. "Come on, Tungdil, we're lucky to have
made it alive."
He
thought of Narmora and Furgas lying side by side in the stronghold. They would
have shared a different fate if Andôkai hadn't summoned the last of her
strength to invoke a healing charm. Dwarven physicians were still tending to
their wounds. Then there were those who had been gathered to Vraccas's smithy: I haven't forgotten you, Bavragor and Goïmgar.
He looked up to
see Gandogar pointing straight at him.
"But
above all we owe our thanks to Tungdil Goldhand," announced the dwarven
king. "Step forward, Tungdil."
Nervously, he
obeyed.
"Take
a good look at him, for without Tungdil, without his stubbornness, his
ingenuity, and most important, his unshakable faith in our mission, none of us
would be standing here today. Without Tungdil Goldhand, Nôd’onn would have
killed or enslaved us all."
Suddenly
it seemed to Tungdil that every dwarf, elf, and man on the Blacksaddle was
staring at him. He blushed and felt terribly embarrassed. He reached down and
rested a hand on Keenfire, which made him feel slightly less shy.
"We
will never be in a position to repay our debt," said Gandogar gravely.
"But know this: For as long as you live, Tungdil Goldhand, I will do
everything in my power to satisfy your every wish."
Liútasil
turned his slender, graceful face toward him. "We have never numbered
among the dwarves' closest friends, but we are beholden to you, Tungdil
Goldhand. We too will grant you whatever you desire."
The
human sovereigns swore similar oaths of gratitude while Tungdil squirmed in
embarrassment.
"Prithee,
stop, Your Majesties," he interrupted.
Boïndil
rolled his eyes. "Here he goes again. Wake me up when he's finished."
Tungdil
took a deep breath. "You don't owe me anything. My only wish has been
granted already: All I want is for dwarves, elves, and men to come together in
friendship, not war. You pledged an end to our quarreling, and what more could
I desire? Gold and riches count for nothing without peace. I can't accept your
gifts, but I shall gladly accept your thanks, especially on behalf of my
companions, Bavragor Hammerfist of the clan of the Hammer Fists and Goïmgar
Shimmerbeard of the clan of the Shimmer Beards. Bavragor and Goïmgar risked
everything for Girdlegard, and they paid the highest price. Keenfire would
never have been forged without them."
The
elven lord inclined his head toward him. "You speak with the wisdom of a
true leader, Tungdil Goldhand. If ever we are in danger of resuming our old
rivalries, you must remind us of the oaths of friendship sworn today. You will
always be welcome in Âlandur."
There
was thunderous applause from the warriors, who hammered on their shields,
sounded their bugles, and cheered tirelessly. Tungdil scurried back to
Balyndis's side.
Boïndil
pretended to scowl at him. "Show us your tongue," he demanded.
"I bet you've talked it into knots."
Tungdil
just grinned. He was happy that his lessons in rhetoric had been put to proper
use.
After
a while the assembly dissolved and the allied armies retired to the stronghold
to celebrate their victory and negotiate their newfound friendship.
Balendilín
and Gandogar joined the others. "What an orbit this has been!" the
secondling king said happily. "Who would have thought it would turn out so
well?" He thumped Tungdil on the shoulder. "Vraccas sent us the
dwarf of all dwarves, and if anyone cares to dispute it, I'll set up another
contest with five new tasks." He laughed and the others joined in.
Gandogar
noticed that Tungdil's jollity seemed a little forced. "Is something the
matter?"
"It's nothing."
"No,
something's wrong. Is it because you think you're a thirdling?"
"I am a thirdling! How else could I have awoken
Keenfire's power?"
"Then
be proud to be a thirdling, Tungdil," Balendilín exhorted him solemnly.
"Show your kinsfolk, show every dwarf in Girdlegard, that Lorimbur's
descendants aren't all as dastardly and conniving as Bislipur and Glamdolin.
Incidentally," he added with a mischievous smile, "were you planning
to return to Ogre's Death or is there somewhere else you'd rather be?"
"Balyndis
and I won't be going to the firstling kingdom, if that's what you mean,"
he said, grinning bashfully. "We're both smiths at heart, and our
interests and experiences have soldered us together. We've decided to go to the
Gray Range. Boïndil's coming with us and we'll pick up Boëndal on the way. I
promised Giselbert Ironeye that I wouldn't abandon his kingdom and I intend to
keep my word."
The
rising winds carried a foul smell to their nostrils. It came from the plains
around the Blacksaddle, where the corpses of ogres, orcs, bögnilim, and älfar
were strewn. The combined army of elves, dwarves, and men had laid waste to the
enemy battalions. A few undead troopers had survived the massacre, only to lose
their lives forever with the defeat of the Perished Land. Their corpses were
rotting in the winter sunshine, but the carnage would soon be frozen overnight.
"It
will take time to bury all the bodies," Gandogar said grimly. "I hope
the earth can suffer so much death."
Rodario
joined them, quill and notebook in hand. "A magnificent finale for a
play, don't you think? Too many corpses for practical purposes—we'd never fit
them on stage." He stopped making notes and extended his hand toward Tungdil.
"It was a privilege to accompany you. If you find yourself in Mifurdania,
be sure to visit the Curiosum. We'll be celebrating our grand reopening."
He winked at Tungdil. "As the star of the show, you'll qualify for free
admission—and Balyndis as well."
"When are
you off?"
"As
soon as my prop master and my leading lady are fit to ride. A fortnight or so,
I expect. In the meantime, they've found room for us here."
Andôkai
strode toward them. "Djerůn and I are leaving. I need to get back to
my realm and find some new famuli."
"Why the
hurry, dear heart?" Rodario said lightly.
The
maga refused to be drawn. "I don't want to spoil the mood."
"Impossible!"
he declared with overblown enthusiasm. "Nothing could spoil a victory like
this!"
"I
wouldn't be so sure." Her lips were unsmiling. "What if Nôd’onn
wasn't lying after all?"
"About
the western peril?" The impresario laughed incredulously. "My dear
lady, you shouldn't be fooled by a cheap trick like that. You disappoint
me!"
"Say
what you like, but I intend to be vigilant." She laid her hand on
Tungdil's arm. "At least I'll know where to find Keenfire and its valiant
bearer, should Nudin prove right." At last her stern face relaxed.
"You're stubborn enough to take on any kind of peril single-handed,"
she told him.
She
took her leave of the company, giving everyone except Rodario a long embrace.
He pouted and stalked away, only to turn after a few paces and wave.
"Farewell, enchanting maga. I shall take your advice and devote my
attentions to women who know how to appreciate me—and believe me, they do!"
Andôkai
hurried away, followed, as always, by Djerůn. The others watched in
silence as the strange pair passed from sight. Balendilín called the group to
attention by clearing his throat.
"I
must take my leave as well, dear friends. The assembly will soon be meeting to
decide the succession, and I need to make sure that everything's in
place." He inclined his head toward Gandogar. "I don't doubt that the
delegates will vote in your favor. You have proven yourself a worthy heir since
stepping out of Bislipur's shadow; I know you will make an excellent high
king."
"I'd
even vote for him myself," said Tungdil with a grin. He held out his hand
to Gandogar, who shook it firmly and seemed moved. "Don't forget to send a
hundred of your best warriors and artisans to the fifthling kingdom. That goes
for all the folks—Balyndis and I will appreciate the company, and we won't be
able to defend the Stone Gateway on our own. I want to rebuild Giselbert's
kingdom." He paused for a moment, remembering the promise he had made.
"The Gray Range will belong to the children of Vraccas. Who knows, perhaps
our mysterious rescuers will join us? They might be glad to leave the drafty
tunnels for a more comfortable home."
"You should
certainly ask them," Gandogar concurred.
"Vraccas
will be proud to see us forging a folk of our own. But what should we do about
the thirdlings?" Balendilín asked.
Tungdil
turned to the east and gazed in the direction of the Black Range, where
Lorimbur's descendants had made their home.
"I
can't be the only thirdling who wasn't born to hate his fellow dwarves,"
he said softly. "Once things are settled in the fifthling kingdom, I'll
pay them a visit and see what they have to say." He looked into the eyes
of the three dwarven rulers. "I meant what I said when I asked for peace.
The thirdlings are no exception."
Balyndis
smiled and took his hand. He gave it a little squeeze.
Gradually
the others made their way down from the mountain. Balyndis and Tungdil
lingered on the summit until the sun dropped below the horizon and stars filled
the sky. There was a crisp chill in the air, reminding them that Girdlegard was
still in the grip of winter.
Tungdil
had wrapped his fingers around Balyndis's hand and had no intention of letting
go.
Just
then a shooting star left a glittering trail from east to west, the white light
turning red as it shot across the sky. There was a brief red flare; then the
light dispersed into myriad crimson dots that reminded Tungdil of scattered
blood. At last they were swallowed by the darkness of the sky.
"Was
that a good or a bad omen, do you think?" Balyndis asked uncertainly.
He
gave a shrug, then stepped back and hugged her from behind. "A good
omen," he said after a short silence, running his hand over her downy
cheeks.
"How do you
know?"
He
studied the night sky and spotted the distant lights of settlements. He was
glad of the stillness that peace had brought with it. The prospect of spring,
when trees and plants would blossom throughout Girdlegard, was exciting. All Girdlegard will be covered in greenery for the first
time in a thousand cycles.
"After
everything we've been through, it has to be a good omen," he whispered in
her ear. "It was red, the color of love, so it must mean something good.
Come on, let's find the others. We've got something to celebrate."
Hand
in hand they made their way down from the Blacksaddle, whose looming presence
had lost its terror for the dwarven folks.
They
were halfway down the steps that led into the stronghold when a second streak
of light flashed above them.
Unseen
and unnoticed, the comet sped toward the west. Still shining brightly, it
dipped toward the earth, sailing through the clouds and leaving a deep red
trail in the sky. At last it disappeared on the horizon beyond the firstling
kingdom. It hit the ground with a muffled thud, sending a shudder through
Girdlegard. Even the Blacksaddle trembled.
Then everything was quiet...
Dwarves
Firstling
Kingdom
Xamtys Stubbornstreak II
of the clan of the Stubborn Streaks, queen of
Borengar's folk.
Balyndis Steelfinger of
the clan of the Steel Fingers, blacksmith and custodian of the gates.
Secondling Kingdom
Gundrabur Whitecrown of
the clan of the Hard Rocks, high king and leader of Beroïn’s folk.
Balendilín Onearm of the
clan of the Firm Fingers, counselor to the high king.
Bavragor Hammerfist of
the clan of the Hammer Fists, mason.
Boëndal Hookhand and Boïndil Doubleblade, known also as Ireheart, of the clan of the Swinging Axes,
warriors and twins.
Thirdling Kingdom
—
Fourthling Kingdom
Gandogar Silverbeard of
the clan of the Silver Beards, king of Goïmdil’s
folk.
Bislipur Surestroke of
the clan of the Brawny Fists, adviser to the fourthling king.
Tungdil Bolofar, later Goldhand, foundling and Lot-Ionan's ward.
Goïmgar Shimmerbeard of the clan of
the Shimmer Beards, gem cutter.
Fifthling Kingdom
Giselbert
Ironeye, father of the fifthlings, king of Giselbert's folk.
Glandallin
Hammerstrike of the clan of the Striking Hammers, warrior.
Humans
Andôkai
the Tempestuous, maga and ruler of the enchanted realm of Brandôkai.
Djerůn, bodyguard in the service of Andôkai.
Lot-Ionan
the Forbearing, magus and ruler of the enchanted realm of Ionandar.
Maira
the Life-Preserver, maga and ruler of the enchanted realm of Oremaira.
Nudin the Knowledge-Lusty, magus and ruler of the enchanted realm
of Lios Nudin.
Sabora
the Softly-Spoken, maga and ruler of the enchanted realm of Saborien.
Turgur
the Fair-Faced, magus and ruler of the enchanted realm of Turguria.
Gorén, wizard formerly
apprenticed to Lot-Ionan.
Frala,
maid in the service of Lot-Ionan, mother of Sunja and Ikana.
Jolosin,
famulus apprenticed to Lot-Ionan.
Eiden, groom in the service of Lot-Ionan.
Rantja,
famula apprenticed to Nudin.
The fabulous Rodario, actor and impresario. Furgas, theater technician and prop master. Narmora, actress and companion to Furgas.
Hîl and
Kerolus, peddlers.
Vrabor and Friedegard, envoys to the council of the magi.
Prince
Mallen of Ido, exiled heir to the throne of Idoslane.
King
Lothaire, sovereign of Urgon.
King
Tilogorn, sovereign of Idoslane.
King
Nate, sovereign of Tabaîn.
King
Bruron, sovereign of Gauragar.
Queen
Umilante, sovereign of Sangpûr.
Queen
Wey IV, sovereign of Weyurn.
Queen
Isika, sovereign of Ran Ribastur.
Others
Sinthoras and Caphalor,
älfar from the kingdom of Dsôn Balsur.
Liútasil, lord of Âlandur, kingdom of the elves.
Bashkugg, Kragnarr, and Ushnotz, orcish princes of Toboribor.
Sverd, gnome enslaved by Bislipur.
When
I finished the final volume of my Ulldart series, I decided to tackle a new project:
dwarves. It was a nerve-racking prospect. Most readers have fixed ideas about
how they like their dwarves to look and act; I didn't want to disappoint their
expectations, but at the same time I needed to do something new.
And
so I went ahead and created my dwarves. I invented clans and folks for them to
belong to, and I gave them particular talents and traits. I was careful not to
stray too far from the traditional dwarf, but I added bits here and there, and
I gave my dwarves a chance to prove their mettle. I didn't want them to be
extras or sidekicks, so I made them into proper protagonists who outshine the
humans and elves. My dwarves are the valiant defenders of Girdlegard, true
heroes who fight—and sometimes die—in the line of duty.
I
sent Tungdil and his companions on a perilous mission, and it had me on the
edge of my seat. These pages are chock-full of dwarven dedication, passion,
determination, exuberance, war, and death. Writing them was great fun, and
with any luck, reading them will be entertaining as well.
My
particular thanks go to those who made this a better and more interesting
book. Among the first to see the manuscript were Nicole Schuhmacher, Sonja Rüther,
Meike Sewering, and Dr. Patrick Müller. Their thoughtful comments and
suggestions were immensely helpful, as always.
Many
thanks to translator Sally-Ann Spencer, who taught the dwarves a new language.
I would also like to thank those who allowed me to send the dwarves on their very own adventure. It was time the little fellows had their big chance.
extras
Markus Heitz was born in 1971 in Germany. He studied history, German language, and literature and won the German Fantasy Award in 2003 for his debut novel, Shadows Over Ulldart. His Dwarves series is a bestseller in Europe. Markus Heitz lives in Zweibrücken.
The
tail of the comet blazed red in the sky, showering debris large enough to crush
a human house. The dwarves heard a drawn-out whistle, then an ear-splitting
bang. The ground shook and trembled like a frightened beast. Plumes of snow
shot upward, looming like luminous towers in the dark night sky. The air hissed
and angry clouds of moisture rose from the vaporizing snow. Thick white fog
wrapped itself around Boëndal like a blindfold.
"To
the stronghold!" he commanded, realizing that watch-towers and battlements
were no match for celestial might. "We'll be safer inside!" Bracing
himself against the brazier, he tried to get to his feet; a moment later, one
of the sentries was beside him, pulling him up.
Boëndal
lost his bearings in the strange-smelling fog, but his companion knew the way
without seeing. They ran, skidding and sliding every few paces until they
resigned themselves to crawling and pulling themselves forward on their axes.
"Quick, we need to . . ."
Boëndal's
command was cut off by a droning from above. He knew exactly what it meant: the
battlements were about to be hit by a volley of burning rock.
There
was no time to shout a warning. The fog had already turned a muddy orange,
darkening to black-streaked red as an unbearable screeching filled the air.
Vraccas protect us! Boëndal closed his eyes as a
gigantic slab of burning ice hurtled toward him. A moment later, it slammed
into the solid stone walkway. Boëndal heard faint shrieks as dwarves in front
of him tumbled to their deaths. He couldn't see where the rock had landed
because of the fog.
"Turn
back!" shouted Boëndal, crawling away from the shattered stone. Hampered
by his injured back, he longed for his old agility. "To the northern
walkway!"
Flagstones
quaked beneath their feet as the colossal towers swayed like reeds in the
breeze. Cracks opened in the groaning masonry and sections of battlement
plummeted to the ground.
The
bombardment continued as they hurried along the northern walkway to the highest
tower. They came to a halt at the bridge. The single-span arch construction was
the only way into the kingdom and the safety of the firstling halls. Beneath
the bridge was a yawning chasm, two hundred paces deep.
A
gusty wind swept the watchtowers, chasing away the mist. At last they could see
the gates leading into the mountain and safety.
"Vraccas
forfend!" cried one of the sentries, who had turned and was pointing back
at the lifting mist.
The
fortifications of East Ironhald were in ruins.
Only
four of the nine towers were still standing; the rest had been crushed,
toppled, or flattened, leaving five rings of masonry protruding like rotten
tooth stumps from the ground. The mighty ramparts, hewn from the mountain by
dwarven masons, were riven with cracks wide enough for a band of trolls to
breach the defenses with ease.
"Keep
moving!" Boëndal urged them. "You can worry about the ramparts as
soon as we've made it to safety. Walls can be rebuilt."
He
and the others had barely set foot on the bridge when they heard a low rumbling
like distant thunder. Then the earth moved again.
The
falling boulders from the comet's tail had shaken the fortifications and caused
the walkways to quake, but this time the tremor was deeper and more powerful,
causing walls, towers, dwarves, peaks, and ridges to shudder and sway.
The
Red Range had stood firm for thousands of cycles, but nothing could withstand
the violent quake.
Most
of the dwarves were knocked off their feet, hitting the flagstones in a
jangling of chain mail. Axes flew through the air and clattered to the ground,
while helmets collided with stone. Two of the surviving towers collapsed with a
deafening bang, raising clouds of dust that shrouded the rubble.
Boëndal
thought of the vast orb that had passed overhead. He had only one explanation
for the tremor: The comet had landed in the mountains to the west, sending
shock waves through the ground. He tried not to imagine what was happening in
the underground halls and passageways, how many firstlings were dying, how many
dead.
The
rumbling grew fainter, the quaking subsided, and at last it was still. The
dwarves held their breath, waiting for what was next.
An
acrid smell burned their throats. The air was thick with dust from the ruined
masonry, and smoke rose from scattered fires.
The
fearsome heat had passed with the comet, and it was snowing again. From a
distance, the stillness could have been mistaken for tranquillity, but it was
born of destruction. Death had visited the Red Range and ravaged the
firstlings' home.
"Vraccas
have mercy," whispered Boëndal's companion, his voice as sorrowful and
defenseless as a child's.
Boëndal
knew what he was thinking. Dwarves were fearless: They threw themselves into
battle regardless of the odds and defended Girdlegard against the invading
hordes. Their axes and hammers brought death to the most monstrous of Tion's
beasts, but no dwarven weapon could match a foe like this. "We couldn't
have stopped it," he told him. "Even Vraccas can't catch a falling
star."
Leaning
over the bridge, he realized that the base of the tower was seriously unstable.
Cracks, each as wide as an outstretched arm, had opened in the stone and were
spreading through the masonry. He could almost hear it breaking. "Quick,
before the tower collapses and takes us with it!" He set off quickly
across the bridge, followed by a handful of survivors.
They
were almost halfway when a large clump of snow struck Boëndal on the neck. What a time to play stupid games ... He brushed
away the snow and kept walking.
The
second snowball hit his left shoulder, showering him with snow. He whirled
round to confront the hapless prankster. "By the hammer of Beroïn,
I'll—"
Before
he could finish, the dark sky opened up and pelted him with clumps of snow.
Powdery snowballs hit the bridge, his helmet, and the other dwarves. Boëndal
heard a faint rumbling and the bombardment intensified; he knew what it was.
The
mountains, not his companions, had started the assault.
Boëndal's
stomach lurched as he scanned the peaks around him. Although the comet had hit
the ground many miles to the west, it had called forth a monster that lurked
above the dwarven halls. Boëndal had seen it hundreds of times while standing
watch in the secondling kingdom. The White Death, roused by the rain and the
tremors, had mounted its steed near the summit and was galloping down the
slopes. In the space of two breaths it filled the mountainside, crushing and
consuming everything in its path.
Like
a vast wave, the snow rolled down the mountain, throwing up powdery spray.
Everything before it was toppled, stifled, and dragged on its downward plunge.
"Run!"
shouted Boëndal. His legs seemed to move of their own accord. After a few
paces, he slipped over, but someone grabbed him by the braid and he stumbled to
his feet. Two dwarves slotted their hands under his armpits and pulled him on.
Driven by fear, they stumbled over the bridge, more skating than running.
Even
as the gates swung back to admit them, the White Death reeled them in.
Hurling
itself triumphantly over the precipice, it fell on the dwarves like a starving
animal. Its icy body smacked into the bridge, knocking them into the chasm.
Boëndal's
shouts were drowned out by the roaring, thundering beast. His mouth filled
with snow. He clutched at the air until his right hand grabbed a falling
shield, which he clung to as if he were drowning.
His
descent was fast—so fast that his stomach was spinning in all directions. He
had no way of orienting himself in the snow, but the shield cut through the
powder like a spade.
Tiring
of the dwarf, the White Death dumped him and covered him over. The weight of
the cold beast's body pushed the air from his lungs.
A
little while later Boëndal blacked out. Night descended on his consciousness
and his soul was ready to be summoned to Vraccas's smithy. At least it would be
warm.